</div1
title="Donal Grant">
DONAL
GRANT
BY
GEORGE
MACDONALD, LL.D.
1905
edition
Kegan Paul, Trench, Trübner
& Co.,
This etext was created by
John Bechard, London, England (JaBBechard@aol.com)
Note from electronic text
creator: I have compiled a glossary with definitions of most of the Scottish
words found in this work and placed it at the end of this electronic text. This glossary does not belong to the original
work, but is designed to help with the conversations and references in Broad
Scots found in this work. A
further explanation of this list can be found towards the end of this document,
preceding the glossary.
Any notes that I have
made in the text (e.g. relating to Greek words in the text) have been enclosed
in {} brackets.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER I. FOOT-FARING.">
CHAPTER
I.
FOOT-FARING.
IT
was a lovely morning in the first of summer. Donal Grant was descending a path
on a hillside to the valley below--a sheep-track of which he knew every winding
as well as any boy his half-mile to and from school. But he had never before
gone down the hill with the feeling that he was not about to go up again. He
was on his way to pastures very new, and in the distance only negatively
inviting. But his heart was too full to be troubled--nor was his a heart to
harbour a care, the next thing to an evil spirit, though not quite so bad; for
one care may drive out another, while one devil is sure to bring in another.
A
great billowy waste of mountains lay beyond him, amongst which played the
shadow at their games of hide and seek--graciously merry in the eyes of the
happy man, but sadly solemn in the eyes of him in whose heart the dreary
thoughts of the past are at a like game. Behind Donal lay a world of dreams
into which he dared not turn and look, yet from which he could scarce avert his
eyes.
He
was nearing the foot of the hill when he stumbled and almost fell, but
recovered himself with the agility of a mountaineer, and the unpleasant
knowledge that the sole of one of his shoes was all but off. Never had he left
home for college that his father had not made personal inspection of his shoes
to see that they were fit for the journey, but on this departure they had been
forgotten. He sat down and took off the failing equipment. It was too far gone
to do anything temporary with it; and of discomforts a loose sole to one's shoe
in walking is of the worst. The only thing was to take off the other shoe and
both stockings and
go barefoot. He tied all together with a piece of string, made them fast to his
deerskin knapsack, and resumed his walk. The thing did not trouble him much. To
have what we want is riches, but to be able to do without is power. To have
shoes is a good thing; to be able to walk without them is a better. But it was
long since Donal had walked barefoot, and he found his feet like his shoe,
weaker in the sole than was pleasant.
"It's time," he
said to himself, when he found he was stepping gingerly, "I ga'e my feet a
turn at the auld accomplishment. It's a pity to grow nae so fit for onything
suner nor ye need. I wad like to lie doon at last wi' hard soles!"
In every stream he came to
he bathed his feet, and often on the way rested them, when otherwise able
enough to go on. He had no certain goal, though he knew his direction, and was
in no haste. He had confidence in God and in his own powers as the gift of God,
and knew that wherever he went he needed not be hungry long, even should the
little money in his pocket be spent. It is better to trust in work than in
money: God never buys anything, and is for ever at work; but if any one trust
in work, he has to learn that he must trust in nothing but strength--the
self-existent, original strength only; and Donal Grant had long begun to learn
that. The man has begun to be strong who knows that, separated from life
essential, he is weakness itself, that, one with his origin, he will be of
strength inexhaustible. Donal was now descending the heights of youth to walk
along the king's highroad of manhood: happy he who, as his sun is going down
behind the western, is himself ascending the eastern hill, returning through old
age to the second and better childhood which shall not be taken from him! He
who turns his back on the setting sun goes to meet the rising sun; he who loses
his life shall find it. Donal had lost his past--but not so as to be ashamed.
There are many ways of losing! His past had but crept, like the dead, back to
God who gave it; in better shape it would be his by and by! Already he had
begun to foreshadow this truth: God would keep it for him.
He had set out before the
sun was up, for he would not be met by friends or acquaintances. Avoiding the
well-known farmhouses and occasional village, he took his way up the river, and
about noon came to a hamlet where no one knew him--a cluster of straw-roofed
cottages, low and white, with two little windows each. He walked straight
through it not meaning to stop; but, spying in front of the last cottage a
rough stone seat under a low, widespreading elder tree, was tempted to sit down
and rest a little. The day was now hot, and the shadow of the tree inviting.
He had but seated himself
when a woman came to the door of the cottage, looked at him for a moment, and
probably thinking him, from his bare feet, poorer than he was, said--
"Wad ye like a
drink?"
"Ay, wad I,"
answered Donal, "--a drink o' watter, gien ye please."
"What for no
milk?" asked the woman.
"'Cause I'm able to pey
for 't," answered Donal.
"I want nae
peyment," she rejoined, perceiving his drift as little as probably my
reader.
"An' I want nae
milk," returned Donal.
"Weel, ye may pey for
't gien ye like," she rejoined.
"But I dinna
like," replied Donal.
"Weel, ye're a some
queer customer!" she remarked.
"I thank ye, but I'm
nae customer, 'cep' for a drink o' watter," he persisted, looking in her
face with a smile; "an' watter has aye been grâtis sin' the days o'
Adam--'cep' maybe i' toons i' the het pairts o' the warl'."
The woman turned into the
cottage, and came out again presently with a delft basin, holding about a pint,
full of milk, yellow and rich.
"There!" she said;
"drink an' be thankfu'."
"I'll be thankfu' ohn
drunken," said Donal. "I thank ye wi' a' my heart. But I canna bide
to tak for naething what I can pey for, an' I dinna like to lay oot my siller
upon a luxury I can weel eneuch du wantin', for I haena muckle. I wadna be
shabby nor yet greedy."
"Drink for the love o'
God," said the woman.
Donal took the bowl from her
hand, and drank till all was gone.
"Wull ye hae a drap
mair?" she asked.
"Na, no a drap,"
answered Donal. "I'll gang i' the stren'th o' that ye hae gi'en me--maybe
no jist forty days, gudewife, but mair nor forty minutes, an' that's a gude
pairt o' a day. I thank ye hertily. Yon was the milk o' human kin'ness, gien
ever was ony."
As he spoke he rose, and
stood up refreshed for his journey.
"I hae a sodger laddie
awa' i' the het pairts ye spak o'," said the woman: "gien ye hadna
ta'en the milk, ye wad hae gi'en me a sair hert."
"Eh, gudewife, it wad
hae gi'en me ane to think I had!" returned Donal. "The Lord gie ye
back yer sodger laddie safe an' soon'! Maybe I'll hae to gang efter 'im, sodger
mysel'."
"Na, na, that wadna do.
Ye're a scholar--that's easy to see, for a' ye're sae plain spoken. It dis a
body's hert guid to hear a man 'at un'erstan's things say them plain oot i' the
tongue his mither taucht him. Sic a ane 'ill gang straucht till's makker, an'
fin' a'thing there hame-like. Lord, I wuss minnisters wad speyk like ither
fowk!"
"Ye wad sair please my
mither sayin' that," remarked Donal. "Ye maun be jist sic anither as
her!"
"Weel, come in, an' sit
ye doon oot o' the sin, an' hae something to ait."
"Na, I'll tak nae mair
frae ye the day, an' I thank ye," replied Donal; "I canna weel
bide."
"What for no?"
"It's no sae muckle 'at
I'm in a hurry as 'at I maun be duin'."
"Whaur are ye b'un'
for, gien a body may speir?"
"I'm gaein' to seek--no
my fortin, but my daily breid. Gien I spak as a richt man, I wad say I was
gaein' to luik for the wark set me. I'm feart to say that straucht oot; I haena
won sae far as that yet. I winna du naething though 'at he wadna hae me du. I
daur to say that--sae be I un'erstan'. My mither says the day 'ill come whan
I'll care for naething but his wull."
"Yer mither 'ill be
Janet Grant, I'm thinkin'! There canna be twa sic in ae country-side!"
"Ye're i' the
richt," answered Donal. "Ken ye my mither?"
"I hae seen her; an' to
see her 's to ken her."
"Ay, gien wha sees her
be sic like 's hersel'."
"I canna preten' to
that; but she's weel kent throu' a' the country for a God-fearin' wuman.--An'
whaur 'll ye be for the noo?"
"I'm jist upo' the
tramp, luikin' for wark."
"An' what may ye be
pleast to ca' wark?"
"Ow, jist the
communication o' what I hae the un'erstan'in' o'."
"Aweel, gien ye'll
condescen' to advice frae an auld wife, I'll gie ye a bit wi' ye: tak na ilka
lass ye see for a born angel. Misdoobt her a wee to begin wi'. Hing up yer
jeedgment o' her a wee. Luik to the moo' an' the e'en o' her."
"I thank ye," said
Donal, with a smile, in which the woman spied the sadness; "I'm no like to
need the advice."
She looked at him pitifully,
and paused.
"Gien ye come this gait
again," she said, "ye'll no gang by my door?"
"I wull no,"
replied Donal, and wishing her good-bye with a grateful heart, betook himself
to his journey.
He had not gone far when he
found himself on a wide moor. He sat down on a big stone, and began to turn
things over in his mind. This is how his thoughts went:
"I can never be the man
I was! The thoucht o' my heart 's ta'en frae me! I canna think aboot things as
I used. There's naething sae bonny as afore. Whan the life slips frae him, hoo
can a man gang on livin'! Yet I'm no deid--that's what maks the diffeeclety o'
the situation! Gien I war deid--weel, I kenna what than! I doobt there wad be
trible still, though some things micht be lichter. But that's neither here nor
there; I maun live; I hae nae ch'ice; I didna mak mysel', an' I'm no gaein' to
meddle wi' mysel'! I think mair o' mysel' nor daur that!
"But there's ae question
I maun sattle afore I gang farther--an' that's this: am I to be less or mair
nor I was afore? It's agreed I canna be the same: if I canna be the same, I
maun aither be less or greater than I was afore: whilk o' them is't to be? I
winna hae that queston to speir mair nor ance! I'll be mair nor I was. To sink
to less wad be to lowse grip o' my past as weel's o' my futur! An' hoo wad I
ever luik her i' the face gien I grew less because o' her! A chiel' like me lat
a bonny lassie think hersel' to blame for what I grew til! An' there's a
greater nor the lass to be considert! 'Cause he seesna fit to gie me her I wad
hae, is he no to hae his wull o' me? It's a gran' thing to ken a lassie like
yon, an' a gran'er thing yet to be allooed to lo'e her: to sit down an' greit
'cause I'm no to merry her, wad be most oongratefu'! What for sud I threip 'at
I oucht to hae her? What for sudna I be disapp'intit as weel as anither? I hae
as guid a richt to ony guid 'at's to come o' that, I fancy! Gien it be a man's
pairt to cairry a sair hert, it canna be his pairt to sit doon wi' 't upo' the
ro'd-side, an' lay't upo' his lap, an' greit ower't, like a bairn wi' a cuttit
finger: he maun haud on his ro'd. Wha am I to differ frae the lave o' my fowk!
I s' be like the lave, an' gien I greit I winna girn. The Lord himsel' had to
be croont wi' pain. Eh, my bonnie doo! But ye lo'e a better man, an' that's a
sair comfort! Gien it had been itherwise, I div not think I could hae borne the
pain at my hert. But as it's guid an' no ill 'at's come to ye, I haena you an'
mysel' tu to greit for, an' that's a sair comfort! Lord, I'll clim' to thee,
an' gaither o' the healin' 'at grows for the nations i' thy gairden.
"I see the thing as
plain's thing can be: the cure o' a' ill 's jist mair life! That's it! Life
abune an' ayont the life 'at took the stroke! An' gien throu' this hert-brak I
come by mair life, it'll be jist ane o' the throes o' my h'avenly birth--i' the
whilk the bairn has as mony o' the pains as the mither: that's maybe a differ 'atween
the twa--the earthly an' the h'avenly!
"Sae noo I hae to begin
fresh, an' lat the thing 'at's past an' gane slip efter ither dreams. Eh, but
it's a bonny dream yet! It lies close 'ahin' me, no to be forgotten, no to be
luikit at--like ane o' thae dreams o' watter an' munelicht 'at has nae wark i'
them: a body wadna lie a' nicht an' a' day tu in a dream o' the sowl's
gloamin'! Na, Lord; mak o' me a strong man, an' syne gie me as muckle o' the
bonny as may please thee. Wha am I to lippen til, gien no to thee, my ain
father an' mither an' gran'father an' a' body in ane, for thoo giedst me them
a'!
"Noo I'm to begin
again--a fresh life frae this minute! I'm to set oot frae this verra p'int,
like ane o' the youngest sons i' the fairy tales, to seek my portion, an' see
what's comin' to meet me as I gang to meet hit. The warl' afore me's my
story-buik. I canna see ower the leaf till I come to the en' o' 't. Whan I was
a bairn, jist able, wi' sair endeevour, to win at the hert o' print, I never
wad luik on afore! The ae time I did it, I thoucht I had dune a shamefu' thing,
like luikin' in at a keyhole--as I did jist ance tu, whan I thank God my mither
gae me sic a blessed lickin' 'at I kent it maun be something dreidfu' I had
dune. Sae here's for what's comin'! I ken whaur it maun come frae, an' I s'
make it welcome. My mither says the main mischeef i' the warl' is, 'at fowk
winna lat the Lord hae his ain w'y, an' sae he has jist to tak it, whilk maks
it a sair thing for them."
Therewith he rose to
encounter that which was on its way to meet him. He is a fool who stands and
lets life move past him like a panorama. He also is a fool who would lay hands
on its motion, and change its pictures. He can but distort and injure, if he
does not ruin them, and come upon awful shadows behind them.
And lo! as he glanced around
him, already something of the old mysterious loveliness, now for so long
vanished from the face of the visible world, had returned to it--not yet as it
was before, but with dawning promise of a new creation, a fresh beauty, in
welcoming which he was not turning from the old, but receiving the new that God
sent him. He might yet be many a time sad, but to lament would be to act as if
he were wronged--would be at best weak and foolish! He would look the new life
in the face, and be what it should please God to make him. The scents the wind
brought him from field and garden and moor, seemed sweeter than ever wind-borne
scents before: they were seeking to comfort him! He sighed--but turned from the
sigh to God, and found fresh gladness and welcome. The wind hovered about him
as if it would fain have something to do in the matter; the river rippled and
shone as if it knew something worth knowing as yet unrevealed. The delight of
creation is verily in secrets, but in secrets as truths on the way. All secrets
are embryo revelations. On the far horizon heaven and earth met as old friends,
who, though never parted, were ever renewing their friendship. The world, like
the angels, was rejoicing--if not over a sinner that had repented, yet over a
man that had passed from a lower to a higher condition of life--out of its
earth into its air: he was going to live above, and look down on the inferior
world! Ere the shades of evening fell that day around Donal Grant, he was in
the new childhood of a new world.
I do not mean such thoughts
had never been present to him before; but to think a thing is only to
look at it in a glass; to know it as God would have us know it, and as we must
know it to live, is to see it as we see love in a friend's eyes--to have it as
the love the friend sees in ours. To make things real to us, is the end and the
battle-cause of life. We often think we believe what we are only presenting to
our imaginations. The least thing can overthrow that kind of faith. The
imagination is an endless help towards faith, but it is no more faith than a
dream of food will make us strong for the next day's work. To know God as the
beginning and end, the root and cause, the giver, the enabler, the love and joy
and perfect good, the present one existence in all things and degrees and
conditions, is life; and faith, in its simplest, truest, mightiest form is--to
do his will.
Donal was making his way
towards the eastern coast, in the certain hope of finding work of one kind or
another. He could have been well content to pass his life as a shepherd like
his father but for two things: he knew what it would be well for others to
know; and he had a hunger after the society of books. A man must be able to do
without whatever is denied him, but when his heart is hungry for an honest
thing, he may use honest endeavour to obtain it. Donal desired to be useful and
live for his generation, also to be with books. To be where was a good library
would suit him better than buying books, for without a place in which to keep
them, they are among the impedimenta of life. And Donal knew that in
regard to books he was in danger of loving after the fashion of this world:
books he had a strong inclination to accumulate and hoard; therefore the use of
a library was better than the means of buying them. Books as possessions are
also of the things that pass and perish--as surely as any other form of earthly
having; they are of the playthings God lets men have that they may learn to
distinguish between apparent and real possession: if having will not teach
them, loss may.
But who would have thought,
meeting the youth as he walked the road with shoeless feet, that he sought the
harbour of a great library in some old house, so as day after day to feast on
the thoughts of men who had gone before him! For his was no antiquarian soul;
it was a soul hungry after life, not after the mummy cloths enwrapping the
dead.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER II. A SPIRITUAL FOOT-PAD.">
CHAPTER II.
A SPIRITUAL FOOT-PAD.
HE was now walking
southward, but would soon, when the mountains were well behind him, turn toward
the east. He carried a small wallet, filled chiefly with oatcake and hard
skim-milk cheese: about two o'clock he sat down on a stone, and proceeded to
make a meal. A brook from the hills ran near: for that he had chosen the spot,
his fare being dry. He seldom took any other drink than water: he had learned
that strong drink at best but discounted to him his own at a high rate.
He drew from his pocket a
small thick volume he had brought as the companion of his journey, and read as
he ate. His seat was on the last slope of a grassy hill, where many huge stones
rose out of the grass. A few yards beneath was a country road, and on the other
side of the road a small stream, in which the brook that ran swiftly past,
almost within reach of his hand, eagerly lost itself. On the further bank of
the stream, perfuming the air, grew many bushes of meadow-sweet, or queen-of-the-meadow,
as it is called in Scotland; and beyond lay a lovely stretch of nearly level
pasture. Farther eastward all was a plain, full of farms. Behind him rose the
hill, shutting out his past; before him lay the plain, open to his eyes and
feet. God had walled up his past, and was disclosing his future.
When he had eaten his
dinner, its dryness forgotten in the condiment his book supplied, he rose, and
taking his cap from his head, filled it from the stream, and drank heartily;
then emptied it, shook the last drops from it, and put it again upon his head.
"Ho, ho, young
man!" cried a voice.
Donal looked, and saw a man
in the garb of a clergyman regarding him from the road, and wiping his face
with his sleeve.
"You should mind,"
he continued, "how you scatter your favours."
"I beg your pardon,
sir," said Donal, taking off his cap again; "I hadna a notion there
was leevin' cratur near me."
"It's a fine day!"
said the minister.
"It is that, sir!"
answered Donal.
"Which way are you
going?" asked the minister, adding, as if in apology for his seeming
curiosity, "--You're a scholar, I see!"--with a glance towards the
book he had left open on his stone.
"Nae sae muckle as I
wad fain be, sir," answered Donal--then called to mind a resolve he had
made to speak English for the future.
"A modest youth, I
see!" returned the clergyman; but Donal hardly liked the tone in which he
said it.
"That depends on what
you mean by a scholar," he said.
"Oh!" answered the
minister, not thinking much about his reply, but in a bantering humour willing
to draw the lad out, "the learned man modestly calls himself a
scholar."
"Then there was no
modesty in saying I was not so much of a scholar as I should like to be; every
scholar would say the same."
"A very good
answer!" said the clergyman patronizingly, "You'll be a learned man
some day!" And he smiled as he said it.
"When would you call a
man learned?" asked Donal.
"That is hard to
determine, seeing those that claim to be contradict each other so."
"What good then can
there be in wanting to be learned?"
"You get the mental
discipline of study."
"It seems to me,"
said Donal, "a pity to get a body's discipline on what may be worthless.
It's just as good discipline to my teeth to dine on bread and cheese, as it
would be to exercise them on sheep's grass."
"I've got hold of a
humorist!" said the clergyman to himself.
Donal picked up his wallet
and his book, and came down to the road. Then first the clergyman saw that he
was barefooted. In his childhood he had himself often gone without shoes and
stockings, yet the youth's lack of them prejudiced him against him.
"It must be the
fellow's own fault!" he said to himself. "He shan't catch me with his
chaff!"
Donal would rather have
forded the river, and gone to inquire his way at the nearest farm-house, but he
thought it polite to walk a little way with the clergyman.
"How far are you
going?" asked the minister at length.
"As far as I can,"
replied Donal.
"Where do you mean to
pass the night?"
"In some barn perhaps,
or on some hill-side."
"I am sorry to hear you
can do no better."
"You don't think, sir,
what a decent bed costs; and a barn is generally, a hill-side always clean. In
fact the hill-side 's the best. Many's the time I have slept on one. It's a
strange notion some people have, that it's more respectable to sleep under
man's roof than God's."
"To have no settled
abode," said the clergyman, and paused.
"Like Abraham?"
suggested Donal with a smile. "An abiding city seems hardly necessary to
pilgrims and strangers! I fell asleep once on the top of Glashgar: when I woke
the sun was looking over the edge of the horizon. I rose and gazed about me as
if I were but that moment created. If God had called me, I should hardly have
been astonished."
"Or frightened?"
asked the minister.
"No, sir; why should a
man fear the presence of his saviour?"
"You said God!"
answered the minister.
"God is my saviour!
Into his presence it is my desire to come."
"Under shelter of the
atonement," supplemented the minister.
"Gien ye mean by that,
sir," cried Donal, forgetting his English, "onything to come 'atween
my God an' me, I'll ha'e nane o' 't. I'll hae naething hide me frae him wha
made me! I wadna hide a thoucht frae him. The waur it is, the mair need he
see't."
"What book is that you
are reading?" asked the minister sharply. "It's not your bible, I'll
be bound! You never got such notions from it!"
He was angry with the
presumptuous youth--and no wonder; for the gospel the minister preached was a
gospel but to the slavish and unfilial.
"It's Shelley,"
answered Donal, recovering himself.
The minister had never read
a word of Shelley, but had a very decided opinion of him. He gave a loud rude
whistle.
"So! that's where you
go for your theology! I was puzzled to understand you, but now all is plain!
Young man, you are on the brink of perdition. That book will poison your very
vitals!"
"Indeed, sir, it will
never go deep enough for that! But it came near touching them as I sat eating
my bread and cheese."
"He's an infidel!"
said the minister fiercely.
"A kind of one,"
returned Donal, "but not of the worst sort. It's the people who call
themselves believers that drive the like of poor Shelley to the mouth of the
pit."
"He hated the
truth," said the minister.
"He was always seeking
after it," said Donal, "though to be sure he didn't get to the end of
the search. Just listen to this, sir, and say whether it be very far from
Christian."
Donal opened his little
volume, and sought his passage. The minister but for curiosity and the dread of
seeming absurd would have stopped his ears and refused to listen. He was a man
of not merely dry or stale, but of deadly doctrines. He would have a man love
Christ for protecting him from God, not for leading him to God in whom alone is
bliss, out of whom all is darkness and misery. He had not a glimmer of the
truth that eternal life is to know God. He imagined justice and love dwelling
in eternal opposition in the bosom of eternal unity. He knew next to nothing
about God, and misrepresented him hideously. If God were such as he showed him,
it would be the worst possible misfortune to have been created.
Donal had found the passage.
It was in The Mask of Anarchy. He read the following stanzas:--
Let a vast assembly be,
And
with great solemnity
Declare with measured words that ye
Are, as God has made ye, free.
Be your strong and simple words
Keen to wound as sharpened swords,
And wide as targes let them be,
With their shade to cover ye.
And if then the tyrants dare,
Let them ride among you there,
Slash, and stab, and maim, and hew--
What they like, that let them do.
With folded arms and steady eyes,
And little fear, and less surprise,
Look upon them as they slay,
Till their rage has died away.
And that slaughter to the Nation
Shall steam up like inspiration,
Eloquent, oracular--
A volcano heard afar.
Ending, the reader turned to
the listener. But the listener had understood little of the meaning, and less
of the spirit. He hated opposition to the powers on the part of any below
himself, yet scorned the idea of submitting to persecution.
"What think you of
that, sir?" asked Donal.
"Sheer nonsense!"
answered the minister. "Where would Scotland be now but for
resistance?"
"There's more than one
way of resisting, though," returned Donal. "Enduring evil was the
Lord's way. I don't know about Scotland, but I fancy there would be more
Christians, and of a better stamp, in the world, if that had been the mode of
resistance always adopted by those that called themselves such. Anyhow it was his
way."
"Shelley's, you
mean!"
"I don't mean
Shelley's, I mean Christ's. In spirit Shelley was far nearer the truth than those
who made him despise the very name of Christianity without knowing what it
really was. But God will give every man fair play."
"Young man!" said
the minister, with an assumption of great solemnity and no less authority,
"I am bound to warn you that you are in a state of rebellion against God,
and he will not be mocked. Good morning!"
Donal sat down on the
roadside--he would let the minister have a good start of him--took again his
shabby little volume, held more talk with the book-embodied spirit of Shelley,
and saw more and more clearly how he was misled in his every notion of
Christianity, and how different those who gave him his notions must have been
from the evangelists and apostles. He saw in the poet a boyish nature striving
after liberty, with scarce a notion of what liberty really was: he knew nothing
of the law of liberty--oneness with the will of our existence, which would have
us free with its own freedom.
When the clergyman was long
out of sight he rose and went on, and soon came to a bridge by which he crossed
the river. Then on he went through the cultivated plain, his spirits never
flagging. He was a pilgrim on his way to his divine fate!
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER III. THE MOOR.">
CHAPTER III.
THE MOOR.
THE night began to descend
and he to be weary, and look about him for a place of repose. But there was a
long twilight before him, and it was warm.
For some time the road had
been ascending, and by and by he found himself on a bare moor, among heather
not yet in bloom, and a forest of bracken. Here was a great, beautiful chamber
for him! and what better bed than God's heather! what better canopy than God's
high, star-studded night, with its airy curtains of dusky darkness! Was it not
in this very chamber that Jacob had his vision of the mighty stair leading up
to the gate of heaven! Was it not under such a roof Jesus spent his last nights
on the earth! For comfort and protection he sought no human shelter, but went
out into his Father's house--out under his Father's heaven! The small and
narrow were not to him the safe, but the wide and open. Thick walls cover men
from the enemies they fear; the Lord sought space. There the angels come and go
more freely than where roofs gather distrust. If ever we hear a far-off rumour
of angel-visit, it is not from some solitary plain with lonely children?
Donal walked along the high
table-land till he was weary, and rest looked blissful. Then he turned aside
from the rough track into the heather and bracken. When he came to a little dry
hollow, with a yet thicker growth of heather, its tops almost close as those of
his bed at his father's cottage, he sought no further. Taking his knife, he cut
a quantity of heather and ferns, and heaped it on the top of the thickest bush;
then creeping in between the cut and the growing, he cleared the former from
his face that he might see the worlds over him, and putting his knapsack under
his head, fell fast asleep.
When he woke not even the
shadow of a dream lingered to let him know what he had been dreaming. He woke
with such a clear mind, such an immediate uplifting of the soul, that it seemed
to him no less than to Jacob that he must have slept at the foot of the
heavenly stair. The wind came round him like the stuff of thought unshaped, and
every breath he drew seemed like God breathing afresh into his nostrils the
breath of life. Who knows what the thing we call air is? We know about it, but
it we do not know. The sun shone as if smiling at the self-importance of the
sulky darkness he had driven away, and the world seemed content with a heavenly
content. So fresh was Donal's sense that he felt as if his sleep within and the
wind without had been washing him all the night. So peaceful, so blissful was
his heart that it longed to share its bliss; but there was no one within sight,
and he set out again on his journey.
He had not gone far when he
came to a dip in the moorland--a round hollow, with a cottage of turf in the
middle of it, from whose chimney came a little smoke: there too the day was
begun! He was glad he had not seen it before, for then he might have missed the
repose of the open night. At the door stood a little girl in a blue frock. She
saw him, and ran in. He went down and drew near to the door. It stood wide
open, and he could not help seeing in.
A man sat at the table in
the middle of the floor, his forehead on his hand. Donal did not see his face.
He seemed waiting, like his father for the Book, while his mother got it from
the top of the wall. He stepped over the threshold, and in the simplicity of
his heart, said:--
"Ye'll be gaein' to hae
worship!"
"Na, na!" returned
the man, raising his head, and taking a brief, hard stare at his visitor;
"we dinna set up for prayin' fowk i' this hoose." We ley that to them
'at kens what they hae to be thankfu' for."
"I made a mistak,"
said Donal. "I thoucht ye micht hae been gaein' to say gude mornin' to yer
makker, an' wad hae likit to j'in wi' ye; for I kenna what I haena to be
thankfu' for. Guid day to ye."
"Ye can bide an' tak
yer parritch gien ye like."
"Ow, na, I thank ye. Ye
micht think I cam for the parritch, an' no for the prayers. I like as ill to be
coontit a hypocrite as gien I war ane."
"Ye can bide an' hae
worship wi' 's, gien ye tak the buik yersel'."
"I canna lead whaur 's
nane to follow. Na; I'll du better on the muir my lane."
But the gudewife was a
religions woman after her fashion--who can be after any one else's? She came
with a bible in her hand, and silently laid it on the table. Donal had never
yet prayed aloud except in a murmur by himself on the hill, but, thus invited,
could not refuse. He read a psalm of trouble, breaking into hope at the close,
then spoke as follows:--
"Freens, I'm but yoong,
as ye see, an' never afore daured open my moo i' sic fashion, but it comes to
me to speyk, an' wi' yer leave speyk I wull. I canna help thinkin' the gudeman
's i' some trible--siclike, maybe, as King Dawvid whan he made the psalm I hae
been readin' i' yer hearin'. Ye observt hoo it began like a stormy mornin', but
ye h'ard hoo it changed or a' was dune. The sun comes oot bonny i' the en', an'
ye hear the birds beginnin' to sing, tellin' Natur' to gie ower her greitin'.
An' what brings the guid man til's senses, div ye think? What but jist the
thoucht o' him 'at made him, him 'at cares aboot him, him 'at maun come to ill
himsel' 'afore he lat onything he made come to ill. Sir, lat's gang doon upo'
oor knees, an' commit the keepin' o' oor sowls to him as til a faithfu'
creator, wha winna miss his pairt 'atween him an' hiz."
They went down on their
knees, and Donal said,
"O Lord, oor ain father
an' saviour, the day ye hae sent 's has arrived bonny an' gran', an' we bless
ye for sen'in' 't; but eh, oor father, we need mair the licht that shines i'
the darker place. We need the dawn o' a spiritual day inside 's, or the bonny
day ootside winna gang for muckle. Lord, oor micht, speyk a word o' peacefu'
recall to ony dog o' thine 'at may be worryin' at the hert o' ony sheep o'
thine 'at's run awa; but dinna ca' him back sae as to lea' the puir sheep
'ahint him; fess back dog an' lamb thegither, O Lord. Haud 's a' frae ill, an'
guide 's a' to guid, an' oor mornin' prayer 's ower. Amen."
They rose from their knees,
and sat silent for a moment. Then the guidwife put the pot on the fire with the
water for the porridge. But Donal rose, and walked out of the cottage, half
wondering at himself that he had dared as he had, yet feeling he had done but
the most natural thing in the world.
"Hoo a body 's to win
throuw the day wantin' the lord o' the day an' the hoor an' the minute, 's
'ayont me!" he said to himself, and hastened away.
Ere noon the blue line of
the far ocean rose on the horizon.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER IV. THE TOWN.">
CHAPTER IV.
THE TOWN.
DONAL was queer, some of my
readers will think, and I admit it; for the man who regards the affairs of life
from any other point than his own greedy self, must be queer indeed in the eyes
of all who are slaves to their imagined necessities and undisputed desires.
It was evening when he drew
nigh the place whither he had directed his steps--a little country town, not
far from a famous seat of learning: there he would make inquiry before going
further. The minister of his parish knew the minister of Auchars, and had given
him a letter of introduction. The country around had not a few dwellings of
distinction, and at one or another of these might be children in want of a
tutor.
The sun was setting over the
hills behind him as he entered the little town. At first it looked but a
village, for on the outskirts, through which the king's highway led, were
chiefly thatched cottages, with here and there a slated house of one story and
an attic; but presently began to appear houses of larger size--few of them,
however, of more than two stories. Most of them looked as if they had a long
and not very happy history. All at once he found himself in a street, partly of
quaint gables with corbel steps; they called them here corbie-steps, in
allusion, perhaps, to the raven sent out by Noah, for which lazy bird the
children regarded these as places to rest. There were two or three curious
gateways in it with some attempt at decoration, and one house with the
pepperpot turrets which Scotish architecture has borrowed from the French chateau.
The heart of the town was a yet narrower, close-built street, with several
short closes and wynds opening out of it--all of which had ancient looking
houses. There were shops not a few, but their windows were those of dwellings,
as the upper parts of their buildings mostly were. In those shops was as good a
supply of the necessities of life as in a great town, and cheaper. You could
not get a coat so well cut, nor a pair of shoes to fit you so tight without
hurting, but you could get first-rate work. The streets were unevenly paved
with round, water-worn stones: Donal was not sorry that he had not to walk far
upon them.
The setting sun sent his
shadow before him as he entered the place. He kept the middle of the street,
looking on this side and that for the hostelry whither he had despatched his
chest before leaving home. A gloomy building, apparently uninhabited, drew his
attention, and sent a strange thrill through him as his eyes fell upon it. It
was of three low stories, the windows defended by iron stanchions, the door
studded with great knobs of iron. A little way beyond he caught sight of the
sign he was in search of. It swung in front of an old-fashioned, dingy
building, with much of the old-world look that pervaded the town. The last red
rays of the sun were upon it, lighting up a sorely faded coat of arms. The
supporters, two red horses on their hind legs, were all of it he could make
out. The crest above suggested a skate, but could hardly have been intended for
one. A greedy-eyed man stood in the doorway, his hands in his trouser-pockets.
He looked with contemptuous scrutiny at the bare-footed lad approaching him. He
had black hair and black eyes; his nose looked as if a heavy finger had settled
upon its point, and pressed it downwards: its nostrils swelled wide beyond
their base; underneath was a big mouth with a good set of teeth, and a strong
upturning chin--an ambitious and greedy face. But ambition is a form of greed.
"A fine day,
landlord!" said Donal.
"Ay," answered the
man, without changing the posture of one taking his ease against his own
door-post, or removing his hands from his pockets, but looking Donal up and
down with conscious superiority, then resting his eyes on the bare feet and
upturned trousers.
"This'll be the Morven
Arms, I'm thinkin'?" said Donal.
"It taksna muckle
thoucht to think that," returned the inn-keeper, "whan there they
hing!"
"Ay," rejoined
Donal, glancing up; "there is something there--an' it's airms I
doobtna; but it's no a'body has the preevilege o' a knowledge o' heraldry like
yersel', lan'lord! I'm b'un' to confess, for what I ken they micht be the airms
o' ony ane o' ten score Scots faimilies."
There was one weapon with
which John Glumm was assailable, and that was ridicule: with all his
self-sufficiency he stood in terror of it--and the more covert the ridicule, so
long as he suspected it, the more he resented as well as dreaded it. He stepped
into the street, and taking a hand from a pocket, pointed up to the sign.
"See til't!" he
said. "Dinna ye see the twa reid horse?"
"Ay," answered
Donal; "I see them weel eneuch, but I'm nane the wiser nor gien they war
twa reid whauls.--Man," he went on, turning sharp round upon the fellow,
"ye're no cawpable o' conceivin' the extent o' my ignorance! It's as
rampant as the reid horse upo' your sign! I'll yield to naebody i' the amoont
o' things I dinna ken!"
The man stared at him for a
moment.
"I s' warran'," he
said, "ye ken mair nor ye care to lat on!"
"An' what may that be
ower the heid o' them?--A crest, ca' ye 't?" said Donal.
"It's a base
pearl-beset," answered the landlord.
He had not a notion of what
a base meant, or pearl-beset, yet prided himself on his knowledge
of the words.
"Eh," returned
Donal, "I took it for a skate!"
"A skate!"
repeated the landlord with offended sneer, and turned towards the house.
"I was thinkin' to put
up wi' ye the nicht, gien ye could accommodate me at a rizzonable rate,"
said Donal.
"I dinna ken,"
replied Glumm, hesitating, with his back to him, between unwillingness to lose
a penny, and resentment at the supposed badinage, which was indeed nothing but
humour; "what wad ye ca' rizzonable?"
"I wadna grudge a
saxpence for my bed; a shillin' I wad," answered Donal.
"Weel, ninepence
than--for ye seemna owercome wi' siller."
"Na," answered
Donal, "I'm no that. Whatever my burden, yon's no hit. The loss o' what I
hae wad hardly mak me lichter for my race."
"Ye're a queer
customer!" said the man.
"I'm no sae queer but I
hae a kist comin' by the carrier," rejoined Donal, "direckit to the
Morven Airms. It'll be here in time doobtless."
"We'll see whan it
comes," remarked the landlord, implying the chest was easier invented than
believed in.
"The warst o' 't
is," continued Donal, "I canna weel shaw mysel' wantin' shune. I hae
a pair i' my kist, an' anither upo' my back,--but nane for my feet."
"There's sutors
enew," said the innkeeper.
"Weel we'll see as we
gang. I want a word wi' the minister. Wad ye direc' me to the manse?"
"He's frae hame. But
it's o' sma' consequence; he disna care aboot tramps, honest man! He winna waur
muckle upo' the likes o' you."
The landlord was recovering
himself--therefore his insolence.
Donal gave a laugh. Those
who are content with what they are, have the less concern about what they seem.
The ambitious like to be taken for more than they are, and may well be annoyed
when they are taken for less.
"I'm thinkin' ye
wadna waur muckle on a tramp aither!" he said.
"I wad not,"
answered Glumm. "It's the pairt o' the honest to discoontenance
lawlessness."
"Ye wadna hang the puir
craturs, wad ye?" asked Donal.
"I wad hang a wheen
mair o' them."
"For no haein' a hoose
ower their heads? That's some hard! What gien ye was ae day to be in want o'
ane yersel'!"
"We'll bide till the
day comes.--But what are ye stan'in' there for? Are ye comin' in, or are ye
no?"
"It's a some cauld
welcome!" said Donal. "I s' jist tak a luik aboot afore I mak up my
min'. A tramp, ye ken, needsna stan' upo' ceremony."
He turned away and walked
further along the street.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER V. THE COBBLER.">
CHAPTER V.
THE COBBLER.
AT the end of the street he
came to a low-arched gateway in the middle of a poor-looking house. Within it
sat a little bowed man, cobbling diligently at a boot. The sun had left behind
him in the west a heap of golden refuse, and cuttings of rose and purple, which
shone right in at the archway, and let him see to work. Here was the very man
for Donal! A respectable shoemaker would have disdained to patch up the
shoes he carried--especially as the owner was in so much need of them.
"It's a bonny
nicht," he said.
"Ye may weel mak the
remark, sir!" replied the cobbler without looking up, for a critical
stitch occupied him. "It's a balmy nicht."
"That's raither a bonny
word to put til't!" returned Donal. "There's a kin' o' an air aboot
the place I wad hardly hae thoucht balmy! But troth it's no the fau't o' the
nicht!"
"Ye're richt there
also," returned the cobbler--his use of the conjunction impressing Donal.
"Still, the weather has to du wi' the smell--wi' the mair or less o' 't,
that is. It comes frae a tanneree nearby. It's no an ill smell to them 'at's
used til't; and ye wad hardly believe me, sir, but I smell the clover throuw
't. Maybe I'm preejudized, seein' but for the tan-pits I couldna weel drive my
trade; but sittin' here frae mornin' to nicht, I get a kin' o' a habit o'
luikin' oot for my blessin's. To recognize an auld blessin' 's 'maist better
nor to get a new ane. A pair o' shune weel cobblet 's whiles full better nor a
new pair."
"They are that,"
said Donal; "but I dinna jist see hoo yer seemile applies."
"Isna gettin' on a pair
o' auld weel-kent an' weel men'it shune, 'at winna nip yer feet nor yet
shochle, like waukin' up til a blessin' ye hae been haein' for years, only ye
didna ken 't for ane?"
As he spoke, the cobbler
lifted a little wizened face and a pair of twinkling eyes to those of the
student, revealing a soul as original as his own. He was one of the inwardly
inseparable, outwardly far divided company of Christian philosophers, among
whom individuality as well as patience is free to work its perfect work. In
that glance Donal saw a ripe soul looking out of its tent door, ready to rush
into the sunshine of the new life.
He stood for a moment lost
in eternal regard of the man. He seemed to have known him for ages. The cobbler
looked up again.
"Ye'll be wantin' a
han' frae me i' my ain line, I'm thinkin'!" he said, with a kindly nod
towards Donal's shoeless feet.
"Sma' doobt!"
returned Donal. "I had scarce startit, but was ower far to gang back, whan
the sole o' ae shue cam aff, an' I had to tramp it wi' baith my ain."
"An' ye thankit the
Lord for the auld blessin' o' bein' born an' broucht up wi' soles o' yer
ain!"
"To tell the
trowth," answered Donal, "I hae sae mony things to be thankfu' for,
it's but sma' won'er I forget mony ane o' them. But noo, an' I thank ye for the
exhortation, the Lord's name be praist 'at he gae me feet fit for gangin'
upo'!"
He took his shoes from his
back, and untying the string that bound them, presented the ailing one to the
cobbler.
"That's what we may ca'
deith!" remarked the cobbler, slowly turning the invalided shoe.
"Ay, deith it is,"
answered Donal; "it's a sair divorce o' sole an' body."
"It's a some
auld-farrand joke," said the cobbler, "but the fun intil a thing
doesna weir oot ony mair nor the poetry or the trowth intil't."
"Who will say there was
no providence in the loss of my shoe-sole!" remarked Donal to himself.
"Here I am with a friend already!"
The cobbler was submitting
the shoes, first the sickly one, now the sound one, to a thorough scrutiny.
"Ye dinna think them worth
men'in', I doobt!" said Donal, with a touch of anxiety in his tone.
"I never thoucht that
whaur the leather wad haud the steik," replied the cobbler. "But
whiles, I confess, I'm jist a wheen tribled to ken hoo to chairge for my wark.
It's no barely to consider the time it'll tak me to cloot a pair, but what the
weirer 's like to git oot o' them. I canna tak mair nor the job 'ill be worth
to the weirer. An' yet the waur the shune, an' the less to be made o' them, the
mair time they tak to mak them worth onything ava'!"
"Surely ye oucht to be
paid in proportion to your labour."
"I' that case I wad
whiles hae to say til a puir body 'at hadna anither pair i' the warl', 'at her
ae pair o' shune wasna worth men'in'; an' that wad be a hertbrak, an' sair feet
forby, to sic as couldna, like yersel', sir, gang upo' the Lord's ain
shune."
"But hoo mak ye a
livin' that w'y?" suggested Donal.
"Hoots, the maister o'
the trade sees to my wauges!"
"An' wha may he
be?" asked Donal, well foreseeing the answer.
"He was never cobbler
himsel', but he was ance carpenter; an' noo he's liftit up to be heid o' a' the
trades. An' there's ae thing he canna bide, an' that's close parin'."
He stopped. But Donal held
his peace, waiting; and he went on.
"To them 'at maks little,
for reasons good, by their neebour, he gies the better wauges whan they gang
hame. To them 'at maks a' 'at they can, he says, 'Ye helpit yersel'; help awa';
ye hae yer reward. Only comena near me, for I canna bide ye'.--But aboot thae
shune o' yours, I dinna weel ken! They're weel eneuch worth duin' the best I
can for them; but the morn's Sunday, an' what hae ye to put on?"
"Naething--till my kist
comes; an' that, I doobt, winna be afore Monday, or maybe the day efter."
"An' ye winna be able
to gang to the kirk!"
"I'm no partic'lar
aboot gaein' to the kirk; but gien I wantit to gang, or gien I thoucht I was
b'un' to gang, think ye I wad bide at hame 'cause I hadna shune to gang in! Wad
I fancy the Lord affrontit wi' the bare feet he made himsel'!"
The cobbler caught up the
worst shoe and began upon it at once.
"Ye s' hae't,
sir," he said, "gien I sit a' nicht at it! The ane 'll du till
Monday. Ye s' hae't afore kirk-time, but ye maun come intil the hoose to get
it, for the fowk wud be scunnert to see me workin' upo' the Sabbath-day. They
dinna un'erstan' 'at the Maister works Sunday an' Setterday--an' his Father as
weel!"
"Ye dinna think, than,
there's onything wrang in men'in' a pair o' shune on the Sabbath-day?"
"Wrang!--in obeyin' my
Maister, whase is the day, as weel's a' the days? They wad fain tak it frae the
Son o' Man, wha's the lord o' 't, but they canna!"
He looked up over the old
shoe with eyes that flashed.
"But then--excuse
me," said Donal, "--why shouldna ye haud yer face til 't, an' work
openly, i' the name o' God?"
"We're telt naither to
du oor gude warks afore men to be seen o' them, nor yet to cast oor pearls
afore swine. I coont cobblin' your shoes, sir, a far better wark nor gaein' to
the kirk, an' I wadna hae't seen o' men. Gien I war warkin' for poverty, it wad
be anither thing."
This last Donal did not
understand, but learned afterwards what the cobbler meant: the day being for
rest, the next duty to helping another was to rest himself. To work for fear of
starving would be to distrust the Father, and act as if man lived by bread
alone.
"Whan I think o'
't," he resumed after a pause, "bein' Sunday, I'll tak them hame to
ye. Whaur wull ye be?"
"That's what I wad fain
hae ye tell me," answered Donal. "I had thoucht to put up at the
Morven Airms, but there's something I dinna like aboot the lan'lord. Ken ye ony
dacent, clean place, whaur they wad gie me a room to mysel', an' no seek mair
nor I could pey them?"
"We hae a bit roomie
oorsel's," said the cobbler, "at the service o' ony dacent wayfarin'
man that can stan' the smell, an' put up wi' oor w'ys. For peyment, ye can pey
what ye think it's worth. We're never varra partic'lar."
"I tak yer offer wi'
thankfu'ness," answered Donal.
"Weel, gang ye in at
that door jist 'afore ye, an' ye'll see the guidwife--there's nane ither til
see. I wad gang wi' ye mysel', but I canna, wi' this shue o' yours to turn
intil a Sunday ane!"
Donal went to the door
indicated. It stood wide open; for while the cobbler sat outside at his work,
his wife would never shut the door. He knocked, but there came no answer.
"She's some dull o'
hearin'," said the cobbler, and called her by his own name for her.
"Doory! Doory!" he
said.
"She canna be that deif
gien she hears ye!" said Donal; for he spoke hardly louder than usual.
"Whan God gies you a
wife, may she be ane to hear yer lichtest word!" answered the cobbler.
Sure enough, he had scarcely
finished the sentence, when Doory appeared at the door.
"Did ye cry,
guidman?" she said.
"Na, Doory: I canna say
I cried; but I spak, an' ye, as is yer custom, hearkent til my word!--Here's a
believin' lad--I'm thinkin' he maun be a gentleman, but I'm no sure; it's hard
for a cobbler to ken a gentleman 'at comes til him wantin' shune; but he may be
a gentleman for a' that, an' there's nae hurry to ken. He's welcome to me, gien
he be welcome to you. Can ye gie him a nicht's lodgin'?"
"Weel that! an' wi' a'
my hert!" said Doory. "He's welcome to what we hae."
Turning, she led the way
into the house.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER VI. DOORY.">
CHAPTER VI.
DOORY.
SHE was a very small, spare
woman, in a blue print with little white spots--straight, not bowed like her
husband. Otherwise she seemed at first exactly like him. But ere the evening
was over, Donal saw there was no featural resemblance between the two faces,
and was puzzled to understand how the two expressions came to be so like: as
they sat it seemed in the silence as if they were the same person thinking in
two shapes and two places.
Following the old woman,
Donal ascended a steep and narrow stair, which soon brought him to a landing
where was light, coming mainly through green leaves, for the window in the
little passage was filled with plants. His guide led him into what seemed to
him an enchanting room--homely enough it was, but luxurious compared to what he
had been accustomed to. He saw white walls and a brown-hued but clean-swept
wooden floor, on which shone a keen-eyed little fire from a low grate. Two easy
chairs, covered with some party-coloured striped stuff, stood one on each side
of the fire. A kettle was singing on the hob. The white deal-table was set for
tea--with a fat brown teapot, and cups of a gorgeous pattern in bronze, that
shone in the firelight like red gold. In one of the walls was a box-bed.
"I'll lat ye see what
accommodation we hae at yer service, sir," said Doory, "an' gien
that'll shuit ye, ye s' be welcome."
So saying, she opened what
looked like the door of a cupboard at the side of the fireplace. It disclosed a
neat little parlour, with a sweet air in it. The floor was sanded, and so much
the cleaner than if it had been carpeted. A small mahogany table, black with
age, stood in the middle. On a side-table covered with a cloth of faded green,
lay a large family bible; behind it were a few books and a tea-caddy. In the
side of the wall opposite the window, was again a box-bed. To the eyes of the
shepherd-born lad, it looked the most desirable shelter he had ever seen. He
turned to his hostess and said,
"I'm feart it's ower
guid for me. What could ye lat me hae't for by the week? I wad fain bide wi'
ye, but whaur an' whan I may get wark I canna tell; sae I maunna tak it ony
gait for mair nor a week."
"Mak yersel' at ease
till the morn be by," said the old woman. "Ye canna du naething till
that be ower. Upo' the Mononday mornin' we s' haud a cooncil thegither--you an'
me an' my man: I can du naething wantin' my man; we aye pu' thegither or no at
a'."
Well content, and with
hearty thanks, Donal committed his present fate into the hands of the humble
pair, his heaven-sent helpers; and after much washing and brushing, all that
was possible to him in the way of dressing, reappeared in the kitchen. Their
tea was ready, and the cobbler seated in the window with a book in his hand,
leaving for Donal his easy chair.
"I canna tak yer ain
cheir frae ye," said Donal.
"Hoots!" returned
the cobbler, "what's onything oors for but to gie the neeper 'at stan's i'
need o' 't."
"But ye hae had a sair
day's wark!"
"An' you a sair day's
traivel!"
"But I'm yoong!"
"An' I'm auld, an' my
labour the nearer ower."
"But I'm strong!"
"There's nane the less
need ye sud be hauden sae. Sit ye doon, an' wastena yer backbane. My business
is to luik to the bodies o' men, an' specially to their puir feet 'at has to
bide the weicht, an' get sair pressed therein. Life 's as hard upo' the feet o'
a man as upo' ony pairt o' 'm! Whan they gang wrang, there isna muckle to be
dune till they be set richt again. I'm sair honourt, I say to mysel' whiles, to
be set ower the feet o' men. It's a fine ministration!--full better than bein'
a door-keeper i' the hoose o' the Lord! For the feet 'at gang oot an' in at it
's mair nor the door!"
"The Lord be
praist!" said Donal to himself; "there's mair i' the warl' like my
father an' mither!"
He took the seat appointed
him.
"Come to the table,
Anerew," said the old woman, "gien sae be ye can pairt wi' that buik
o' yours, an' lat yer sowl gie place to yer boady's richts.--I doobt, sir, gien
he wad ait or drink gien I wasna at his elbuck."
"Doory," returned
her husband, "ye canna deny I gie ye a bit noo an' than, specially whan I
come upo' onything by ord'nar' tasty!"
"That ye du, Anerew, or
I dinna ken what wud come o' my sowl ony mair nor o' your boady! Sae ye see,
sir, we're like John Sprat an' his wife:--ye'll ken the bairns' say aboot
them?"
"Ay, fine that,"
replied Donal. "Ye couldna weel be better fittit."
"God grant it!"
she said. "But we wad fit better yet gien I had but a wheen mair
brains."
"The Lord kenned what
brains ye had whan he broucht ye thegither," said Donal.
"Ye never uttert a truer
word," replied the cobbler. "Gien the Lord be content wi' the brains
he's gien ye, an' I be content wi' the brains ye gie me, what richt hae ye to
be discontentit wi' the brains ye hae, Doory?--answer me that. But I s' come to
the table.--Wud ye alloo me to speir efter yer name, sir?"
"My name 's Donal
Grant," replied Donal.
"I thank ye, sir, an'
I'll haud it in respec'," returned the cobbler. "Maister Grant, wull
ye ask a blessin'?"
"I wad raither j'in i'
your askin'," replied Donal.
The cobbler said a little
prayer, and then they began to eat--first of oat-cakes, baked by the old woman,
then of loaf-breid, as they called it.
"I'm sorry I hae nae
jeally or jam to set afore ye, sir," said Doory, "we're but semple
fowk, ye see--content to haud oor earthly taibernacles in a haibitable
condition till we hae notice to quit."
"It's a fine thing to
ken," said the cobbler, with a queer look, "'at whan ye lea' 't, yer
hoose fa's doon, an' ye haena to think o' ony damages to pey--forby 'at gien it
laistit ony time efter ye was oot o' 't, there micht be a wheen deevils takin'
up their abode intil 't."
"Hoot, Anerew!"
interposed his wife, "there's naething like that i' scriptur'!"
"Hoot, Doory!"
returned Andrew, "what ken ye aboot what's no i' scriptur'? Ye ken a heap,
I alloo, aboot what's in scriptur', but ye ken little aboot what's no
intil 't!"
"Weel, isna 't best to
ken what's intil 't?"
"'Ayont a doobt."
"Weel!" she
returned in playful triumph.
Donal saw that he had got
hold of a pair of originals: it was a joy to his heart: he was himself an
original--one, namely, that lived close to the simplicities of existence!
Andrew Comin, before
offering him house-room, would never have asked anyone what he was; but he
would have thought it an equal lapse in breeding not to show interest in the
history as well as the person of a guest. After a little more talk, so far from
commonplace that the common would have found it mirth-provoking, the cobbler
said:
"An' what office may ye
haud yersel', sir, i' the ministry o' the temple?"
"I think I un'erstan'
ye," replied Donal; "my mother says curious things like you."
"Curious things is
whiles no that curious," remarked Andrew.
A pause following, he
resumed:
"Gien onything gie ye
reason to prefar waitin' till ye ken Doory an' me a bit better, sir," he
said, "coont my ill-mainnert queston no speirt."
"There's
naething," answered Donal. "I'll tell ye onything or a'thing aboot
mysel'."
"Tell what ye wull,
sir, an' keep what ye wull," said the cobbler.
"I was broucht up a
herd-laddie," proceeded Donal, "an' whiles a shepherd ane. For mony a
year I kent mair aboot the hill-side nor the ingle-neuk. But it's the same God
an' Father upo' the hill-side an' i' the king's pailace."
"An' ye'll ken a' aboot
the win', an' the cloods, an' the w'ys o' God ootside the hoose! I ken
something hoo he hauds things gaein' inside the hoose--in a body's hert, I
mean--in mine an' Doory's there, but I ken little aboot the w'y he gars things
work 'at he's no sae far ben in."
"Ye dinna surely think
God fillsna a'thing?" exclaimed Donal.
"Na, na; I ken better
nor that," answered the cobbler; "but ye maun alloo a tod's hole 's
no sae deep as the thro't o' a burnin' m'untain! God himsel' canna win sae far
ben in a shallow place as in a deep place; he canna be sae far ben i' the
win's, though he gars them du as he likes, as he is, or sud be, i' your hert
an' mine, sir!"
"I see!" responded
Donal. "Could that hae been hoo the Lord had to rebuke the win's an' the
wawves, as gien they had been gaein' at their ain free wull, i'stead o' the
wull o' him 'at made them an' set them gaein'?"
"Maybe; but I wud hae
to think aboot it 'afore I answert," replied the cobbler.
A silence intervened. Then said
Andrew, thoughtfully,
"I thoucht, when I saw
ye first, ye was maybe a lad frae a shop i' the muckle toon--or a clerk, as
they ca' them, 'at sits makin' up accoonts."
"Na, I'm no that, I
thank God," said Donal.
"What for thank ye God
for that?" asked Andrew. "A' place is his. I wudna hae ye thank God
ye're no a cobbler like me! Ye micht, though, for it's little ye can ken o' the
guid o' the callin'!"
"I'll tell ye what
for," answered Donal. "I ken weel toon-fowk think it a heap better to
hae to du wi' figures nor wi' sheep, but I'm no o' their min'; an' for ae
thing, the sheep's alive. I could weel fancy an angel a shepherd--an' he wad
coont my father guid company! Troth, he wad want wings an' airms an' feet an'
a' to luik efter the lambs whiles! But gien sic a ane was a clerk in a coontin'
hoose, he wad hae to stow awa the wings; I cannot see what use he wad
hae for them there. He micht be an angel a' the time, an' that no a fallen ane,
but he bude to lay aside something to fit the place."
"But ye're no a
shepherd the noo?" said the cobbler.
"Na," replied
Donal, "--'cep' it be I'm set to luik efter anither grade o' lamb. A
freen'--ye may 'a' h'ard his name--sir Gilbert Galbraith--made the beginnin' o'
a scholar o' me, an' noo I hae my degree frae the auld university o'
Inverdaur."
"Didna I think as
muckle!" cried mistress Comin triumphant. "I hadna time to say 't to
ye, Anerew, but I was sure he was frae the college, an' that was hoo his feet
war sae muckle waur furnisht nor his heid."
"I hae a pair o' shune
i' my kist, though--whan that comes!" said Donal, laughing.
"I only houp it winna
be ower muckle to win up oor stair!"
"I dinna think it. But
we'll lea' 't i' the street afore it s' come 'atween 's!" said Donal.
"Gien ye'll hae me, sae lang's I'm i' the toon, I s' gang nae ither
gait."
"An' ye'll doobtless
read the Greek like yer mither-tongue?" said the cobbler, with a longing
admiration in his tone.
"Na, no like that; but
weel eneuch to get guid o' 't."
"Weel, that's jist the
ae thing I grutch ye--na, no grutch--I'm glaid ye hae't--but the ae thing I wud
fain be a scholar for mysel'! To think I kenna a cheep o' the word spoken by
the Word himsel'!"
"But the letter o' the
word he made little o' comparet wi' the speerit!" said Donal.
"Ay, that's true! an'
yet it's whaur a man may weel be greedy an' want to hae a'thing: wha has the
speerit wad fain hae the letter tu! But it disna maitter; I s' set to learnin'
't the first thing whan I gang up the stair--that is, gien it be the Lord's
wull."
"Hoots!" said his
wife, "what wad ye du wi' Greek up there! I s' warran' the fowk there, ay,
an' the maister himsel', speyks plain Scotch! What for no! What wad they du
there wi' Greek, 'at a body wad hae to warstle wi' frae mornin' to nicht, an'
no mak oot the third pairt o' 't!"
Her husband laughed merrily,
but Donal said,
"'Deed maybe ye're na
sae far wrang, guidwife! I'm thinkin' there maun be a gran' mither-tongue
there, 'at 'll soop up a' the lave, an' be better to un'erstan' nor a body's
ain--for it'll be yet mair his ain."
"Hear til him!"
cried the cobbler, with hearty approbation.
"Ye ken," Donal
went on, "a' the languages o' the earth cam, or luik as gien they had
come, frae ane, though we're no jist dogsure o' that. There's my mither's ain Gaelic,
for enstance: it's as auld, maybe aulder nor the Greek; onygait, it has mair
Greek nor Laitin words intil 't, an' ye ken the Greek 's an aulder tongue nor
the Laitin. Weel, gien we could work oor w'y back to the auldest
grit-gran'mither-tongue o' a', I'm thinkin' it wad come a kin o' sae easy til
's, 'at, wi' the impruvt faculties o' oor h'avenly condition, we micht be able
in a feow days to haud communication wi' ane anither i' that same, ohn stammert
or hummt an' hawt."
"But there's been sic a
heap o' things f'un' oot sin' syne, i' the min' o' man, as weel 's i' the warl'
ootside," said Andrew, "that sic a language wad be mair like a
bairn's tongue nor a mither's, I'm thinkin', whan set against a' 'at wad be to
speyk aboot!"
"Ye're verra richt there,
I dinna doobt. But hoo easy wad it be for ilk ane to bring in the new word he
wantit, haein' eneuch common afore to explain 't wi'! Afore lang the language
wad hae intil 't ilka word 'at was worth haein' in ony language 'at ever was
spoken sin' the toor o' Babel."
"Eh, sirs, but it's
dreidfu' to think o' haein' to learn sae muckle!" said the old woman.
"I'm ower auld an' dottlet!"
Her husband laughed again.
"I dinna see what ye
hae to lauch at!" she said, laughing too. "Ye'll be dottlet yersel'
gien ye live lang eneuch!"
"I'm thinkin',"
said Andrew, "but I dinna ken--'at it maun be a man's ain wyte gien age
maks him dottlet. Gien he's aye been haudin' by the trowth, I dinna think he'll
fin' the trowth, hasna hauden by him.--But what I was lauchin' at was the
thoucht o' onybody bein' auld up there. We'll a' be yoong there, lass!"
"It sall be as the Lord
wulls," returned his wife.
"It sall. We want nae
mair; an' eh, we want nae less!" responded her husband.
So the evening wore away.
The talk was to the very mind of Donal, who never loved wisdom so much as when
she appeared in peasant-garb. In that garb he had first known her, and in the
form of his mother.
"I won'er," said
Doory at length, "'at yoong Eppy 's no puttin' in her appearance! I was sure
o' her the nicht: she hasna been near 's a' the week!"
The cobbler turned to Donal
to explain. He would not talk of things their guest did not understand; that
would be like shutting him out after taking him in!
"Yoong Eppy 's a
gran'child, sir--the only ane we hae. She's a weel behavet lass, though ta'en
up wi' the things o' this warl' mair nor her grannie an' me could wuss. She's
in a place no far frae here--no an easy ane, maybe, to gie satisfaction in, but
she's duin' no that ill."
"Hoot, Anerew! she's
duin' jist as well as ony lassie o' her years could in justice be
expeckit," interposed the grandmother. "It's seldom the Lord 'at sets
auld heid upo' yoong shoothers."
The words were hardly spoken
when a light foot was heard coming up the stair.
"--But here she comes
to answer for hersel'!" she added cheerily.
The door of the room opened,
and a good-looking girl of about eighteen came in.
"Weel, yoong Eppy, hoo
's a' wi' ye?" said the old man.
The grandmother's name was
Elspeth, the grand-daughter's had therefore always the prefix.
"Brawly, thank ye,
gran'father," she answered. "Hoo 's a' wi' yersel'?"
"Ow, weel
cobblet!" he replied.
"Sit ye doon,"
said the grandmother, "by the spark o' fire; the nicht 's some airy
like."
"Na, grannie, I want
nae fire," said the girl. "I hae run a' the ro'd to get a glimp' o'
ye 'afore the week was oot."
"Hoo 's things gaein'
up at the castel?"
"Ow, sic-like 's
usual--only the hoosekeeper 's some dowy, an' that puts mair upo' the lave o'
's: whan she's weel, she's no ane to spare hersel'--or ither fowk aither!--I
wadna care, gien she wud but lippen til a body!" concluded young Eppy,
with a toss of her head.
"We maunna speyk evil
o' dignities, yoong Eppy!" said the cobbler, with a twinkle in his eye.
"Ca' ye mistress
Brookes a dignity, gran'father!" said the girl, with a laugh that was
nowise rude.
"I do," he
answered. "Isna she ower ye? Haena ye to du as she tells ye? 'Atween her
an' you that's eneuch: she's ane o' the dignities spoken o'."
"I winna dispute it.
But, eh, it's queer wark yon'er!"
"Tak ye care, yoong
Eppy! we maun haud oor tongues aboot things committit til oor trust. Ane peyt
to serve in a hoose maunna tre't the affairs o' that hoose as gien they war her
ain."
"It wad be weel gien a'body
about the hoose was as partic'lar as ye wad hae me, gran'father!"
"Hoo's my lord,
lass?"
"Ow, muckle the
same--aye up the stair an' doon the stair the forepairt o' the nicht, an' maist
inveesible a' day."
The girl cast a shy glance
now and then at Donal, as if she claimed him on her side, though the older
people must be humoured. Donal was not too simple to understand her: he gave
her look no reception. Bethinking himself that they might have matters to talk
about, he rose, and turning to his hostess, said,
"Wi' yer leave,
gudewife, I wad gang to my bed. I hae traivelt a maitter o' thirty mile the day
upo' my bare feet."
"Eh, sir!" she
answered, "I oucht to hae considert that!--Come, yoong Eppy, we maun get
the gentleman's bed made up for him."
With a toss of her pretty
head, Eppy followed her grandmother to the next room, casting a glance behind
her that seemed to ask what she meant by calling a lad without shoes or
stockings a gentleman. Not the less readily or actively, however, did she assist
her grandmother in preparing the tired wayfarer's couch. In a few minutes they
returned, and telling him the room was quite ready for him, Doory added a hope
that he would sleep as sound as if his own mother had made the bed.
He heard them talking for a while
after the door was closed, but the girl soon took her leave. He was just
falling asleep in the luxury of conscious repose, when the sound of the
cobbler's hammer for a moment roused him, and he knew the old man was again at
work on his behalf. A moment more and he was too fast asleep for any Cyclops'
hammer to wake him.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER VII. A SUNDAY.">
CHAPTER VII.
A SUNDAY.
NOTWITHSTANDING his
weariness Donal woke early, for he had slept thoroughly. He rose and dressed
himself, drew aside the little curtain that shrouded the window, and looked
out. It was a lovely morning. His prospect was the curious old main street of
the town. The sun that had shone into it was now shining from the other side,
but not a shadow of living creature fell upon the rough stones! Yes--there was
a cat shooting across them like the culprit he probably was! If there was a
garden to the house, he would go and read in the fresh morning air!
He stole softly through the
outer room, and down the stair; found the back-door and a water-butt; then a
garden consisting of two or three plots of flowers well cared for; and ended
his discoveries with a seat surrounded and almost canopied with honeysuckle,
where doubtless the cobbler sometimes smoked his pipe! "Why does he not
work here rather than in the archway?" thought Donal. But, dearly as he
loved flowers and light and the free air of the garden, the old cobbler loved
the faces of his kind better. His prayer for forty years had been to be made
like his master; and if that prayer was not answered, how was it that, every
year he lived, he found himself loving the faces of his fellows more and more?
Ever as they passed, instead of interfering with his contemplations, they gave
him more and more to think: were these faces, he asked, the symbols of a
celestial language in which God talked to him?
Donal sat down, and took his
Greek Testament from his pocket. But all at once, brilliant as was the sun, the
light of his life went out, and the vision rose of the gray quarry, and the
girl turning from him in the wan moonlight. Then swift as thought followed the
vision of the women weeping about the forsaken tomb; and with his risen Lord he
rose also--into a region far "above the smoke and stir of this dim
spot," a region where life is good even with its sorrow. The man who sees
his disappointment beneath him, is more blessed than he who rejoices in
fruition. Then prayer awoke, and in the light of that morning of peace he drew
nigh the living one, and knew him as the source of his being. Weary with
blessedness he leaned against the shadowing honeysuckle, gave a great sigh of
content, smiled, wiped his eyes, and was ready for the day and what it should
bring. But the bliss went not yet; he sat for a while in the joy of conscious
loss in the higher life. With his meditations and feelings mingled now and then
a few muffled blows of the cobbler's hammer: he was once more at work on his
disabled shoe.
"Here is a true
man!" he thought, "--a Godlike helper of his fellow!"
When the hammer ceased, the
cobbler was stitching; when Donal ceased thinking, he went on feeling. Again
and again came a little roll of the cobbler's drum, giving glory to God by
doing his will: the sweetest and most acceptable music is that which rises from
work a doing; its incense ascends as from the river in its flowing, from the
wind in its blowing, from the grass in its growing. All at once he heard the voices
of two women in the next garden, close behind him, talking together.
"Eh," said one,
"there's that godless cratur, An'rew Comin, at his wark again upo' the
Sawbath mornin'!"
"Ay, lass,"
answered the other, "I hear him! Eh, but it 'll be an ill day for him whan
he has to appear afore the jeedge o' a'! He winna hae his comman'ments
broken that gait!"
"Troth, na!"
returned the former; "it'll be a sair sattlin day for him!"
Donal rose, and looking
about him, saw two decent, elderly women on the other side of the low stone
wall. He was approaching them with the request on his lips to know which of the
Lord's commandments they supposed the cobbler to be breaking, when, seeing that
he must have overheard them, they turned their backs and walked away.
And now his hostess, having
discovered he was in the garden, came to call him to breakfast--the simplest of
meals--porridge, with a cup of tea after it because it was Sunday, and there
was danger of sleepiness at the kirk.
"Yer shune 's waitin'
ye, sir," said the cobbler. "Ye'll fin' them a better job nor ye
expeckit. They're a better job, onygait, nor I expeckit!"
Donal made haste to put them
on, and felt dressed for the Sunday.
"Are ye gaein' to the
kirk the day, Anerew?" asked the old woman, adding, as she turned to their
guest, "My man's raither pecooliar aboot gaein' to the kirk! Some days
he'll gang three times, an' some days he winna gang ance!--He kens himsel' what
for!" she added with a smile, whose sweetness confessed that, whatever was
the reason, it was to her the best in the world.
"Ay, I'm gaein' the
day: I want to gang wi' oor new freen'," he answered.
"I'll tak him gien ye
dinna care to gang," rejoined his wife.
"Ow, I'll gang!"
he persisted. "It'll gie's something to talk aboot, an' sae ken ane
anither better, an' maybe come a bit nearer ane anither, an' sae a bit nearer
the maister. That's what we're here for--comin' an' gaein'."
"As ye please, Anerew!
What's richt to you's aye richt to me. O' my ain sel' I wad be doobtfu' o' sic
a rizzon for gaein' to the kirk--to get something to speyk aboot."
"It's a gude rizzon
whaur ye haena a better," he answered. "It's aften I get at the kirk
naething but what angers me--lees an' lees agen my Lord an' my God. But whan
there's ane to talk it ower wi', ane 'at has some care for God as weel's for
himsel', there's some guid sure to come oot o' 't--some revelation o' the real
richteousness--no what fowk 'at gangs by the ministers ca's richteousness.--Is
yer shune comfortable to yer feet, sir?"
"Ay, that they are! an'
I thank ye: they're full better nor new."
"Weel, we winna hae
worship this mornin'; whan ye gang to the kirk it's like aitin' mair nor's guid
for ye."
"Hoots, Anerew! ye
dinna think a body can hae ower muckle o' the word!" said his wife,
anxious as to the impression he might make on Donal.
"Ow na, gien a body tak
it in, an' disgeist it! But it's no a bonny thing to hae the word stickin'
about yer moo', an' baggin' oot yer pooches, no to say lyin' cauld upo' yer
stamack, an' it for the life o' men. The less ye tak abune what ye put in
practice the better; an' gien the thing said hae naething to du wi' practice,
the less ye heed it the better.--Gien ye hae dune yer brakfast, sir, we'll
gang--no 'at it's freely kirk-time yet, but the Sabbath 's 'maist the only day
I get a bit o' a walk, an' gien ye hae nae objection til a turn aboot the
Lord's muckle hoose afore we gang intil his little ane--we ca' 't his, but I
doobt it--I'll be ready in a meenute."
Donal willingly agreed, and
the cobbler, already clothed in part of his Sunday best, a pair of corduroy
trousers of a mouse colour, having indued an ancient tail-coat of blue with
gilt buttons, they set out together; and for their conversation, it was just
the same as it would have been any other day: where every day is not the
Lord's, the Sunday is his least of all.
They left the town, and were
soon walking in meadows through which ran a clear river, shining and speedy in
the morning sun. Its banks were largely used for bleaching, and the long lines
of white in the lovely green of the natural grass were pleasant both to eye and
mind. All about, the rooks were feeding in peace, knowing their freedom that
day from the persecution to which, like all other doers of good, they are in
general exposed. Beyond the stream lay a level plain stretching towards the
sea, divided into numberless fields, and dotted with farmhouses and hamlets. On
the side where the friends were walking, the ground was more broken, rising in
places into small hills, many of them wooded. Half a mile away was one of a
conical shape, on whose top towered a castle. Old and gray and sullen, it
lifted itself from the foliage around it like a great rock from a summer sea,
and stood out against the clear blue sky of the June morning. The hill was
covered with wood, mostly rather young, but at the bottom were some ancient
firs and beeches. At the top, round the base of the castle, the trees were
chiefly delicate birches with moonlight skin, and feathery larches not thriving
over well.
"What ca' they yon
castel?" questioned Donal. "It maun be a place o' some
importance!"
"They maistly ca' 't
jist the castel," answered the cobbler. "Its auld name 's Graham's
Grip. It's lord Morven's place, an' they ca' 't Castel Graham: the faimily-name
's Graham, ye ken. They ca, themsel's Graeme-Graham--jist twa w'ys o' spellin'
the name putten thegither. The last lord, no upo' the main brainch, they tell
me, spelled his name wi' the diphthong, an' wasna willin' to gie't up
a'thegither--sae tuik the twa o' them. You 's whaur yoong Eppy 's at
service.--An' that min's me, sir, ye haena tellt me yet what kin' o' a place ye
wad hae yersel.' It's no 'at a puir body like me can help, but it's aye weel to
lat fowk ken what ye're efter. A word gangs speirin' lang efter it's oot o'
sicht--an' the answer may come frae far. The Lord whiles brings aboot things i'
the maist oonlikly fashion."
"I'm ready for onything
I'm fit to do," said Donal; "but I hae had what's ca'd a good
education--though I hae learned mair frae my ain needs than frae a' my buiks;
sae i wad raither till the human than the earthly soil, takin' mair interest i'
the schoolmaister's craps than i' the fairmer's."
"Wad ye objec' to
maister ane by himsel'--or maybe twa?"
"Na, surely--gien I saw
mysel' fit."
"Eppy mentiont last
nicht 'at there was word aboot the castel o' a tutor for the yoongest. Hae ye
ony w'y o' approachin' the place?"
"Not till the minister
comes home," answered Donal. "I have a letter to him."
"He'll be back by the
middle o' the week, I hear them say."
"Can you tell me
anything about the people at the castle?" asked Donal.
"I could,"
answered Andrew; "but some things is better f'un' oot nor kenned 'afore
han'. Ilka place has its ain shape, an' maist things has to hae some parin' to
gar them fit. That's what I tell yoong Eppy--mony 's the time!"
Here came a pause, and when
Andrew spoke again, it seemed on a new line.
"Did it ever occur to
ye, sir," he said, "'at maybe deith micht be the first waukin' to
some fowk?"
"It has occurrt to
me," answered Donal; "but mony things come intil a body's heid 'at
he's no able to think oot! They maun lie an' bide their time."
"Lat nane o' the lovers
o' law an' letter perswaud ye the Lord wadna hae ye think--though nane but him
'at obeys can think wi' safety. We maun do first the thing 'at we ken, an' syne
we may think aboot the thing 'at we dinna ken. I fancy 'at whiles the Lord
wadna say a thing jist no to stop fowk thinkin' aboot it. He was aye at gettin'
them to mak use o' the can'le o' the Lord. It's my belief the main obstacles to
the growth o' the kingdom are first the oonbelief o' believers, an' syne the
w'y 'at they lay doon the law. 'Afore they hae learnt the rudimen's o' the
trowth themsel's, they begin to lay the grievous burden o' their dullness an'
ill-conceived notions o' holy things upo' the min's an' consciences o' their
neebours, fain, ye wad think, to haud them frae growin' ony mair nor themsel's.
Eh, man, but the Lord 's won'erfu'! Ye may daur an' daur, an' no come i' sicht
o' 'im!"
The church stood a little
way out of the town, in a churchyard overgrown with grass, which the wind blew
like a field of corn. Many of the stones were out of sight in it. The church, a
relic of old catholic days, rose out of it like one that had taken to growing
and so got the better of his ills. They walked into the musty, dingy,
brown-atmosphered house. The cobbler led the way to a humble place behind a
pillar; there Doory was seated waiting them. The service was not so dreary to
Donal as usual; the sermon had some thought in it; and his heart was drawn to a
man who would say he did not understand.
"Yon was a fine
discoorse," remarked the cobbler as they went homeward.
Donal saw nothing fine
in it, but his experience was not so wide as the cobbler's: to him the
discourse had hinted many things which had not occurred to Donal.
Some people demand from the
householder none but new things, others none but old; whereas we need in truth
of all the sorts in his treasury.
"I haena a doobt it was
a' richt an' as ye say, Anerew," said his wife; "but for mysel' I
could mak naither heid nor tail o' 't."
"I saidna, Doory, it
was a' richt," returned her husband; "that would be to say a heap for
onything human! but it was a guid honest sermon."
"What was yon 'at he
said aboot the mirracles no bein' teeps?" asked his wife.
"It was God's trowth
'at," he said."
"Gie me a share o' the
same I beg o' ye, Anerew Comin."
"What the man said was
this--'at the sea 'at Peter gaed oot upo' wasna first an' foremost to be luikit
upon as a teep o' the inward an' spiritual troubles o' the believer, still less
o' the troubles o' the church o' Christ. The Lord deals wi' fac's nane the less
'at they canna help bein' teeps. Here was terrible fac's to Peter. Here was
angry watter an' roarin' win'; here was danger an' fear: the man had to trust
or gang doon. Gien the hoose be on fire we maun trust; gien the watter gang
ower oor heids we maun trust; gien the horse rin awa', we maun trust. Him 'at
canna trust in siclike conditions, I wadna gie a plack for ony ither kin' o'
faith he may hae. God 's nae a mere thoucht i' the warl' o' thoucht, but a
leevin' pooer in a' warl's alike. Him 'at gangs to God wi' a sair heid 'ill the
suner gang til 'im wi' a sair hert; an' them 'at thinksna he cares for the
pains o' their bodies 'ill ill believe he cares for the doobts an' perplexities
o' their inquirin' speerits. To my min' he spak the best o' sense!"
"I didna hear him say
onything like that!" said Donal.
"Did ye no? Weel, I
thoucht it cam frae him to me!"
"Maybe I wasna giein'
the best heed," said Donal. "But what ye say is as true as the sun.
It stan's to rizzon."
The day passed in pleasure
and quiet. Donal had found another father and mother.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER VIII. THE GATE.">
CHAPTER VIII.
THE GATE.
THE next day, after
breakfast, Donal said to his host--
"Noo I maun pey ye for
my shune, for gien I dinna pey at ance, I canna tell hoo muckle to ca' my ain,
an' what I hae to gang by till I get mair."
"Na, na," returned
the cobbler. "There's jist ae preejudice I hae left concernin' the
Sawbath-day; I firmly believe it a preejudice, for siller 's the Lord's tu, but
I canna win ower 't: I canna bring mysel' to tak siller for ony wark dune upo'
't! Sae ye maun jist be content to lat that flee stick to the Lord's wa'. Ye'll
du as muckle for me some day!"
"There's naething left
me but to thank ye," said Donal. "There's the ludgin' an' the boord,
though!--I maun ken aboot them 'afore we gang farther."
"They're nane o' my
business," replied Andrew. "I lea' a' that to the gudewife, an' I coonsel
ye to du the same. She's a capital manager, an' winna chairge ye ower
muckle."
Donal could but yield, and
presently went out for a stroll.
He wandered along the bank
of the river till he came to the foot of the hill on which stood the castle.
Seeing a gate, he approached it, and finding it open went in. A slow-ascending
drive went through the trees, round and round the hill. He followed it a little
way. An aromatic air now blew and now paused as he went. The trees seemed
climbing up to attack the fortress above, which he could not see. When he had
gone a few yards out of sight of the gate, he threw himself down among them,
and fell into a reverie. The ancient time arose before him, when, without a
tree to cover the approach of an enemy, the castle rose defiant and bare in its
strength, like an athlete stripped for the fight, and the little town huddled
close under its protection. What wars had there blustered, what rumours blown,
what fears whispered, what sorrows moaned! But were there not now just as many
evils as then? Let the world improve as it may, the deeper ill only breaks out
afresh in new forms. Time itself, the staring, vacant, unlovely time, is to
many the one dread foe. Others have a house empty and garnished, in which
neither Love nor Hope dwells. A self, with no God to protect from it, a self
unrulable, insatiable, makes of existence to some the hell called madness.
Godless man is a horror of the unfinished--a hopeless necessity for the
unattainable! The most discontented are those who have all the truthless heart
desires.
Thoughts like these were
coming and going in Donal's brain, when he heard a slight sound somewhere near
him--the lightest of sounds indeed--the turning of the leaf of a book. He
raised his head and looked, but could see no one. At last, up through the
tree-boles on the slope of the hill, he caught the shine of something white: it
was the hand that held an open book. He took it for the hand of a lady. The
trunk of a large tree hid the reclining form. He would go back! There was the
lovely cloth-striped meadow to lie in!
He rose quietly, but not
quietly enough to steal away. From behind the tree, a young man, rather tall
and slender, rose and came towards him. Donal stood to receive him.
"I presume you are
unaware that these grounds are not open to the public!" he said, not
without a touch of haughtiness.
"I beg your pardon,
sir," said Donal. "I found the gate open, and the shade of the trees
was enticing."
"It is of no
consequence," returned the youth, now with some condescension; "only
my father is apt to be annoyed if he sees any one--"
He was interrupted by a cry
from farther up the hill--
"Oh, there you are,
Percy!"
"And there you are,
Davie!" returned the youth kindly.
A boy of about ten came
towards them precipitately, jumping stumps, and darting between stems.
"Take care, take care,
Davie!" cried the other: "you may slip on a root and fall!"
"Oh, I know better than
that!--But you are engaged!"
"Not in the least. Come
along."
Donal lingered: the youth
had not finish his speech!
"I went to Arkie,"
said the boy, "but she couldn't help me. I can't make sense of this! I
wouldn't care if it wasn't a story."
He had an old folio under
one arm, with a finger of the other hand in its leaves.
"It is a curious taste
for a child!" said the youth, turning to Donal, in whom he had recognized
the peasant-scholar: "this little brother of mine reads all the dull old
romances he can lay his hands on."
"Perhaps,"
suggested Donal, "they are the only fictions within his reach! Could you
not turn him loose upon sir Walter Scott?"
"A good
suggestion!" he answered, casting a keen glance at Donal.
"Will you let me look
at the passage?" said Donal to the boy, holding out his hand.
The boy opened the book, and
gave it him. On the top of the page Donal read, "The Countess of
Pembroke's Arcadia." He had read of the book, but had never seen it.
"That's a grand
book!" he said.
"Horribly dreary,"
remarked the elder brother.
The younger reached up, and
laid his finger on the page next him.
"There, sir!" he
said; "that is the place: do tell me what it means."
"I will try,"
answered Donal; "I may not he able."
He began to read at the top
of the page.
"That's not the place,
sir!" said the boy. "It is there."
"I must know something
of what goes before it first," returned Donal.
"Oh, yes, sir; I
see!" he answered, and stood silent.
He was a fair-haired boy,
with ruddy cheeks and a healthy look--sweet-tempered evidently.
Donal presently saw both
what the sentence meant and the cause of his difficulty. He explained the thing
to him.
"Thank you! thank you!
Now I shall get on!" he cried, and ran up the hill.
"You seem to understand
boys!" said the brother.
"I have always had a
sort of ambition to understand ignorance."
"Understand
ignorance?"
"You know what queer
shapes the shadows of the plainest things take: I never seem to understand any
thing till I understand its shadow."
The youth glanced keenly at
Donal.
"I wish I had had a
tutor like you!" he said.
"Why?" asked
Donal.
"I should done
better.--Where do you live?"
Donal told him he was
lodging with Andrew Comin, the cobbler. A silence followed.
"Good morning!"
said the youth.
"Good morning,
sir!" returned Donal, and went away.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER IX. THE MORVEN ARMS.">
CHAPTER IX.
THE MORVEN ARMS.
ON Wednesday evening Donal
went to The Morven Arms to inquire for the third time if his box was
come. The landlord said, if a great heavy tool-chest was the thing he expected,
it had come.
"Donal Grant wad
be the name upo' 't," said Donal.
"'Deed, I didna
luik," said the landlord. "Its i' the back yard."
As Donal went through the
house to the yard, he passed the door of a room where some of the townsfolk
sat, and heard the earl mentioned.
He had not asked Andrew
anything about the young man he had spoken with; for he understood that his
host held himself not at liberty to talk about the family in which his
granddaughter was a servant. But what was said in public he surely might hear!
He requested the landlord to let him have a bottle of ale, and went into the
room and sat down.
It was a decent parlour with
a sanded floor. Those assembled were a mixed company from town and country,
having a tumbler of whisky-toddy together after the market. One of them was a
stranger who had been receiving from the others various pieces of information
concerning the town and its neighbourhood.
"I min' the auld man
weel," a wrinkled gray-haired man was saying as Donal entered, "--a
varra different man frae this present. He wud sit doon as ready as no--that wud
he--wi' ony puir body like mysel', an' gie him his cracks, an' hear his news,
an' drink his glaiss, an' mak naething o' 't. But this man, haith! wha ever saw
him cheenge word wi' brither man?"
"I never h'ard hoo he
came to the teetle: they say he was but some far awa' cousin!" remarked a
farmer-looking man, florid and stout.
"Hoots! he was ain
brither to the last yerl, wi' richt to the teetle, though nane to the property.
That he's but takin' care o' till his niece come o' age. He was a heap aboot
the place afore his brither dee'd, an' they war freen's as weel 's brithers.
They say 'at the lady Arctoora--h'ard ye ever sic a hathenish name for a
lass!--is b'un' to merry the yoong lord. There 's a sicht o' clapper-clash
aboot the place, an' the fowk, an' their strange w'ys. They tell me nane can be
said to ken the yerl but his ain man. For mysel' I never cam i' their
coonsel--no' even to the buyin' or sellin' o' a lamb."
"Weel," said a
fair-haired, pale-faced man, "we ken frae scriptur 'at the sins o' the
fathers is veesitit upo' the children to the third an' fourth generation--an'
wha can tell?"
"Wha can tell,"
rejoined another, who had a judicial look about him, in spite of an unshaven
beard, and a certain general disregard to appearances, "wha can tell but
the sins o' oor faithers may be lyin' upo' some o' oorsel's at this
varra moment?"
"In oor case, I canna
see the thing wad be fair," said a fifth: "we dinna even ken what
they did!"
"We're no to interfere
wi' the wull o' the Almichty," rejoined the former. "It gangs its ain
gait, an' mortal canna tell what that gait is. His justice winna be
contert."
Donal felt that to be silent
now would be to decline witnessing. He feared argument, lest he should fail and
wrong the right, but he must not therefore hang back. He drew his chair towards
the table.
"Wad ye lat a stranger
put in a word, freen's?" he said.
"Ow ay, an' welcome! We
setna up for the men o' Gotham."
"Weel, I wad spier a
question gien I may."
"Speir awa'. Answer I
winna insure," said the man unshaven.
"Weel, wad ye please
tell me what ye ca' the justice o' God?"
"Onybody could tell ye
that: it consists i' the punishment o' sin. He gies ilka sinner what his sin
deserves."
"That seems to me an
unco ae-sidit definition o' justice."
"Weel, what wad ye
mak o' 't?"
"I wad say justice
means fair play; an' the justice o' God lies i' this, 'at he gies ilka
man, beast, an' deevil, fair play."
"I'm doobtfu' aboot
that!" said a drover-looking fellow. "We maun gang by the word; an'
the word says he veesits the ineequities o' the fathers upo' the children to
the third an' fourth generation: I never could see the fair play o' that!"
"Dinna ye meddle wi'
things, John, 'at ye dinna un'erstan'; ye may wauk i' the wrang box!" said
the old man.
"I want to
un'erstan'," returned John. "I'm no sayin' he disna du richt; I'm
only sayin' I canna see the fair play o' 't."
"It may weel be richt
an' you no see 't!"
"Ay' weel that! But
what for sud I no say I dinna see 't? Isna the blin' man to say he's
blin'?"
This was unanswerable, and
Donal again spoke.
"It seems to me,"
he said, "we need first to un'erstan' what's conteened i' the veesitin' o'
the sins o' the fathers upo' the children, afore we daur ony jeedgment concernin'
't."
"Ay, that 's sense
eneuch!" confessed a responsive murmur.
"I haena seen muckle o'
this warl' yet, compared wi' you, sirs," Donal went on, "but I hae
been a heap my lane wi' nowt an' sheep, whan a heap o' things gaed throuw my
heid; an' I hae seen something as weel, though no that muckle. I hae seen a
man, a' his life 'afore a douce honest man, come til a heap o' siller, an' gang
to the dogs!"
A second murmur seemed to
indicate corroboration.
"He gaed a' to the
dogs, as I say," continued Donal; "an' the bairns he left 'ahint him
whan he dee'd o' drink, cam upo' the perris, or wad hae hungert but for some
'at kenned him whan he was yet in honour an' poverty. Noo, wad ye no say this
was a veesitin' o' the sins o' the father upo' the children?"
"Ay, doobtless!"
"Weel, whan I h'ard
last aboot them, they were a' like eneuch to turn oot honest lads an'
lasses."
"Ow, I daursay!"
"An' what micht ye
think the probability gien they had come intil a lot o' siller whan their
father dee'd?"
"Maybe they micht hae
gane the same gait he gaed!"
"Was there injustice
than, or was there favour i' that veesitation o' the sins o' their father upo'
them?"
There was no answer. The
toddy went down their throats and the smoke came out of their mouths, but no
one dared acknowledge it might be a good thing to be born poor instead of rich.
So entirely was the subject dropped that Donal feared he had failed to make
himself understood. He did not know the general objection to talking of things
on eternal principles. We set up for judges of right while our very selves are
wrong! He saw that he had cast a wet blanket over the company, and judged it
better to take his leave.
Borrowing a wheelbarrow, he
trundled his chest home, and unpacking it in the archway, carried his books and
clothes to his room.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER X. THE PARISH CLERGYMAN.">
CHAPTER X
THE PARISH CLERGYMAN.
THE next day, Donal put on
his best coat, and went to call on the minister. Shown into the study, he saw
seated there the man he had met on his first day's journey, the same who had
parted from him in such displeasure. He presented his letter.
Mr. Carmichael gave him a
keen glance, but uttered no word until he had read it.
"Well, young man,"
he said, looking up at him with concentrated severity, "what would you
have me do?"
"Tell me of any
situation you may happen to know or hear of, sir," said Donal. "That
is all I could expect."
"All!"
repeated the clergyman, with something very like a sneer; "--but what if I
think that all a very great deal? What if I imagine myself set in charge
over young minds and hearts? What if I know you better than the good man whose
friendship for your parents gives him a kind interest in you? You little
thought how you were undermining your prospects last Friday! My old friend
would scarcely have me welcome to my parish one he may be glad to see out of
his own! You can go to the kitchen and have your dinner--I have no desire to
render evil for evil--but I will not bid you God-speed. And the sooner you take
yourself out of this, young man, the better!"
"Good morning,
sir!" said Donal, and left the room.
On the doorstep he met a
youth he had known by sight at the university: it was the minister's son--the
worst-behaved of all the students. Was this a case of the sins of the father
being visited on the child? Does God never visit the virtues of the father on
the child?
A little ruffled, and not a
little disappointed, Donal walked away. Almost unconsciously he took the road
to the castle, and coming to the gate, leaned on the top bar, and stood
thinking.
Suddenly, down through the
trees came Davie bounding, pushed his hand through between the bars, and shook
hands with him.
"I have been looking
for you all day," he said.
"Why?" asked
Donal.
"Forgue sent you a
letter."
"I have had no
letter."
"Eppy took it this
morning."
"Ah, that explains! I
have not been home since breakfast."
"It was to say my
father would like to see you."
"I will go and get it:
then I shall know what to do."
"Why do you live there?
The cobbler is a dirty little man! Your clothes will smell of leather!"
"He is not dirty,"
said Donal. "His hands do get dirty--very dirty with his work--and his
face too; and I daresay soap and water can't get them quite clean. But he will
have a nice earth-bath one day, and that will take all the dirt off. And if you
could see his soul--that is as clean as clean can be--so clean it is quite
shining!"
"Have you seen
it?" said the boy, looking up at Donal, unsure whether he was making game
of him, or meaning something very serious.
"I have had a glimpse
or two of it. I never saw a cleaner.--You know, my dear boy, there's a
cleanness much deeper than the skin!"
"I know!" said
Davie, but stared as if he wondered he would speak of such things.
Donal returned his gaze. Out
of the fullness of his heart his eyes shone. Davie was reassured.
"Can you ride?" he
asked.
"Yes, a little."
"Who taught you?"
"An old mare I was fond
of."
"Ah, you are making
game of me! I do not like to be made game of," said Davie, and turned
away.
"No indeed,"
replied Donal. "I never make game of anybody.--But now I will go and find
the letter."
"I would go with
you," said the boy, "but my father will not let me beyond the
grounds. I don't know why."
Donal hastened home, and
found himself eagerly expected, for the letter young Eppy had brought was from
the earl. It informed Donal that it would give his lordship pleasure to see
him, if he would favour him with a call.
In a few minutes he was
again on the road to the castle.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XI. THE EARL.">
CHAPTER XI.
THE EARL.
HE met no one on his way
from the gate up through the wood. He ascended the hill with its dark ascending
firs, to its crown of silvery birches, above which, as often as the slowly
circling road brought him to the other side, he saw rise like a helmet the gray
mass of the fortress. Turret and tower, pinnacle and battlement, appeared and
disappeared as he climbed. Not until at last he stood almost on the top, and
from an open space beheld nearly the whole front, could he tell what it was
like. It was a grand pile, but looked a gloomy one to live in.
He stood on a broad grassy
platform, from which rose a gravelled terrace, and from the terrace the castle.
He ran his eye along the front seeking a door but saw none. Ascending the
terrace by a broad flight of steps, he approached a deep recess in the front,
where two portions of the house of differing date nearly met. Inside this
recess he found a rather small door, flush with the wall, thickly studded and
plated with iron, surmounted by the Morven horses carved in gray stone, and
surrounded with several mouldings. Looking for some means of announcing his
presence, he saw a handle at the end of a rod of iron, and pulled, but heard
nothing: the sound of the bell was smothered in a wilderness of stone walls. By
and by, however, appeared an old servant, bowed and slow, with plentiful hair
white as wool, and a mingled look of childishness and caution in his wrinkled
countenance.
"The earl wants to see
me," said Donal.
"What name?" said
the man.
"Donal Grant; but his
lordship will be nothing the wiser, I suspect; I don't think he knows my name.
Tell him--the young man he sent for to Andrew Comin's."
The man left him, and Donal
began to look about him. The place where he stood was a mere entry, a cell in
huge walls, with a second, a low, round-headed door, like the entrance to a
prison, by which the butler had disappeared. There was nothing but bare stone
around him, with again the Morven arms cut deep into it on one side. The
ceiling was neither vaulted nor groined nor flat, but seemed determined by the
accidental concurrence of ends of stone stairs and corners of floors on
different levels. It was full ten minutes before the man returned and requested
him to follow him.
Immediately Donal found
himself in a larger and less irregular stone-case, adorned with heads and horns
and skins of animals. Crossing this, the man opened a door covered with red
cloth, which looked strange in the midst of the cold hard stone, and Donal
entered an octagonal space, its doors of dark shining oak, with carved stone
lintels and doorposts, and its walls adorned with arms and armour almost to the
domed ceiling. Into it, as if it descended suddenly out of some far height, but
dropping at last like a gently alighting bird, came the end of a
turnpike-stair, of slow sweep and enormous diameter--such a stair as in wildest
gothic tale he had never imagined. Like the revolving centre of a huge shell,
it went up out of sight, with plain promise of endless convolutions beyond. It
was of ancient stone, but not worn as would have been a narrow stair. A great
rope of silk, a modern addition, ran up along the wall for a hand-rail; and
with slow-moving withered hand upon it, up the glorious ascent climbed the
serving man, suggesting to Donal's eye the crawling of an insect, to his heart
the redemption of the sons of God.
With the stair yet ascending
above them as if it would never stop, the man paused upon a step no broader
than the rest, and opening a door in the round of the well, said, "Mr.
Grant, my lord," and stood aside for Donal to enter.
He found himself in the
presence of a tall, bowed man, with a large-featured white face, thin and worn,
and a deep-sunken eye that gleamed with an unhealthy life. His hair was thin,
but covered his head, and was only streaked with gray. His hands were long and
thin and white; his feet in large shoes, looking the larger that they came out
from narrow trousers, which were of shepherd-tartan. His coat was of
light-blue, with a high collar of velvet, and much too wide for him. A black
silk neckerchief tied carelessly about his throat, and a waistcoat of pineapple
shawl-stuff, completed his dress. On one long little finger shone a stone which
Donal took for an emerald. He motioned his visitor to a seat, and went on
writing, with a rudeness more like that of a successful contractor than a
nobleman. But it gave Donal the advantage of becoming a little accustomed to
his surroundings. The room was not large, was wainscoted, and had a good many
things on the walls: Donal noted two or three riding whips, a fishing rod,
several pairs of spurs, a sword with golden hilt, a strange looking dagger like
a flame of fire, one or two old engravings, and what seemed a plan of the
estate. At the one window, small, with a stone mullion, the summer sun was
streaming in. The earl sat in its flood, and in the heart of it seemed cold and
bloodless. He looked about sixty years of age, and as if he rarely or never
smiled. Donal tried to imagine what a smile would do for his face, but failed.
He was not in the least awed by the presence of the great man. What is rank to
the man who honours everything human, has no desire to look what he is not, has
nothing to conceal and nothing to compass, is fearful of no to-morrow, and does
not respect riches! Toward such ends of being the tide of Donal's life was at
least setting. So he sat neither fidgeting nor staring, but quietly taking
things in.
The earl raised himself,
pushed his writing from him, turned towards him, and said with courtesy,
"Excuse me, Mr. Grant;
I wished to talk to you with the ease of duty done."
More polite his address
could not have been, but there was a something between him and Donal that was
not to be passed a--nameless gulf of the negative.
"My time is at your
lordship's service," replied Donal, with the ease that comes of
simplicity.
"You have probably
guessed why I sent for you?"
"I have hoped, my
lord."
There was something of
old-world breeding about the lad that commended him to the earl. Such breeding
is not rare among Celt-born peasants.
"My sons told me that
they had met a young man in the grounds--"
"For which I beg your
lordship's pardon," said Donal. "I did not know the place was
forbidden."
"I hope you will soon
be familiar with it. I am glad of your mistake. From what they said, I supposed
you might be a student in want of a situation, and I had been looking out for a
young man to take charge of the boy: it seemed possible you might serve my
purpose. I do not question you can show yourself fit for such an office: I
presume it would suit you. Do you believe yourself one to be so trusted?"
Donal had not a glimmer of
false modesty; he answered immediately,
"I do, my lord."
"Tell me something of
your history: where were you born? what were your parents?"
Donal told him all he
thought it of any consequence he should know.
His lordship did not once
interrupt him with question or remark. When he had ended--
"Well," he said,
"I like all you tell me. You have testimonials?"
"I have from the
professors, my lord, and one from the minister of the parish, who knew me
before I went to college. I could get one from Mr. Sclater too, whose church I
attended while there."
"Show me what you
have," said his lordship.
Donal took the papers from
the pocket-book his mother had made him, and handed them to him. The earl read
them with some attention, returning each to him without remark as he finished
it, only saying with the last,
"Quite
satisfactory."
"But," said Donal,
"there is one thing I should be more at ease if I told your lordship: Mr.
Carmichael, the minister of this parish, would tell you I was an atheist, or
something very like it--therefore an altogether unsafe person. But he knows
nothing of me."
"On what grounds then
would he say so?" asked the earl--showing not the least discomposure.
"I thought you were a stranger to this place!"
Donal told him how they had
met, what had passed between them, and how the minister had behaved in
consequence. His lordship heard him gravely, was silent for a moment, and then
said,
"Should Mr. Carmichael
address me on the subject, which I do not think likely, he will find me already
too much prejudiced in your favour. But I can imagine his mistaking your
freedom of speech: you are scarcely prudent enough. Why say all you
think?"
"I fear nothing, my
lord."
The earl was silent; his
gray face seemed to grow grayer, but it might be that just then the sun went
under a cloud, and he was suddenly folded in shadow. After a moment he spoke
again.
"I am quite satisfied
with you so far, Mr. Grant; and as I should not like to employ you in direct
opposition to Mr. Carmichel--not that I belong to his church--we will arrange
matters before he can hear of the affair. What salary do you want?"
Donal replied he would
prefer leaving the salary to his lordship's judgment upon trial.
"I am not a wealthy
man," returned his lordship, "and would prefer an
understanding."
"Try me then for three
months, my lord; give me my board and lodging, the use of your library, and at
the end of the quarter a ten-pound-note: by that time you will be able to tell
whether I suit you."
The earl nodded agreement,
and Donal rose at once. With a heart full of thankfulness and hope he walked
back to his friends. He had before him pleasant work; plenty of time and
book-help; an abode full of interest; and something for his labour!
"'Surely the wrath of
man shall praise thee!'" said the cobbler, rejoicing against the minister;
"'the remainder of wrath shalt thou restrain.'"
In the afternoon Donal went
into the town to get some trifles he wanted before going to the castle. As he
turned to the door of a draper's shop, he saw at the counter the minister
talking to him. He would rather have gone elsewhere but for unwillingness to
turn his back on anything: he went in. Beside the minister stood a young lady,
who, having completed her purchases, was listening to their conversation. The
draper looked up as he entered. A glance passed between him and the minister.
He came to Donal, and having heard what he wanted, left him, went back to the
minister, and took no more notice of him. Donal found it awkward, and left the
shop.
"High an' michty!"
said the draper, annoyed at losing the customer to whose dispraise he had been
listening.
"Far beyond dissent,
John!" said the minister, pursuing a remark.
"Doobtless, sir, it is
that!" answered the draper. "I'm thankfu' to say I never harboured a
doobt mysel', but aye took what I was tauld, ohn argle-barglet. What hae we sic
as yersel' set ower's for, gien it binna to haud's i' the straicht path o' what
we're to believe an' no to believe? It's a fine thing no to be
accoontable!"
The minister was an honest
man so far as he knew himself and honesty, and did not relish this form of
submission. But he did not ask himself where was the difference between
accepting the word of man and accepting man's explanation of the word of God!
He took a huge pinch from his black snuffbox and held his peace.
In the evening Donal would
settle his account with mistress Comin: he found her demand so much less than
he had expected, that he expostulated. She was firm, however, and assured him
she had gained, not lost. As he was putting up his things,
"Lea' a buik or twa,
sir," she said, "'at whan ye luik in, the place may luik hame-like.
We s' ca' the room yours. Come as aften as ye can. It does my Anerew's hert
guid to hae a crack wi' ane 'at kens something o' what the Maister wad be at.
Mony ane 'll ca' him Lord, but feow 'ill tak the trible to ken what he wad hae
o' them. But there's my Anerew--he'll sit yon'er at his wark, thinkin' by the
hoor thegither ower something the Maister said 'at he canna win at the richts
o'. 'Depen' upo' 't,' he says whiles, 'depen' upo' 't, lass, whaur onything he
says disna luik richt to hiz, it maun be 'at we haena won at it!'"
As she ended, her husband
came in, and took up what he fancied the thread of the dialogue.
"An' what are we to
think o' the man," he said, "at's content no to un'erstan' what he
was at the trible to say? Wad he say things 'at he didna mean fowk to
un'erstan' whan he said them?" "Weel, Anerew," said his wife,
"there's mony a thing he said 'at I can not un'erstan'; naither am
I muckle the better for your explainin' o' the same; I maun jist lat it
sit."
Andrew laughed his quiet
pleased laugh.
"Weel, lass," he
said, "the duin' o' ae thing 's better nor the un'erstan'in' o' twenty.
Nor wull ye be lang ohn un'erstan't muckle 'at's dark to ye noo; for the
maister likes nane but the duer o' the word, an' her he likes weel. Be blythe,
lass; ye s' hae yer fill o' un'erstan'in' yet!"
"I'm fain to believe ye
speyk the trowth, Anerew!"
"It 's great
trowth," said Donal.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XII. THE CASTLE.">
CHAPTER XII.
THE CASTLE.
THE next morning came a cart
from the castle to fetch his box; and after breakfast he set out for his new
abode.
He took the path by the
river-side. The morning was glorious. The sun and the river and the birds were
jubilant, and the wind gave life to everything. It rippled the stream, and
fluttered the long webs bleaching in the sun: they rose and fell like white
waves on the bright green lake; and women, homely Nereids of the grassy sea,
were besprinkling them with spray. There were dull sounds of wooden machinery
near, but they made no discord with the sweetness of the hour, speaking only of
activity, not labour. From the long bleaching meadows by the river-side rose
the wooded base of the castle. Donal's bosom swelled with delight; then came a
sting: was he already forgetting his inextinguishable grief? "But,"
he answered himself, "God is more to me than any woman! When he puts joy
in my heart, shall I not be glad? When he calls my name shall I not
answer?"
He stepped out joyfully, and
was soon climbing the hill. He was again admitted by the old butler.
"I will show you at
once," he said, "how to go and come at your own will."
He led him through doors and
along passages to a postern opening on a little walled garden at the east end
of the castle.
"This door," he
said, "is, you observe, at the foot of Baliol's tower, and in that tower
is your room; I will show it you."
He led the way up a spiral
stair that might almost have gone inside the newel of the great staircase. Up
and up they went, until Donal began to wonder, and still they went up.
"You're young,
sir," said the butler, "and sound of wind and limb; so you'll soon
think nothing of it."
"I never was up so high
before, except on a hill-side," returned Donal. "The college-tower is
nothing to this!"
"In a day or two you'll
be shooting up and down it like a bird. I used to do so myself. I got into the
way of keeping a shoulder foremost, and screwing up as if I was a blob of air!
Old age does make fools of us!"
"You don't like it
then?"
"No, I do not: who
does?"
"It's only that you get
spent as you go up. The fresh air at the top of the stair will soon revive
you," said Donal.
But his conductor did not
understand him.
"That's all very well
so long as you're young; but when it has got you, you'll pant and grumble like
the rest of us."
In the distance Donal saw
Age coming slowly after him, to claw him in his clutch, as the old song says.
"Please God," he thought, "by the time he comes up, I'll be
ready to try a fall with him! O Thou eternally young, the years have no hold on
thee; let them have none on thy child. I too shall have life eternal."
Ere they reached the top of
the stair, the man halted and opened a door. Donal entering saw a small room,
nearly round, a portion of the circle taken off by the stair. On the opposite
side was a window projecting from the wall, whence he could look in three
different directions. The wide country lay at his feet. He saw the winding road
by which he had ascended, the gate by which he had entered, the meadow with its
white stripes through which he had come, and the river flowing down. He
followed it with his eyes:--lo, there was the sea, shining in the sun like a
diamond shield! It was but the little German Ocean, yet one with the great
world-ocean. He turned to his conductor.
"Yes," said the
old man, answering his look, "it's a glorious sight! When first I looked
out there I thought I was in eternity."
The walls were bare even of
plaster; he could have counted the stones in them; but they were dry as a bone.
"You are
wondering," said the old man, "how you are to keep warm in the
winter! Look here: you shut this door over the window! See how thick and strong
it is! There is your fireplace; and for fuel, there's plenty below! It is
a labour to carry it up, I grant; but if I was you, I would set to o' nights
when nobody was about, and carry till I had a stock laid in!"
"But," said Donal,
"I should fill up my room. I like to be able to move about a little!"
"Ah," replied the
old man, "you don't know what a space you have up here all to yourself!
Come this way."
Two turns more up the stair,
and they came to another door. It opened into wide space: from it Donal stepped
on a ledge or bartizan, without any parapet, that ran round the tower, passing
above the window of his room. It was well he had a steady brain, for he found
the height affect him more than that of a precipice on Glashgar: doubtless he
would get used to it, for the old man had stepped out without the smallest
hesitation! Round the tower he followed him.
On the other side a few
steps rose to a watch-tower--a sort of ornate sentry-box in stone, where one
might sit and regard with wide vision the whole country. Avoiding this, another
step or two led them to the roof of the castle--of great stone slabs. A broad
passage ran between the rise of the roof and a battlemented parapet. By this
time they came to a flat roof, on to which they descended by a few steps. Here
stood two rough sheds, with nothing in them.
"There's stowage!"
said the old man.
"Yes, indeed!"
answered Donal, to whom the idea of his aerie was growing more and more
agreeable. "But would there be no objection to my using the place for such
a purpose?"
"What objection?"
returned his guide. "I doubt if a single person but myself knows it."
"And shall I be allowed
to carry up as much as I please?"
"I allow you,"
said the butler, with importance. "Of course you will not waste--I am dead
against waste! But as to what is needful, use your freedom.--Dinner will be
ready for you in the schoolroom at seven."
At the door of his room the
old man left him, and after listening for a moment to his descending steps,
Donal re-entered his chamber.
Why they put him so apart,
Donal never asked himself; that he should have such command of his leisure as
this isolation promised him was a consequence very satisfactory. He proceeded
at once to settle himself in his new quarters. Finding some shelves in a recess
of the wall, he arranged his books upon them, and laid his few clothes in the
chest of drawers beneath. He then got out his writing material, and sat down.
Though his window was so
high, the warm pure air came in full of the aromatic odours rising in the hot
sunshine from the young pine trees far below, and from a lark far above
descended news of heaven-gate. The scent came up and the song came down all the
time he was writing to his mother--a long letter. When he had closed and
addressed it, he fell into a reverie. Apparently he was to have his meals by
himself: he was glad of it: he would be able to read all the time! But how was
he to find the schoolroom! Some one would surely fetch him! They would remember
he did not know his way about the place! It wanted yet an hour to dinner-time
when, finding himself drowsy, he threw himself on his bed, where presently he
fell fast asleep.
The night descended, and
when he came to himself, its silences were deep around him. It was not dark:
there was no moon, but the twilight was clear. He could read the face of his
watch: it was twelve o'clock! No one had missed him! He was very hungry! But he
had been hungrier before and survived it! In his wallet were still some
remnants of oat-cake! He took it in his hand, and stepping out on the bartizan,
crept with careful steps round to the watch-tower. There he seated himself in
the stone chair, and ate his dry morsels in the starry presences. Sleep had
refreshed him, and he was wide awake, yet there was on him the sense of a
strange existence. Never before had he so known himself! Often had he passed
the night in the open air, but never before had his night-consciousness been
such! Never had he felt the same way alone. He was parted from the whole earth,
like the ship-boy on the giddy mast! Nothing was below but a dimness; the earth
and all that was in it was massed into a vague shadow. It was as if he had died
and gone where existence was independent of solidity and sense. Above him was
domed the vast of the starry heavens; he could neither flee from it nor ascend
to it! For a moment he felt it the symbol of life, yet an unattainable hopeless
thing. He hung suspended between heaven and earth, an outcast of both, a
denizen of neither! The true life seemed ever to retreat, never to await his
grasp. Nothing but the beholding of the face of the Son of Man could set him at
rest as to its reality; nothing less than the assurance from his own mouth
could satisfy him that all was true, all well: life was a thing so essentially
divine, that he could not know it in itself till his own essence was pure! But
alas, how dream-like was the old story! Was God indeed to be reached by the
prayers, affected by the needs of men? How was he to feel sure of it? Once
more, as often heretofore, he found himself crying into the great world to know
whether there was an ear to hear. What if there should come to him no answer?
How frightful then would be his loneliness! But to seem not to be heard might
be part of the discipline of his darkness! It might be for the perfecting of
his faith that he must not yet know how near God was to him!
"Lord," he cried,
"eternal life is to know thee and thy Father; I do not know thee and thy
Father; I have not eternal life; I have but life enough to hunger for more:
show me plainly of the Father whom thou alone knowest."
And as he prayed, something
like a touch of God seemed to begin and grow in him till it was more than his
heart could hold, and the universe about him was not large enough to hold in
its hollow the heart that swelled with it.
"God is enough,"
he said, and sat in peace.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XIII. A SOUND.">
CHAPTER XIII.
A SOUND.
ALL at once came to his ear
through the night a strange something. Whence or what it was he could not even
conjecture. Was it a moan of the river from below? Was it a lost music-tone
that had wandered from afar and grown faint? Was it one of those mysterious
sounds he had read of as born in the air itself, and not yet explained of
science? Was it the fluttered skirt of some angelic song of lamentation?--for
if the angels rejoice, they surely must lament! Or was it a stilled human
moaning? Was any wrong being done far down in the white-gleaming meadows below,
by the banks of the river whose platinum-glimmer he could descry through the
molten amethystine darkness of the starry night?
Presently came a long-drawn
musical moan: it must be the sound of some muffled instrument! Verily night was
the time for strange things! Could sounds be begotten in the fir trees by the
rays of the hot sun, and born in the stillness of the following dark, as the
light which the diamond receives in the day glows out in the gloom? There are
parents and their progeny that never exist together!
Again the sound--hardly to
be called sound! It resembled a vibration of organ-pipe too slow and deep to
affect the hearing; only this rather seemed too high, as if only his soul heard
it. He would steal softly down the dumb stone-stair! Some creature might be in
trouble and needing help!
He crept back along the
bartizan. The stair was dark as the very heart of the night. He groped his way
down. The spiral stair is the safest of all: you cannot tumble far ere brought
up by the inclosing cylinder. Arrived at the bottom, and feeling about, he
could not find the door to the outer air which the butler had shown him; it was
wall wherever his hands fell. He could not find again the stair he had left; he
could not tell in what direction it lay.
He had got into a long
windowless passage connecting two wings of the house, and in this he was
feeling his way, fearful of falling down some stair or trap. He came at last to
a door--low-browed like almost all in the house. Opening it--was it a thinner
darkness or the faintest gleam of light he saw? And was that again the sound he
had followed, fainter and farther off than before--a downy wind-wafted plume
from the skirt of some stray harmony? At such a time of the night surely it was
strange! It must come from one who could not sleep, and was solacing himself
with sweet sounds, breathing a soul into the uncompanionable silence! If so it
was, he had no right to search farther! But how was he to return? He dared hardly
move, lest he should be found wandering over the house in the dead of night
like a thief, or one searching after its secrets. He must sit down and wait for
the morning: its earliest light would perhaps enable him to find his way to his
quarters!
Feeling about him a little,
his foot struck against the step of a stair. Examining it with his hands, he
believed it the same he had ascended in the morning: even in a great castle,
could there be two such royal stairs? He sat down upon it, and leaning his head
on his hands, composed himself to a patient waiting for the light.
Waiting pure is perhaps the
hardest thing for flesh and blood to do well. The relations of time to mind are
very strange. Some of their phenomena seem to prove that time is only of the mind--belonging
to the intellect as good and evil belong to the spirit. Anyhow, if it were not
for the clocks of the universe, one man would live a year, a century, where
another would live but a day. But the mere motion of time, not to say the
consciousness of empty time, is fearful. It is this empty time that the
fool is always trying to kill: his effort should be to fill it. Yet nothing but
the living God can fill it--though it be but the shape our existence takes to
us. Only where he is, emptiness is not. Eternity will be but an intense present
to the child with whom is the Father.
Such thoughts alighted,
flitted, and passed, for the first few moments, through the mind of Donal, as
he sat half consciously waiting for the dawn. It was thousands of miles away,
over the great round of the sunward-turning earth! His imagination woke, and
began to picture the great hunt of the shadows, fleeing before the arrows of
the sun, over the broad face of the mighty world--its mountains, seas, and
plains in turn confessing the light, and submitting to him who slays for them
the haunting demons of their dark. Then again the moments were the small cogs
on the wheels of time, whereby the dark castle in which he sat was rushing ever
towards the light: the cogs were caught and the wheels turned swiftly, and the
time and the darkness sped. He forgot the labour of waiting. If now and then he
fancied a tone through the darkness, it was to his mind the music-march of the
morning to his rescue from the dungeon of the night.
But that was no musical tone
which made the darkness shudder around him! He sprang to his feet. It was a
human groan--a groan as of one in dire pain, the pain of a soul's agony. It
seemed to have descended the stair to him. The next instant Donal was feeling his
way up--cautiously, as if on each succeeding step he might come against the man
who had groaned. Tales of haunted houses rushed into his memory. What if he
were but pursuing the groan of an actor in the past--a creature the slave of
his own conscious memory--a mere haunter of the present which he could not
influence--one without physical relation to the embodied, save in the groans he
could yet utter! But it was more in awe than in fear that he went. Up and up he
felt his way, all about him as still as darkness and the night could make it. A
ghostly cold crept through his skin; it was drawn together as by a gently
freezing process; and there was a pulling at the muscles of his chest, as if
his mouth were being dragged open by a martingale.
As he felt his way along the
wall, sweeping its great endless circle round and round in spiral ascent, all
at once his hand seemed to go through it; he started and stopped. It was the
door of the room into which he had been shown to meet the earl! It stood wide
open. A faint glimmer came through the window from the star-filled sky. He
stepped just within the doorway. Was not that another glimmer on the
floor--from the back of the room--through a door he did not remember having
seen yesterday? There again was the groan, and nigh at hand! Someone must be in
sore need! He approached the door and looked through. A lamp, nearly spent,
hung from the ceiling of a small room which might be an office or study, or a
place where papers were kept. It had the look of an antechamber, but that it
could not be, for there was but the one door!--In the dim light he descried a
vague form leaning up against one of the walls, as if listening to something
through it! As he gazed it grew plainer to him, and he saw a face, its eyes
staring wide, which yet seemed not to see him. It was the face of the earl.
Donal felt as if in the presence of the disembodied; he stood fascinated, nor
made attempt to retire or conceal himself. The figure turned its face to the
wall, put the palms of its hands against it, and moved them up and down, and
this way and that; then looked at them, and began to rub them against each
other.
Donal came to himself. He
concluded it was a case of sleepwalking. He had read that it was dangerous to
wake the sleeper, but that he seldom came to mischief when left alone, and was
about to slip away as he had come, when the faint sound of a far-off chord
crept through the silence. The earl again laid his ear to the wall. But there
was only silence. He went through the same dumb show as before, then turned as
if to leave the place. Donal turned also, and hurriedly felt his way to the
stair. Then first he was in danger of terror; for in stealing through the
darkness from one who could find his way without his eyes, he seemed pursued by
a creature not of this world. On the stair he went down a step or two, then
lingered, and heard the earl come on it also. He crept close to the newel,
leaving the great width of the stair free, but the steps of the earl went
upward. Donal descended, sat down again at the bottom of the stair, and began
again to wait. No sound came to him through the rest of the night. The slow
hours rolled away, and the slow light drew nearer. Now and then he was on the
point of falling into a doze, but would suddenly start wide awake, listening
through a silence that seemed to fill the whole universe and deepen around the
castle.
At length he was aware that
the darkness had, unobserved of him, grown weaker--that the approach of the
light was sickening it: the dayspring was about to take hold of the ends of the
earth that the wicked might be shaken out of its lap. He sought the long
passage by which he had come, and felt his way to the other end: it would be
safer to wait there if he could get no farther. But somehow he came to the foot
of his own stair, and sped up as if it were the ladder of heaven. He threw
himself on his bed, fell fast asleep, and did not wake till the sun was high.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XIV. THE SCHOOLROOM.">
CHAPTER XIV.
THE SCHOOLROOM.
OLD Simmons, the butler,
woke him.
"I was afraid something
was the matter, sir. They tell me you did not come down last night; and
breakfast has been waiting you two hours."
"I should not have
known where to find it," said Donal. "The knowledge of an old castle
is not intuitive."
"How long will you take
to dress?" asked Simmons.
"Ten minutes, if there
is any hurry," answered Donal.
"I will come again in
twenty; or, if you are willing to save an old man's bones, I will be at the
bottom of the stair at that time to take charge of you. I would have looked
after you yesterday, but his lordship was poorly, and I had to be in attendance
on him till after midnight."
Donal thought it impossible
he should of himself have found his way to the schoolroom. With all he could do
to remember the turnings, he found the endeavour hopeless, and gave it up with
a not unpleasing despair. Through strange passages, through doors in all
directions, up stairs and down they went, and at last came to a long, low room,
barely furnished, with a pleasant outlook, and immediate access to the open
air. The windows were upon a small grassy court, with a sundial in the centre;
a door opened on a paved court. At one end of the room a table was laid with
ten times as many things as he could desire to eat, though he came to it with a
good appetite. The butler himself waited upon him. He was a good-natured old
fellow, with a nose somewhat too red for the ordinary wear of one in his
responsible position.
"I hope the earl is
better this morning," said Donal.
"Well, I can't say.
He's but a delicate man is the earl, and has been, so long as I have known him.
He was with the army in India, and the sun, they say, give him a stroke, and
ever since he have headaches that bad! But in between he seems pretty well, and
nothing displeases him more than ask after his health, or how he slep the
night. But he's a good master, and I hope to end my days with him. I'm not one
as likes new faces and new places! One good place is enough for me, says I--so
long as it is a good one.--Take some of this game pie, sir."
Donal made haste with his
breakfast, and to Simmons's astonishment had ended when he thought him just
well begun.
"How shall I find
master Davie?" he asked.
"He is wild to see you,
sir. When I've cleared away, just have the goodness to ring this bell out of
that window, and he'll be with you as fast as he can lay his feet to the
ground."
Donal rang the handbell. A
shout mingled with the clang of it. Then came the running of swift feet over
the stones of the court, and Davie burst into the room.
"Oh, sir," he
cried, "I am glad! It is good of you to come!"
"Well, you see,
Davie," returned Donal, "everybody has got to do something to carry
the world on a bit: my work is to help make a man of you. Only I can't do much
except you help me; and if I find I am not making a good job of you, I shan't
stop many hours after the discovery. If you want to keep me, you must mind what
I say, and so help me to make a man of you."
"It will be long before
I am a man!" said Davie rather disconsolately.
"It depends on
yourself. The boy that is longest in becoming a man, is the boy that thinks
himself a man before he is a bit like one."
"Come then, let us do
something!" said Davie.
"Come away,"
rejoined Donal. "What shall we do first?"
"I don't know: you must
tell me, sir."
"What would you like
best to do--I mean if you might do what you pleased?"
Davie thought a little, then
said:
"I should like to write
a book."
"What kind of a
book?"
"A beautiful
story."
"Isn't it just as well
to read such a book? Why should you want to write one?"
"Because then I should
have it go just as I wanted it! I am always--almost always--disappointed
with the thing that comes next. But if I wrote it myself, then I shouldn't get
tired of it; it would be what pleased me, and not what pleased somebody
else."
"Well," said
Donal, after thinking for a moment, "suppose you begin to write a
book!"
"Oh, that will be
fun!--much better than learning verbs and nouns!"
"But the verbs and
nouns are just the things that go to make a story--with not a few adjectives
and adverbs, and a host of conjunctions; and, if it be a very moving story, a
good many interjections! These all you have got to put together with good
choice, or the story will not be one you would care to read.--Perhaps you had
better not begin till I see whether you know enough about those verbs and nouns
to do the thing decently. Show me your school-books."
"There they all are--on
that shelf! I haven't opened one of them since Percy came home. He laughed at
them all, and so Arkie--that's lady Arctura, told him he might teach me
himself. And he wouldn't; and she wouldn't--with him to laugh at her. And I've
had such a jolly time ever since--reading books out of the library! Have you
seen the library, Mr. Grant?"
"No; I've seen nothing
yet. Suppose we begin with a holiday, and you begin by teaching me!"
"Teaching you, sir! I'm
not able to teach you!"
"Why, didn't you as
much as offer to teach me the library? Can't you teach me this great old
castle? And aren't you going to teach yourself to me?"
"That would be a
funny lesson, sir!"
"The least funny, the
most serious lesson you could teach me! You are a book God has begun, and he
has sent me to help him go on with it; so I must learn what he has written
already before I try to do anything."
"But you know what a
boy is, sir! Why should you want to learn me?"
"You might as well say
that, because I have read one or two books, I must know every book. To
understand one boy helps to understand another, but every boy is a new boy,
different from every other boy, and every one has to be understood."
"Yes--for sometimes
Arkie won't hear me out, and I feel so cross with her I should like to give her
a good box on the ear. What king was it, sir, that made the law that no lady,
however disagreeable, was to have her ears boxed? Do you think it a good law,
sir?"
"It is good for you and
me anyhow."
"And when Percy says,
'Oh, go away! don't bother,' I feel as if I could hit him hard! Yet, if I
happen to hurt him, I am so sorry! and why then should I want to hurt
him?"
"There's something in
this little fellow!" said Donal to himself. "Ah, why indeed?" he
answered. "You see you don't understand yourself yet!"
"No indeed!"
"Then how could you
think I should understand you all at once?--and a boy must be understood, else
what's to become of him! Fancy a poor boy living all day, and sleeping all
night, and nobody understanding him!"
"That would be
dreadful! But you will understand me?"
"Only a little: I'm not
wise enough to understand any boy."
"Then--but isn't that
what you said you came for?--I thought--"
"Yes," answered
Donal, "that is what I came for; but if I fancied I quite
understood any boy, that would be a sure sign I did not understand him.--There
is one who understands every boy as well as if there were no other boy in the
whole world."
"Then why doesn't every
boy go to him when he can't get fair play?"
"Ah, why? That is just
what I want you to do. He can do better than give you fair play even: he can
make you give other people fair play, and delight in it."
"Tell me where he
is."
"That is what I have to
teach you: mere telling is not much use. Telling is what makes people think
they know when they do not, and makes them foolish."
"What is his
name?"
"I will not tell you
that just yet; for then you would think you knew him, when you knew next to
nothing about him. Look here; look at this book," he went on, pulling a
copy of Boethius from his pocket; "look at the name on the back of it: it
is the name of the man that wrote the book."
Davie spelled it out.
"Now you know all about
the book, don't you?"
"No, sir; I don't know
anything about it."
"Well then, my father's
name is Robert Grant: you know now what a good man he is!"
"No, I don't. I should
like to see him though!"
"You would love him if
you did! But you see now that knowing the name of a person does not make you
know the person."
"But you said, sir,
that if you told me the name of that person, I should fancy I knew all about
him: I don't fancy I know all about your father now you have told me his
name!"
"You have me
there!" answered Donal. "I did not say quite what I ought to have
said. I should have said that when we know a little about a person, and are
used to hearing his name, then we are ready to think we know all about him. I
heard a man the other day--a man who had never spoken to your father--talk as
if he knew all about him."
"I think I
understand," said Davie.
To confess ignorance is to
lose respect with the ignorant who would appear to know. But there is a worse
thing than to lose the respect even of the wise--to deserve to lose it; and
that he does who would gain a respect that does not belong to him. But a
confession of ignorance is a ground of respect with a well-bred child, and even
with many ordinary boys will raise a man's influence: they recognize his
loyalty to the truth. Act-truth is infinitely more than fact-truth; the love of
the truth infinitely beyond the knowledge of it.
They went out together, and
when they had gone the round of the place outside, Davie would have taken him
over the house; but Donal said they would leave something for another time, and
made him lie down for ten minutes. This the boy thought a great hardship, but
Donal saw that he needed to be taught to rest. Ten times in those ten minutes
he was on the point of jumping up, but Donal found a word sufficient to
restrain him. When the ten minutes were over, he set him an addition sum. The
boy protested he knew all the rules of arithmetic.
"But," said Donal,
"I must know that you know them; that is my business. Do this one,
however easy it is."
The boy obeyed, and brought
him the sum--incorrect.
"Now, Davie," said
Donal, "you said you knew all about addition, but you have not done this
sum correctly."
"I have only made a
blunder, sir."
"But a rule is no rule
if it is not carried out. Everything goes on the supposition of its being
itself, and not something else. People that talk about good things without
doing them are left out. You are not master of addition until your addition is
to be depended upon."
The boy found it hard to fix
his attention: to fix it on something he did not yet understand, would be too
hard! he must learn to do so in the pursuit of accuracy where he already
understood! then he would not have to fight two difficulties at once--that of
understanding, and that of fixing his attention. But for a long time he never
kept him more than a quarter of an hour at work on the same thing.
When he had done the sum
correctly, and a second without need of correction, he told him to lay his
slate aside, and he would tell him a fairy-story. Therein he succeeded
tolerably--in the opinion of Davie, wonderfully: what a tutor was this, who let
fairies into the school-room!
The tale was of no very
original construction--the youngest brother gaining in the path of
righteousness what the elder brothers lose through masterful selfishness. A man
must do a thing because it is right, even if he die for it; but truth were poor
indeed if it did not bring at last all things subject to it! As beauty and
truth are one, so are truth and strength one. Must God be ever on the cross,
that we poor worshippers may pay him our highest honour? Is it not
enough to know that if the devil were the greater, yet would not God do him
homage, but would hang for ever on his cross? Truth is joy and victory. The
true hero is adjudged to bliss, nor can in the nature of things, that is, of
God, escape it. He who holds by life and resists death, must be victorious; his
very life is a slaying of death. A man may die for his opinion, and may only be
living to himself: a man who dies for the truth, dies to himself and to all
that is not true.
"What a beautiful
story!" cried Davie when it ceased. "Where did you get it, Mr.
Grant?"
"Where all stories come
from."
"Where is that?"
"The Think-book."
"What a funny name! I
never heard it! Will it be in the library?"
"No; it is in no
library. It is the book God is always writing at one end, and blotting out at
the other. It is made of thoughts, not words. It is the Think-book."
"Now I understand! You
got the story out of your own head!"
"Yes, perhaps. But how
did it get in to my head?"
"I can't tell that.
Nobody can tell that!"
"Nobody can that never
goes up above his own head--that never shuts the Think-book, and stands upon
it. When one does, then the Think-book swells to a great mountain and lifts him
up above all the world: then he sees where the stories come from, and how they
get into his head.--Are you to have a ride to-day?"
"I ride or not just as
I like."
"Well, we will now do
just as we both like, I hope, and it will be two likes instead of one--that is,
if we are true friends."
"We shall he true
friends--that we shall!"
"How can that
be--between a little boy like you, and a grown man like me?"
"By me being
good."
"By both of us being
good--no other way. If one of us only was good, we could never be true friends.
I must be good as well as you, else we shall never understand each other!"
"How kind you are, Mr.
Grant! You treat me just like another one!" said Davie.
"But we must not forget
that I am the big one and you the little one, and that we can't be the other
one to each other except the little one does what the big one tells him! That's
the way to fit into each other."
"Oh, of course!"
answered Davie, as if there could not be two minds about that.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XV. HORSE AND MAN.">
CHAPTER XV.
HORSE AND MAN.
DURING the first day and the
next, Donal did not even come in sight of any other of the family; but on the
third day, after their short early school--for he seldom let Davie work till he
was tired, and never after--going with him through the stable-yard, they came
upon lord Forgue as he mounted his horse--a nervous, fiery, thin-skinned
thoroughbred. The moment his master was on him, he began to back and rear.
Forgue gave him a cut with his whip. He went wild, plunging and dancing and
kicking. The young lord was a horseman in the sense of having a good seat; but
he knew little about horses; they were to him creatures to be compelled, not
friends with whom to hold sweet concert. He had not learned that to rule ill is
worse than to obey ill. Kings may be worse than it is in the power of any
subject to be. As he was raising his arm for a second useless, cruel, and
dangerous blow, Donal darted to the horse's head.
"You mustn't do that,
my lord!" he said. "You'll drive him mad."
But the worst part of
Forgue's nature was uppermost, in his rage all the vices of his family rushed
to the top. He looked down on Donal with a fury checked only by contempt.
"Keep off," he
said, "or it will be the worse for you. What do you know about
horses?"
"Enough to know that
you are not fair to him. I will not let you strike the poor animal. Just
look at this water-chain!"
"Hold your tongue, and
stand away, or, by--"
"Ye winna fricht me,
sir," said Donal, whose English would, for years, upon any excitement,
turn cowardly and run away, leaving his mother-tongue to bear the brunt,
"--I'm no timorsome."
Forgue brought down his whip
with a great stinging blow upon Donal's shoulder and back. The fierce blood of
the highland Celt rushed to his brain, and had not the man in him held by God
and trampled on the devil, there might then have been miserable work. But
though he clenched his teeth, he fettered his hands, and ruled his tongue, and
the Master of men was master still.
"My lord," he
said, after one instant's thunderous silence, "there's that i' me wad
think as little o' throttlin' ye as ye du o' ill-usin' yer puir beast. But I'm
no gaein' to drop his quarrel, an' tak up my ain: that wad be cooardly."
Here he patted the creature's neck, and recovering his composure and his
English, went on. "I tell you, my lord, the curb-chain is too tight! The
animal is suffering as you can have no conception of, or you would pity
him."
"Let him go," cried
Forgue, "or I will make you."
He raised his whip again,
the more enraged that the groom stood looking on with his mouth open.
"I tell your
lordship," said Donal, "it is my turn to strike; and if you hit the
animal again before that chain is slackened, I will pitch you out of the
saddle."
For answer Forgue struck the
horse over the head. The same moment he was on the ground; Donal had taken him
by the leg and thrown him off. He was not horseman enough to keep his hold of
the reins, and Donal led the horse a little way off, and left him to get up in
safety. The poor animal was pouring with sweat, shivering and trembling, yet
throwing his head back every moment. Donal could scarcely undo the chain; it
was twisted--his lordship had fastened it himself--and sharp edges pressed his
jaw at the least touch of the rein. He had not yet rehooked it, when Forgue was
upon him with a second blow of his whip. The horse was scared afresh at the
sound, and it was all he could do to hold him, but he succeeded at length in
calming him. When he looked about him, Forgue was gone. He led the horse into
the stable, put him in his stall, and proceeded to unsaddle him. Then first he
was re-aware of the presence of Davie. The boy was stamping--with fierce eyes
and white face--choking with silent rage.
"Davie, my child!"
said Donal, and Davie recovered his power of speech.
"I'll go and tell my
father!" he said, and made for the stable door.
"Which of us are you
going to tell upon?" asked Donal with a smile.
"Percy, of course!"
he replied, almost with a scream. "You are a good man, Mr. Grant, and he
is a bad fellow. My father will give it him well. He doesn't often--but oh,
can't he just! To dare to strike you! I'll go to him at once, whether he's in
bed or not!"
"No, you won't, my boy!
Listen to me. Some people think it's a disgrace to be struck: I think it a
disgrace to strike. I have a right over your brother by that blow, and I mean
to keep it--for his good. You didn't think I was afraid of him?"
"No, no; anybody could
see you weren't a bit afraid of him. I would have struck him again if he
had killed me for it!"
"I don't doubt you
would. But when you understand, you will not be so ready to strike. I could
have killed your brother more easily than held his horse. You don't know how
strong I am, or what a blow of my fist would be to a delicate fellow like that.
I hope his fall has not hurt him."
"I hope it has--a
little, I mean, only a little," said the boy, looking in the face of his
tutor. "But tell me why you did not strike him. It would be good for him
to be well beaten."
"It will, I hope, be
better for him to be well forgiven: he will be ashamed of himself the sooner, I
think. But why I did not strike him was, that I am not my own master."
"But my father, I am
sure, would not have been angry with you. He would have said you had a right to
do it."
"Perhaps; but the earl
is not the master I mean."
"Who is, then?"
"Jesus Christ."
"O--oh!"
"He says I must not
return evil for evil, a blow for a blow. I don't mind what people say about it:
he would not have me disgrace myself! He never even threatened those
that struck him."
"But he wasn't a man,
you know!"
"Not a man! What was he
then?"
"He was God, you
know."
"And isn't God a
man--and ever so much more than a man?"
The boy made no answer, and
Donal went on.
"Do you think God would
have his child do anything disgraceful? Why, Davie, you don't know your own
Father! What God wants of us is to be down-right honest, and do what he tells
us without fear."
Davie was silent. His
conscience reproved him, as the conscience of a true-hearted boy will reprove
him at the very mention of the name of God, until he sets himself consciously
to do his will. Donal said no more, and they went for their walk.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XVI. COLLOQUIES.">
CHAPTER XVI.
COLLOQUIES.
IN the evening Donal went to
see Andrew Comin.
"Weel, hoo are ye
gettin' on wi' the yerl?" asked the cobbler.
"You set me a good
example of saying nothing about him," answered Donal; "and I will
follow it--at least till I know more: I have scarce seen him yet."
"That's right!"
returned the cobbler with satisfaction. "I'm thinkin' ye'll be ane o' the
feow 'at can rule their ane hoose--that is, haud their ain tongues till the
hoor for speech be come. Stick ye to that, my dear sir, an' mair i'll be weel
nor in general is weel."
"I'm come to ye for a
bit o' help though; I want licht upon a queston 'at 's lang triblet me.--What
think ye?--hoo far does the comman' laid upo' 's, as to warfare 'atween man an'
man, reach? Are we never ta raise the han' to human bein', think ye?"
"Weel, I hae thoucht a
heap aboot it, an' I daurna say 'at I'm jist absolute clear upo' the maitter.
But there may be pairt clear whaur a' 's no clear; an' by what we un'erstan' we
come the nearer to what we dinna un'erstan'. There's ae thing unco plain--'at
we're on no accoont to return evil for evil: onybody 'at ca's himsel' a
Christian maun un'erstan' that muckle. We're to gie no place to revenge, inside
or oot. Therefore we're no to gie blow for blow. Gien a man hit ye, ye're to
take it i' God's name. But whether things mayna come to a p'int whaurat ye're
bu'n', still i' God's name, to defen' the life God has gien ye, I canna say--I
haena the licht to justifee me in denyin' 't. There maun surely, I hae said to
mysel', be a time whan a man may hae to du what God dis sae aften--mak use o'
the strong han'! But it's clear he maunna do 't in rage--that's ower near
hate--an' hate 's the deevil's ain. A man may, gien he live varra near the
Lord, be whiles angry ohn sinned: but the wrath o' man worketh not the
richteousness o' God; an' the wrath that rises i' the mids o' encoonter, is no
like to be o' the natur o' divine wrath. To win at it, gien 't be possible,
lat's consider the Lord--hoo he did. There's no word o' him ever liftin' han'
to protec' himsel'. The only thing like it was for ithers. To gar them lat his
disciples alane--maybe till they war like eneuch til himsel' no to rin, he pat
oot mair nor his han' upo' them 'at cam to tak him: he strak them sair wi' the
pooer itsel' 'at muvs a' airms. But no varra sair naither--he but knockit them
doon!--jist to lat them ken they war to du as he bade them, an' lat his fowk
be;--an' maybe to lat them ken 'at gien he loot them tak him, it was no 'at he
couldna hin'er them gien he likit. I canna help thinkin' we may stan' up for
ither fowk. An' I'm no sayin' 'at we arena to defen' oorsels frae a set attack
wi' design.--But there's something o' mair importance yet nor kennin' the richt
o' ony queston."
"What can that be? What
can be o' mair importance nor doin' richt i' the sicht o' God?" said
Donal.
"Bein' richt wi'
the varra thoucht o' God, sae 'at we canna mistak, but maun ken jist what he
wad hae dune. That's the big Richt, the mother o' a' the lave o' the richts.
That's to be as the maister was. Onygait, whatever we du, it maun be sic as to
be dune, an' it maun be dune i' the name o' God; whan we du naething we
maun du that naething i' the name o' God. A body may weel say, 'O Lord, thoo
hasna latten me see what I oucht to du, sae I'll du naething!' Gien a man ought
to defen' himsel', but disna du 't, 'cause he thinks God wadna hae him du 't,
wull God lea' him oondefent for that? Or gien a body stan's up i' the name o'
God, an' fronts an airmy o' enemies, div ye think God 'ill forsake him 'cause
he 's made a mistak? Whatever's dune wantin' faith maun be sin--it canna help
it; whatever's dune in faith canna be sin, though it may be a mistak. Only
latna a man tak presumption for faith! that's a fearsome mistak, for it's jist
the opposite."
"I thank ye," said
Donal. "I'll consider wi' my best endeevour what ye hae said."
"But o' a'
things," resumed the cobbler, "luik 'at ye lo'e fairplay. Fairplay 's
a won'erfu' word--a gran' thing constantly lost sicht o'. Man, I hae been
tryin' to win at the duin' o' the richt this mony a year, but I daurna yet lat
mysel' ac' upo' the spur o' the moment whaur my ain enterest 's concernt: my
ain side micht yet blin' me to the ither man's side o' the business. Onybody
can un'erstan' his ain richt, but it taks trible an' thoucht to un'erstan' what
anither coonts his richt. Twa richts canna weel clash. It's a wrang an' a
richt, or pairt wrang an' a pairt richt 'at clashes."
"Gien a'body did that,
I doobt there wad be feow fortins made!" said Donal.
"Aboot that I canna
say, no kennin'; I daurna discover a law whaur I haena knowledge! But this same
fairplay lies, alang wi' love, at the varra rute and f'undation o' the
universe. The theologians had a glimmer o' the fac' whan they made sae muckle
o' justice, only their justice is sic a meeserable sma' bit plaister eemage o'
justice, 'at it maist gars an honest body lauch. They seem to me like shepherds
'at rive doon the door-posts, an' syne block up the door wi' them."
Donal told him of the
quarrel he had had with lord Forgue, and asked him whether he thought he had
done right.
"Weel," answered
the cobbler, "I'm as far frae blamin' you as I am frae justifeein' the
yoong lord."
"He seems to me a fine
kin' o' a lad," said Donal, "though some owerbeirin'."
"The likes o' him are
mair to be excused for that nor ither fowk, for they hae great disadvantages i'
the position an' the upbringin'. It's no easy for him 'at's broucht up a lord
to believe he's jist ane wi' the lave."
Donal went for a stroll
through the town, and met the minister, but he took no notice of him. He was
greatly annoyed at the march which he said the fellow had stolen upon him, and
regarded him as one who had taken an unfair advantage of him. But he had little
influence at the castle. The earl never by any chance went to church. His
niece, lady Arctura, did, however, and held the minister for an authority at
things spiritual--one of whom living water was to be had without money and
without price. But what she counted spiritual things were very common earthly
stuff, and for the water, it was but stagnant water from the ditches of a sham
theology. Only what was a poor girl to do who did not know how to feed herself,
but apply to one who pretended to be able to feed others? How was she to know
that he could not even feed himself? Out of many a difficulty she thought he
helped her--only the difficulty would presently clasp her again, and she must
deal with it as she best could, until a new one made her forget it, and go to
the minister, or rather to his daughter, again. She was one of those who feel
the need of some help to live--some upholding that is not of themselves, but
who, through the stupidity of teachers unconsciously false,--men so unfit that
they do not know they are unfit, direct their efforts, first towards having
correct notions, then to work up the feelings that belong to those notions. She
was an honest girl so far as she had been taught--perhaps not so far as she
might have been without having been taught. How was she to think aright with
scarce a glimmer of God's truth? How was she to please God, as she called it,
who thought of him in a way repulsive to every loving soul? How was she to be
accepted of God, who did not accept her own neighbour, but looked down, without
knowing it, upon so many of her fellow-creatures? How should such a one either
enjoy or recommend her religion? It would have been the worse for her if she
had enjoyed it--the worse for others if she had recommended it! Religion is
simply the way home to the Father. There was little of the path in her religion
except the difficulty of it. The true way is difficult enough because of our
unchildlikeness--uphill, steep, and difficult, but there is fresh life on every
surmounted height, a purer air gained, ever more life for more climbing. But
the path that is not the true one is not therefore easy. Up hill is hard
walking, but through a bog is worse. Those who seek God with their faces not
even turned towards him, who, instead of beholding the Father in the Son, take
the stupidest opinions concerning him and his ways from other men--what should
they do but go wandering on dark mountains, spending their strength in avoiding
precipices and getting out of bogs, mourning and sighing over their sins
instead of leaving them behind and fleeing to the Father, whom to know is
eternal life. Did they but set themselves to find out what Christ knew and
meant and commanded, and then to do it, they would soon forget their
false teachers. But alas! they go on bowing before long-faced, big-worded
authority--the more fatally when it is embodied in a good man who, himself a
victim to faith in men, sees the Son of God only through the theories of others,
and not with the sight of his own spiritual eyes.
Donal had not yet seen the
lady. He neither ate, sat, nor held intercourse with the family. Away from
Davie, he spent his time in his tower chamber, or out of doors. All the grounds
were open to him except a walled garden on the south-eastern slope, looking
towards the sea, which the earl kept for himself, though he rarely walked in
it. On the side of the hill away from the town, was a large park reaching down
to the river, and stretching a long way up its bank--with fine trees, and
glorious outlooks to the sea in one direction, and to the mountains in the
other. Here Donal would often wander, now with a book, now with Davie. The
boy's presence was rarely an interruption to his thoughts when he wanted to think.
Sometimes he would thrown himself on the grass and read aloud; then Davie would
throw himself beside him, and let the words he could not understand flow over
him in a spiritual cataract. On the river was a boat, and though at first he
was awkward enough in the use of the oars, he was soon able to enjoy thoroughly
a row up or down the stream, especially in the twilight.
He was alone with his book
under a beech-tree on a steep slope to the river, the day after his affair with
lord Forgue: reading aloud, he did not hear the approach of his lordship.
"Mr. Grant," he
said, "if you will say you are sorry you threw me from my horse, I will
say I am sorry I struck you."
"I am very sorry,"
said Donal, rising, "that it was necessary to throw you from your horse;
and perhaps your lordship may remember that you struck me before I did
so."
"That has nothing to do
with it. I propose an accommodation, or compromise, or what you choose to call
it: if you will do the one, I will do the other."
"What I think I ought
to do, my lord, I do without bargaining. I am not sorry I threw you from your
horse, and to say so would be to lie."
"Of course everybody
thinks himself in the right!" said his lordship with a small sneer.
"It does not follow
that no one is ever in the right!" returned Donal. "Does your
lordship think you were in the right--either towards me or the poor animal who
could not obey you because he was in torture?"
"I don't say I
do."
"Then everybody does
not think himself in the right! I take your lordship's admission as an
apology."
"By no means: when I
make an apology, I will do it; I will not sneak out of it."
He was evidently at strife
with himself: he knew he was wrong, but could not yet bring himself to say so.
It is one of the poorest of human weaknesses that a man should be ashamed of saying
he has done wrong, instead of so ashamed of having done wrong that he cannot
rest till he has said so; for the shame cleaves fast until the confession
removes it.
Forgue walked away a step or
two, and stood with his back to Donal, poking the point of his stick into the
grass. All at once he turned and said:
"I will apologize if
you will tell me one thing."
"I will tell you
whether you apologize or not," said Donal. "I have never asked you to
apologize."
"Tell me then why you
did not return either of my blows yesterday."
"I should like to know
why you ask--but I will answer you: simply because to do so would have been to
disobey my master."
"That's a sort of thing
I don't understand. But I only wanted to know it was not cowardice; I could not
make an apology to a coward."
"If I were a coward,
you would owe me an apology all the same, and he is a poor creature who will
not pay his debts. But I hope it is not necessary I should either thrash or
insult your lordship to convince you I fear you no more than that blackbird
there!"
Forgue gave a little laugh.
A moment's pause followed. Then he held out his hand, but in a half-hesitating,
almost sheepish way:
"Well, well! shake
hands," he said.
"No, my lord,"
returned Donal. "I bear your lordship not the slightest ill-will, but I
will shake hands with no one in a half-hearted way, and no other way is
possible while you are uncertain whether I am a coward or not."
So saying, he threw himself
again upon the grass, and lord Forgue walked away, offended afresh.
The next morning he came
into the school-room where Donal sat at lessons with Davie. He had a book in
his hand.
"Mr. Grant," he
said, "will you help me with this passage in Xenophon?"
"With all my
heart," answered Donal, and in a few moments had him out of his
difficulty.
But instead of going, his
lordship sat down a little way off, and went on with his reading--sat until
master and pupil went out, and left him sitting there. The next morning he came
with a fresh request, and Donal found occasion to approve warmly of a
translation he proposed. From that time he came almost every morning. He was no
great scholar, but with the prospect of an English university before him,
thought it better to read a little.
The housekeeper at the
castle was a good woman, and very kind to Donal, feeling perhaps that he fell
to her care the more that he was by birth of her own class; for it was said in
the castle, "the tutor makes no pretence to being a gentleman."
Whether he was the more or the less of one on that account, I leave my reader
to judge according to his capability. Sometimes when his dinner was served,
mistress Brookes would herself appear, to ensure proper attention to him, and
would sit down and talk to him while he ate, ready to rise and serve him if
necessary. Their early days had had something in common, though she came from
the southern highlands of green hills and more sheep. She gave him some rather
needful information about the family; and he soon perceived that there would
have been less peace in the house but for her good temper and good sense.
Lady Arctura was the
daughter of the last lord Morven, and left sole heir to the property; Forgue
and his brother Davie were the sons of the present earl. The present lord was
the brother of the last, and had lived with him for some years before he
succeeded. He was a man of peculiar and studious habits; nobody ever seemed to
take to him; and since his wife's death, his health had been precarious. Though
a strange man, he was a just if not generous master. His brother had left him
guardian to lady Arctura, and he had lived in the castle as before. His wife
was a very lovely, but delicate woman, and latterly all but confined to her
room. Since her death a great change had passed upon her husband. Certainly his
behaviour was sometimes hard to understand.
"He never gangs to the
kirk--no ance in a twalmonth!" said Mrs. Brookes. "Fowk sud be
dacent, an' wha ever h'ard o' dacent fowk 'at didna gang to the kirk ance o'
the Sabbath! I dinna haud wi' gaein' twise mysel': ye hae na time to read yer
ain chapters gien ye do that. But the man's a weel behavet man, sae far as ye
see, naither sayin' nor doin' the thing he shouldna: what he may think, wha's
to say! the mair ten'er conscience coonts itsel' the waur sinner; an' I'm no
gaein' to think what I canna ken! There's some 'at says he led a gey lowse kin'
o' a life afore he cam to bide wi' the auld yerl; he was wi' the airmy i'
furreign pairts, they say; but aboot that I ken naething. The auld yerl was
something o' a sanct himsel', rist the banes o' 'im! We're no the jeedges o'
the leevin' ony mair nor o' the deid! But I maun awa' to luik efter things; a
minute's an hoor lost wi' thae fule lasses. Ye're a freen' o' An'rew Comin's,
they tell me, sir: I dinna ken what to do wi' 's lass, she's that upsettin'! Ye
wad think she was ane o' the faimily whiles; an' ither whiles she 's that silly!"
"I'm sorry to hear
it!" said Donal. "Her grandfather and grandmother are the best of
good people."
"I daursay! But there's
jist what I hae seen: them 'at 's broucht up their ain weel eneuch, their son's
bairn they'll jist lat gang. Aither they're tired o' the thing, or they think
they're safe. They hae lippent til yoong Eppy a heap ower muckle. But I'm
naither a prophet nor the son o' a prophet, as the minister said last
Sunday--an' said well, honest man! for it's the plain trowth: he's no ane o'
the major nor yet the minor anes! But haud him oot o' the pu'pit an' he dis no
that ill. His dochter 's no an ill lass aither, an' a great freen' o' my
leddy's. But I'm clean ashamed o' mysel' to gang on this gait. Hae ye dune wi'
yer denner, Mr. Grant?--Weel, I'll jist sen' to clear awa', an' lat ye til yer
lessons."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XVII. LADY ARCTURA.">
CHAPTER XVII.
LADY ARCTURA.
IT was now almost three
weeks since Donal had become an inmate of the castle, and he had scarcely set
his eyes on the lady of the house. Once he had seen her back, and more than
once had caught a glimpse of her profile, but he had never really seen her
face, and they had never spoken to each other.
One afternoon he was
sauntering along under the overhanging boughs of an avenue of beeches, formerly
the approach to a house in which the family had once lived, but which had now
another entrance. He had in his hand a copy of the Apocrypha, which he had
never seen till he found this in the library. In his usual fashion he had begun
to read it through, and was now in the book called the Wisdom of Solomon, at
the 17th chapter, narrating the discomfiture of certain magicians. Taken with
the beauty of the passage, he sat down on an old stone-roller, and read aloud.
Parts of the passage were these--they will enrich my page:--
"For they, that
promised to drive away terrors and troubles from a sick soul, were sick
themselves of fear, worthy to be laughed at.
"...For wickedness,
condemned by her own witness, is very timorous, and being pressed with
conscience, always forecasteth grievous things.
"...But they sleeping
the same sleep that night, which was indeed intolerable, and which came upon
them out of the bottoms of inevitable hell,
"Were partly vexed with
monstrous apparitions, and partly fainted, their heart failing them: for a
sudden fear, and not looked for, came upon them.
"So then whosoever
there fell down was straitly kept, shut up in a prison without iron bars.
"For whether he were
husbandman, or shepherd, or a labourer in the field, he was overtaken, and
endured that necessity, which could not be avoided: for they were all bound
with one chain of darkness.
"Whether it were a
whistling wind, or a melodious noise of birds among the spreading branches, or
a pleasing fall of water running violently,
"Or a terrible sound of
stones cast down, or a running that could not be seen of skipping beasts, or a
roaring voice of most savage wild beasts, or a rebounding echo from the hollow
mountains; these things made them to swoon for fear.
"For the whole world
shined with clear light, and none were hindered in their labour:
"Over them only was
spread an heavy night, an image of that darkness which should afterward receive
them: but yet were they unto themselves more grievous than the darkness."
He had read so much, and
stopped to think a little; for through the incongruity of it, which he did not
doubt arose from poverty of imagination in the translator, rendering him unable
to see what the poet meant, ran yet an indubitable vein of awful truth, whether
fully intended by the writer or not mattered little to such a reader as
Donal--when, lifting his eyes, he saw lady Arctura standing before him with a
strange listening look. A spell seemed upon her; her face was white, her lips white
and a little parted.
Attracted, as she was about
to pass him, by the sound of what was none the less like the Bible from the
solemn crooning way in which Donal read it to the congregation of his listening
thoughts, yet was certainly not the Bible, she was presently fascinated by the
vague terror of what she heard, and stood absorbed: without much originative
power, she had an imagination prompt and delicate and strong in response.
Donal had but a glance of
her; his eyes returned again at once to his book, and he sat silent and
motionless, though not seeing a word. For one instant she stood still; then he
heard the soft sound of her dress as, with noiseless foot, she stole back, and
took another way.
I must give my reader a
shadow of her. She was rather tall, slender, and fair. But her hair was dark,
and so crinkly that, when merely parted, it did all the rest itself. Her
forehead was rather low. Her eyes were softly dark, and her features very
regular--her nose perhaps hardly large enough, or her chin. Her mouth was
rather thin-lipped, but would have been sweet except for a seemingly habitual
expression of pain. A pair of dark brows overhung her sweet eyes, and gave a
look of doubtful temper, yet restored something of the strength lacking a
little in nose and chin. It was an interesting--not a quite harmonious face,
and in happiness might, Donal thought, be beautiful even. Her figure was
eminently graceful--as Donal saw when he raised his eyes at the sound of her
retreat. He thought she needed not have run away as from something dangerous:
why did she not pass him like any other servant of the house? But what seemed
to him like contempt did not hurt him. He was too full of realities to be much
affected by opinion however shown. Besides, he had had his sorrow and had
learned his lesson. He was a poet--but one of the few without any weak longing
after listening ears. The poet whose poetry needs an audience, can be
but little of a poet; neither can the poetry that is of no good to the man
himself, be of much good to anybody else. There are the song-poets and the
life-poets, or rather the God-poems. Sympathy is lovely and dear--chiefly when
it comes unsought; but the fame after which so many would-be, yea, so many real
poets sigh, is poorest froth. Donal could sing his songs like the birds,
content with the blue heaven or the sheep for an audience--or any passing angel
that cared to listen. On the hill-sides he would sing them aloud, but it was of
the merest natural necessity. A look of estrangement on the face of a friend, a
look of suffering on that of any animal, would at once and sorely affect him,
but not a disparaging expression on the face of a comparative stranger, were
she the loveliest woman he had ever seen. He was little troubled about the
world, because little troubled about himself.
Lady Arctura and lord Forgue
lived together like brother and sister, apparently without much in common, and
still less of misunderstanding. There would have been more chance of their
taking a fancy to each other if they had not been brought up together; they
were now little together, and never alone together.
Very few visitors came to
the castle, and then only to call. Lord Morven seldom saw any one, his excuse
being his health.
But lady Arctura was on
terms of intimacy with Sophia Carmichael, the minister's daughter--to whom her
father had communicated his dissatisfaction with the character of Donal, and
poured out his indignation at his conduct. He ought to have left the parish at
once! whereas he had instead secured for himself the best, the only situation
in it, without giving him a chance of warning his lordship! The more injustice
her father spoke against him, the more Miss Carmichael condemned him; for she
was a good daughter, and looked up to her father as the wisest and best man in
the parish. Very naturally therefore she repeated his words to lady Arctura.
She in her turn conveyed them to her uncle. He would not, however, pay much
attention to them. The thing was done, he said. He had himself seen and talked
with Donal, and liked him! The young man had himself told him of the
clergyman's disapprobation! He would request him to avoid all reference to
religious subjects! Therewith he dismissed the matter, and forgot all about it.
Anything requiring an effort of the will, an arrangement of ideas, or thought
as to mode, his lordship would not encounter. Nor was anything to him of such
moment that he must do it at once. Lady Arctura did not again refer to the
matter: her uncle was not one to take liberties with--least of all to press to
action. But she continued painfully doubtful whether she was not neglecting her
duty, trying to persuade herself that she was waiting only till she should have
something definite to say of her own knowledge against him.
And now what was she to
conclude from his reading the Apocrypha? The fact was not to be interpreted to
his advantage: was he not reading what was not the Bible as if it were the
Bible, and when he might have been reading the Bible itself? Besides, the
Apocrypha came so near the Bible when it was not the Bible! it must be at least
rather wicked! At the same time she could not drive from her mind the
impressiveness both of the matter she had heard, and his manner of reading it:
the strong sound of judgment and condemnation in it came home to her--she could
not have told how or why, except generally because of her sins. She was one of
those--not very few I think--who from conjunction of a lovely conscience with
an ill-instructed mind, are doomed for a season to much suffering. She was
largely different from her friend: the religious opinions of the latter--they
were in reality rather metaphysical than religious, and bad either way--though
she clung to them with all the tenacity of a creature with claws, occasioned
her not an atom of mental discomposure: perhaps that was in part why she clung
to them! they were as she would have them! She did not trouble herself about
what God required of her, beyond holding the doctrine the holding of which
guaranteed, as she thought, her future welfare. Conscience toward God had very
little to do with her opinions, and her heart still less. Her head on the
contrary, perhaps rather her memory, was considerably occupied with the matter;
nothing she held had ever been by her regarded on its own merits--that is, on
its individual claim to truth; if it had been handed down by her church, that
was enough; to support it she would search out text after text, and press it
into the service. Any meaning but that which the church of her fathers
gave to a passage must be of the devil, and every man opposed to the truth who
saw in that meaning anything but truth! It was indeed impossible Miss
Carmichael should see any meaning but that, even if she had looked for it; she
was nowise qualified for discovering truth, not being herself true. What she
saw and loved in the doctrines of her church was not the truth, but the
assertion; and whoever questioned, not to say the doctrine, but even the
proving of it by any particular passage, was a dangerous person, and unsound.
All the time her acceptance and defence of any doctrine made not the slightest
difference to her life--as indeed how should it?
Such was the only friend
lady Arctura had. But the conscience and heart of the younger woman were alive
to a degree that boded ill either for the doctrine that stinted their growth,
or the nature unable to cast it off. Miss Carmichael was a woman about
six-and-twenty--and had been a woman, like too many Scotch girls, long before
she was out of her teens--a human flower cut and dried--an unpleasant specimen,
and by no means valuable from its scarcity. Self-sufficient, assured, with
scarce shyness enough for modesty, handsome and hard, she was essentially a
self-glorious Philistine; nor would she be anything better till something was
sent to humble her, though what spiritual engine might be equal to the task was
not for man to imagine. She was clever, but her cleverness made nobody happier;
she had great confidence, but her confidence gave courage to no one, and took
it from many; she had little fancy, and less imagination than any other I ever
knew. The divine wonder was, that she had not yet driven the delicate,
truth-loving Arctura mad. From her childhood she had had the ordering of all her
opinions: whatever Sophy Carmichael said, lady Arctura never thought of
questioning. A lie is indeed a thing in its nature unbelievable, but there is a
false belief always ready to receive the false truth, and there is no end to
the mischief the two can work. The awful punishment of untruth in the inward
parts is that the man is given over to believe a lie.
Lady Arctura was in herself
a gentle creature who shrank from either giving or receiving a rough touch; but
she had an inherited pride, by herself unrecognized as such, which made her
capable of hurting as well as being hurt. Next to the doctrines of the Scottish
church, she respected her own family: it had in truth no other claim to respect
than that its little good and much evil had been done before the eyes of a
large part of many generations--whence she was born to think herself
distinguished, and to imagine a claim for the acknowledgment of distinction
upon all except those of greatly higher rank than her own. This inborn
arrogance was in some degree modified by respect for the writers of certain
books--not one of whom was of any regard in the eyes of the thinkers of the
age. Of any writers of power, beyond those of the Bible, either in this country
or another, she knew nothing. Yet she had a real instinct for what was good in
literature; and of the writers to whom I have referred she not only liked the
worthiest best, but liked best their best things. I need hardly say they were
all religious writers; for the keen conscience and obedient heart of the girl
had made her very early turn herself towards the quarter where the sun ought to
rise, the quarter where all night long gleams the auroral hope; but unhappily
she had not gone direct to the heavenly well in earthly ground--the words of
the Master himself. How could she? From very childhood her mind had been filled
with traditionary utterances concerning the divine character and the divine
plans--the merest inventions of men far more desirous of understanding what
they were not required to understand, than of doing what they were required to
do--whence their crude and false utterances concerning a God of their own
fancy--in whom it was a good man's duty, in the name of any possible God, to
disbelieve; and just because she was true, authority had immense power over
her. The very sweetness of their nature forbids such to doubt the fitness of
others.
She had besides had a
governess of the orthodox type, a large proportion of whose teaching was of the
worst heresy, for it was lies against him who is light, and in whom is no
darkness at all; her doctrines were so many smoked glasses held up between the
mind of her pupil and the glory of the living God; nor had she once directed
her gaze to the very likeness of God, the face of Jesus Christ. Had Arctura set
herself to understand him the knowledge of whom is eternal life, she
would have believed none of these false reports of him, but she had not yet met
with any one to help her to cast aside the doctrines of men, and go face to
face with the Son of Man, the visible God. First lie of all, she had been
taught that she must believe so and so before God would let her come near him
or listen to her. The old cobbler could have taught her differently; but she
would have thought it improper to hold conversation with such a man, even if
she had known him for the best man in Auchars. She was in sore and sad earnest
to believe as she was told she must believe; therefore instead of beginning to
do what Jesus Christ said, she tried hard to imagine herself one of the chosen,
tried hard to believe herself the chief of sinners. There was no one to tell
her that it is only the man who sees something of the glory of God, the height
and depth and breadth and length of his love and unselfishness, not a child
dabbling in stupid doctrines, that can feel like St. Paul. She tried to feel
that she deserved to be burned in hell for ever and ever, and that it was
boundlessly good of God--who made her so that she could not help being a
sinner--to give her the least chance of escaping it. She tried to feel that,
though she could not be saved without something which the God of perfect love
could give her if he pleased, but might not please to give her, yet if she was
not saved it would be all her own fault: and so ever the round of a great miserable
treadmill of contradictions! For a moment she would be able to say this or that
she thought she ought to say; the next the feeling would be gone, and she as
miserable as before. Her friend made no attempt to imbue her with her own calm
indifference, nor could she have succeeded had she attempted it. But though she
had never been troubled herself, and that because she had never been in
earnest, she did not find it the less easy to take upon her the rôle of a
spiritual adviser, and gave no end of counsel for the attainment of assurance.
She told her truly enough that all her trouble came of want of faith; but she
showed her no one fit to believe in.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XVIII. A CLASH.">
CHAPTER XVIII.
A CLASH.
ALL this time, Donal had
never again seen the earl, neither had the latter shown any interest in Davie's
progress. But lady Arctura was full of serious anxiety concerning him. Heavily
prejudiced against the tutor, she dreaded his influence on the mind of her
little cousin.
There was a small recess in
the schoolroom--it had been a bay window, but from an architectural necessity
arising from decay, it had, all except a narrow eastern light, been built
up--and in this recess Donal was one day sitting with a book, while Davie was
busy writing at the table in the middle of the room: it was past school-hours,
but the weather did not invite them out of doors, and Donal had given Davie a
poem to copy. Lady Arctura came into the room--she had never entered it before
since Donal came--and thinking he was alone, began to talk to the boy. She
spoke in so gentle a tone that Donal, busy with his book, did not for some time
distinguish a word she said. He never suspected she was unaware of his
presence. By degrees her voice grew a little louder, and by and by these words
reached him:
"You know, Davie dear,
every sin, whatever it is, deserves God's wrath and curse, both in this life
and that which is to come; and if it had not been that Jesus Christ gave
himself to turn away his anger and satisfy his justice by bearing the
punishment for us, God would send us all to the place of misery for ever and
ever. It is for his sake, not for ours, that he pardons us."
She had not yet ceased when
Donal rose in the wrath of love, and came out into the room.
"Lady Arctura," he
said, "I dare not sit still and hear such false things uttered against the
blessed God!"
Lady Arctura started in dire
dismay, but in virtue of her breed and her pride recovered herself immediately,
drew herself up, and said--
"Mr. Grant, you forget
yourself!"
"I'm very willing to do
that, my lady," answered Donal, "but I must not forget the honour of
my God. If you were a heathen woman I might think whether the hour was come for
enlightening you further, but to hear one who has had the Bible in her hands
from her childhood say such things about the God who made her and sent his Son
to save her, without answering a word for him, would be cowardly!"
"What do you know about
such things? What gives you a right to speak?" said lady Arctura.
Her pride-strength was
already beginning to desert her.
"I had a Christian
mother," answered Donal, "--have her yet, thank God!--who taught me
to love nothing but the truth; I have studied the Bible from my childhood,
often whole days together, when I was out with the cattle or the sheep; and I
have tried to do what the Lords tells me, from nearly the earliest time I can
remember. Therefore I am able to set to my seal that God is true--that he is
light, and there is no darkness of unfairness or selfishness in him. I love God
with my whole heart and soul, my lady."
Arctura tried to say she too
loved him so, but her conscience interfered, and she could not.
"I don't say you
don't love him," Donal went on; "but how you can love him and believe
such things of him, I don't understand. Whoever taught them first was a
terrible liar against God, who is lovelier than all the imaginations of all his
creatures can think."
Lady Arctura swept from the
room--though she was trembling from head to foot. At the door she turned and
called Davie. The boy looked up in his tutor's face, mutely asking if he should
obey her.
"Go," said Donal.
In less than a minute he
came back, his eyes full of tears.
"Arkie says she is
going to tell papa. Is it true, Mr. Grant, that you are a dangerous man? I do
not believe it--though you do carry such a big knife."
Donal laughed.
"It is my grandfather's
skean dhu," he said: "I mend my pens with it, you know! But it is
strange, Davie, that, when a body knows something other people don't, they
should be angry with him! They will even think he wants to make them bad when
he wants to help them to be good!"
"But Arkie is
good, Mr. Grant!"
"I am sure she is. But
she does not know so much about God as I do, or she would never say such things
of him: we must talk about him more after this!"
"No, no, please, Mr.
Grant! We won't say a word about him, for Arkie says except you promise never
to speak of God, she will tell papa, and he will send you away."
"Davie," said
Donal with solemnity, "I would not give such a promise for the castle and
all it contains--no, not to save your life and the life of everybody in it! For
Jesus says, 'Whosoever denieth me before men, him will I deny before my father
in heaven;' and rather than that, I would jump from the top of the castle. Why,
Davie! would a man deny his own father or mother?"
"I don't know,"
answered Davie; "I don't remember my mother."
"I'll tell you
what," said Donal, with sudden inspiration: "I will promise not to
speak about God at any other time, if she will promise to sit by when I do
speak of him--say once a week.--Perhaps we shall do what he tells us all the
better that we don't talk so much about him!"
"Oh, thank you, Mr.
Grant!--I will tell her," cried Davie, jumping up relieved. "Oh,
thank you, Mr. Grant!" he repeated; "I could not bear you to go away.
I should never stop crying if you did. And you won't say any wicked things,
will you? for Arkie reads her Bible every day."
"So do I, Davie."
"Do you?" returned
Davie, "I'll tell her that too, and then she will see she must have been
mistaken."
He hurried to his cousin
with Donal's suggestion.
It threw her into no small
perplexity--first from doubt as to the propriety of the thing proposed, next
because of the awkwardness of it, then from a sudden fear lest his specious
tongue should lead herself into the bypaths of doubt, and to the castle of
Giant Despair--at which, indeed, it was a gracious wonder she had not arrived
ere now. What if she should be persuaded of things which it was impossible to
believe and be saved! She did not see that such belief as she desired to have
was in itself essential damnation. For what can there be in heaven or earth for
a soul that believes in an unjust God? To rejoice in such a belief would be to
be a devil, and to believe what cannot be rejoiced in, is misery. No doubt a
man may not see the true nature of the things he thinks she believes, but that
cannot save him from the loss of not knowing God, whom to know is alone eternal
life; for who can know him that believes evil things of him? That many a good
man does believe such things, only argues his heart not yet one towards him. To
make his belief possible he must dwell on the good things he has learned about
God, and not think about the bad things.
And what would Sophia say?
Lady Arctura would have sped to her friend for counsel before giving any answer
to the audacious proposal, but she was just then from home for a fortnight, and
she must resolve without her! She reflected also that she had not yet anything
sufficiently definite to say to her uncle about the young man's false doctrine;
and, for herself, concluded that, as she was well grounded for argument,
knowing thoroughly the Shorter Catechism with the proofs from scripture of
every doctrine it contained, it was foolish to fear anything from one who went
in the strength of his own ignorant and presumptuous will, regardless of the
opinions of the fathers of the church, and accepting only such things as were
pleasing to his unregenerate nature.
But she hesitated; and after
waiting for a week without receiving any answer to his proposal, Donal said to
Davie,
"We shall have a lesson
in the New Testament to-morrow: you had better mention it to your cousin."
The next morning he asked
him if he had mentioned it. The boy said he had.
"What did she say,
Davie?"
"Nothing--only looked
strange," answered Davie.
When the hour of noon was
past, and lady Arctura did not appear, Donal said,
"Davie, we'll have our
New Testament lesson out of doors: that is the best place for it!"
"It is the best
place!" responded Davie, jumping up. "But you're not taking your
book, Mr. Grant!"
"Never mind; I will
give you a lesson or two without book first."
Just as they were leaving
the room, appeared lady Arctura with Miss Carmichael.
"I understood,"
said the former, with not a little haughtiness, "that you--"
She hesitated, and Miss
Carmichael took up the word.
"We wish to form our
own judgment," she said, "on the nature of the religious instruction
you give your pupil."
"I invited lady Arctura
to be present when I taught him about God," said Donal.
"Then are you not now
going to do so?" said Arctura.
"As your ladyship made
no answer to my proposal, and school hours were over, I concluded you were not
coming."
"And you would not give
the lesson without her ladyship!" said Miss Carmichael. "Very
right!"
"Excuse me,"
returned Donal; "we were going to have it out of doors."
"But you had agreed not
to give him any so-called religious instruction but in the presence of lady
Arctura!"
"By no means. I only
offered to give it in her presence if she chose. There was no question of the
lessons being given."
Miss Carmichael looked at
lady Arctura as much as to say--"Is he speaking the truth?" and if
she replied, it was in the same fashion.
Donal looked at Miss
Carmichael. He did not at all relish her interference. He had never said he
would give his lesson before any who chose to be present! But he did not see
how to meet the intrusion. Neither could he turn back into the schoolroom, sit
down, and begin. He put his hand on Davie's shoulder, and walked slowly towards
the lawn. The ladies followed in silence. He sought to forget their presence,
and be conscious only of his pupil's and his master's. On the lawn he stopped
suddenly.
"Davie," he said,
"where do you fancy the first lesson in the New Testament ought to
begin?"
"At the
beginning," replied Davie.
"When a thing is
perfect, Davie, it is difficult to say what is the beginning of it: show me one
of your marbles."
The boy produced from his
pocket a pure white one--a real marble.
"That is a good one for
the purpose," remarked Donal, "--very smooth and white, with just one
red streak in it! Now where is the beginning of this marble?"
"Nowhere,"
answered Davie.
"If I should say
everywhere?" suggested Donal.
"Ah, yes!" said
the boy.
"But I agree with you
that it begins nowhere."
"It can't do
both!"
"Oh, yes, it can! it
begins nowhere for itself, but everywhere for us. Only all its beginnings are
endings, and all its endings are beginnings. Look here: suppose we begin at
this red streak, it is just there we should end again. That is because it is a
perfect thing.--Well, there was one who said, 'I am Alpha and Omega,'--the
first Greek letter and the last, you know--'the beginning and the end, the
first and the last.' All the New Testament is about him. He is perfect, and I
may begin about him where I best can. Listen then as if you had never heard
anything about him before.--Many years ago--about fifty or sixty grandfathers
off--there appeared in the world a few men who said that a certain man had been
their companion for some time and had just left them; that he was killed by
cruel men, and buried by his friends; but that, as he had told them he would,
he lay in the grave only three days, and left it on the third alive and well;
and that, after forty days, during which they saw him several times, he went up
into the sky, and disappeared.--It wasn't a very likely story, was it?"
"No," replied
Davie.
The ladies exchanged looks
of horror. Neither spoke, but each leaned eagerly forward, in fascinated
expectation of worse to follow.
"But, Davie,"
Donal went on, "however unlikely it must have seemed to those who heard
it, I believe every word of it."
A ripple of contempt passed
over Miss Carmichael's face.
"For," continued
Donal, "the man said he was the son of God, come down from his father to
see his brothers, his father's children, and take home with him to his father
those who would go."
"Excuse me,"
interrupted Miss Carmichael, with a pungent smile: "what he said was, that
if any man believed in him, he should be saved."
"Run along,
Davie," said Donal. "I will tell you more of what he said next
lesson. Don't forget what I've told you now."
"No, sir,"
answered Davie, and ran off.
Donal lifted his hat, and
would have gone towards the river. But Miss Carmichael, stepping forward, said,
"Mr. Grant, I cannot
let you go till you answer me one question: do you believe in the
atonement?"
"I do," answered
Donal.
"Favour me then with
your views upon it," she said.
"Are you troubled in
your mind on the subject?" asked Donal.
"Not in the
least," she replied, with a slight curl of her lip.
"Then I see no occasion
for giving you my views."
"But I insist."
Donald smiled.
"Of what consequence
can my opinions be to you, ma'am? Why should you compel a confession of my
faith?"
"As the friend of this
family, and the daughter of the clergyman of this parish, I have a right to ask
what your opinions are: you have a most important charge committed to you--a
child for whose soul you have to account!"
"For that I am
accountable, but, pardon me, not to you."
"You are accountable to
lord Morven for what you teach his child."
"I am not."
"What! He will turn you
away at a moment's notice if you say so to him."
"I should be quite
ready to go. If I were accountable to him for what I taught, I should of course
teach only what he pleased. But do you suppose I would take any situation on
such a condition?"
"It is nothing to me,
or his lordship either, I presume, what you would or would not do."
"Then I see no reason
why you should detain me.--Lady Arctura, I did not offer to give my lesson in
the presence of any other than yourself: I will not do so again. You will be
welcome, for you have a right to know what I am teaching him. If you bring
another, except it be my lord Morven, I will take David to my own room."
With these words he left
them.
Lady Arctura was sorely
bewildered. She could not but feel that her friend had not shown to the better
advantage, and that the behaviour of Donal had been dignified. But surely he
was very wrong! what he said to Davie sounded so very different from what was
said at church, and by her helper, Miss Carmichael! It was a pity they had
heard so little! He would have gone on if only Sophy had had patience and held
her peace! Perhaps he might have spoken better things if she had not
interfered! It would hardly be fair to condemn him upon so little! He had said
that he believed every word of the New Testament--or something very like it!
"I have heard
enough!" said Miss Carmichael: "I will speak to my father at
once."
The next day Donal received
a note to the following effect:--
"Sir, in consequence of
what I felt bound to report to my father of the conversation we had yesterday,
he desires that you will call upon him at your earliest convenience He is
generally at home from three to five. Yours truly, Sophia Agnes
Carmichael."
To this Donal immediately
replied:--
"Madam, notwithstanding
the introduction I brought him from another clergyman, your father declined my
acquaintance, passing me afterwards as one unknown to him. From this fact, and
from the nature of the report which your behaviour to me yesterday justifies me
in supposing you must have carried to him, I can hardly mistake his object in
wishing to see me. I will attend the call of no man to defend my opinions; your
father's I have heard almost every Sunday since I came to the castle, and have
been from childhood familiar with them. Yours truly, Donal Grant."
Not a word more came to him
from either of them. When they happened to meet, Miss Carmichael took no more
notice of him than her father.
But she impressed it upon
the mind of her friend that, if unable to procure his dismission, she ought at
least to do what she could to protect her cousin from the awful consequences of
such false teaching: if she was present, he would not say such things as he
would in her absence, for it was plain he was under restraint with her! She
might even have some influence with him if she would but take courage to show
him where he was wrong! Or she might find things such that her uncle must see
the necessity of turning him away; as the place belonged to her, he would never
go dead against her! She did not see that that was just the thing to fetter the
action of a delicate-minded girl.
Continually haunted,
however, with the feeling that she ought to do something, lady Arctura felt as
if she dared not absent herself from the lesson, however disagreeable it might
prove: that much she could do! Upon the next occasion, therefore, she
appeared in the schoolroom at the hour appointed, and with a cold bow took the
chair Donal placed for her.
"Now, Davie," said
Donal, "what have you done since our last lesson?"
Davie stared.
"You didn't tell me to
do anything, Mr. Grant!"
"No; but what then did
I give you the lesson for? Where is the good of such a lesson if it makes no
difference to you! What was it I told you?"
Davie, who had never thought
about it since, the lesson having been broken off before Donal could bring it
to its natural fruit, considered, and said,
"That Jesus Christ rose
from the dead."
"Well--where is the
good of knowing that?"
Davie was silent; he knew no
good of knowing it, neither could imagine any. The Catechism, of which he had
learned about half, suggested nothing.
"Come, Davie, I will
help you: is Jesus dead, or is he alive?"
Davie considered.
"Alive," he
answered.
"What does he do?"
Davie did not know.
"What did he die
for?"
Here Davie had an answer--a
cut and dried one:
"To take away our
sins," he said.
"Then what does he live
for?"
Davie was once more silent.
"Do you think if a man
died for a thing, he would be likely to forget it the minute he rose
again?"
"No, sir."
"Do you not think he
would just go on doing the same thing as before?"
"I do, sir."
"Then, as he died to
take away our sins, he lives to take them away!"
"Yes, sir."
"What are sins,
Davie?"
"Bad things, sir."
"Yes; the bad things we
think, and the bad things we feel, and the bad things we do. Have you any sins,
Davie?"
"Yes; I am very
wicked."
"Oh! are you? How do
you know it?"
"Arkie told me."
"What is being
wicked?"
"Doing bad things."
"What bad things do you
do?"
"I don't know,
sir."
"Then you don't know
that you are wicked; you only know that Arkie told you so!"
Lady Arctura drew herself
up; but Donal was too intent to perceive the offence he had given.
"I will tell you,"
Donal went on, "something you did wicked to-day." Davie grew rosy
red. "When we find out one wicked thing we do, it is a beginning to
finding out all the wicked things we do. Some people would rather not find them
out, but have them hidden from themselves and from God too. But let us find
them out, everyone of them, that we may ask Jesus to take them away, and help
Jesus to take them away, by fighting them with all our strength.--This morning
you pulled the little pup's ears till he screamed." Davie hung his head.
"You stopped a while, and then did it again! So I knew it wasn't that you
didn't know. Is that a thing Jesus would have done when he was a little
boy?"
"No, sir."
"Why?"
"Because it would have
been wrong."
"I suspect, rather, it
is because he would have loved the little pup. He didn't have to think about
its being wrong. He loves every kind of living thing. He wants to take away
your sin because he loves you. He doesn't merely want to make you not cruel to
the little pup, but to take away the wrong think that doesn't love him.
He wants to make you love every living creature. Davie, Jesus came out of the
grave to make us good."
Tears were flowing down
Davie's checks.
"The lesson 's done,
Davie," said Donal, and rose and went, leaving him with lady Arctura.
But ere he reached the door,
he turned with sudden impulse, and said:--
"Davie, I love Jesus
Christ and his Father more than I can tell you--more than I can put in
words--more than I can think; and if you love me you will mind what Jesus tells
you."
"What a good man you
must be, Mr. Grant!--Mustn't he, Arkie?" sobbed Davie.
Donal laughed.
"What, Davie!" he
exclaimed. "You think me very good for loving the only good person in the
whole world! That is very odd! Why, Davie, I should be the most contemptible
creature, knowing him as I do, not to love him with all my heart--yes, with all
the big heart I shall have one day when he has done making me."
"Is he making you
still, Mr. Grant? I thought you were grown up!"
"Well, I don't think he
will make me any taller," answered Donal. "But the live part of
me--the thing I love you with, the thing I think about God with, the thing I
love poetry with, the thing I read the Bible with--that thing God keeps on
making bigger and bigger. I do not know where it will stop, I only know where
it will not stop. That thing is me, and God will keep on making it
bigger to all eternity, though he has not even got it into the right shape
yet."
"Why is he so long
about it?"
"I don't think he is
long about it; but he could do it quicker if I were as good as by this time I
ought to be, with the father and mother I have, and all my long hours on the
hillsides with my New Testament and the sheep. I prayed to God on the hill and
in the fields, and he heard me, Davie, and made me see the foolishness of many
things, and the grandeur and beauty of other things. Davie, God wants to give
you the whole world, and everything in it. When you have begun to do the things
Jesus tells you, then you will be my brother, and we shall both be his little
brothers, and the sons of his Father God, and so the heirs of all things."
With that he turned again
and went.
The tears were rolling down
Arctura's face without her being aware of it.
"He is a well-meaning
man," she said to herself, "but dreadfully mistaken: the Bible says believe,
not do!"
The poor girl, though she
read her bible regularly, was so blinded by the dust and ashes of her teaching,
that she knew very little of what was actually in it. The most significant
things slipped from her as if they were merest words without shadow of meaning
or intent: they did not support the doctrines she had been taught, and
therefore said nothing to her. The story of Christ and the appeals of those who
had handled the Word of Life had another end in view than making people
understand how God arranged matters to save them. God would have us live: if we
live we cannot but know; all the knowledge in the universe could not make us
live. Obedience is the road to all things--the only way in which to grow able
to trust him. Love and faith and obedience are sides of the same prism.
Regularly after that, lady
Arctura came to the lesson--always intending to object as soon as it was over.
But always before the end came, Donal had said something that went so to the
heart of the honest girl that she could say nothing. As if she too had been a
pupil, as indeed she was, far more than either knew, she would rise when Davie
rose, and go away with him. But it was to go alone into the garden, or to her
room, not seldom finding herself wishing things true which yet she counted
terribly dangerous: listening to them might not she as well as Davie fail
miserably of escape from the wrath to come?
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XIX. THE FACTOR.">
CHAPTER XIX.
THE FACTOR.
THE old avenue of beeches,
leading immediately nowhither any more, but closed at one end by a built-up
gate, and at the other by a high wall, between which two points it stretched
quite a mile, was a favourite resort of Donal's, partly for its beauty, partly
for its solitude. The arms of the great trees crossing made of it a long
aisle--its roof a broken vault of leaves, upheld by irregular pointed
arches--which affected one's imagination like an ever shifting dream of architectural
suggestion. Having ceased to be a way, it was now all but entirely deserted,
and there was eeriness in the vanishing vista that showed nothing
beyond. When the wind of the twilight sighed in gusts through its moanful crowd
of fluttered leaves; or when the wind of the winter was tormenting the ancient
haggard boughs, and the trees looked as if they were weary of the world, and
longing after the garden of God; yet more when the snow lay heavy upon their
branches, sorely trying their aged strength to support its oppression, and
giving the onlooker a vague sense of what the world would be if God were gone
from it--then the old avenue was a place from which one with more imagination
than courage would be ready to haste away, and seek instead the abodes of men.
But Donal, though he dearly loved his neighbour, and that in the fullest
concrete sense, was capable of loving the loneliest spots, for in such he was
never alone.
It was altogether a
neglected place. Long grass grew over its floor from end to end--cut now and
then for hay, or to feed such animals as had grass in their stalls. Along one
border, outside the trees, went a footpath--so little used that, though not
quite conquered by the turf, the long grass often met over the top of it.
Finding it so lonely, Donal grew more and more fond of it. It was his outdoor
study, his proseuche {Compilers note: pi, rho, omicron, sigma, epsilon upsilon,
chi, eta with stress--[outdoor] place of prayer}--a little aisle of the great
temple! Seldom indeed was his reading or meditation there interrupted by sight
of human being.
About a month after he had
taken up his abode at the castle, he was lying one day in the grass with a
book-companion, under the shade of one of the largest of its beeches, when he
felt through the ground ere he heard through the air the feet of an approaching
horse. As they came near, he raised his head to see. His unexpected appearance
startled the horse, his rider nearly lost his seat, and did lose his temper. Recovering
the former, and holding the excited animal, which would have been off at full
speed, he urged him towards Donal, whom he took for a tramp. He was
rising--deliberately, that he might not do more mischief, and was yet hardly on
his feet, when the horse, yielding to the spur, came straight at him, its rider
with his whip lifted. Donal took off his bonnet, stepped a little aside, and
stood. His bearing and countenance calmed the horseman's rage; there was
something in them to which no gentleman could fail of response.
The rider was plainly one
who had more to do with affairs bucolic than with those of cities or courts,
but withal a man of conscious dignity, socially afloat, and able to hold his
own.
"What the
devil--," he cried--for nothing is so irritating to a horseman as to come
near losing his seat, except perhaps to lose it altogether, and indignation
against the cause of an untoward accident is generally a mortal's first
consciousness thereupon: however foolishly, he feels himself injured. But there,
having better taken in Donal's look, he checked himself.
"I beg your pardon,
sir," said Donal. "It was foolish of me to show myself so suddenly; I
might have thought it would startle most horses. I was too absorbed to have my
wits about me."
The gentleman lifted his
hat.
"I beg your pardon in
return," he said with a smile which cleared every cloud from his face.
"I took you for some one who had no business here; but I imagine you are
the tutor at the castle, with as good a right as I have myself."
"You guess well,
sir."
"Pardon me that I
forget your name."
"My name is Donal
Grant," returned Donal, with an accent on the my intending a wish
to know in return that of the speaker.
"I am a Graeme,"
answered the other, "one of the clan, and factor to the earl. Come and see
where I live. My sister will be glad to make your acquaintance. We lead rather
a lonely life here, and don't see too many agreeable people."
"You call this lonely,
do you!" said Donal thoughtfully. "--It is a grand place, anyhow!"
"You are right--as you
see it now. But wait till winter! Then perhaps you will change your impression
a little."
"Pardon me if I doubt
whether you know what winter can be so well as I do. This east coast is by all
accounts a bitter place, but I fancy it is only upon a great hill-side you can
know the heart and soul of a snow-blast."
"I yield that,"
returned Mr. Graeme. "--It is bitter enough here though, and a mercy we
can keep warm in-doors."
"Which is often more
than we shepherd-folk can do," said Donal.
Mr. Graeme used to say
afterwards he was never so immediately taken with a man. It was one of the
charms of Donal's habit of being, that he never spoke as if he belonged to any
other than the class in which he had been born and brought up. This came partly
of pride in his father and mother, partly of inborn dignity, and partly of
religion. To him the story of our Lord was the reality it is, and he rejoiced
to know himself so nearly on the same social level of birth as the Master of
his life and aspiration. It was Donal's one ambition--to give the high passion
a low name--to be free with the freedom which was his natural inheritance, and
which is to be gained only by obedience to the words of the Master. From the
face of this aspiration fled every kind of pretence as from the light flies the
darkness. Hence he was entirely and thoroughly a gentleman. What if his clothes
were not even of the next to the newest cut! What if he had not been used to
what is called society! He was far above such things. If he might but attain to
the manners of the "high countries," manners which appear because
they exist--because they are all through the man! He did not think what he
might seem in the eyes of men. Courteous, helpful, considerate, always seeking
first how far he could honestly agree with any speaker, opposing never save
sweetly and apologetically--except indeed some utterance flagrantly unjust were
in his ears--there was no man of true breeding, in or out of society,
who would not have granted that Donal was fit company for any man or woman. Mr.
Graeme's eye glanced down over the tall square-shouldered form, a little
stooping from lack of drill and much meditation, but instantly straightening
itself upon any inward stir, and he said to himself, "This is no common
man!"
They were moving slowly
along the avenue, Donal by the rider's near knee, talking away like men not
unlikely soon to know each other better.
"You don't make much
use of this avenue!" said Donal.
"No; its use is an old
story. The castle was for a time deserted, and the family, then passing through
a phase of comparative poverty, lived in the house we are in now--to my mind
much the more comfortable."
"What a fine old place
it must be, if such trees are a fit approach to it!"
"They were never
planted for that; they are older far. Either there was a wood here, and the
rest were cut down and these left, or there was once a house much older than
the present. The look of the garden, and some of the offices, favour the latter
idea."
"I have never seen the
house," said Donal.
"You have not then been
much about yet?" said Mr. Graeme.
"I have been so
occupied with my pupil, and so delighted with all that lay immediately around
me, that I have gone nowhere--except, indeed, to see Andrew Comin, the
cobbler."
"Ah, you know him! I
have heard of him as a remarkable man. There was a clergyman here from
Glasgow--I forget his name--so struck with him he seemed actually to take him
for a prophet. He said he was a survival of the old mystics. For my part I have
no turn for extravagance."
"But," said Donal,
in the tone of one merely suggesting a possibility, "a thing that from the
outside may seem an extravagance, may look quite different when you get inside
it."
"The more reason for
keeping out of it! If acquaintance must make you in love with it, the more air
between you and it the better!"
"Would not such
precaution as that keep you from gaining a true knowledge of many things?
Nothing almost can be known from what people say."
"True; but there are
things so plainly nonsense!"
"Yes; but there are
things that seem to be nonsense, because the man thinks he knows what they are
when he does not. Who would know the shape of a chair who took his idea of it
from its shadow on the floor? What idea can a man have of religion who knows
nothing of it except from what he hears at church?"
Mr. Graeme was not fond of
going to church yet went: he was the less displeased with the remark. But he
made no reply, and the subject dropped.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XX. THE OLD GARDEN.">
CHAPTER XX.
THE OLD GARDEN.
THE avenue seemed to Donal
about to stop dead against a high wall, but ere they quite reached the end,
they turned at right angles, skirted the wall for some distance, then turned
again with it. It was a somewhat dreary wall--of gray stone, with mortar as gray--not
like the rich-coloured walls of old red brick one meets in England. But its
roof-like coping was crowned with tufts of wall-plants, and a few lichens did
something to relieve the grayness. It guided them to a farm-yard. Mr. Graeme
left his horse at the stable, and led the way to the house.
They entered it by a back
door whose porch was covered with ivy, and going through several low passages,
came to the other side of the house. There Mr. Graeme showed Donal into a
large, low-ceiled, old-fashioned drawing-room, smelling of ancient rose-leaves,
their odour of sad hearts rather than of withered flowers--and leaving him went
to find his sister.
Glancing about him Donal saw
a window open to the ground, and went to it. Beyond lay a more fairy-like garden
than he had ever dreamed of. But he had read of, though never looked on such,
and seemed to know it from times of old. It was laid out in straight lines,
with soft walks of old turf, and in it grew all kinds of straight aspiring
things: their ambition seemed--to get up, not to spread abroad. He stepped out
of the window, drawn as by the enchantment of one of childhood's dreams, and
went wandering down a broad walk, his foot sinking deep in the velvety grass,
and the loveliness of the dream did not fade. Hollyhocks, gloriously impatient,
whose flowers could not wait to reach the top ere they burst into the flame of
life, making splendid blots of colour along their ascending stalks, received
him like stately dames of faerie, and enticed him, gently eager for more, down
the long walks between rows of them--deep red and creamy white, primrose and
yellow: sure they were leading him to some wonderful spot, some nest of lovely
dreams and more lovely visions! The walk did lead to a bower of roses--a bed
surrounded with a trellis, on which they climbed and made a huge bonfire--altar
of incense rather, glowing with red and white flame. It seemed more glorious
than his brain could receive. Seeing was hardly believing, but believing was
more than seeing: though nothing is too good to be true, many things are too
good to be grasped.
"Poor misbelieving
birds of God," he said to himself, "we hover about a whole wood of
the trees of life, venturing only here and there a peck, as if their fruit
might be poison, and the design of our creation was our ruin! we shake our
wise, owl-feathered heads, and declare they cannot be the trees of life: that
were too good to be true! Ten times more consistent are they who deny there is
a God at all, than they who believe in a middling kind of God--except indeed
that they place in him a fitting faith!"
The thoughts rose gently in
his full heart, as the flowers, one after the other, stole in at his eyes,
looking up from the dark earth like the spirits of its hidden jewels, which
themselves could not reach the sun, exhaled in longing. Over grass which
fondled his feet like the lap of an old nurse, he walked slowly round the bed
of the roses, turning again towards the house. But there, half-way between him
and it, was the lady of the garden descending to meet him!--not ancient like
the garden, but young like its flowers, light-footed, and full of life.
Prepared by her brother to
be friendly, she met him with a pleasant smile, and he saw that the light which
shone in her dark eyes had in it rays of laughter. She had a dark, yet clear
complexion, a good forehead, a nose after no recognized generation of noses,
yet an attractive one, a mouth larger than to human judgment might have seemed
necessary, yet a right pleasing mouth, with two rows of lovely teeth. All this
Donal saw approach without dismay. He was no more shy with women than with men;
while none the less his feeling towards them partook largely of the reverence
of the ideal knight errant. He would not indeed have been shy in the presence
of an angel of God; for his only courage came of truth, and clothed in the
dignity of his reverence, he could look in the face of the lovely without
perturbation. He would not have sought to hide from him whose voice was in the
garden, but would have made haste to cast himself at his feet.
Bonnet in hand he advanced
to meet Kate Graeme. She held out to him a well-shaped, good-sized hand, not
ignorant of work--capable indeed of milking a cow to the cow's satisfaction.
Then he saw that her chin was strong, and her dark hair not too tidy; that she
was rather tall, and slenderly conceived though plumply carried out. Her light
approach pleased him. He liked the way her foot pressed the grass. If Donal
loved anything in the green world, it was neither roses nor hollyhocks, nor
even sweet peas, but the grass that is trodden under foot, that springs in all
waste places, and has so often to be glad of the dews of heaven to heal the hot
cut of the scythe. He had long abjured the notion of anything in the vegetable kingdom
being without some sense of life, without pleasure and pain also, in mild form
and degree.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXI. A FIRST MEETING.">
CHAPTER XXI.
A FIRST MEETING.
HE took her hand, and felt
it an honest one--a safe, comfortable hand.
"My brother told me he
had brought you," she said. "I am glad to see you."
"You are very
kind," said Donal. How did either of you know of my existence? A few
minutes back, I was not aware of yours."
Was it a rude utterance? He
was silent a moment with the silence that promises speech, then added--
"Has it ever struck you
how many born friends there are in the world who never meet--persons to love
each other at first sight, but who never in this world have that sight?"
"No," returned
Miss Graeme, with a merrier laugh than quite responded to the remark, "I
certainly never had such a thought. I take the people that come, and never
think of those who do not. But of course it must be so."
"To be in the world is
to have a great many brothers and sisters you do not know!" said Donal.
"My mother told
me," she rejoined, "of a man who had had so many wives and children
that his son, whom she had met, positively did not know all his brothers and
sisters."
"I suspect," said
Donal, "we have to know our brothers and sisters."
"I do not
understand."
"We have even got to
feel a man is our brother the moment we see him," pursued Donal, enhancing
his former remark.
"That sounds
alarming!" said Miss Graeme, with another laugh. "My little heart
feels not large enough to receive so many."
"The worst of it
is," continued Donal, who once started was not ready to draw rein,
"that those who chiefly advocate this extension of the family bonds, begin
by loving their own immediate relations less than anybody else. Extension with
them means slackening--as if any one could learn to love more by loving less,
or go on to do better without doing well! He who loves his own little will not
love others much."
"But how can we love those
who are nothing to us?" objected Miss Graeme.
"That would be
impossible. The family relations are for the sake of developing a love rooted
in a far deeper though less recognized relation.--But I beg your pardon, Miss
Graeme. Little Davie alone is my pupil, and I forget myself."
"I am very glad to
listen to you," returned Miss Graeme. "I cannot say I am prepared to
agree with you. But it is something, in this out-of-the-way corner, to hear
talk from which it is even worth while to differ."
"Ah, you can have that
here if you will!"
"Indeed!"
"I mean talk from which
you would probably differ. There is an old man in the town who can talk better
than ever I heard man before. But he is a poor man, with a despised handicraft,
and none heed him. No community recognizes its great men till they are gone."
"Where is the use then
of being great?" said Miss Graeme.
"To be
great," answered Donal, "--to which the desire to be known of men is
altogether destructive. To be great is to seem little in the eyes of men."
Miss Graeme did not answer.
She was not accustomed to consider things seriously. A good girl in a certain
true sense, she had never yet seen that she had to be better, or indeed to be
anything. But she was able to feel, though she was far from understanding him,
that Donal was in earnest, and that was much. To recognize that a man means
something, is a great step towards understanding him.
"What a lovely garden
this is!" remarked Donal after the sequent pause. "I have never seen
anything like it."
"It is very
old-fashioned," she returned. "Do you not find it very stiff and
formal?"
"Stately and precise, I
should rather say."
"I do not mean I can
help liking it--in a way."
"Who could help liking
it that took his feeling from the garden itself, not from what people said
about it!"
"You cannot say it is
like nature!"
"Yes; it is very like
human nature. Man ought to learn of nature, but not to imitate nature.
His work is, through the forms that Nature gives him, to express the idea or
feeling that is in him. That is far more likely to produce things in harmony
with nature, than the attempt to imitate nature upon the small human
scale."
"You are too much of a
philosopher for me!" said Miss Graeme. "I daresay you are quite
right, but I have never read anything about art, and cannot follow you."
"You have probably read
as much as I have. I am only talking out of what necessity, the necessity for
understanding things, has made me think. One must get things brought together
in one's thoughts, if only to be able to go on thinking."
This too was beyond Miss
Graeme. The silence again fell, and Donal let it lie, waiting for her to break
it this time.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXII. A TALK ABOUT GHOSTS.">
CHAPTER XXII.
A TALK ABOUT GHOSTS.
BUT again he was the first.
They had turned and gone a
good way down the long garden, and had again turned towards the house.
"This place makes me
feel as I never felt before," he said. "There is such a wonderful
sense of vanished life about it. The whole garden seems dreaming about things
of long ago--when troops of ladies, now banished into pictures, wandered about
the place, each full of her own thoughts and fancies of life, each looking at
everything with ways of thinking as old-fashioned as her garments. I could not
be here after nightfall without feeling as if every walk were answering to
unseen feet, as if every tree might be hiding some lovely form, returned to
dream over old memories."
"Where is the good of
fancying what is not true? I can't care for what I know to be nonsense!"
She was glad to find a spot
where she could put down the foot of contradiction, for she came of a family
known for what the neighbours called common sense, and in the habit of casting
contempt upon everything characterized as superstition: she had now something to
say for herself!
"How do you know it is
nonsense?" asked Donald, looking round in her face with a bright smile.
"Not nonsense to keep
imagining what nobody can see?"
"I can only
imagine what I do not see."
"Nobody ever saw such
creatures as you suppose in any garden! Then why fancy the dead so
uncomfortable, or so ill looked after, that they come back to plague us!"
"Plainly they have
never plagued you much!" rejoined Donal laughing. "But how often have
you gone up and down these walks at dead of night?"
"Never once,"
answered Miss Graeme, not without a spark of indignation. "I never was so
absurd!"
"Then there may be a
whole night-world that you know nothing about. You cannot tell that the place
is not then thronged with ghosts: you have never given them a chance of
appearing to you. I don't say it is so, for I know nothing, or at least little,
about such things. I have had no experience of the sort any more than you--and
I have been out whole nights on the mountains when I was a shepherd."
"Why then should you
trouble your fancy about them?"
"Perhaps just for that
reason."
"I do not understand
you."
"I mean, because I can
come into no communication with such a world as may be about me, I therefore
imagine it. If, as often as I walked abroad at night, I met and held converse
with the disembodied, I should use my imagination little, but make many notes
of facts. When what may be makes no show, what more natural than to imagine
about it? What is the imagination here for?"
"I do not know. The
less one has to do with it the better."
"Then the thing,
whatever it be, should not be called a faculty, but a weakness!"
"Yes."
"But the history of the
world shows it could never have made progress without suggestions upon which to
ground experiments: whence may these suggestions come if not from the weakness
or impediment called the imagination?"
Again there was silence.
Miss Graeme began to doubt whether it was possible to hold rational converse
with a man who, the moment they began upon anything, went straight aloft into
some high-flying region of which she knew and for which she cared nothing. But
Donal's unconscious desire was in reality to meet her upon some common plane of
thought. He always wanted to meet his fellow, and hence that abundance
of speech, which, however poetic the things he said, not a few called
prosiness.
"I should think,"
resumed Miss Graeme, "if you want to work your imagination, you will find
more scope for it at the castle than here! This is a poor modern place compared
to that."
"It is a poor
imagination," returned Donal, "that requires age or any mere
accessory to rouse it. The very absence of everything external, the bareness of
the mere humanity involved, may in itself be an excitement greater than any
accompaniment of the antique or the picturesque. But in this old-fashioned
garden, in the midst of these old-fashioned flowers, with all the gentlenesses
of old-fashioned life suggested by them, it is easier to imagine the people
themselves than where all is so cold, hard, severe--so much on the defensive,
as in that huge, sullen pile on the hilltop."
"I am afraid you find
it dull up there!" said Miss Graeme.
"Not at all,"
replied Donal; "I have there a most interesting pupil. But indeed one who
has been used to spend day after day alone, clouds and heather and sheep and
dogs his companions, does not depend much for pastime. Give me a chair and a
table, fire enough to keep me from shivering, the few books I like best and
writing materials, and I am absolutely content. But beyond these things I have
at the castle a fine library--useless no doubt for most purposes of modern
study, but full of precious old books. There I can at any moment be in the best
of company! There is more of the marvellous in an old library than ever any
magic could work!"
"I do not quite
understand you," said the lady.
But she would have spoken
nearer the truth if she had said she had not a glimmer of what he meant.
"Let me explain!"
said Donal: "what could necromancy, which is one of the branches of magic,
do for one at the best?"
"Well!" exclaimed
Miss Graeme; "--but I suppose if you believe in ghosts, you may as well
believe in raising them!"
"I did not mean to
start any question about belief; I only wanted to suppose necromancy for the
moment a fact, and put it at its best: suppose the magician could do for
you all he professed, what would it amount to?--Only this--to bring before your
eyes a shadowy resemblance of the form of flesh and blood, itself but a passing
shadow, in which the man moved on the earth, and was known to his fellow-men?
At best the necromancer might succeed in drawing from him some obscure
utterance concerning your future, far more likely to destroy your courage than
enable you to face what was before you; so that you would depart from your peep
into the unknown, merely less able to encounter the duties of life."
"Whoever has a desire
for such information must be made very different from me!" said Miss
Graeme.
"Are you sure of that?
Did you never make yourself unhappy about what might be on its way to you, and
wish you could know beforehand something to guide you how to meet it?"
"I should have to think
before answering that question."
"Now tell me--what can
the art of writing, and its expansion, or perhaps its development rather, in
printing, do in the same direction as necromancy? May not a man well long after
personal communication with this or that one of the greatest who have lived
before him? I grant that in respect of some it can do nothing; but in respect
of others, instead of mocking you with an airy semblance of their bodily forms,
and the murmur of a few doubtful words from their lips, it places in your hands
a key to their inmost thoughts. Some would say this is not personal
communication; but it is far more personal than the other. A man's personality
does not consist in the clothes he wears; it only appears in them; no more does
it consist in his body, but in him who wears it."
As he spoke, Miss Graeme
kept looking him gravely in the face, manifesting, however, more respect than
interest. She had been accustomed to a very different tone in young men. She
had found their main ambition to amuse; to talk sense about other matters than
the immediate uses of this world, was an out-of-the-way thing! I do not say
Miss Graeme, even on the subject last in hand, appreciated the matter of Donal's
talk. She perceived he was in earnest, and happily was able to know a deep pond
from a shallow one, but her best thought concerning him was--what a strange new
specimen of humanity was here!
The appearance of her
brother coming down the walk, put a stop to the conversation.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXIII. A TRADITION OF THE CASTLE.">
CHAPTER XXIII.
A TRADITION OF THE CASTLE.
"WELL," he said as
he drew near, "I am glad to see you two getting on so well!"
"How do you know we
are?" asked his sister, with something of the antagonistic tone which both
in jest and earnest is too common between near relations.
"Because you have been
talking incessantly ever since you met."
"We have been only
contradicting each other."
"I could tell that too
by the sound of your voices; but I took it for a good sign."
"I fear you heard mine
almost only!" said Donal. "I talk too much, and I fear I have
gathered the fault in a way that makes it difficult to cure."
"How was it?"
asked Mr. Graeme.
"By having nobody to
talk to. I learned it on the hill-side with the sheep, and in the meadows with
the cattle. At college I thought I was nearly cured of it; but now, in my
comparative solitude at the castle, it seems to have returned."
"Come here," said
Mr. Graeme, "when you find it getting too much for you: my sister is quite
equal to the task of re-curing you."
"She has not begun to
use her power yet!" remarked Donal, as Miss Graeme, in hoydenish yet not
ungraceful fashion, made an attempt to box the ear of her slanderous brother--a
proceeding he had anticipated, and so was able to frustrate.
"When she knows you
better," he said, "you will find my sister Kate more than your
match."
"If I were a
talker," she answered, "Mr. Grant would be too much for me: he quite
bewilders me! What do you think! he has been actually trying to persuade
me--"
"I beg your pardon,
Miss Graeme; I have been trying to persuade you of nothing."
"What! not to believe
in ghosts and necromancy and witchcraft and the evil eye and ghouls and
vampyres, and I don't know what all out of nursery stories and old
annuals?"
"I give you my word,
Mr. Graeme," returned Donal, laughing, "I have not been persuading
your sister of any of these things! I am certain she could be persuaded of
nothing of which she did not first see the common sense. What I did dwell upon,
without a doubt she would accept it, was the evident fact that writing and
printing have done more to bring us into personal relations with the great
dead, than necromancy, granting the magician the power he claimed, could ever
do. For do we not come into contact with the being of a man when we hear him
pour forth his thoughts of the things he likes best to think about, into the
ear of the universe? In such a position does the book of a great man place
us!--That was what I meant to convey to your sister."
"And," said Mr.
Graeme, "she was not such a goose as to fail of understanding you, however
she may have chosen to put on the garb of stupidity."
"I am sure,"
persisted Kate, "Mr. Grant talked so as to make me think he believed in
necromancy and all that sort of thing!"
"That may be,"
said Donal; "but I did not try to persuade you to believe."
"Oh, if you hold me to
the letter!" cried Miss Graeme, colouring a little.--"It would be
impossible to get on with such a man," she thought, "for he not only
preached when you had no pulpit to protect you from him, but stuck so to his
text that there was no amusement to be got out of the business!"
She did not know that if she
could have met him, breaking the ocean-tide of his thoughts with fitting
opposition, his answers would have come short and sharp as the flashes of waves
on rocks.
"If Mr. Grant believes
in such things," said Mr. Graeme, "he must find himself at home in
the castle, every room of which way well be the haunt of some weary
ghost!"
"I do not
believe," said Donal, "that any work of man's hands, however awful
with crime done in it, can have nearly such an influence for belief in the
marvellous, as the still presence of live Nature. I never saw an old castle
before--at least not to make any close acquaintance with it, but there is not
an aspect of the grim old survival up there, interesting as every corner of it
is, that moves me like the mere thought of a hill-side with the veil of the
twilight coming down over it, making of it the last step of a stair for the
descending foot of the Lord."
"Surely, Mr. Grant, you
do not expect such a personal advent!" said Miss Graeme.
"I should not like to say
what I do or don't expect," answered Donal--and held his peace, for he saw
he was but casting stumbling-blocks.
The silence grew awkward;
and Mr. Graeme's good breeding called on him to say something; he supposed
Donal felt himself snubbed by his sister.
"If you are fond of the
marvellous, though, Mr. Grant," he said, "there are some old stories
about the castle would interest you. One of them was brought to my mind the
other day in the town. It is strange how superstition seems to have its ebbs
and flows! A story or legend will go to sleep, and after a time revive with
fresh interest, no one knows why."
"Probably," said
Donal, "it is when the tale comes to ears fitted for its reception. They
are now in many counties trying to get together and store the remnants of such
tales: possibly the wind of some such inquiry may have set old people
recollecting, and young people inventing. That would account for a good
deal--would it not?"
"Yes, but not for all,
I think. There has been no such inquiry made anywhere near us, so far as I am
aware. I went to the Morven Arms last night to meet a tenant, and found the
tradesmen were talking, over their toddy, of various events at the castle, and
especially of one, the most frightful of all. It should have been forgotten by
this time, for the ratio of forgetting, increases."
"I should like much to
hear it!" said Donal.
"Do tell him,
Hector," said Miss Graeme, "and I will watch his hair."
"It is the hair of
those who mock at such things you should watch," returned Donal.
"Their imagination is so rarely excited that, when it is, it affects their
nerves more than the belief of others affects theirs."
"Now I have you!"
cried Miss Graeme. "There you confess yourself a believer!"
"I fear you have come
to too general a conclusion. Because I believe the Bible, do I believe
everything that comes from the pulpit? Some tales I should reject with a
contempt that would satisfy even Miss Graeme; of others I should say--'These
seem as if they might be true;' and of still others, 'These ought to be true, I
think.'--But do tell me the story."
"It is not,"
replied Mr. Graeme, "a very peculiar one--certainly not peculiar to our
castle, though unique in some of its details; a similar legend belongs to
several houses in Scotland, and is to be found, I fancy, in other countries as
well. There is one not far from here, around whose dark basements--or hoary
battlements--who shall say which?--floats a similar tale. It is of a hidden
room, whose position or entrance nobody knows. Whether it belongs to our castle
by right I cannot tell."
"A species of
report," said Donal, "very likely to arise by a kind of cryptogamic
generation! The common people, accustomed to the narrowest dwellings, gazing on
the huge proportions of the place, and upon occasion admitted, and walking
through a succession of rooms and passages, to them as intricate and confused
as a rabbit-warren, must be very ready, I should think, to imagine the existence
within such a pile, of places unknown even to the inhabitants of it
themselves!--But I beg your pardon: do tell us the story."
"Mr. Grant," said
Kate, "you perplex me! I begin to doubt if you have any principles. One
moment you take one side and the next the other!"
"No, no; I but love my
own side too well to let any traitors into its ranks: I would have nothing to
do with lies."
"They are all lies
together!"
"Then I want to hear
this one," said Donal.
"I daresay you have
heard it before!" remarked Mr. Graeme, and began.
"It was in the earldom
of a certain recklessly wicked wretch, who not only robbed his poor neighbours,
and even killed them when they opposed him, but went so far as to behave as
wickedly on the Sabbath as on any other day of the week. Late one Saturday
night, a company were seated in the castle, playing cards, and drinking; and
all the time Sunday was drawing nearer and nearer, and nobody heeding. At
length one of them, seeing the hands of the clock at a quarter to twelve, made
the remark that it was time to stop. He did not mention the sacred day, but all
knew what he meant. The earl laughed, and said, if he was afraid of the
kirk-session, he might go, and another would take his hand. But the man sat
still, and said no more till the clock gave the warning. Then he spoke again,
and said the day was almost out, and they ought not to go on playing into the
Sabbath. And as he uttered the word, his mouth was pulled all on one side. But
the earl struck his fist on the table, and swore a great oath that if any man
rose he would run him through. 'What care I for the Sabbath!' he said. 'I gave
you your chance to go,' he added, turning to the man who had spoken, who was
dressed in black like a minister, 'and you would not take it: now you shall sit
where you are.' He glared fiercely at him, and the man returned him an equally
fiery stare. And now first they began to discover what, through the fumes of
the whisky and the smoke of the pine-torches, they had not observed, namely,
that none of them knew the man, or had ever seen him before. They looked at
him, and could not turn their eyes from him, and a cold terror began to creep
through their vitals. He kept his fierce scornful look fixed on the earl for a
moment, and then spoke. 'And I gave you your chance,' he said, 'and you would
not take it: now you shall sit still where you are, and no Sabbath shall you
ever see.' The clock began to strike, and the man's mouth came straight again.
But when the hammer had struck eleven times, it struck no more, and the clock
stopped. 'This day twelvemonth,' said the man, 'you shall see me again; and so
every year till your time is up. I hope you will enjoy your game!' The earl
would have sprung to his feet, but could not stir, and the man was nowhere to be
seen. He was gone, taking with him both door and windows of the room--not as
Samson carried off the gates of Gaza, however, for he left not the least sign
of where they had been. From that day to this no one has been able to find the
room. There the wicked earl and his companions still sit, playing with the same
pack of cards, and waiting their doom. It has been said that, on that same day
of the year--only, unfortunately, testimony differs as to the day--shouts of
drunken laughter may be heard issuing from somewhere in the castle; but as to
the direction whence they come, none can ever agree. That is the story."
"A very good one!"
said Donal. "I wonder what the ground of it is! It must have had its
beginning!"
"Then you don't believe
it?" said Miss Graeme.
"Not quite," he
replied. "But I have myself had a strange experience up there."
"What! you have seen
something?" cried Miss Graeme, her eyes growing bigger.
"No; I have seen
nothing," answered Donal, "--only heard something.--One night, the
first I was there indeed, I heard the sound of a far-off musical instrument,
faint and sweet."
The brother and sister
exchanged looks. Donal went on.
"I got up and felt my
way down the winding stair--I sleep at the top of Baliol's tower--but at the
bottom lost myself, and had to sit down and wait for the light. Then I heard it
again, but seemed no nearer to it than before. I have never heard it since, and
have never mentioned the thing. I presume, however, that speaking of it to you
can do no harm. You at least will not raise any fresh rumours to injure the
respectability of the castle! Do you think there is any instrument in it from
which such a sound might have proceeded? Lady Arctura is a musician, I am told,
but surely was not likely to be at her piano 'in the dead waste and middle of
the night'!"
"It is impossible to
say how far a sound may travel in the stillness of the night, when there are no
other sound-waves to cross and break it."
"That is all very well,
Hector," said his sister; "but you know Mr. Grant is neither the
first nor the second that has heard that sound!"
"One thing is pretty
clear," said her brother, "it can have nothing to do with the
revellers at their cards! The sound reported is very different from any
attributed to them!"
"Are you sure,"
suggested Donal, "that there was not a violin shut up with them? Even if
none of them could play, there has been time enough to learn. The sound I heard
might have been that of a ghostly violin. Though like that of a stringed instrument,
it was different from anything I had ever heard before--except perhaps certain
equally inexplicable sounds occasionally heard among the hills."
They went on talking about
the thing for a while, pacing up and down the garden, the sun hot above their heads,
the grass cool under their feet.
"It is enough,"
said Miss Graeme, with a rather forced laugh, "to make one glad the castle
does not go with the title."
"Why so?" asked
Donal.
"Because," she
answered, "were anything to happen to the boys up there, Hector would come
in for the title."
"I'm not of my sister's
mind!" said Mr. Graeme, laughing more genuinely. "A title with
nothing to keep it up is a simple misfortune. I certainly should not take out
the patent. No wise man would lay claim to a title without the means to make it
respected."
"Have we come to
that!" exclaimed Donal. "Must even the old titles of the country be
buttressed into respectability with money? Away in quiet places, reading old
history books, we peasants are accustomed to think differently. If some
millionaire money-lender were to buy the old keep of Arundel castle, you would
respect him just as much as the present earl!"
"I would not,"
said Mr. Graeme. "I confess you have the better of me.--But is there not a
fallacy in your argument?" he added, thinkingly.
"I believe not. If the
title is worth nothing without the money, the money must be more than the
title!--If I were Lazarus," Donal went on, "and the inheritor of a
title, I would use it, if only for a lesson to Dives up stairs. I scorn to
think that honour should wait on the heels of wealth. You may think it is
because I am and always shall be a poor man; but if I know myself it is not
therefore. At the same time a title is but a trifle; and if you had given any
other reason for not using it than homage to Mammon, I should have said
nothing."
"For my part,"
said Miss Graeme, "I have no quarrel with riches except that they do not
come my way. I should know how to use and not abuse them!"
Donal made no other reply
than to turn a look of divinely stupid surprise and pity upon the young woman.
It was of no use to say anything! Were argument absolutely triumphant, Mammon
would sit just where he was before! He had marked the great indifference of the
Lord to the convincing of the understanding: when men knew the thing itself,
then and not before would they understand its relations and reasons!
If truth belongs to the
human soul, then the soul is able to see it and know it: if it do the truth, it
takes therein the first possible, and almost the last necessary step towards
understanding it.
Miss Graeme caught his look,
and must have perceived its expression, for her face flushed a more than rosy
red, and the conversation grew crumbly.
It was a half-holiday, and
he stayed to tea, and after it went over the arm-buildings with Mr. Graeme,
revealing such a practical knowledge of all that was going on, that his
entertainer soon saw his opinion must be worth something whether his fancies
were or not.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXIV. STEPHEN KENNEDY.">
CHAPTER XXIV.
STEPHEN KENNEDY.
THE great comforts of
Donal's life, next to those of the world in which his soul lived--the eternal
world, whose doors are ever open to him who prays--were the society of his
favourite books, the fashioning of his thoughts into sweetly ordered sounds in
the lofty solitude of his chamber, and not infrequent communion with the
cobbler and his wife. To these he had as yet said nothing of what went on at
the castle: he had learned the lesson the cobbler himself gave him. But many a
lesson of greater value did he learn from the philosopher of the lapstone. He
who understands because he endeavours, is a freed man of the realm of human
effort. He who has no experience of his own, to him the experience of others is
a sealed book. The convictions that in Donal rose vaporous were rapidly
condensed and shaped when he found his new friend thought likewise.
By degrees he made more and
more of a companion of Davie, and such was the sweet relation between them that
he would sometimes have him in his room even when he was writing. When it was
time to lay in his winter-fuel, he said to him--
"Up here, Davie, we
must have a good fire when the nights are long; the darkness will be like solid
cold. Simmons tells me I may have as much coal and wood as I like: will you
help me to get them up?"
Davie sprang to his feet: he
was ready that very minute.
"I shall never learn my
lessons if I am cold," added Donal, who could not bear a low temperature
so well as when he was always in the open air.
"Do you learn lessons,
Mr. Grant?"
"Yes indeed I do,"
replied Donal. "One great help to the understanding of things is to brood
over them as a hen broods over her eggs: words are thought-eggs, and their
chickens are truths; and in order to brood I sometimes learn by heart. I have
set myself to learn, before the winter is over if I can, the gospel of John in
the Greek."
"What a big
lesson!" exclaimed Davie.
"Ah, but how rich it
will make me!" said Donal, and that set Davie pondering.
They began to carry up the
fuel, Donal taking the coals, and Davie the wood. But Donal got weary of the
time it took, and set himself to find a quicker way. So next Saturday
afternoon, the rudimentary remnant of the Jewish Sabbath, and the schoolboy's
weekly carnival before Lent, he directed his walk to a certain fishing village,
the nearest on the coast, about three miles off, and there succeeded in hiring
a spare boat-spar with a block and tackle. The spar he ran out, through a notch
of the battlement, near the sheds, and having stayed it well back, rove the rope
through the block at the peak of it, and lowered it with a hook at the end. A
moment of Davie's help below, and a bucket filled with coals was on its way up:
this part of the roof was over a yard belonging to the household offices, and
Davie filled the bucket from a heap they had there made. "Stand back,
Davie," Donal would cry, and up would go the bucket, to the ever renewed
delight of the boy. When it reached the block, Donal, by means of a guy, swung
the spar on its but-end, and the bucket came to the roof through the next notch
of the battlement. There he would empty it, and in a moment it would be down
again to be re-filled. When he thought he had enough of coal, he turned to the
wood; and thus they spent an hour of a good many of the cool evenings of
autumn. Davie enjoyed it immensely; and it was no small thing for a boy
delicately nurtured to be helped out of the feeling that he must have every
thing done for him. When after a time he saw the heap on the roof, he was
greatly impressed with the amount that could be done by little and little. In
return Donal told him that if he worked well through the week, he should every
Saturday evening spend an hour with him by the fire he had thus helped to
provide, and they would then do something together.
After his first visit Donal
went again and again to the village: he had made acquaintance with some of the
people, and liked them. There was one man, however, who, although, attracted by
his look despite its apparent sullenness, he had tried to draw him into conversation,
seemed to avoid, almost to resent his advances. But one day as he was walking
home, Stephen Kennedy overtook him, and saying he was going in his direction,
walked alongside of him--to the pleasure of Donal, who loved all humanity, and
especially the portion of it acquainted with hard work. He was a middle-sized
young fellow, with a slouching walk, but a well shaped and well set head, and a
not uncomely countenance. He was brown as sun and salt sea-winds could make
him, and had very blue eyes and dark hair, telling of Norwegian ancestry. He
lounged along with his hands in his pockets, as if he did not care to walk, yet
got over the ground as fast as Donal, who, with yet some remnant of the
peasant's stride, covered the ground as if he meant walking. After their
greeting a great and enduring silence fell, which lasted till the journey was
half-way over; then all at once the fisherman spoke.
"There's a lass at the
castel, sir," he said, "they ca' Eppy Comin."
"There is,"
answered Donal.
"Do ye ken the lass,
sir--to speak til her, I mean?"
"Surely," replied
Donal. "I know her grandfather and grandmother well."
"Dacent fowk!"
said Stephen.
"They are that!"
responded Donal, "--as good people as I know!"
"Wud ye du them a guid
turn?" asked the fisherman.
"Indeed I would!"
"Weel, it's this, sir:
I hae grit doobts gien a' be gaein' verra weel wi' the lass at the
castel."
As he said the words he
turned his head aside, and spoke so low and in such a muffled way that Donal
could but just make out what he said.
"You must be a little
plainer if you would have me do anything," he returned.
"I'll be richt plain
wi' ye, sir," answered Stephen, and then fell silent as if he would never
speak again.
Donal waited, nor uttered a
sound. At last he spoke once more.
"Ye maun ken,
sir," he said "I hae had a fancy to the lass this mony a day; for
ye'll alloo she's baith bonny an' winsome!"
Donal did not reply, for
although he was ready to grant her bonny, he had never felt her winsome.
"Weel," he went
on, "her an' me 's been coortin' this twa year; an' guid freen's we aye
was till this last spring, whan a' at ance she turnt highty-tighty like, nor,
du what I micht, could I get her to say what it was 'at cheengt her: sae far as
I kenned I had dune naething, nor wad she say I had gi'en her ony cause o'
complaint. But though she couldna say I had ever gi'en mair nor a ceevil word
to ony lass but hersel', she appeart unco wullin' to fix me wi' this ane an'
that ane or ony ane! I couldna think what had come ower her! But at last--an' a
sair last it is!--I hae come to the un'erstan'in o' 't: she wud fain hae a
pretence for br'akin' wi' me! She wad hae 't 'at I was duin' as she was duin'
hersel'--haudin' company wi' anither!"
"Are you quite sure of
what you say?" asked Donal.
"Ower sure, sir, though
I'm no at leeberty to tell ye hoo I cam to be.--Dinna think, sir, 'at I'm ane
to haud a lass til her word whan her hert disna back it; I wud hae said
naething aboot it, but jist borne the hert-brak wi' the becomin' silence, for
greitin' nor ragin' men' no nets, nor tak the life o' nae dogfish. But it's
God's trowth, sir, I'm terrible feart for the lassie hersel'. She's that ta'en
up wi' him, they tell me, 'at she can think o' naething but him; an' he's a
yoong lord, no a puir lad like me--an' that's what fears me!"
A great dread and a great
compassion together laid hold of Donal, but he did not speak.
"Gien it cam to
that," resumed Stephen, "I doobt the fisher-lad wud win her better
breid nor my lord; for gien a' tales be true, he wud hae to work for his ain
breid; the castel 's no his, nor canna be 'cep' he merry the leddy o' 't. But it's
no merryin' Eppy he'll be efter, or ony the likes o' 'im!"
"You don't surely
hint," said Donal, "that there's anything between her and lord
Forgue? She must be an idle girl to take such a thing into her head!"
"I wuss weel she hae
ta'en 't intil her heid! she'll get it the easier oot o' her hert? But 'deed,
sir, I'm sair feart! I speakna o' 't for my ain sake; for gien there be trowth
intil't, there can never be mair 'atween her and me! But, eh, sir, the peety o'
't wi' sic a bonny lass!--for he canna mean fair by her! Thae gran' fowk does
fearsome things! It's sma' won'er 'at whiles the puir fowk rises wi' a roar,
an' tears doon a', as they did i' France!"
"All you say is quite
true; but the charge is such a serious one!"
"It is that, sir! But
though it be true, I'm no gaein' to mak it 'afore the warl'."
"You are right there:
it could do no good."
"I fear it may du as
little whaur I am gaein' to mak it! I'm upo' my ro'd to gar my lord gie an
accoont o' himsel'. Faith, gien it bena a guid ane, I'll thraw the neck o' 'im!
It's better me to hang, nor her to gang disgraced, puir thing! She can be
naething mair to me, as I say; but I wud like weel the wringin' o' a lord's
neck! It wud be like killin' a shark!"
"Why do you tell me
this?" asked Donal.
"'Cause I look to you
to get me to word o' the man."
"That you may wring his
neck?--You should not have told me that: I should be art and part in his
murder!"
"Wud ye hae me lat the
lassie tak her chance ohn dune onything?" said the fisherman with scorn.
"By no means. I would
do something myself whoever the girl was--and she is the granddaughter of my
best friends."
"Sir, ye winna surely
fail me!"
"I will help you
somehow, but I will not do what you want me. I will turn the thing over in my
mind. I promise you I will do something--what, I cannot say offhand. You had
better go home again, and I will come to you to-morrow."
"Na, na, that winna
do!" said the man, half doggedly, half fiercely. "The hert ill be oot
o' my body gien I dinna du something! This verra nicht it maun be dune! I canna
bide in hell ony langer. The thoucht o' the rascal slaverin' his lees ower my
Eppy 's killin' me! My brain 's like a fire: I see the verra billows o' the
ocean as reid 's blude."
"If you come near the
castle to-night, I will have you taken up. I am too much your friend to see you
hanged! But if you go home and leave the matter to me, I will do my best, and
let you know. She shall be saved if I can compass it. What, man! you would not
have God against you?"
"He'll be upo' the side
o' the richt, I'm thinkin'!"
"Doubtless; but he has
said, 'Vengeance is mine!' He can't trust us with that. He won't have us
interfering. It's more his concern than yours yet that the lassie have fair
play. I will do my part."
They walked on in gloomy
silence for some time. Suddenly the fisherman put out his hand, seized Donal's
with a convulsive grasp, was possibly reassured by the strength with which
Donal's responded, turned, and without a word went back.
Donal had to think. Here was
a most untoward affair! What could he do? What ought he to attempt? From what
he had seen of the young lord, he could not believe he intended wrong to the
girl; but he might he selfishly amusing himself, and was hardly one to reflect
that the least idle familiarity with her was a wrong! The thing, if there was
the least truth in it, must be put a stop to at once! but it might be all a
fancy of the justly jealous lover, to whom the girl had not of late been
behaving as she ought! Or might there not be somebody else? At the same time
there was nothing absurd in the idea that a youth, fresh from college and
suddenly discompanioned at home, without society, possessed by no love of
literature, and with almost no amusements, should, if only for very ennui,
be attracted by the pretty face and figure of Eppy, and then enthralled by her
coquetries of instinctive response. There was danger to the girl both in
silence and in speech: if there was no ground for the apprehension, the very
supposition was an injury--might even suggest the thing it was intended to
frustrate! Still something must be risked! He had just been reading in sir
Philip Sidney, that "whosoever in great things will think to prevent all
objections, must lie still and do nothing." But what was he to do? The
readiest and simplest thing was to go to the youth, tell him what he had heard,
and ask him if there was any ground for it. But they must find the girl another
situation! in either case distance must be put between them! He would tell her
grandparents; but he feared, if there was any truth in it, they would have no
great influence with her. If on the other hand, the thing was groundless, they
might make it up between her and her fisherman, and have them married! She
might only have been teasing him!--He would certainly speak to the young lord!
Yet again, what if he should actually put the mischief into his thoughts! If
there should be ever so slight a leaning in the direction, might he not so give
a sudden and fatal impulse? He would take the housekeeper into his counsel! She
must understand the girl! Things would at once show themselves to her on the
one side or the other, which might reveal the path he ought to take. But did he
know mistress Brookes well enough? Would she be prudent, or spoil everything by
precipitation? She might ruin the girl if she acted without sympathy, caring
only to get the appearance of evil out of the house!
The way the legally
righteous act the policeman in the moral world would be amusing were it not so
sad. They are always making the evil "move on," driving it to do its
mischiefs to other people instead of them; dispersing nests of the degraded to
crowd them the more, and with worse results, in other parts: why should such be
shocked at the idea of sending out of the world those to whom they will not
give a place in it to lay their heads? They treat them in this world as,
according to the old theology, their God treats them in the next, keeping them
alive for sin and suffering.
Some with the bright lamp of
their intellect, others with the smoky lamp of their life, cast a shadow of God
on the wall of the universe, and then believe or disbelieve in the shadow.
Donal was still in
meditation when he reached home, and still undecided what he should do.
Crossing a small court on his way to his aerie, he saw the housekeeper making
signs to him from the window of her room. He turned and went to her. It was of
Eppy she wanted to speak to him! How often is the discovery of a planet, of a
truth, of a scientific fact, made at once in different places far apart! She
asked him to sit down, and got him a glass of milk, which was his favourite
refreshment, little imagining the expression she attributed to fatigue arose
from the very thing occupying her own thoughts.
"It's a queer
thing," she began, "for an auld wife like me to come til a yoong
gentleman like yersel', sir, wi' sic a tale; but, as the sayin' is, 'needs maun
whan the deil drives'; an' here's like to be an unco stramash aboot the place,
gien we comena thegither upo' some gait oot o' 't. Dinna luik sae scaret like,
sir; we may be in time yet er' the warst come to the warst, though it's some
ill to say what may be the warst in sic an ill coopered kin' o' affair! There's
thae twa fules o' bairns--troth, they're nae better; an' the tane 's jist as
muckle to blame as the tither--only the lass is waur to blame nor the lad,
bein' made sharper, an' kennin' better nor him what comes o' sic!--Eh, but she is
a gowk!"
Here Mrs. Brookes paused,
lost in contemplation of the gowkedness of Eppy.
She was a florid, plump,
good-looking woman, over forty, with thick auburn hair, brushed smooth--one of
those women comely in soul as well as body, who are always to the discomfiture
of wrong and the healing of strife. Left a young widow, she had refused many
offers: once was all that was required of her in the way of marriage! She had
found her husband good enough not to be followed by another, and marriage hard
enough to favour the same result. When she sat down, smoothing her apron on her
lap, and looking him in the face with clear blue eyes, he must have been either
a suspicious or an unfortunate man who would not trust her. She was a general
softener of shocks, foiler of encounters, and soother of angers. She was not
one of those housekeepers always in black silk and lace, but was mostly to be
seen in a cotton gown--very clean, but by no means imposing. She would put her
hands to anything--show a young servant how a thing ought to be done, or
relieve cook or housemaid who was ill or had a holiday. Donal had taken
to her, as like does to like.
He did not hurry her, but
waited.
"I may as weel gie ye
the haill story, sir!" she recommenced. "Syne ye'll be whaur I am
mysel'.
"I was oot i' the yard
to luik efter my hens--I never lat onybody but mysel' meddle wi' them, for
they're jist as easy sp'ilt as ither fowk's bairns; an' the twa doors o' the
barn stan'in open, I took the straucht ro'd throuw the same to win the easier
at my feathert fowk, as my auld minnie used to ca' them. I'm but a saft kin' o'
a bein', as my faither used to tell me, an' mak but little din whaur I gang,
sae they couldna hae h'ard my fut as I gaed; but what sud I hear--but I
maun tell ye it was i' the gloamin' last nicht, an' I wad hae tellt ye the same
this mornin', sir, seekin' yer fair coonsel, but ye was awa' 'afore I kenned,
an' I was resolvt no to lat anither gloamin' come ohn ta'en precautions--what
sud I hear, I say, as I was sayin', but a laich tshe--tshe--tshe, somewhaur, I
couldna tell whaur, as gien some had mair to say nor wud be spoken oot! Weel,
ye see, bein' ane accoontable tae ithers for them 'at's accoontable to me, I
stude still an' hearkent: gien a' was richt, nane wad be the waur for me; an'
gien a' wasna richt, a' sud be wrang gien I could make it sae! Weel, as I say,
I hearkent--but eh, sir! jist gie a keek oot at that door, an' see gein there
bena somebody there hearkin', for that Eppy--I wudna lippen til her ae hair!
she's as sly as an edder! Naebody there? Weel, steek ye the door, sir, an' I s'
gang on wi' my tale. I stude an' hearkent, as I was sayin', an' what sud I hear
but a twasome toot-moot, as my auld auntie frae Ebberdeen wud hae ca'd it--ae
v'ice that o' a man, an' the ither that o' a wuman, for it's strange the differ
even whan baith speyks their laichest! I was aye gleg i' the hearin', an' hae
reason for the same to be thankfu,' but I couldna, for a' my sharpness, mak oot
what they war sayin'. So, whan I saw 'at I wasna to hear, I jist set aboot
seein', an' as quaietly as my saft fit--it's safter nor it's licht--wud carry
me, I gaed aboot the barnflure, luikin' whaur onybody could be hidden awa'.
"There was a great heap
o' strae in ae corner, no hard again' the wa'; an' 'atween the wa' an' that
heap o' thrashen strae, sat the twa. Up gat my lord wi' a spang, as gien he had
been ta'en stealin'. Eppy wud hae bidden, an' creepit oot like a moose ahint my
back, but I was ower sharp for her: 'Come oot o' that, my lass,' says I. 'Oh,
mistress Brookes!' says my lord, unco ceevil, 'for my sake don't be hard upon
her.' Noo that angert me! For though I say the lass is mair to blame nor
the lad, it's no for the lad, be he lord or labourer, to lea' himsel' oot whan
the blame comes. An' says I, 'My lord,' says I, 'ye oucht to ken better! I s'
say nae mair i' the noo, for I'm ower angry. Gang yer ways--but na! no
thegither, my lord! I s' luik weel to that!--Gang up til yer ain room, Eppy!' I
said, 'an' gien I dinna see ye there whan I come in, it's awa' to your grannie
I gang this varra nicht!'
"Eppy she gaed; an' my
lord he stude there, wi' a face 'at glowert white throuw the gloamin'. I turned
upon him like a wild beast, an' says I, 'I winna speir what ye 're up til, my
lord, but ye ken weel eneuch what it luiks like! an' I wud never hae expeckit
it o' ye!' He began an' he stammert, an' he beggit me to believe there was
naething 'atween them, an' he wudna harm the lassie to save his life, an' a'
the lave o' 't, 'at I couldna i' my hert but pity them baith--twa sic bairns,
doobtless drawn thegither wi' nae thoucht o' ill, ilk ane by the bonny face o'
the ither, as is but nait'ral, though it canna be allooed! He beseekit me sae
sair 'at I foolishly promised no to tell his faither gien he on his side wud
promise no to hae mair to du wi' Eppy. An' that he did. Noo I never had reason
to doobt my yoong lord's word, but in a case o' this kin' it's aye better no to
lippen. Ony gait, the thing canna be left this wise, for gien ill cam o' 't,
whaur wud we a' be! I didna promise no to tell onybody; I'm free to tell
yersel,' maister Grant; an' ye maun contrive what's to be dune."
"I will speak to
him," said Donal, "and see what humour he is in. That will help to
clear the thing up. We will try to do right, and trust to be kept from doing
wrong."
Donal left her to go to his
room, but had not reached the top of the stair when he saw clearly that he must
speak to lord Forgue at once: he turned and went down to a room that was called
his.
When he reached it, only
Davie was there, turning over the leaves of a folio worn by fingers that had
been dust for centuries. He said Percy went out, and would not let him go with
him.
Knowing mistress Brookes was
looking after Eppy, Donal put off seeking farther for Forgue till the morrow.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXV. EVASION.">
CHAPTER XXV.
EVASION.
THE next day he could find
him nowhere, and in the evening went to see the Comins. It was pretty dark, but
the moon would be up by and by.
When he reached the
cobbler's house, he found him working as usual, only in-doors now that the
weather was colder, and the light sooner gone. He looked innocent, bright, and
contented as usual. "If God be at peace," he would say to himself,
"why should not I?" Once he said this aloud, almost unconsciously,
and was overheard: it strengthened the regard with which worldly church-goers
regarded him: he was to them an irreverent yea, blasphemous man! They did not
know God enough to understand the cobbler's words, and all the interpretation
they could give them was after their kind. Their long Sunday faces indicated
their reward; the cobbler's cheery, expectant look indicated his.
The two were just wondering
a little when he entered, that young Eppy had not made her appearance; but
then, as her grandmother said, she had often, especially during the last few
weeks, been later still! As she spoke, however, they heard her light, hurried
foot on the stair.
"Here she comes at
last!" said her grandmother, and she entered.
She said she could not get
away so easily now. Donal feared she had begun to lie. After sitting a quarter
of an hour, she rose suddenly, and said she must go, for she was wanted at
home. Donal rose also and said, as the night was dark, and the moon not yet up,
it would be better to go together. Her face flushed: she had to go into the
town first, she said, to get something she wanted! Donal replied he was in no
hurry, and would go with her. She cast an inquiring, almost suspicious look on
her grandparents, but made no further objection, and they went out together.
They walked to the High
Street, and to the shop where Donal had encountered the parson. He waited in
the street till she came out. Then they walked back the way they had come,
little thinking, either of them, that their every step was dogged. Kennedy, the
fisherman, firm in his promise not to go near the castle, could not therefore
remain quietly at home: he knew it was Eppy's day for visiting her folk, went
to the town, and had been lingering about in the hope of seeing her. Not
naturally suspicious, justifiable jealousy had rendered him such; and when he
saw the two together he began to ask whether Donal's anxiety to keep him from
encountering lord Forgue might not be due to other grounds than those given or
implied. So he followed, careful they should not see him.
They came to a baker's shop,
and, stopping at the door, Eppy, in a voice that in vain sought to be steady,
asked Donal if he would be so good as wait for her a moment, while she went in
to speak to the baker's daughter. Donal made no difficulty, and she entered,
leaving the door open as she found it.
Lowrie Leper's shop was
lighted with only one dip, too dim almost to show the sugar biscuits and
peppermint drops in the window, that drew all day the hungry eyes of the
children. A pleasant smell of bread came from it, and did what it could to
entertain him in the all but deserted street. While he stood no one entered or
issued.
"She's having a long
talk!" he said to himself, but for a long time was not impatient. He began
at length, however, to fear she must have been taken ill, or have found
something wrong in the house. When more than half an hour was gone, he thought
it time to make inquiry.
He entered therefore,
shutting the door and opening it again, to ring the spring-bell, then
mechanically closing it behind him. Straightway Mrs. Leper appeared from
somewhere to answer the squall of the shrill-tongued summoner. Donal asked if
Eppy was ready to go. The woman stared at him a moment in silence.
"Eppy wha, said
ye?" she asked at length.
"Eppy Comin," he
answered.
"I ken naething aboot
her.--Lucy!"
A good-looking girl, with a
stocking she was darning drawn over one hand and arm, followed her mother into
the shop.
"Whaur's Eppy Comin,
gien ye please?" asked Donal.
"I ken naething aboot
her. I haena seen her sin' this day week," answered the girl in a very
straight-forward manner.
Donal saw he had been
tricked, but judging it better to seek no elucidation, turned with apology to
go.
As he opened the door, there
came through the house from behind a blast of cold wind: there was an open
outer door in that direction! The girl must have slipped through the house, and
out by that door, leaving her squire to cool himself, vainly expectant, in the
street! If she had found another admirer, as probably she imagined, his polite
attentions were at the moment inconvenient!
But she had tried the trick
too often, for she had once served her fisherman in like fashion. Seeing her go
into the baker's, Kennedy had conjectured her purpose, and hurrying toward the
issue from the other exit, saw her come out of the court, and was again
following her.
Donal hastened homeward. The
moon rose. It was a lovely night. Dull-gleaming glimpses of the river came through
the light fog that hovered over it in the rising moon like a spirit-river
continually ascending from the earthly one and resting upon it, but flowing in
heavenly places. The white webs shone very white in the moon, and the green
grass looked gray. A few minutes more, and the whole country was covered with a
low-lying fog, on whose upper surface the moon shone, making it appear to
Donal's wondering eyes a wide-spread inundation, from which rose half-submerged
houses and stacks and trees. One who had never seen the thing before, and who
did not know the country, would not have doubted he looked on a veritable
expanse of water. Absorbed in the beauty of the sight he trudged on.
Suddenly he stopped: were
those the sounds of a scuffle he heard on the road before him? He ran. At the
next turn, in the loneliest part of the way, he saw something dark, like the
form of a man, lying in the middle of the road. He hastened to it. The moon
gleamed on a pool beside it. A death-like face looked heavenward: it was that
of lord Forgue--without breath or motion. There was a cut in his head: from
that the pool had flowed. He examined it as well as he could with anxious eyes.
It had almost stopped bleeding. What was he to do? What could be done? There
was but one thing! He drew the helpless form to the side of the way, and
leaning it up against the earth-dyke, sat down on the road before it, and so
managed to get it upon his back, and rise with it. If he could but get him home
unseen, much scandal might be forestalled!
On the level road he did
very well; but, strong as he was, he did not find it an easy task to climb with
such a burden the steep approach to the castle. He had little breath left when
at last he reached the platform from which rose the towering bulk.
He carried him straight to
the housekeeper's room. It was not yet more than half-past ten; and though the
servants were mostly in bed, mistress Brookes was still moving about. He laid
his burden on her sofa, and hastened to find her.
Like a sensible woman she kept
her horror and dismay to herself. She got some brandy, and between them they
managed to make him swallow a little. He began to recover. They bathed his
wound, and did for it what they could with scissors and plaster, then carried
him to his own room, and got him to bed. Donal sat down by him, and staid. His
patient was restless and wandering all the night, but towards morning fell into
a sound sleep, and was still asleep when the housekeeper came to relieve him.
As soon as Mrs. Brookes left
Donal with lord Forgue, she went to Eppy's room, and found her in bed,
pretending to be asleep. She left her undisturbed, thinking to come easier at
the truth if she took her unprepared to lie. It came out afterwards that she was
not so heartless as she seemed. She found lord Forgue waiting her upon the
road, and almost immediately Kennedy came up to them. Forgue told her to run
home at once: he would soon settle matters with the fellow. She went off like a
hare, and till she was out of sight the men stood looking at each other.
Kennedy was a powerful man, and Forgue but a stripling; the latter trusted,
however, to his skill, and did not fear his adversary. He did not know what he
was.
He seemed now in no danger,
and his attendants agreed to be silent till he recovered. It was given out that
he was keeping his room for a few days, but that nothing very serious was the
matter with him.
In the afternoon, Donal went
to find Kennedy, loitered a while about the village, and made several inquiries
after him; but no one had seen him.
Forgue recovered as rapidly
as could have been expected. Davie was troubled that he might not go and see
him, but he would have been full of question, remark, and speculation! For what
he had himself to do in the matter, Donal was but waiting till he should be
strong enough to be taken to task.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXVI. CONFRONTMENT.">
CHAPTER XXVI.
CONFRONTMENT.
AT length one evening Donal
knocked at the door of Forgue's room, and went in. He was seated in an easy
chair before a blazing fire, looking comfortable, and showing in his pale face
no sign of a disturbed conscience.
"My lord," said
Donal, "you will hardly be surprised to find I have something to talk to
you about!"
His lordship was so much
surprised that he made him no answer--only looked in his face. Donal went on:--
"I want to speak to you
about Eppy Comin," he said.
Forgue's face flamed up. The
devil of pride, and the devil of fear, and the devil of shame, all rushed to
the outworks to defend the worthless self. But his temper did not at once break
bounds.
"Allow me to remind
you, Mr. Grant," he said, "that, although I have availed myself of
your help, I am not your pupil, and you have no authority over me."
"The reminder is unnecessary,
my lord," answered Donal. "I am not your tutor, but I am the friend
of the Comins, and therefore of Eppy."
His lordship drew himself up
yet more erect in his chair, and a sneer came over his handsome countenance.
But Donal did not wait for him to speak.
"Don't imagine me, my
lord," he said, "presuming on the fact that I had the good fortune to
carry you home: that I should have done for the stable-boy in similar plight.
But as I interfered for you then, I have to interfere for Eppie now."
"Damn your insolence!
Do you think because you are going to be a parson, you may make a congregation
of me!"
"I have not the
slightest intention of being a parson," returned Donal quietly, "but
I do hope to be an honest man, and your lordship is in great danger of ceasing
to be one!"
"Get out of my
room," cried Forgue.
Donal took a seat opposite
him.
"If you do not, I
will!" said the young lord, and rose.
But ere he reached the door,
Donal was standing with his back against it. He locked it, and took out the
key. The youth glared at him, unable to speak for fury, then turned, caught up
a chair, and rushed at him. One twist of Donal's ploughman-hand wrenched it
from him. He threw it over his head upon the bed, and stood motionless and
silent, waiting till his rage should subside. In a few moments his eye began to
quail, and he went back to his seat.
"Now, my lord,"
said Donal, following his example and sitting down, "will you hear
me?"
"I'll be damned if I
do!" he answered, flaring up again at the first sound of Donal's voice.
"I'm afraid you'll be
damned if you don't," returned Donal.
His lordship took the
undignified expedient of thrusting his fingers in his ears. Donal sat quiet
until he removed them. But the moment he began to speak he thrust them in
again. Donal rose, and seizing one of his hands by the wrist, said,
"Be careful, my lord;
if you drive me to extremity, I will speak so that the house shall hear me; if
that will not do, I go straight to your father."
"You are a spy and a
sneak!"
"A man who behaves like
you, should have no terms held with him."
The youth broke out in a
fresh passion. Donal sat waiting till the futile outburst should be over. It
was presently exhausted, the rage seeming to go out for want of fuel. Nor did
he again stop his ears against the truth he saw he was doomed to hear.
"I am come," said
Donal, "to ask your lordship whether the course you are pursuing is not a
dishonourable one."
"I know what I am
about."
"So much the worse--but
I doubt it. For your mother's sake, if for no other, you should scorn to behave
to a woman as you are doing now."
"What do you please to
imagine I am doing now?"
"There is no
imagination in this--that you are behaving to Eppy as no man ought except he
meant to marry her."
"How do you know I do
not mean to marry her?"
"Do you mean to marry
her, my lord?"
"What right have you to
ask?"
"At least I live under
the same roof with you both."
"What if she knows I do
not intend to marry her?"
"My duty is equally
plain: I am the friend of her only relatives. If I did not do my best for the
poor girl, I dared not look my Master in the face!--Where is your honour, my
lord?"
"I never told her I
would marry her."
"I never supposed you
had."
"Well, what then?"
"I repeat, such
attentions as yours must naturally be supposed by any innocent girl to mean
marriage."
"Bah! she is not such a
fool!"
"I fear she is fool
enough not to know to what they must then point!"
"They point to
nothing."
"Then you take advantage
of her innocence to amuse yourself with her."
"What if she be not
quite so innocent as you would have her."
"My lord, you are a
scoundrel."
For one moment Forgue seemed
to wrestle with an all but uncontrollable fury; the next he laughed--but it was
not a nice laugh.
"Come now," he
said, "I'm glad I've put you in a rage! I've got over mine. I'll
tell you the whole truth: there is nothing between me and the girl--nothing
whatever, I give you my word, except an innocent flirtation. Ask herself."
"My lord," said
Donal, "I believe what you mean me to understand. I thought nothing worse
of it myself."
"Then why the devil
kick up such an infernal shindy about it?"
"For these reasons, my
lord:--"
"Oh, come! don't be
long-winded."
"You must hear
me."
"Go on."
"I will suppose she
does not imagine you mean to marry her."
"She can't!"
"Why not?"
"She's not a fool, and
she can't imagine me such an idiot!"
"But may she not
suppose you love her?"
He tried to laugh.
"You have never told
her so?--never said or done anything to make her think so?"
"Oh, well! she may
think so--after a sort of a fashion!"
"Would she speak to you
again if she heard you talking so of the love you give her?"
"You know as well as I
do the word has many meanings?"
"And which is she
likely to take? That which is confessedly false and worth nothing?"
"She may take which she
pleases, and drop it when she pleases."
"But now, does she not
take your words of love for more than they are worth?"
"She says I will soon
forget her."
"Will any saying keep
her from being so in love with you as to reap misery? You don't know what the
consequences may be! Her love wakened by yours, may be infinitely stronger than
yours!"
"Oh, women don't
now-a-days die for love!" said his lordship, feeling a little flattered.
"It would be well for
some of them if they did! they never get over it. She mayn't die, true! but she
may live to hate the man that led her to think he loved her, and taught her to
believe in nobody. Her whole life may be darkened because you would amuse
yourself."
"She has her share of
the amusement, and I have my share, by Jove, of the danger! She's a very
pretty, clever, engaging girl--though she is but a housemaid!" said
Forgue, as if uttering a sentiment of quite communistic liberality.
"What you say shows the
more danger to her! If you admire her so much you must have behaved to her so
much the more like a genuine lover? But any suffering the affair may have
caused you, will hardly, I fear, persuade you to the only honourable
escape!"
"By Jupiter!"
cried Forgue. "Would you have me marry the girl? That's coming it rather
strong with your friendship for the cobbler!"
"No, my lord; if things
are as you represent, I have no such desire. What I want is to put a stop to
the whole affair. Every man has to be his brother's keeper; and if our western
notions concerning women be true, a man is yet more bound to be his sister's
keeper. He who does not recognize this, be he earl or prince, is viler than the
murderous prowler after a battle. For a man to say 'she can take care of
herself,' is to speak out of essential hell. The beauty of love is, that it
does not take care of itself, but of the person loved. To approach a girl in
any other fashion is a mean scoundrelly thing. I am glad it has already brought
on you some of the chastisement it deserves."
His lordship started to his
feet in a fresh access of rage.
"You dare say that to
my face!"
"Assuredly, my lord.
The fact stands just so."
"I gave the fellow as
good as he gave me!"
"That is nothing to the
point--though from the state I found you in, it is hard to imagine. Pardon me,
I do not believe you behaved like what you call a coward."
Lord Forgue was almost
crying with rage.
"I have not done with
him yet!" he stammered. "If I only knew who the rascal is! If I don't
pay him out, may--"
"Stop, stop, my lord.
All that is mere waste! I know who the man is, but I will not tell you. He gave
you no more than you deserved, and I will do nothing to get him punished for
it."
"You are art and part
with him!"
"I neither knew of his
intent, saw him do it, nor have any proof against him."
"You will not tell me
his name?"
"No."
"I will find it out,
and kill him."
"He threatens to kill
you. I will do what I can to prevent either."
"I will kill him,"
repeated Forgue through his clenched teeth.
"And I will do my best
to have you hanged for it," said Donal.
"Leave the room, you
insolent bumpkin."
"When you have given me
your word that you will never again speak to Eppy Comin."
"I'll be damned
first."
"She will be sent
away."
"Where I shall see her
the easier."
His lordship said this more
from perversity than intent, for he had begun to wish himself clear of the
affair--only how was he to give in to this unbearable clown!
"I will give you till
to-morrow to think of it," said Donal, and opened the door.
His lordship made him no
reply, but cast after him a look of uncertain anger. Donal, turning his head as
he shut the door, saw it:
"I trust," he
said, "you will one day be glad I spoke to you plainly."
"Oh, go along with your
preaching!" cried Forgue, more testily than wrathfully; and Donal went.
In the meantime Eppy had
been soundly taken to task by Mrs. Brookes, and told that if once again she
spoke a word to lord Forgue, she should that very day have her dismissal. The
housekeeper thought she had at least succeeded in impressing upon her that she
was in danger of losing her situation in a way that must seriously affect her
character. She assured Donal that she would not let the foolish girl out of her
sight; and thereupon Donal thought it better to give lord Forgue a day to make
up his mind.
On the second morning he
came to the schoolroom when lessons were over, and said frankly,
"I've made a fool of
myself, Mr. Grant! Make what excuse for me you can. I am sorry. Believe me, I
meant no harm. I have made up my mind that all shall be over between us."
"Promise me you will
not once speak to her again."
"I don't like to do
that: it might happen to be awkward. But I promise to do my best to avoid
her."
Donald was not quite
satisfied, but thought it best to leave the thing so. The youth seemed entirely
in earnest.
For a time he remained in
doubt whether he should mention the thing to Eppy's grandparents. He reflected
that their influence with her did not seem very great, and if she were vexed by
anything they said, it might destroy what little they had. Then it would make
them unhappy, and he could not bear to think of it. He made up his mind that he
would not mention it, but, in the hope she would now change her way, leave the
past to be forgotten. He had no sooner thus resolved, however, than he grew
uncomfortable, and was unsatisfied with the decision. All would not be right
between his friend and him! Andrew Comin would have something against him! He
could no longer meet him as before, for he would be hiding something from him,
and he would have a right to reproach him! Then his inward eyes grew clear. He
said to himself, "What a man has a right to know, another has no right to
conceal from him. If sorrow belong to him, I have as little right to keep that
from him as joy. His sorrows and his joys are part of a man's inheritance. My
wisdom to take care of this man!--his own is immeasurably before mine! The
whole matter concerns him: I will let him know at once!"
The same night he went to
see him. His wife was out, and Donal was glad of it. He told him all that had
taken place.
He listened in silence, his
eyes fixed on him, his work on his lap, his hand with the awl hanging by his
side. When he heard how Eppy had tricked Donal that night, leaving him to watch
in vain, tears gathered in his old eyes. He wiped them away with the backs of
his horny hands, and there came no more. Donal told him he had first thought he
would say nothing to him about it all, he was so loath to trouble them, but
neither his heart nor his conscience would let him be silent.
"Ye did richt to tell
me," said Andrew, after a pause. "It's true we haena that muckle
weicht wi' her, for it seems a law o' natur 'at the yoong 's no to be hauden
doon by the experrience o' the auld--which can be experrience only to
themsel's; but whan we pray to God, it puts it mair in his pooer to mak use o'
's for the carryin' oot o' the thing we pray for. It's no aye by words he gies
us to say; wi' some fowk words gang for unco little; it may be whiles by a luik
o' whilk ye ken naething, or it may be by a motion o' yer han', or a turn o'
yer heid. Wha kens but ye may haud a divine pooer ower the hert ye hae 'maist
gi'en up the houp o' ever winnin' at! Ye hae h'ard o' the convic' broucht to
sorrow by seein' a bit o' the same mattin' he had been used to see i' the aisle
o' the kirk his mither tuik him til! That was a stroke o' God's magic! There's
nae kennin' what God can do, nor yet what best o' rizzons he has for no doin'
't sooner! Whan we think he's lattin' the time gang, an' doin' naething, he may
be jist doin' a' thing! No 'at I ever think like that noo; lat him do 'at he
likes, what he does I'm sure o'. I'm o' his min' whether I ken his min' or
no.--Eh, my lassie! my lassie! I could better win ower a hantle nor her giein'
you the slip that gait, sir. It was sae dooble o' her! It's naething wrang in
itsel' 'at a yoong lass sud be taen wi' the attentions o' a bonny lad like lord
Forgue! That's na agen the natur 'at God made! But to preten' an' tak in!--to
be cunnin' an' sly! that's evil. An' syne for the ither lad--eh, I doobt that's
warst o' 'a! Only I kenna hoo far she had committit hersel' wi' him, for she
was never open-hertit. Eh, sir! it's a fine thing to hae nae sacrets but sic as
lie 'atween yersel' an' yer macker! I can but pray the Father o' a' to haud his
e'e upon her, an' his airms aboot her, an' keep aff the hardenin' o' the hert
'at despises coonsel! I'm sair doobtin' we canna do muckle mair for her! She
maun tak her ain gait, for we canna put a collar roon' her neck, an' lead her
aboot whaurever we gang. She maun win her ain breid; an' gien she didna that,
she wad be but the mair ta'en up wi' sic nonsense as the likes o' lord Forgue
's aye ready to say til ony bonny lass. An' I varily believe she's safer there
wi' you an' the hoosekeeper nor whaur he could win at her easier, an' whaur
they wud be readier to tak her character fra her upo' less offence, an' sen'
her aboot her business. Fowk 's unco' jealous about their hoose 'at wad trouble
themsel's little aboot a lass! Sae lang as it's no upo' their premises,
she may do as she likes for them! Doory an' me, we'll jist lay oor cares i' the
fine sicht an' 'afore the compassionate hert o' the Maister, an' see what he
can do for 's! Sic things aiven we can lea' to him! I houp there'll be nae mair
bludeshed! He's a fine lad, Steenie Kennedy--come o' a fine stock! His father
was a God-fearin' man--some dour by natur, but wi' an unco clearin' up throuw
grace. I wud wullin'ly hae seen oor Eppy his wife; he's an honest lad! I'm
sorry he gied place to wrath, but he may hae repentit by the noo, an' troth, I
canna blame him muckle at his time o' life! It's no as gien you or me did it,
ye ken, sir!"
The chosen agonize after the
light; stretch out their hands to God; stir up themselves to lay hold upon God!
These are they who gather grace, as the mountain-tops the snow, to send down
rivers of water to their fellows. The rest are the many called, of whom not a
few have to be compelled. Alas for the one cast out!
As he was going home in the
dark of a clouded moonlight, just as he reached the place where he found lord
Forgue, Donal caught sight of the vague figure of a man apparently on the
watch, and put himself a little on his guard as he went on. It was Kennedy. He
came up to him in a hesitating way.
"Stephen," said
Donal, for he seemed to wait for him to speak first, "you may thank God
you are not now in hiding."
"I wad never hide, sir.
Gien I had killed the man, I wad hae hauden my face til't. But it was a foolish
thing to do, for it'll only gar the lass think the mair o' him: they aye side
wi' the ane they tak to be ill-used!"
"I thought you said you
would in any case have no more to do with her!" said Donal.
Kennedy was silent for a
moment.
"A body may tear at
their hert," he muttered, "but gien it winna come, what's the guid o'
sweirin' oot it maun!"
"Well," returned
Donal, "it may be some comfort to you to know that, for the present at
least, and I hope for altogether, the thing is put a stop to. The housekeeper
at the castle knows all about it, and she and I will do our best. Her
grandparents know too. Eppie herself and lord Forgue have both of them promised
there shall be no more of it. And I do believe, Kennedy, there has been nothing
more than great silliness on either side. I hope you will not forget yourself
again. You gave me a promise and broke it!"
"No i' the letter,
sir--only i' the speerit!" rejoined Kennedy: "I gaedna near the
castel!"
"'Only in the
spirit!' did you say, Stephen? What matters the word but for the spirit? The
Bible itself lets the word go any time for the spirit! Would it have been a
breach of your promise if you had gone to the castle on some service to the man
you almost murdered? If ever you lay your hand on the lad again, I'll do my
best to give you over to justice. But keep quiet, and I'll do all I can for
you."
Kennedy promised to govern
himself, and they parted friends.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXVII. THE SOUL OF THE OLD GARDEN.">
CHAPTER XXVII.
THE SOUL OF THE OLD GARDEN.
THE days went on and on, and
still Donal saw nothing, or next to nothing of the earl. Thrice he met him on
the way to the walled garden in which he was wont to take his unfrequent
exercise; on one of these occasions his lordship spoke to him courteously, the
next scarcely noticed him, the third passed him without recognition. Donal, who
with equal mind took everything as it came, troubled himself not at all about
the matter. He was doing his work as well as he knew how, and that was enough.
Now also he saw scarcely
anything of lord Forgue either; he no longer sought his superior scholarship.
Lady Arctura he saw generally once a week at the religion-lesson; of Miss
Carmichael happily nothing at all. But as he grew more familiar with the countenance
of lady Arctura, it pained him more and more to see it so sad, so far from
peaceful. What might be the cause of it?
Most well-meaning young
women are in general tolerably happy--partly perhaps because they have few or
no aspirations, not troubling themselves about what alone is the end of
thought--and partly perhaps because they despise the sadness ever ready to
assail them, as something unworthy. But if condemned to the round of a
tormenting theological mill, and at the same time consumed with strenuous
endeavour to order thoughts and feelings according to supposed requirements of
the gospel, with little to employ them and no companions to make them forget
themselves, such would be at once more sad and more worthy. The narrow ways
trodden of men are miserable; they have high walls on each side, and but an
occasional glimpse of the sky above; and in such paths lady Arctura was trying
to walk. The true way, though narrow, is not unlovely: most footpaths are
lovelier than high roads. It may be full of toil, but it cannot be miserable.
It has not walls, but fields and forests and gardens around it, and limitless
sky overhead. It has its sorrows, but many of them lie only on its borders, and
they that leave the path gather them. Lady Arctura was devouring her soul in
silence, with such effectual help thereto as the self-sufficient friend, who
had never encountered a real difficulty in her life, plenteously gave her. Miss
Carmichael dealt with her honestly according to her wisdom, but that wisdom was
foolishness; she said what she thought right, but was wrong in what she counted
right; nay, she did what she thought right--but no amount of doing wrong right
can set the soul on the high table-land of freedom, or endow it with liberating
help.
The autumn passed, and the
winter was at hand--a terrible time to the old and ailing even in tracts nearer
the sun--to the young and healthy a merry time even in the snows and bitter
frosts of eastern Scotland. Davie looked chiefly to the skating, and in
particular to the pleasure he was going to have in teaching Mr. Grant, who had
never done any sliding except on the soles of his nailed shoes: when the time
came, he acquired the art the more rapidly that he never minded what blunders
he made in learning a thing. The dread of blundering is a great bar to success.
He visited the Comins often,
and found continual comfort and help in their friendship. The letters he
received from home, especially those of his friend sir Gibbie, who not
unfrequently wrote also for Donal's father and mother, were a great nourishment
to him.
As the cold and the nights
grew, the water-level rose in Donal's well, and the poetry began to flow. When
we have no summer without, we must supply it from within. Those must have
comfort in themselves who are sent to help others. Up in his aerie, like an
eagle above the low affairs of the earth, he led a keener life, breathed the
breath of a more genuine existence than the rest of the house. No doubt the old
cobbler, seated at his last over a mouldy shoe, breathed a yet higher air than
Donal weaving his verse, or reading grand old Greek, in his tower; but Donal
was on the same path, the only path with an infinite end--the divine destiny.
He had often thought of
trying the old man with some of the best poetry he knew, desirous of knowing
what receptivity he might have for it; but always when with him had hitherto
forgot his proposed inquiry, and thought of it again only after he had left
him: the original flow of the cobbler's life put the thought of testing it out
of his mind.
One afternoon, when the last
of the leaves had fallen, and the country was bare as the heart of an old man
who has lived to himself, Donal, seated before a great fire of coal and
boat-logs, fell a thinking of the old garden, vanished with the summer, but
living in the memory of its delight. All that was left of it at the foot of the
hill was its corpse, but its soul was in the heaven of Donal's spirit, and
there this night gathered to itself a new form. It grew and grew in him, till
it filled with its thoughts the mind of the poet. He turned to his table, and
began to write: with many emendations afterwards, the result was this:--
THE OLD GARDEN.
I.
I stood in an ancient garden
With high red walls around;
Over them gray and green
lichens
In shadowy arabesque wound.
The topmost climbing
blossoms
On fields kine-haunted looked out;
But within were shelter and
shadow,
And daintiest odours about.
There were alleys and
lurking arbours--
Deep glooms into which to dive;
The lawns were as soft as
fleeces--
Of daisies I counted but five.
The sun-dial was so aged
It had gathered a thoughtful grace;
And the round-about of the
shadow
Seemed to have furrowed its face.
The flowers were all of the
oldest
That ever in garden sprung;
Red, and blood-red, and dark
purple,
The rose-lamps flaming hung.
Along the borders fringéd
With broad thick edges of box,
Stood fox-gloves and
gorgeous poppies,
And great-eyed hollyhocks.
There were junipers trimmed
into castles,
And ash-trees bowed into tents;
For the garden, though
ancient and pensive,
Still wore quaint ornaments.
It was all so stately
fantastic,
Its old wind hardly would stir:
Young Spring, when she
merrily entered,
Must feel it no place for her!
II.
I stood in the summer
morning
Under a cavernous yew;
The sun was gently climbing,
And the scents rose after the dew.
I saw the wise old mansion,
Like a cow in the noonday-heat,
Stand in a pool of shadows
That rippled about its feet.
Its windows were oriel and
latticed,
Lowly and wide and fair;
And its chimneys like
clustered pillars
Stood up in the thin blue air.
White doves, like the
thoughts of a lady,
Haunted it in and out;
With a train of green and
blue comets,
The peacock went marching about.
The birds in the trees were
singing
A song as old as the world,
Of love and green leaves and
sunshine,
And winter folded and furled.
They sang that never was
sadness
But it melted and passed away;
They sang that never was
darkness
But in came the conquering day.
And I knew that a maiden
somewhere,
In a sober sunlit gloom,
In a nimbus of shining
garments,
An aureole of white-browed bloom,
Looked out on the garden
dreamy,
And knew not that it was old;
Looked past the gray and the
sombre,
And saw but the green and the gold.
III.
I stood in the gathering
twilight,
In a gently blowing wind;
And the house looked half
uneasy,
Like one that was left behind.
The roses had lost their
redness,
And cold the grass had grown;
At roost were the pigeons
and peacock,
And the dial was dead gray stone.
The world by the gathering
twilight
In a gauzy dusk was clad;
It went in through my eyes
to my spirit,
And made me a little sad.
Grew and gathered the
twilight,
And filled my heart and brain;
The sadness grew more than
sadness,
And turned to a gentle pain.
Browned and brooded the
twilight,
And sank down through the calm,
Till it seemed for some
human sorrows
There could not be any balm.
IV.
Then I knew that, up a
staircase,
Which untrod will yet creak and shake,
Deep in a distant chamber,
A ghost was coming awake.
In the growing darkness
growing--
Growing till her eyes appear,
Like spots of a deeper
twilight,
But more transparent clear--
Thin as hot air
up-trembling,
Thin as a sun-molten crape,
The deepening shadow of
something
Taketh a certain shape;
A shape whose hands are
uplifted
To throw back her blinding hair;
A shape whose bosom is
heaving,
But draws not in the air.
And I know, by what time the
moonlight
On her nest of shadows will sit,
Out on the dim lawn gliding
That shadow of shadows will flit.
V.
The moon is dreaming upward
From a sea of cloud and gleam;
She looks as if she had seen
us
Never but in a dream.
Down that stair I know she
is coming,
Bare-footed, lifting her train;
It creaks not--she hears it
creaking,
For the sound is in her brain.
Out at the side-door she's
coming,
With a timid glance right and left!
Her look is hopeless yet
eager,
The look of a heart bereft.
Across the lawn she is
flitting,
Her eddying robe in the wind!
Are her fair feet bending
the grasses?
Her hair is half lifted behind!
VI.
Shall I stay to look on her
nearer?
Would she start and vanish away?
No, no; she will never see
me,
If I stand as near as I may!
It is not this wind she is
feeling,
Not this cool grass below;
'Tis the wind and the grass
of an evening
A hundred years ago.
She sees no roses darkling,
No stately hollyhocks dim;
She is only thinking and
dreaming
Of the garden, the night, and him;
Of the unlit windows behind
her,
Of the timeless dial-stone,
Of the trees, and the moon,
and the shadows,
A hundred years agone.
'Tis a night for all ghostly
lovers
To haunt the best-loved spot:
Is he come in his dreams to
this garden?
I gaze, but I see him not.
VII.
I will not look on her
nearer--
My heart would be torn in twain;
From mine eyes the garden
would vanish
In the falling of their rain!
I will not look on a sorrow
That darkens into despair;
On the surge of a heart that
cannot--
Yet cannot cease to bear!
My soul to hers would be
calling--
She would hear no word it said;
If I cried aloud in the
stillness,
She would never turn her head!
She is dreaming the sky
above her,
She is dreaming the earth below:--
This night she lost her
lover,
A hundred years ago.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXVIII. A PRESENCE YET NOT A PRESENCE.">
CHAPTER XXVIII.
A PRESENCE YET NOT A
PRESENCE.
THE twilight had fallen
while he wrote, and the wind had risen. It was now blowing a gale. When he
could no longer see, he rose to light his lamp, and looked out of the window.
All was dusk around him. Above and below was nothing to be distinguished from the
mass; nothing and something seemed in it to share an equal uncertainty. He
heard the wind, but could not see the clouds that swept before it, for all was
cloud overhead, and no change of light or feature showed the shifting of the
measureless bulk. Gray stormy space was the whole idea of the creation. He was
gazing into a void--was it not rather a condition of things inappreciable by
his senses? A strange feeling came over him as of looking from a window in the
wall of the visible into the region unknown, to man shapeless quite, therefore
terrible, wherein wander the things all that have not yet found or form or
sensible embodiment, so as to manifest themselves to eyes or ears or hands of
mortals. As he gazed, the huge shapeless hulks of the ships of chaos, dimly
awful suggestions of animals uncreate, yet vaguer motions of what was not, came
heaving up, to vanish, even from the fancy, as they approached his window.
Earth lay far below, invisible; only through the night came the moaning of the
sea, as the wind drove it, in still enlarging waves, upon the flat shore, a
level of doubtful grass and sand, three miles away. It seemed to his heart as
if the moaning were the voice of the darkness, lamenting, like a repentant
Satan or Judas, that it was not the light, could not hold the light, might not
become as the light, but must that moment cease when the light began to enter
it. Darkness and moaning was all that the earth contained! Would the souls of
the mariners shipwrecked this night go forth into the ceaseless turmoil? or
would they, leaving behind them the sense for storms, as for all things soft
and sweet as well, enter only a vast silence, where was nothing to be aware of
but each solitary self? Thoughts and theories many passed through Donal's mind
as he sought to land the conceivable from the wandering bosom of the limitless;
and he was just arriving at the conclusion, that, as all things seen must be
after the fashion of the unseen whence they come, as the very genius of
embodiment is likeness, therefore the soul of man must of course have natural
relations with matter; but, on the other hand, as the spirit must be the home
and origin of all this moulding, assimilating, modelling energy, and the spirit
only that is in harmonious oneness with its origin can fully exercise the
deputed creative power, it can be only in proportion to the eternal life in
them, that spirits are able to draw to themselves matter and clothe themselves
in it, so entering into full relation with the world of storms and sunsets;--he
was, I say, just arriving at this hazarded conclusion, when he started out of
his reverie, and was suddenly all ear to listen.--Again!--Yes! it was the same
sound that had sent him that first night wandering through the house in
fruitless quest! It came in two or three fitful chords that melted into each
other like the colours in the lining of a shell, then ceased. He went to the
door, opened it, and listened. A cold wind came rushing up the stair. He heard
nothing. He stepped out on the stair, shut his door, and listened. It came
again--a strange unearthly musical cry! If ever disembodied sound went
wandering in the wind, just such a sound must it be! Knowing little of music
save in the forms of tone and vowel-change and rhythm and rime, he felt as if
he could have listened for ever to the wild wandering sweetness of its
lamentation. Almost immediately it ceased--then once more came again,
apparently from far off, dying away on the distant tops of the billowy air, out
of whose wandering bosom it had first issued. It was as the wailing of a
summer-wind caught and swept along in a tempest from the frozen north.
The moment he ceased to
expect it any more, he began to think whether it must not have come from the
house. He stole down the stair--to do what, he did not know. He could not go
following an airy nothing all over the castle: of a great part of it he as yet
knew nothing! His constructive mind had yearned after a complete idea of the
building, for it was almost a passion with him to fit the outsides and insides
of things together; but there were suites of rooms into which, except the earl
and lady Arctura were to leave home, he could not hope to enter. It was little
more than mechanically therefore that he went vaguely after the sound; and ere
he was half-way down the stair, he recognized the hopelessness of the pursuit.
He went on, however, to the schoolroom, where tea was waiting him.
He had returned to his room,
and was sitting again at work, now reading and meditating, when, in one of the
lulls of the storm, he became aware of another sound--one most unusual to his
ears, for he never required any attendance in his room--that of steps coming up
the stair--heavy steps, not as of one on some ordinary errand. He waited
listening. The steps came nearer and nearer, and stopped at his door. A hand
fumbled about upon it, found the latch, lifted it, and entered. To Donal's
wonder--and dismay as well, it was the earl. His dismay arose from his
appearance: he was deadly pale, and his eyes more like those of a corpse than a
man among his living fellows. Donal started to his feet.
The apparition turned its
head towards him; but in its look was no atom of recognition, no acknowledgment
or even perception of his presence; the sound of his rising had had merely a
half-mechanical influence upon its brain. It turned away immediately, and went
on to the window. There it stood, much as Donal had stood a little while
before--looking out, but with the attitude of one listening rather than one
trying to see. There was indeed nothing but the blackness to be seen--and
nothing to be heard but the roaring of the wind, with the roaring of the great
billows rolled along in it. As it stood, the time to Donal seemed long: it was
but about five minutes. Was the man out of his mind, or only a sleep-walker?
How could he be asleep so early in the night?
As Donal stood doubting and
wondering, once more came the musical cry out of the darkness--and immediately
from the earl a response--a soft, low murmur, by degrees becoming audible, in
the tone of one meditating aloud, but in a restrained ecstacy. From his words
he seemed still to be hearkening the sounds aerial, though to Donal at least
they came no more.
"Yet once again,"
he murmured, "once again ere I forsake the flesh, are my ears blest with
that voice! It is the song of the eternal woman! For me she sings!--Sing on,
siren; my soul is a listening universe, and therein nought but thy voice!"
He paused, and began
afresh:--
"It is the wind in the
tree of life! Its leaves rustle in words of love. Under its shadow I shall lie,
with her I loved--and killed! Ere that day come, she will have forgiven and
forgotten, and all will be well!
"Hark the notes! Clear
as a flute! Full and stringent as a violin! They are colours! They are flowers!
They are alive! I can see them as they grow, as they blow! Those are primroses!
Those are pimpernels! Those high, intense, burning tones--so soft, yet so
certain--what are they? Jasmine?--No, that flower is not a note! It is a
chord!--and what a chord! I mean, what a flower! I never saw that flower
before--never on this earth! It must be a flower of the paradise whence
comes the music! It is! It is! Do I not remember the night when I sailed in the
great ship over the ocean of the stars, and scented the airs of heaven, and saw
the pearly gates gleaming across myriads of wavering miles!--saw, plain as I
see them now, the flowers on the fields within! Ah, me! the dragon that guards
the golden apples! See his crest--his crest and his emerald eyes! He comes
floating up through the murky lake! It is Geryon!--come to bear me to the gyre
below!"
He turned, and with a
somewhat quickened step left the room, hastily shutting the door behind him, as
if to keep back the creature of his vision.
Strong-hearted and
strong-brained, Donal had yet stood absorbed as if he too were out of the body,
and knew nothing more of this earth. There is something more terrible in a
presence that is not a presence than in a vision of the bodiless; that is, a
present ghost is not so terrible as an absent one, a present but deserted body.
He stood a moment helpless, then pulled himself together and tried to think.
What should he do? What could he do? What was required of him? Was
anything required of him? Had he any right to do anything? Could anything be
done that would not both be and cause a wrong? His first impulse was to follow:
a man in such a condition was surely not to be left to go whither he would
among the heights and depths of the castle, where he might break his neck any
moment! Interference no doubt was dangerous, but he would follow him at least a
little way! He heard the steps going down the stair, and made haste after them.
But ere they could have reached the bottom, the sound of them ceased; and Donal
knew the earl must have left the stair at a point from which he could not
follow him.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXIX. EPPY AGAIN.">
CHAPTER XXIX.
EPPY AGAIN.
HE would gladly have told
his friend the cobbler all about the strange occurrence; but he did not feel
sure it would be right to carry a report of the house where he held a position
of trust; and what made him doubtful was, that first he doubted whether the
cobbler would consider it right. But he went to see him the next day, in the
desire to be near the only man to whom it was possible he might tell what he
had seen.
The moment he entered the
room, where the cobbler as usual sat at work by his wife, he saw that something
was the matter. But they welcomed him with their usual cordiality, nor was it
many minutes before mistress Comin made him acquainted with the cause of their
anxiety.
"We're jist a wee
triblet, sir," she said, "aboot Eppy!"
"I am very sorry,"
said Donal, with a pang: he had thought things were going right with her.
"What is the matter?"
"It's no sae easy to say!"
returned the grandmother. "It may weel be only a fancy o' the auld fowk,
but it seems to baith o' 's she has a w'y wi' her 'at disna come o' the richt.
She'll be that meek as gien she thoucht naething at a' o' hersel', an' the next
moment be angert at a word. She canna bide a syllable said 'at 's no correc' to
the verra hair. It's as gien she dreidit waur 'ahint it, an' wud mairch
straucht to the defence. I'm no makin' my meanin' that clear, I doobt; but
ye'll ken 't for a' that!"
"I think I do,"
said Donal. "--I see nothing of her."
"I wudna mak a won'er
o' that, sir! She may weel haud oot o' your gait, feelin' rebukit 'afore
ane 'at kens a' aboot her gaein's on wi' my lord!"
"I don't know how I
should see her, though!" returned Donal.
"Didna she sweep oot
the schoolroom first whan ye gaed, sir?"
"When I think of
it--yes."
"Does she still that
same?"
"I do not know.
Understanding at what hour in the morning the room will be ready for me, I do
not go to it sooner."
"It's but the luik, an'
the general cairriage o' the lassie!" said the old woman. "Gien we
had onything to tak a haud o', we wad maybe think the less. True, she was aye
some--what ye micht ca' a bit cheengeable in her w'ys; but she was aye, whan
she had the chance, unco' willin' to gie her faither there or mysel' a spark o'
glaidness like. It pleased her to be pleasin' i' the eyes o' the auld fowk,
though they war but her ain. But noo we maunna say a word til her. We hae nae
business to luik til her for naething! No 'at she's aye like that; but it comes
sae aft 'at at last we daur hardly open oor moo's for the fear o' hoo she'll
tak it. Only a' the time it's mair as gien she was flingin' something frae her,
something she didna like an' wud fain be rid o', than 'at she cared sae verra
muckle aboot onything we said no til her min'. She taks a haud o' the words, no
doobt! but I canna help thinkin' 'at 'maist whatever we said, it wud be the
same. Something to compleen o' 's never wantin' whan ye're ill-pleast
a'ready!"
"It's no the duin' o' the
richt, ye see," said the cobbler, "--I mean, that's no itsel' the
en', but the richt humour o' the sowl towards a' things thoucht or felt or
dune! That's richteousness, an' oot o' that comes, o' the verra necessity o'
natur', a' richt deeds o' whatever kin'. Whaur they comena furth, it's whaur
the sowl, the thoucht o' the man 's no richt. Oor puir lassie shaws a' mainner
o' sma' infirmities jist 'cause the humour o' her sowl 's no hermonious wi' the
trowth, no hermonious in itsel', no at ane wi' the true thing--wi' the true
man--wi' the true God. It may even be said it's a sma' thing 'at a man sud du
wrang, sae lang as he's capable o' duin' wrang, an' lovesna the richt wi' hert
an' sowl. But eh, it's no a sma' thing 'at he sud be capable!"
"Surely, Anerew,"
interposed his wife, holding up her hands in mild deprecation, "ye wudna
lat the lassie du wrang gien ye could haud her richt?"
"No, I wudna,"
replied her husband, "--supposin' the haudin' o' her richt to fa' in wi'
ony degree o' perception o' the richt on her pairt. But supposin' it was only
the haudin' o' her frae ill by ootward constraint, leavin' her ready upo' the
first opportunity to turn aside; whereas, gien she had dune wrang, she wud
repent o' 't, an' see what a foul thing it was to gang again' the holy wull o'
him 'at made an' dee'd for her--I lea' ye to jeedge for yersel' what ony man
'at luved God an' luved the lass an' luved the richt, wud chuise. We maun haud
baith een open upo' the trowth, an' no blink sidewise upo' the warl' an' its
richteousness wi' ane o' them. Wha wadna be Zacchay wi' the Lord in his hoose,
an' the richteousness o' God himsel' growin' in his hert, raither nor the prood
Pharisee wha kent nae ill he was duin', an' thoucht it a shame to speak to sic
a man as Zacchay!"
The grandmother held her
peace, thinking probably that so long as one kept respectable, there remained
the more likelihood of a spiritual change.
"Is there anything you
think I could do?" asked Donal. "I confess I'm afraid of
meddling."
"I wudna hae you
appear, sir," said Andrew, "in onything, concernin' her. Ye're a
yoong man yersel', an' fowk's herts as well as fowk's tongues are no to be
lippent til. I hae seen fowk, 'cause they couldna believe a body duin' a thing
frae a sma' modicum o' gude wull, set themsel's to invent what they ca'd a
motive til accoont for't--something, that is, that wud hae prevailt wi'
themsel's to gar them du't. Sic fowk canna un'erstan' a body duin' onything
jist 'cause it was worth duin' in itsel'!"
"But maybe," said
the old woman, returning to the practical, "as ye hae been pleased to say
ye're on freen'ly terms wi' mistress Brookes, ye micht jist see gien she 's
observed ony ten'ency to resumption o' the auld affair!"
Donal promised, and as soon
as he reached the castle sought an interview with the house keeper. She told
him she had been particularly pleased of late with Eppy's attention to her
work, and readiness to make herself useful. If she did look sometimes a little
out of heart, they must remember, she said, that they had been young themselves
once, and that it was not so easy to forget as to give up. But she would keep
her eyes open!
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXX. LORD MORVEN.">
CHAPTER XXX.
LORD MORVEN.
THE winter came at last in
good earnest--first black frost, then white snow, then sleet and wind and rain;
then snow again, which fell steady and calm, and lay thick. After that came
hard frost, and brought plenty of skating, and to Davie the delight of teaching
his master. Donal had many falls, but was soon, partly in virtue of those same
falls, a very decent skater. Davie claimed all the merit of his successful
training; and when his master did anything particularly well, would remark with
pride, that he had taught him. But the good thing in it for Davie was, that he
noted the immediate faith with which Donal did or tried to do what he told him:
this reacted in opening his mind to the beauty and dignity of obedience, and
went a long way towards revealing the low moral condition of the man who seeks
freedom through refusal to act at the will of another. He who does so will come
by degrees to have no will of his own, and act only from impulse--which may be
the will of a devil. So Donal and Davie grew together into one heart of
friendship. Donal never longed for his hours with Davie to pass, and Davie was
never so happy as when with Donal. The one was gently leading the other into
the paths of liberty. Nothing but the teaching of him who made the human soul
can make that soul free, but it is in great measure through those who have
already learned that he teaches; and Davie was an apt pupil, promising to need
less of the discipline of failure and pain that he was strong to believe, and
ready to obey.
But Donal was not all the day
with Davie, and latterly had begun to feel a little anxious about the time the
boy spent away from him--partly with his brother, partly with the people about
the stable, and partly with his father, who evidently found the presence of his
younger son less irksome to him than that of any other person, and saw more of
him than of Forgue: the amount of loneliness the earl could endure was amazing.
But after what he had seen and heard, Donal was most anxious concerning his
time with his father, only he felt it a delicate thing to ask him about it. At
length, however, Davie himself opened up the matter.
"Mr. Grant," he
said one day, "I wish you could hear the grand fairy-stories my papa
tells!"
"I wish I might!"
answered Donal.
"I will ask him to let
you come and hear. I have told him you can make fairy-tales too; only he has
quite another way of doing it;--and I must confess," added Davie a little
pompously, "I do not follow him so easily as you.--Besides," he
added, "I never can find anything in what you call the cupboard behind the
curtain of the story. I wonder sometimes if his stories have any cupboard!--I
will ask him to-day to let you come."
"I think that would
hardly do," said Donal. "Your father likes to tell his boy
fairy-tales, but he might not care to tell them to a man. You must remember,
too, that though I have been in the house what you think a long time,
your father has seen very little of me, and might feel me in the way: invalids
do not generally enjoy the company of strangers. You had better not ask
him."
"But I have often told
him how good you are, Mr. Grant, and how you can't bear anything that is not
right, and I am sure he must like you--I don't mean so well as I do, because
you haven't to teach him anything, and nobody can love anybody so well as the
one he teaches to be good."
"Still I think you had
better leave it alone lest he should not like your asking him. I should be
sorry to have you disappointed."
"I do not mind that so
much as I used. If you do not tell me I am not to do it, I think I will
venture."
Donal said no more. He did
not feel at liberty, from his own feeling merely, to check the boy. The thing
was not wrong, and something might be intended to come out of it! He shrank
from the least ruling of events, believing man's only call to action is
duty. So he left Davie to do as he pleased.
"Does your father often
tell you a fairy-tale?" he asked.
"Not every day,
sir."
"What time does he tell
them?"
"Generally when I go to
him after tea."
"Do you go any time you
like?"
"Yes; but he does not
always let me stay. Sometimes he talks about mamma, I think; but only coming
into the fairy-tale.--He has told me one in the middle of the day! I
think he would if I woke him up in the night! But that would not do, for he has
terrible headaches. Perhaps that is what sometimes makes his stories so
terrible I have to beg him to stop!"
"And does he
stop?"
"Well--no--I don't
think he ever does.--When a story is once begun, I suppose it ought to be
finished!"
So the matter rested for the
time. But about a week after, Donal received one morning through the butler an
invitation to dine with the earl, and concluded it was due to Davie, whom he therefore
expected to find with his father. He put on his best clothes, and followed
Simmons up the grand staircase. The great rooms of the castle were on the first
floor, but he passed the entrance to them, following his guide up and up to the
second floor, where the earl had his own apartment. Here he was shown into a
small room, richly furnished after a sombrely ornate fashion, the drapery and
coverings much faded, worn even to shabbiness. It had been for a century or so
the private sitting-room of the lady of the castle, but was now used by the
earl, perhaps in memory of his wife. Here he received his sons, and now Donal,
but never any whom business or politeness compelled him to see.
There was no one in the room
when Donal entered, but after about ten minutes a door opened at the further
end, and lord Morven appearing from his bedroom, shook hands with him with some
faint show of kindness. Almost the same moment the butler entered from a third
door, and said dinner waited. The earl walked on, and Donal followed. This room
also was a small one. The meal was laid on a little round table. There were but
two covers, and Simmons alone was in waiting.
While they ate and drank,
which his lordship did sparingly, not a word was spoken. Donal would have found
it embarrassing had he not been prepared for the peculiar. His lordship took no
notice of his guest, leaving him to the care of the butler. He looked very
white and worn--Donal thought a good deal worse than when he saw him first. His
cheeks were more sunken, his hair more gray, and his eyes more weary--with a
consuming fire in them that had no longer much fuel and was burning remnants.
He stooped over his plate as if to hide the operation of eating, and drank his
wine with a trembling hand. Every movement indicated indifference to both his
food and his drink.
At length the more solid
part of the meal was removed, and they were left alone, fruit upon the table,
and two wine-decanters. From one of them the earl helped himself, then passed
it to Donal, saying,
"You are very good to
my little Davie, Mr. Grant! He is full of your kindness to him. There is nobody
like you!"
"A little goes a long
way with Davie, my lord," answered Donal.
"Then much must go a
longer way!" said the earl.
There was nothing remarkable
in the words, yet he spoke them with the difficulty a man accustomed to speak,
and to weigh his words, might find in clothing a new thought to his
satisfaction. The effort seemed to have tried him, and he took a sip of wine.
This, however, he did after every briefest sentence he uttered: a sip only he
took, nothing like a mouthful.
Donal told him that Davie,
of all the boys he had known, was far the quickest, and that just because he
was morally the most teachable.
"You greatly gratify
me, Mr. Grant," said the earl. "I have long wished such a man as you
for Davie. If only I had known you when Forgue was preparing for college!"
"I must have been at
that time only at college myself, my lord!"
"True! true!"
"But for Davie, it is a
privilege to teach him!"
"If only it might last
a while!" returned the earl. "But of course you have the church in
your eye!"
"My lord, I have
not."
"What!" cried his lordship
almost eagerly; "you intend giving your life to teaching?"
"My lord,"
returned Donal, "I never trouble myself about my life. Why should we
burden the mule of the present with the camel-load of the future. I take what
comes--what is sent me, that is."
"You are right, Mr.
Grant! If I were in your position, I should think just as you do. But, alas, I
have never had any choice!"
"Perhaps your lordship
has not chosen to choose!" Donal was on the point of saying, but bethought
himself in time not to hazard the remark.
"If I were a rich man,
Mr. Grant," the earl continued, "I would secure your services for a
time indefinite; but, as every one knows, not an acre of the property belongs
to me, or goes with the title. Davie, dear boy, will have nothing but a
thousand or two. The marriage I have in view for lord Forgue will arrange a
future for him."
"I hope there will be
some love in the marriage!" said Donal uneasily, with a vague thought of
Eppy.
"I had no
intention," returned his lordship with cold politeness, "of troubling
you concerning lord Forgue!"
"I beg your pardon, my
lord," said Donal.
"--Davie, poor boy--he
is my anxiety!" resumed the earl, in his former condescendingly friendly,
half sleepy tone. "What to do with him, I have not yet succeeded in
determining. If the church of Scotland were episcopal now, we might put him
into that: he would be an honour to it! But as it has no dignities to confer,
it is not the place for one of his birth and social position. A few shabby
hundreds a year, and the associations he would necessarily be thrown
into!--However honourable the profession in itself!" he added, with a bow
to Donal, apparently unable to get it out of his head that he had an
embryo-clergyman before him.
"Davie is not quite a
man yet," said Donal; "and by the time he begins to think of a
profession, he will, I trust, be fit to make a choice: the boy has a great deal
of common sense. If your lordship will pardon me, I cannot help thinking there
is no need to trouble about him."
"It is very well for
one in your position to think in that way, Mr. Grant! Men like you are free to
choose; you may make your bread as you please. But men in our position are
greatly limited in their choice; the paths open to them are few. Tradition
oppresses us. We are slaves to the dead and buried. I could well wish I had
been born in your humbler but in truth less contracted sphere. Certain rôles
are not open to you, to be sure; but your life in the open air, following your
sheep, and dreaming all things beautiful and grand in the world beyond you, is
entrancing. It is the life to make a poet!"
"Or a king!"
thought Donal. "But the earl would have made a discontented
shepherd!"
The man who is not content
where he is, would never have been content somewhere else, though he might have
complained less.
"Take another glass of
wine, Mr. Grant," said his lordship, filling his own from the other
decanter. "Try this; I believe you will like it better."
"In truth, my
lord," answered Donal, "I have drunk so little wine that I do not
know one sort from another."
"You know whisky
better, I daresay! Would you like some now? Touch the bell behind you."
"No, thank you, my
lord; I know as little about whisky: my mother would never let us even taste
it, and I have never tasted it."
"A new taste is a gain
to the being."
"I suspect, however, a
new appetite can only be a loss."
As he said this, Donal, half
mechanically, filled a glass from the decanter his host had pushed towards him.
"I should like you,
though," resumed his lordship, after a short pause, "to keep your
eyes open to the fact that Davie must do something for himself. You would then
be able to let me know by and by what you think him fit for!"
"I will with pleasure,
my lord. Tastes may not be infallible guides to what is fit for us, but they
may lead us to the knowledge of what we are fit for."
"Extremely well
said!" returned the earl.
I do not think he understood
in the least what Donal meant.
"Shall I try how he
takes to trigonometry? He might care to learn land-surveying! Gentlemen now,
not unfrequently, take charge of the properties of their more favoured
relatives. There is Mr. Graeme, your own factor, my lord--a relative, I
understand!"
"A distant one,"
answered his lordship with marked coldness, "--the degree of relationship
hardly to be counted."
"In the lowlands, my
lord, you do not care to count kin as we do in the highlands! My heart warms to
the word kinsman."
"You have not found
kinship so awkward as I, possibly!" said his lordship, with a watery
smile. "The man in humble position may allow the claim of kin to any
extent: he has nothing, therefore nothing can be taken from him! But the man
who has would be the poorest of the clan if he gave to every needy
relation."
"I never knew the man
so poor," answered Donal, "that he had nothing to give. But the
things of the poor are hardly to the purpose of the predatory relative."
"'Predatory
relative!'--a good phrase!" said his lordship, with a sleepy laugh, though
his eyes were wide open. His lips did not seem to care to move, yet he looked
pleased. "To tell you the truth," he began again, "at one period
of my history I gave and gave till I was tired of giving! Ingratitude was the
sole return. At one period I had large possessions--larger than I like to think
of now: if I had the tenth part of what I have given away, I should not be
uneasy concerning Davie."
"There is no fear of
Davie, my lord, so long as he is brought up with the idea that he must work for
his bread."
His lordship made no answer,
and his look reminded Donal of that he wore when he came to his chamber. A
moment, and he rose and began to pace the room. An indescribable suggestion of
an invisible yet luminous cloud hovered about his forehead and eyes--which latter,
if not fixed on very vacancy, seemed to have got somewhere near it. At the
fourth or fifth turn he opened the door by which he had entered, continuing a
remark he had begun to Donal--of which, although he heard every word and seemed
on the point of understanding something, he had not caught the sense when his
lordship disappeared, still talking. Donal thought it therefore his part to
follow him, and found himself in his lordship's bedroom. But out of this his
lordship had already gone, through an opposite door, and Donal still following
entered an old picture-gallery, of which he had heard Davie speak, but which
the earl kept private for his exercise indoors. It was a long, narrow place,
hardly more than a wide corridor, and appeared nowhere to afford distance
enough for seeing a picture. But Donal could ill judge, for the sole light in
the place came from the fires and candles in the rooms whose doors they had
left open behind them, with just a faint glimmer from the vapour-buried moon,
sufficing to show the outline of window after window, and revealing something
of the great length of the gallery.
By the time Donal overtook
the earl, he was some distance down, holding straight on into the long dusk,
and still talking.
"This is my favourite
promenade," he said, as if brought to himself by the sound of Donal's
overtaking steps. "After dinner always, Mr. Grant, wet weather or dry,
still or stormy, I walk here. What do I care for the weather! It will be time
when I am old to consult the barometer!"
Donal wondered a little:
there seemed no great hardihood in the worst of weather to go pacing a
picture-gallery, where the fiercest storm that ever blew could send in only
little threads of air through the chinks of windows and doors!
"Yes," his
lordship went on, "I taught myself hardship in my boyhood, and I reap the
fruits of it in my prime!--Come up here: I will show you a prospect
unequalled."
He stopped in front of a
large picture, and began to talk as if expatiating on the points of a landscape
outspread before him. His remarks belonged to something magnificent; but
whether they were applicable to the picture Donal could not tell; there was
light enough only to give a faint gleam to its gilded frame.
"Reach beyond
reach!" said his lordship; "endless! infinite! How would not poor
Maldon, with his ever fresh ambition after the unattainable, have gloated on
such a scene! In Nature alone you front success! She does what she means! She
alone does what she means!"
"If," said Donal,
more for the sake of confirming the earl's impression that he had a listener,
than from any idea that he would listen--"if you mean the object of Nature
is to present us with perfection, I cannot allow she does what she intends: you
rarely see her produce anything she would herself call perfect. But if her
object be to make us behold perfection with the inner eye, this object she
certainly does gain, and that just by stopping short of--"
He did not finish the
sentence. A sudden change was upon him, absorbing him so that he did not even try
to account for it: something seemed to give way in his head--as if a bubble
burst in his brain; and from that moment whatever the earl said, and whatever
arose in his own mind, seemed to have outward existence as well. He heard and
knew the voice of his host, but seemed also in some inexplicable way, which at
the time occasioned him no surprise, to see the things which had their origin
in the brain of the earl. Whether he went in very deed out with him into the
night, he did not know--he felt as if he had gone, and thought he had not--but
when he woke the next morning in his bed at the top of the tower, which he had
no recollection of climbing, he was as weary as if he had been walking the
night through.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXI. BEWILDERMENT.">
CHAPTER XXXI.
BEWILDERMENT.
HIS first thought was of a
long and delightful journey he had made on horseback with the earl--through
scenes of entrancing interest and variety,--with the present result of a
strange weariness, almost misery. What had befallen him? Was the thing a fact
or a fancy? If a fancy, how was he so weary? If a fact, how could it have been?
Had he in any way been the earl's companion through such a long night as it
seemed? Could they have visited all the places whose remembrance lingered in
his brain? He was so confused, so bewildered, so haunted with a shadowy
uneasiness almost like remorse, that he even dreaded the discovery of the cause
of it all. Might a man so lose hold of himself as to be no more certain he had
ever possessed or could ever possess himself again?
He bethought himself at last
that he might perhaps have taken more wine than his head could stand. Yet he
remembered leaving his glass unemptied to follow the earl; and it was some time
after that before the change came! Could it have been drunkenness? Had
it been slowly coming without his knowing it? He could hardly believe it? But
whatever it was, it had left him unhappy, almost ashamed. What would the earl
think of him? He must have concluded him unfit any longer to keep charge of his
son! For his own part he did not feel he was to blame, but rather that an
accident had befallen him. Whence then this sense of something akin to shame?
Why should he be ashamed of anything coming upon him from without? Of that
shame he had to be ashamed, as of a lack of faith in God! Would God leave his
creature who trusted in him at the mercy of a chance--of a glass of wine taken
in ignorance? There was a thing to be ashamed of, and with good cause!
He got up, found to his
dismay that it was almost ten o'clock--his hour for rising in winter being
six--dressed in haste, and went down, wondering that Davie had not come to see
after him.
In the schoolroom he found
him waiting for him. The boy sprang up, and darted to meet him.
"I hope you are better,
Mr. Grant!" he said. "I am so glad you are able to be down!"
"I am quite well,"
answered Donal. "I can't think what made me sleep so long? Why didn't you
come and wake me, Davie, my boy?"
"Because Simmons told
me you were ill, and I must not disturb you if you were ever so late in coming
down."
"I hardly deserve any
breakfast!" said Donal, turning to the table; "but if you will stand
by me, and read while I take my coffee, we shall save a little time so."
"Yes, sir.--But your
coffee must be quite cold! I will ring."
"No, no; I must not
waste any more time. A man who cannot drink cold coffee ought to come down
while it is hot."
"Forgue won't drink
cold coffee!" said Davie: "I don't see why you should!"
"Because I prefer to do
with my coffee as I please; I will not have hot coffee for my master. I won't
have it anything to me what humour the coffee may be in. I will be Donal Grant,
whether the coffee be cold or hot. A bit of practical philosophy for you,
Davie!"
"I think I understand
you, sir: you would not have a man make a fuss about a trifle."
"Not about a real
trifle. The co-relative of a trifle, Davie, is a smile. But I would take heed
whether the thing that is called a trifle be really a trifle. Besides, there
may be a point in a trifle that is the egg of an ought. It is a trifle
whether this or that is nice; it is a point that I should not care. With us
highlanders it is a point of breeding not to mind what sort of dinner we have,
but to eat as heartily of bread and cheese as of roast beef. At least so my
father and mother used to teach me, though I fear that refinement of
good manners is going out of fashion even with highlanders."
"It is good
manners!" rejoined Davie with decision, "--and more than good manners!
I should count it grand not to care what kind of dinner I had. But I am afraid
it is more than I shall ever come to!"
"You will never come to
it by trying because you think it grand. Only mind, I did not say we were not
to enjoy our roast beef more than our bread and cheese; that would be not to
discriminate, where there is a difference. If bread and cheese were just
as good to us as roast beef, there would be no victory in our
contentment."
"I see!" said
Davie.--"Wouldn't it be well," he asked, after a moment's pause,
"to put one's self in training, Mr. Grant, to do without things--or at
least to be able to do without them?"
"It is much better to
do the lessons set you by one who knows how to teach, than to pick lessons for
yourself out of your books. Davie, I have not that confidence in myself to
think I should be a good teacher of myself."
"But you are a good
teacher of me, sir!"
"I try--but then I'm
set to teach you, and I am not set to teach myself: I am only set to make
myself do what I am taught. When you are my teacher, Davie, I try--don't I--to
do everything you tell me?"
"Yes, indeed,
sir!"
"But I am not set to
obey myself!"
"No, nor anyone else,
sir! You do not need to obey anyone, or have anyone teach you, sir!"
"Oh, don't I, Davie! On
the contrary, I could not get on for one solitary moment without somebody to
teach me. Look you here, Davie: I have so many lessons given me, that I have no
time or need to add to them any of my own. If you were to ask the cook to let
you have a cold dinner, you would perhaps eat it with pride, and take credit
for what your hunger yet made quite agreeable to you. But the boy who does not
grumble when he is told not to go out because it is raining and he has a cold,
will not perhaps grumble either should he happen to find his dinner not at all
nice."
Davie hung his head. It had
been a very small grumble, but there are no sins for which there is less reason
or less excuse than small ones: in no sense are they worth committing. And we
grown people commit many more such than little children, and have our reward in
childishness instead of childlikeness.
"It is so easy,"
continued Donal, "to do the thing we ordain ourselves, for in holding to
it we make ourselves out fine fellows!--and that is such a mean kind of thing!
Then when another who has the right, lays a thing upon us, we grumble--though
it be the truest and kindest thing, and the most reasonable and needful for
us--even for our dignity--for our being worth anything! Depend upon it, Davie,
to do what we are told is a far grander thing than to lay the severest rules
upon ourselves--ay, and to stick to them, too!"
"But might there not be
something good for us to do that we were not told of?"
"Whoever does the thing
he is told to do--the thing, that is, that has a plain ought in it, will
become satisfied that there is one who will not forget to tell him what must be
done as soon as he is fit to do it."
The conversation lasted only
while Donal ate his breakfast, with the little fellow standing beside him; it
was soon over, but not soon to be forgotten. For the readiness of the boy to do
what his master told him, was beautiful--and a great help and comfort,
sometimes a rousing rebuke to his master, whose thoughts would yet occasionally
tumble into one of the pitfalls of sorrow.
"What!" he would
say to himself, "am I so believed in by this child, that he goes at once
to do my words, and shall I for a moment doubt the heart of the Father, or his
power or will to set right whatever may have seemed to go wrong with his
child!--Go on, Davie! You are a good boy; I will be a better man!"
But naturally, as soon as
lessons were over, he fell again to thinking what could have befallen him the
night before. At what point did the aberration begin? The earl must have taken
notice of it, for surely Simmons had not given Davie those injunctions of
himself--except indeed he had exposed his condition even to him! If the earl
had spoken to Simmons, kindness seemed intended him; but it might have been
merely care over the boy! Anyhow, what was to be done?
He did not ponder the matter
long. With that directness which was one of the most marked features of his
nature, he resolved at once to request an interview with the earl, and make his
apologies. He sought Simmons, therefore, and found him in the pantry rubbing up
the forks and spoons.
"Ah, Mr. Grant,"
he said, before Donal could speak, "I was just coming to you with a
message from his lordship! He wants to see you."
"And I came to
you," replied Donal, "to say I wanted to see his lordship!"
"That's well fitted,
then, sir!" returned Simmons. "I will go and see when. His lordship
is not up, nor likely to be for some hours yet; he is in one of his low fits
this morning. He told me you were not quite yourself last night."
As he spoke his red nose
seemed to examine Donal's face with a kindly, but not altogether sympathetic
scrutiny.
"The fact is,
Simmons," answered Donal, "not being used to wine, I fear I drank
more of his lordship's than was good for me."
"His lordship's
wine," murmured Simmons, and there checked himself. "--How much did
you drink, sir--if I may make so bold?"
"I had one glass during
dinner, and more than one, but not nearly two, after."
"Pooh! pooh, sir! That
could never hurt a strong man like you! You ought to know better than that!
Look at me!"
But he did not go on with
his illustration.
"Tut!" he resumed,
"that make you sleep till ten o'clock!--If you will kindly wait in the
hall, or in the schoolroom, I will bring you his lordship's orders."
So saying while he washed
his hands and took off his white apron, Simmons departed on his errand to his
master. Donal went to the foot of the grand staircase, and there waited.
As he stood he heard a light
step above him, and involuntarily glancing up, saw the light shape of lady
Arctura come round the curve of the spiral stair, descending rather slowly and
very softly, as if her feet were thinking. She checked herself for an
infinitesimal moment, then moved on again. Donal stood with bended head as she
passed. If she acknowledged his obeisance it was with the slightest return, but
she lifted her eyes to his face with a look that seemed to have in it a strange
wistful trouble--not very marked, yet notable. She passed on and vanished,
leaving that look a lingering presence in Donal's thought. What was it? Was it
anything? What could it mean? Had he really seen it? Was it there, or had he
only imagined it?
Simmons kept him waiting a
good while. He had found his lordship getting up, and had had to stay to help
him dress. At length he came, excusing himself that his lordship's temper at
such times--that was, in his dumpy fits--was not of the evenest, and required a
gentle hand. But his lordship would see him--and could Mr. Grant find the way
himself, for his old bones ached with running up and down those endless stone
steps? Donal answered he knew the way, and sprang up the stair.
But his mind was more
occupied with the coming interview than with the way to it, which caused him to
take a wrong turn after leaving the stair: he had a good gift in space-relations,
but instinct was here not so keen as on a hill-side. The consequence was that
he found himself in the picture-gallery.
A strange feeling of pain,
as at the presence of a condition he did not wish to encourage, awoke in him at
the discovery. He walked along, however, thus taking, he thought, the readiest
way to his lordship's apartment: either he would find him in his bedroom, or
could go through that to his sitting-room! He glanced at the pictures he
passed, and seemed, strange to say, though, so far as he knew, he had never
been in the place except in the dark, to recognize some of them as belonging to
the stuff of the dream in which he had been wandering through the night--only
that was a glowing and gorgeous dream, whereas the pictures were even
commonplace! Here was something to be meditated upon--but for the present
postponed! His lordship was expecting him!
Arrived, as he thought, at
the door of the earl's bedroom, he knocked, and receiving no answer, opened it,
and found himself in a narrow passage. Nearly opposite was another door, partly
open, and hearing a movement within, he ventured to knock there. A voice he knew
at once to be lady Arctura's, invited him to enter. It was an old, lovely,
gloomy little room, in which sat the lady writing. It had but one low
lattice-window, to the west, but a fire blazed cheerfully in the old-fashioned
grate. She looked up, nor showed more surprise than if he had been a servant
she had rung for.
"I beg your pardon, my
lady," he said: "my lord wished to see me, but I have lost my
way."
"I will show it
you," she answered, and rising came to him.
She led him along the
winding narrow passage, pointed out to him the door of his lordship's
sitting-room, and turned away--again, Donal could not help thinking, with a
look as of some anxiety about him.
He knocked, and the voice of
the earl bade him enter.
His lordship was in his
dressing-gown, on a couch of faded satin of a gold colour, against which his
pale yellow face looked cadaverous.
"Good morning, Mr.
Grant," he said. "I am glad to see you better!"
"I thank you, my
lord," returned Donal. "I have to make an apology. I cannot understand
how it was, except, perhaps, that, being so little accustomed to strong
drink,--"
"There is not the
smallest occasion to say a word," interrupted his lordship. "You did
not once forget yourself, or cease to behave like a gentleman!"
"Your lordship is very
kind. Still I cannot help being sorry. I shall take good care in the
future."
"It might be as
well," conceded the earl, "to set yourself a limit--necessarily in
your case a narrow one.--Some constitutions are so immediately
responsive!" he added in a murmur. "The least exhibition of--!--But a
man like you, Mr. Grant," he went on aloud, "will always know to take
care of himself!"
"Sometimes, apparently,
when it is too late!" rejoined Donal. "But I must not annoy your
lordship with any further expression of my regret!"
"Will you dine with me
to-night?" said the earl. "I am lonely now. Sometimes, for months
together, I feel no need of a companion: my books and pictures content me. All
at once a longing for society will seize me, and that longing my health will
not permit me to indulge. I am not by nature unsociable--much the contrary. You
may wonder I do not admit my own family more freely; but my wretched health
makes me shrink from loud voices and abrupt motions."
"But lady
Arctura!" thought Donal. "Your lordship will find me a poor
substitute, I fear," he said, "for the society you would like. But I
am at your lordship's service."
He could not help turning
with a moment's longing and regret to his tower-nest and the company of his
books and thoughts; but he did not feel that he had a choice.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXII. THE SECOND DINNER WITH THE EARL.">
CHAPTER XXXII.
THE SECOND DINNER WITH THE
EARL.
HE went as before, conducted
by the butler, and formally announced. To his surprise, with the earl was lady
Arctura. His lordship made him give her his arm, and followed.
This was to Donal a very
different dinner from that of the evening before. Whether the presence of his
niece made the earl rouse himself to be agreeable, or he had grown better since
the morning and his spirits had risen, certainly he was not like the same man.
He talked in a rather forced-playful way, but told two or three good stories;
described with vivacity some of the adventures of his youth; spoke of several
great men he had met; and in short was all that could be desired in a host.
Donal took no wine during dinner, the earl as before took very little, and lady
Arctura none. She listened respectfully to her uncle's talk, and was attentive
when Donal spoke; he thought she looked even sympathetic two or three times;
and once he caught the expression as of anxiety he had seen on her face that
same day twice before. It was strange, too, he thought, that, not seeing her
sometimes for a week together, he should thus meet her three times in one day.
When the last of the dinner was removed and the wine placed on the table, Donal
thought his lordship looked as if he expected his niece to go; but she kept her
place. He asked her which wine she would have, but she declined any. He filled
his glass, and pushed the decanter to Donal. He too filled his glass, and drank
slowly.
The talk revived. But Donal
could not help fancying that the eyes of the lady now and then sought his with
a sort of question in them--almost as if she feared something was going to
happen to him. He attributed this to her having heard that he took too much
wine the night before. The situation was unpleasant. He must, however, brave it
out! When he refused a second glass, which the earl by no means pressed, he
thought he saw her look relieved; but more than once thereafter he saw, or
fancied he saw her glance at him with that expression of slight anxiety.
In its course the talk fell
upon sheep, and Donal was relating some of his experiences with them and their
dogs, greatly interested in the subject; when all at once, just as before,
something seemed to burst in his head, and immediately, although he knew he was
sitting at table with the earl and lady Arctura, he was uncertain whether he
was not at the same time upon the side of a lonely hill, closed in a magic
night of high summer, his woolly and hairy friends lying all about him, and a
light glimmering faintly on the heather a little way off, which he knew for the
flame that marks for a moment the footstep of an angel, when he touches ever so
lightly the solid earth. He seemed to be reading the thoughts of his sheep
around him, yet all the time went on talking, and knew he was talking, with the
earl and the lady.
After a while, everything
was changed. He was no longer either with his sheep or his company. He was
alone, and walking swiftly through and beyond the park, in a fierce wind from
the north-east, battling with it, and ruling it like a fiery horse. By and by
came a hoarse, terrible music, which he knew for the thunderous beat of the
waves on the low shore, yet imagined issuing from an indescribable instrument,
gigantic and grotesque. He felt it first--through his feet, as one feels
without hearing the tones of an organ for which the building is too small to
allow scope to their vibration: the waves made the ground beat against the
soles of his feet as he walked; but soon he heard it like the infinitely
prolonged roaring of a sky-built organ. It was drawing him to the sea, whether
in the body or out of the body he knew not: he was but conscious of forms of
existence: whether those forms had relation to things outside him, or whether
they belonged only to the world within him, he was unaware. The roaring of the
great water-organ grew louder and louder. He knew every step of the way to the
shore--across the fields and over fences and stiles. He turned this way and
that, to avoid here a ditch, there a deep sandy patch. And still the music grew
louder and louder--and at length came in his face the driving spray: it was the
flying touch of the wings on which the tones went hurrying past into the depths
of awful distance! His feet were now wading through the bent-tufted sand, with
the hard, bare, wave-beaten sand in front of him. Through the dark he could see
the white fierceness of the hurrying waves as they rushed to the shore, then
leaning, toppling, curling, self-undermined, hurled forth at once all the sound
that was in them in a falling roar of defeat. Every wave was a complex chord,
with winnowed tones feathering it round. He paced up and down the sand--it
seemed for ages. Why he paced there he did not know--why always he turned and
went back instead of going on.
Suddenly he thought he saw
something dark in the hollow of a wave that swept to its fall. The moon came
out as it broke, and the something was rolled in the surf up the shore. Donal
stood watching it. Why should he move? What was it to him? The next wave would
reclaim it for the ocean! It looked like the body of a man, but what did it
matter! Many such were tossed in the hollows of that music!
But something came back to
him out of the ancient years: in the ages gone by men did what they could!
There was a word they used then: they said men ought to do this or that! This
body might not be dead--or dead, some one might like to have it! He rushed into
the water, and caught it--ere the next wave broke, though hours of cogitation,
ratiocination, recollection, seemed to have intervened. The breaking wave
drenched him from head to foot: he clung to his prize and dragged it out. A
moment's bewilderment, and he came to himself lying on the sand, his arms round
a great lump of net, lost from some fishing boat.
His illusions were gone. He
was sitting in a cold wind, wet to the skin, on the border of a wild sea. A
poor, shivering, altogether ordinary and uncomfortable mortal, he sat on the
shore of the German Ocean, from which he had rescued a tangled mass of net and
seaweed! He dragged it beyond the reach of the waves, and set out for home.
By the time he reached the
castle he was quite warm. His door at the foot of the tower was open, he crept
up, and was soon fast asleep.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXIII. THE HOUSEKEEPER'S ROOM.">
CHAPTER XXXIII.
THE HOUSEKEEPER'S ROOM.
HE was not so late the next
morning.
Ere he had finished his
breakfast he had made up his mind that he must beware of the earl. He was
satisfied that the experiences of the past night could not be the consequence
of one glass of wine. If he asked him again, he would go to dinner with him,
but would drink nothing but water.
School was just over when
Simmons came from his lordship, to inquire after him, and invite him to dine
with him that evening. Donald immediately consented.
This time lady Arctura was not
with the earl.
After as during dinner Donal
declined to drink. His lordship cast on him a keen, searching glance, but it
was only a glance, and took no farther notice of his refusal. The conversation,
however, which had not been brilliant from the first, now sank and sank till it
was not; and after a cup of coffee, his lordship, remarking that he was not
feeling himself, begged Donal to excuse him, and proceeded to retire. Donal
rose, and with a hope that his lordship would have a good night and feel better
in the morning, left the room.
The passage outside was
lighted only by a rather dim lamp, and in the distance Donal saw what he could
but distinguish as the form of a woman, standing by the door which opened upon
the great staircase. He supposed it at first to be one of the maids; but the
servants were so few compared with the size of the castle that one was seldom
to be met on stair or in passage; and besides, the form stood as if waiting for
some one! As he drew nearer, he saw it was lady Arctura, and would have passed
with an obeisance. But ere he could lay his hand on the lock, hers was there to
prevent him. He then saw that she was agitated, and that she had stopped him
thus because her voice had at the moment failed her. The next moment, however,
she recovered it, and her self-possession as well.
"Mr. Grant," she
said, in a low voice, "I wish to speak to you--if you will allow me."
"I am at your service,
my lady," answered Donal.
"But we cannot here! My
uncle--"
"Shall we go into the
picture-gallery?" suggested Donal; "there is moonlight there."
"No; that would be
still nearer my uncle. His hearing is sometimes preternaturally keen; and
besides, as you know, he often walks there after his evening meal. But--excuse
me, Mr. Grant--you will understand me presently--are you--are you
quite--?"
"You mean, my lady--am
I quite myself this evening!" said Donal, wishing to help her with the
embarrassing question: "--I have drunk nothing but water to-night."
With that she opened the
door, and descended the stair, he following; but as soon as the curve of the
staircase hid the door they had left, she stopped, and turning to him said,
"I would not have you
mistake me, Mr. Grant! I should be ashamed to speak to you if--"
"Indeed I am very
sorry!" said Donal, "--though hardly so much to blame as I fear you
think me."
"You mistake me at
once! You suppose I imagine you took too much wine last night! It would be
absurd. I saw what you took! But we must not talk here. Come."
She turned again, and going
down, led the way to the housekeeper's room.
They found her at work with
her needle.
"Mistress
Brookes," said lady Arctura, "I want to have a little talk with Mr.
Grant, and there is no fire in the library: may we sit here?"
"By all means! Sit
doon, my lady! Why, bairn! you look as cold as if you had been on the roof!
There! sit close to the fire; you're all trem'lin'!"
Lady Arctura obeyed like the
child Mrs. Brookes called her, and sat down in the chair she gave up to her.
"I've something to see
efter i' the still-room," said the housekeeper. "You sit here and hae
yer crack. Sit doon, Mr. Grant. I'm glad to see you an' my lady come to word o'
mooth at last. I began to think it wud never be!"
Had Donal been in the way of
looking to faces for the interpretation of words and thoughts, he would have
seen a shadow sweep over lady Arctura's, followed by a flush, which he would
have attributed to displeasure at this utterance of the housekeeper. But, with
all his experience of the world within, and all his unusually developed power
of entering into the feelings of others, he had never come to pry into those
feelings, or to study their phenomena for the sake of possessing himself of
them. Man was by no means an open book to him--"no, nor woman
neither," but he would have scorned to supplement by such investigation
what a lady chose to tell him. He sat looking into the fire, with an occasional
upward glance, waiting for what was to come, and saw neither shadow nor flush.
Lady Arctura sat also gazing into the fire, and seemed in no haste to begin.
"You are so good to
Davie!" she said at length, and stopped.
"No better than I have
to be," returned Donal. "Not to be good to Davie would be to be a
wretch."
"You know, Mr. Grant, I
cannot agree with you!"
"There is no immediate
necessity, my lady."
"But I suppose one may
be fair to another!" she went on, doubtingly, "--and it is only fair
to confess that he is much more manageable since you came. Only that is no good
if it does not come from the right source."
"Grapes do not come
from thorns, my lady. We must not allow in evil a power of good."
She did not reply.
"He minds everything I
say to him now," she resumed. "What is it makes him so good?--I wish
I had had such a tutor!"
She stopped again: she had
spoken out of the simplicity of her thought, but the words when said looked to
her as if they ought not to have been said.
"Something is working
in her!" thought Donal. "She is so different! Her voice is
different!"
"But that is not what I
wanted to speak to you about, Mr. Grant," she re-commenced, "--though
I did want you to know I was aware of the improvement in Davie. I wished to say
something about my uncle."
Here followed another pause.
"You may have
remarked," she said at length, "that, though we live together, and he
is my guardian, and the head of the house, there is not much communication
between us."
"I have gathered as
much: I ask no questions, but I cannot tell Davie not to talk to me!"
"Of course not.--Lord
Morven is a strange man. I do not understand him, and I do not want to judge
him, or make you judge him. But I must speak of a fact, concerning yourself,
which I have no right to keep from you."
Once more a pause followed.
There was nothing now of the grand dame about Arctura.
"Has nothing occurred
to wake a doubt in you?" she said at last, abruptly. "Have you not
suspected him of--of using you in any way?"
"I have had an
undefined ghost of a suspicion," answered Donal. "Please tell me what
you know."
"I should know
nothing--although, my room being near his, I should have been the more
perplexed about some things--had he not made an experiment upon myself a year
ago."
"Is it possible?"
"I sometimes fancy I
have not been so well since. It was a great shock to me when I came to myself:--you
see I am trusting you, Mr. Grant!"
"I thank you heartily,
my lady," said Donal.
"I believe,"
continued lady Arctura, gathering courage, "that my uncle is in the habit
of taking some horrible drug for the sake of its effect on his brain. There are
people who do so! What it is I don't know, and I would rather not know. It is
just as bad, surely, as taking too much wine! I have heard himself remark to
Mr. Carmichael that opium was worse than wine, for it destroyed the moral sense
more. Mind I don't say it is opium he takes!"
"There are other
things," said Donal, "even worse!--But surely you do not mean he
dared try anything of the sort on you!"
"I am sure he gave me
something! For, once that I dined with him,--but I cannot describe the effect
it had upon me! I think he wanted to see its operation on one who did not even
know she had taken anything. The influence of such things is a pleasant one,
they say, at first, but I would not go through such agonies as I had for the
world!"
She ceased, evidently troubled
by the harassing remembrance. Donal hastened to speak.
"It was because of such
a suspicion, my lady, that this evening I would not even taste his wine. I am
safe to-night, I trust, from the insanity--I can call it nothing else--that
possessed me the last two nights."
"Was it very
dreadful?" asked lady Arctura.
"On the contrary, I had
a sense of life and power such as I could never of myself have imagined!"
"Oh, Mr. Grant, do take
care! Do not be tempted to take it again. I don't know where it might not have
led me if I had found it as pleasant as it was horrible; for I am sorely tried
with painful thoughts, and feel sometimes as if I would do almost anything to
get rid of them."
"There must be a good
way of getting rid of them! Think it of God's mercy," said Donal,
"that you cannot get rid of them the other way."
"I do; I do!"
"The shield of his
presence was over you."
"How glad I should be
to think so! But we have no right to think he cares for us till we believe in
Christ--and--and--I don't know that I do believe in him!"
"Wherever you learned
that, it is a terrible lie," said Donal. "Is not Christ the same
always, and is he not of one mind with God? Was it not while we were yet
sinners that he poured out his soul for us? It is a fearful thing to say of the
perfect Love, that he is not doing all he can, with all the power of a maker
over the creature he has made, to help and deliver him!"
"I know he makes his
sun to shine and his rain to fall upon the evil and the good; but those good
things are only of this world!"
"Are those the good
things then that the Lord says the Father will give to those that ask him? How
can you worship a God who gives you all the little things he does not care much
about, but will not do his best for you?"
"But are there not
things he cannot do for us till we believe in Christ?"
"Certainly there are.
But what I want you to see is that he does all that can be done. He finds it
very hard to teach us, but he is never tired of trying. Anyone who is willing
to be taught of God, will by him be taught, and thoroughly taught."
"I am afraid I am doing
wrong in listening to you, Mr. Grant--and the more that I cannot help wishing
what you say might be true! But are you not in danger--you will pardon me for
saying it--of presumption?--How can all the good people be wrong?"
"Because the greater
part of their teachers have set themselves to explain God rather than to obey
and enforce his will. The gospel is given to convince, not our understandings,
but our hearts; that done, and never till then, our understandings will be
free. Our Lord said he had many things to tell his disciples, but they were not
able to hear them. If the things be true which I have heard from Sunday to
Sunday since I came here, the Lord has brought us no salvation at all, but only
a change of shape to our miseries. They have not redeemed you, lady Arctura,
and never will. Nothing but Christ himself, your lord and friend and brother,
not all the doctrines about him, even if every one of them were true, can save
you. Poor orphan children, we cannot find our God, and they would have us take
instead a shocking caricature of him!"
"But how should sinners
know what is or is not like the true God?"
"If a man desires God,
he cannot help knowing enough of him to be capable of learning more--else how
should he desire him? Made in the image of God, his idea of him cannot be all
wrong. That does not make him fit to teach others--only fit to go on learning
for himself. But in Jesus Christ I see the very God I want. I want a father
like him. He reproaches some of those about him for not knowing him--for, if
they had known God, they would have known him: they were to blame for not
knowing God. No other than the God exactly like Christ can be the true God. It
is a doctrine of devils that Jesus died to save us from our father. There is no
safety, no good, no gladness, no purity, but with the Father, his father and
our father, his God and our God."
"But God hates sin and
punishes it!"
"It would be terrible
if he did not. All hatred of sin is love to the sinner. Do you think Jesus came
to deliver us from the punishment of our sins? He would not have moved a step
for that. The horrible thing is being bad, and all punishment is help to
deliver us from that, nor will punishment cease till we have ceased to be bad.
God will have us good, and Jesus works out the will of his father. Where is the
refuge of the child who fears his father? Is it in the farthest corner of the
room? Is it down in the dungeon of the castle, my lady?"
"No, no!" cried
lady Arctura, "--in his father's arms!"
"There!" said
Donal, and was silent.
"I hold by Jesus!"
he added after a pause, and rose as he said it, but stood where he rose.
Lady Arctura sat motionless,
divided between reverence for distorted and false forms of truth taught her
from her earliest years, and desire after a God whose very being is the bliss
of his creatures.
Some time passed in silence,
and then she too rose to depart. She held out her hand to Donal with a kind of
irresolute motion, but withdrawing it, smiled almost beseechingly, and said,
"I wish I might ask you
something. I know it is a rude question, but if you could see all, you would
answer me and let the offence go."
"I will answer you
anything you choose to ask."
"That makes it the more
difficult; but I will--I cannot bear to remain longer in doubt: did you really
write that poem you gave to Kate Graeme--compose it, I mean, your own
self?"
"I made no secret of
that when I gave it her," said Donal, not perceiving her drift.
"Then you did really
write it?"
Donal looked at her in
perplexity. Her face grew very red, and tears began to come in her eyes.
"You must pardon
me!" she said: "I am so ignorant! And we live in such an
out-of-the-way place that--that it seems very unlikely a real poet--! And then
I have been told there are people who have a passion for appearing to do the
thing they are not able to do, and I was anxious to be quite sure! My mind would
keep brooding over it, and wondering, and longing to know for certain!--So I
resolved at last that I would be rid of the doubt, even at the risk of
offending you. I know I have been rude--unpardonably rude, but--"
"But,"
supplemented Donal, with a most sympathetic smile, for he understood her as his
own thought, "you do not feel quite sure yet! What a priori reason
do you see why I should not be able to write verses? There is no rule as to
where poetry grows: one place is as good as another for that!"
"I hope you will
forgive me! I hope I have not offended you very much!"
"Nobody in such a world
as this ought to be offended at being asked for proof. If there are in it
rogues that look like honest men, how is any one, without a special gift of
insight, to be always sure of the honest man? Even the man whom a woman loves
best will sometimes tear her heart to pieces! I will give you all the proof you
can desire.--And lest the tempter should say I made up the proof itself between
now and to-morrow morning, I will fetch it at once."
"Oh, Mr. Grant, spare
me! I am not, indeed I am not so bad as that!"
"Who can tell when or
whence the doubt may wake again, or what may wake it!"
"At least let me
explain a little before you go," she said.
"Certainly," he
answered, reseating himself, in compliance with her example.
"Miss Graeme told me
that you had never seen a garden like theirs before!"
"I never did. There are
none such, I fancy, in our part of the country."
"Nor in our
neighbourhood either."
"Then what is
surprising in it?"
"Nothing in that. But
is there not something in your being able to write a poem like that about a
garden such as you had never seen? One would say you must have been familiar
with it from childhood to be able so to enter into the spirit of the
place!"
"Perhaps if I had been
familiar with it from childhood, that might have disabled me from feeling the
spirit of it, for then might it not have looked to me as it looked to those in
whose time such gardens were the fashion? Two things are necessary--first, that
there should be a spirit in a place, and next that the place should be seen by
one whose spirit is capable of giving house-room to its spirit.--By the way,
does the ghost-lady feel the place all right?"
"I am not sure that I
know what you mean; but I felt the grass with her feet as I read, and the wind
lifting my hair. I seemed to know exactly how she felt!"
"Now tell me, were you
ever a ghost?"
"No," she
answered, looking in his face like a child--without even a smile.
"Did you ever see a
ghost?"
"No, never."
"Then how should you
know how a ghost would feel?"
"I see! I cannot answer
you."
Donal rose.
"I am indeed
ashamed!" said lady Arctura.
"Ashamed of giving me
the chance of proving myself a true man?"
"That, at least, is no
longer necessary!"
"But I want my revenge.
As a punishment for doubting one whom you had so little ground for believing,
you shall be compelled to see the proof--that is, if you will do me the favour
to wait here till I come back. I shall not be long, though it is some distance
to the top of Baliol's tower."
"Davie told me your
room was there: do you not find it cold? It must be very lonely! I wonder why
mistress Brookes put you there!"
Donal assured her he could
not have had a place more to his mind, and before she could well think he had
reached the foot of his stair, was back with a roll of papers, which he laid on
the table.
"There!" he said,
opening it out; "if you will take the trouble to go over these, you may
read the growth of the poem. Here first you see it blocked out rather roughly,
and much blotted with erasures and substitutions. Here next you see the result
copied--clean to begin with, but afterwards scored and scored. You see the
words I chose instead of the first, and afterwards in their turn rejected, until
in the proofs I reached those which I have as yet let stand. I do not fancy
Miss Graeme has any doubt the verses are mine, for it was plain she thought
them rubbish. From your pains to know who wrote them, I believe you do not
think so badly of them!"
She thought he was
satirical, and gave a slight sigh as of pain. It went to his heart.
"I did not mean the
smallest reflection, my lady, on your desire for satisfaction," he said;
"rather, indeed, it flatters me. But is it not strange the heart should be
less ready to believe what seems worth believing? Something must be true: why
not the worthy--oftener at least than the unworthy? Why should it be easier to
believe hard things of God, for instance, than lovely things?--or that one man
copied from another, than that he should have made the thing himself? Some
would yet say I contrived all this semblance of composition in order to lay the
surer claim to that to which I had none--nor would take the trouble to follow
the thing through its development! But it will be easy for you, my lady, and no
bad exercise in logic and analysis, to determine whether the genuine growth of
the poem be before you in these papers or not."
"I shall find it most
interesting," said lady Arctura: "so much I can tell already! I never
saw anything of the kind before, and had no idea how poetry was made. Does it
always take so much labour?"
"Some verses take much
more; some none at all. The labour is in getting the husks of expression
cleared off, so that the thought may show itself plainly."
At this point Mrs. Brookes,
thinking probably the young people had had long enough conference, entered, and
after a little talk with her, lady Arctura kissed her and bade her good night.
Donal retired to his aerial chamber, wondering whether the lady of the house
had indeed changed as much as she seemed to have changed.
From that time, whether it
was that lady Arctura had previously avoided meeting him and now did not, or
from other causes, Donal and she met much oftener as they went about the place,
nor did they ever pass without a mutual smile and greeting.
The next day but one, she
brought him his papers to the schoolroom. She had read every erasure and
correction, she told him, and could no longer have had a doubt that the writer
of the papers was the maker of the verses, even had she not previously learned
thorough confidence in the man himself.
"They would possibly
fail to convince a jury though!" he said, as he rose and went to throw
them in the fire.
Divining his intent, Arctura
darted after him, and caught them just in time.
"Let me keep
them," she pleaded, "--for my humiliation!"
"Do with them what you
like, my lady," said Donal. "They are of no value to me--except that
you care for them."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXIV. COBBLER AND CASTLE.">
CHAPTER XXXIV.
COBBLER AND CASTLE.
IN the bosom of the family
in which the elements seem most kindly mixed, there may yet lie some root of
discord and disruption, upon which the foreign influence necessary to its
appearance above ground, has not yet come to operate. That things are quiet is
no proof, only a hopeful sign of harmony. In a family of such poor accord as
that at the castle, the peace might well at any moment be broken.
Lord Forgue had been for
some time on a visit to Edinburgh, had doubtless there been made much of, and
had returned with a considerable development of haughtiness, and of that
freedom which means subjugation to self, and freedom from the law of liberty.
It is often when a man is least satisfied--not with himself but with his
immediate doings--that he is most ready to assert his superiority to the
restraints he might formerly have grumbled against, but had not dared to
dispute--and to claim from others such consideration as accords with a false
idea of his personal standing. But for a while Donal and he barely saw each
other; Donal had no occasion to regard him; and lord Forgue kept so much to
himself that Davie made lamentation: Percy was not half so jolly as he used to
be!
For a fortnight Eppy had not
been to see her grand-parents; and as the last week something had prevented Donal
also from paying them his customary visit, the old people had naturally become
uneasy; and one frosty twilight, when the last of the sunlight had turned to
cold green in the west, Andrew Comin appeared in the castle kitchen, asking to
see mistress Brookes. He was kindly received by the servants, among whom Eppy
was not present; and Mrs. Brookes, who had a genuine respect for the cobbler,
soon came to greet him. She told him she knew no reason why Eppy had not gone
to inquire after them as usual: she would send for her, she said, and left the
kitchen.
Eppy was not at the moment
to be found, but Donal, whom mistress Brookes had gone herself to seek, went at
once to the kitchen.
"Will you come out a
bit, Andrew," he said, "--if you're not tired? It's a fine night, and
it's easy to talk in the gloamin'!"
Andrew consented with
alacrity.
On the side of the castle
away from the town, the descent was at first by a succession of terraces with
steps from the one to the other, the terraces themselves being little
flower-gardens. At the bottom of the last of these terraces and parallel with
them, was a double row of trees, forming a long narrow avenue between two
little doors in two walls at opposite ends of the castle. One of these led to
some of the offices; the other admitted to a fruit garden which turned the
western shoulder of the hill, and found for the greater part a nearly southern
exposure. At this time of the year it was a lonely enough place, and at this
time of the day more than likely to be altogether deserted: thither Donal would
lead his friend. Going out therefore by the kitchen-door, they went first into
a stable-yard, from which descended steps to the castle-well, on the level of
the second terrace. Thence they arrived, by more steps, at the mews where in
old times the hawks were kept, now rather ruinous though not quite neglected.
Here the one wall-door opened on the avenue which led to the other. It was one
of the pleasantest walks in immediate proximity to the castle.
The first of the steely
stars were shining through the naked rafters of leafless boughs overhead, as
Donal and the cobbler stepped, gently talking, into the aisle of trees. The old
man looked up, gazed for a moment in silence, and said:--
"'The heavens declare
the glory o' God, an' the firmament showeth his handy-work.' I used, whan I was
a lad, to study astronomy a wee, i' the houp o' better hearin' what the h'avens
declared aboot the glory o' God: I wud fain un'erstan' the speech ae day cried
across the nicht to the ither. But I was sair disapp'intit. The things the
astronomer tellt semple fowk war verra won'erfu', but I couldna fin' i' my hert
'at they made me think ony mair o' God nor I did afore. I dinna mean to say
they michtna be competent to work that in anither, but it wasna my experrience
o' them. My hert was some sair at this, for ye see I was set upo' winnin' intil
the presence o' him I couldna bide frae, an' at that time I hadna learnt to
gang straucht to him wha's the express image o' 's person, but, aye soucht him
throuw the philosophy--eh, but it was bairnly philosophy!--o' the guid buiks
'at dwall upo' the natur' o' God an' a' that, an' his hatred o' sin an' a'
that--pairt an' pairt true, nae doobt! but I wantit God great an' near, an'
they made him oot sma', sma', an' unco' far awa'. Ae nicht I was oot by mysel'
upo' the shore, jist as the stars war teetin' oot. An' it wasna as gien they
war feart o' the sun, an' pleast 'at he was gane, but as gien they war a'
teetin' oot to see what had come o' their Father o' Lichts. A' at ance I cam to
mysel', like oot o' some blin' delusion. Up I cuist my e'en aboon--an' eh,
there was the h'aven as God made it--awfu'!--big an' deep, ay faddomless deep,
an' fu' o' the wan'erin' yet steady lichts 'at naething can blaw oot, but the
breath o' his mooth! Awa' up an' up it gaed, an' deeper an' deeper! an' my e'en
gaed traivellin' awa' an' awa', till it seemed as though they never could win
back to me. A' at ance they drappit frae the lift like a laverock, an' lichtit
upo' the horizon, whaur the sea an' the sky met like richteousness an' peace
kissin' ane anither, as the psalm says. Noo I canna tell what it was, but jist
there whaur the earth an' the sky cam thegither, was the meetin' o' my earthly
sowl wi' God's h'avenly sowl! There was bonny colours, an' bonny lichts, an' a
bonny grit star hingin' ower 't a', but it was nane o' a' thae things; it was
something deeper nor a', an' heicher nor a'! Frae that moment I saw--no hoo
the h'avens declare the glory o' God, but I saw them declarin' 't, an' I wantit
nae mair. Astronomy for me micht sit an' wait for a better warl', whaur fowk
didna weir oot their shune, an' ither fowk hadna to men' them. For what is the
great glory o' God but that, though no man can comprehen' him, he comes doon,
an' lays his cheek til his man's, an' says til him, 'Eh, my cratur!'"
While the cobbler was thus
talking, they had gone the length of the avenue, and were within less than two
trees of the door of the fruit-garden, when it opened, and was hurriedly shut
again--not, however, before Donal had caught sight, as he believed, of the form
of Eppy. He called her by name, and ran to the door, followed by Andrew: the
same suspicion had struck both of them at once! Donal lifted the latch, and
would have opened the door, but some one held it against him, and he heard the
noise of an attempt to push the rusty bolt into the staple. He set his strength
to it, and forced the door open. Lord Forgue was on the other side of it, and a
little way off stood Eppy trembling. Donal turned away from his lordship, and
said to the girl,
"Eppy, here's your
grandfather come to see you!"
The cobbler, however, went
up to lord Forgue.
"You're a young man, my
lord," he said, "an' may regard it as folly in an auld man to
interfere between you an' your wull; but I warn ye, my lord, excep' you cease
to carry yourself thus towards my granddaughter, his lordship, your father,
shall be informed of the matter. Eppy, you come home with me."
"I will not," said
Eppy, her voice trembling with passion, though which passion it were hard to
say; "I am a free woman. I make my own living. I will not be treated like
a child!"
"I will speak to
mistress Brookes," said the old man, with sad dignity.
"And make her turn me
away!" said Eppy.
She seemed quite
changed--bold and determined--was probably relieved that she could no more play
a false part. His lordship stood and said nothing.
"But don't you think,
grandfather," continued Eppy, "that whatever mistress Brookes says or
does, I'll go home with you! I've saved money, and, as I can't get another
place here when you've taken away my character, I'll leave the country."
His lordship advanced, and
with strained composure said,
"I confess, Mr. Comin,
things do look against us. It is awkward you should have found us
together, but you know"--and here he attempted a laugh--"we are told
not to judge by appearances!"
"We may be forced to
act by them, though, my lord!" said Andrew. "I should be sorry to
judge aither of you by them. Eppy must come home with me, or it will be more
awkward yet for both of you!"
"Oh, if you threaten
us," said Forgue contemptuously, "then of course we are very
frightened! But you had better beware! You will only make it the more difficult
for me to do your granddaughter the justice I always intended."
"What your lordship's
notion o' justice may be, I wull not trouble you to explain," said the old
man. "All I desire for the present is, that she come home with me."
"Let us leave the
matter to mistress Brookes!" said Forgue. "I shall easily satisfy her
that there is no occasion for any hurry. Believe me, you will only bring
trouble on the innocent!"
"Then it canna be on
you, my lord! for in this thing you have not behaved as a gentleman
ought!" said the cobbler.
"You dare tell me
so!" cried Forgue, striding up to the little old man, as if he would sweep
him away with the very wind of his approach.
"Yes; for else how
should I say it to another, an' that may soon be necessar'!" answered the
cobbler. "Didna yer lordship promise an en' to the haill meeserable
affair?"
"I remember nothing of
the sort."
"You did to me!"
said Donal.
"Do hold your tongue,
Grant, and don't make things worse. To you I can easily explain it. Besides,
you have nothing to do with it now this good fellow has taken it up. It is
quite possible, besides, to break one's word to the ear and yet keep it to the
sense."
"The only thing to
justify that suggestion," said Donal, "would be that you had married
Eppy, or were about to marry her!"
Eppy would have spoken; but
she only gave a little cry, for Forgue put his hand over her mouth.
"You hold your
tongue!" he said; "you will only complicate matters!"
"And there's another
point, my lord," resumed Donal: "you say I have nothing to do now
with the affair: if not for my friend's sake, I have for my own."
"What do you
mean?"
"That I am in the house
a paid servant, and must not allow anything mischievous to go on in it without
acquainting my master."
"You acknowledge, Mr.
Grant, that you are neither more nor less than a paid servant, but you mistake
your duty as such: I shall be happy to explain it to you.--You have nothing
whatever to do with what goes on in the house; you have but to mind your work.
I told you before, you are my brother's tutor, not mine! To interfere with what
I do, is nothing less than a piece of damned impertinence!"
"That impertinence,
however, I intend to be guilty of the moment I can get audience of your
father."
"You will not, if I
give you such explanation as satisfies you I have done the girl no harm, and
mean honestly by her!" said Forgue in a confident, yet somewhat
conciliatory tone.
"In any case,"
returned Donal, "you having once promised, and then broken your promise, I
shall without fail tell your father all I know."
"And ruin her, and
perhaps me too, for life?"
"The truth will ruin
only those that ought to be ruined!" said Donal.
Forgue sprang upon him, and
struck him a heavy blow between the eyes. He had been having lessons in boxing
while in Edinburgh, and had confidence in himself. It was a well-planted blow,
and Donal unprepared for it. He staggered against the wall, and for a moment
could neither see nor think: all he knew was that there was something or other
he had to attend to. His lordship, excusing himself perhaps on the ground of
necessity, there being a girl in the case, would have struck him again; but
Andrew threw himself between, and received the blow for him.
As Donal came to himself, he
heard a groan from the ground, and looking, saw Andrew at his feet, and
understood.
"Dear old man!" he
said; "he dared to strike you!"
"He didna mean
't," returned Andrew feebly. "Are ye winnin' ower 't, sir? He gae ye
a terrible ane! Ye micht hae h'ard it across the street!"
"I shall be all right
in a minute!" answered Donal, wiping the blood out of his eyes. "I've
a good hard head, thank God!--But what has become of them?"
"Ye didna think he wud
be waitin' to see 's come to oorsel's!" said the cobbler.
With Donal's help, and great
difficulty, he rose, and they stood looking at each other through the
starlight, bewildered and uncertain. The cobbler was the first to recover his
wits.
"It's o' no mainner of
use," he said, "to rouse the castel wi' hue an' cry! What hae we to
say but 'at we faund the twa i' the gairden thegither! It wud but raise a
clash--the which, fable or fac', wud do naething for naebody! His lordship maun
be loot ken, as ye say; but wull his lordship believe ye, sir? I'm some i' the
min' the yoong man 's awa' til's faither a'ready, to prejudeese him again'
onything ye may say."
"That makes it the more
necessary," said Donal, "that I should go at once to his lordship. He
will fall out upon me for not having told him at once; but I must not mind
that: if I were not to tell him now, he would have a good case against
me."
They were already walking towards
the house, the old man giving a groan now and then. He could not go in, he
said; he would walk gently on, and Donal would overtake him.
It was an hour and a half
before Andrew got home, and Donal had not overtaken him.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXV. THE EARL'S BEDCHAMBER.">
CHAPTER XXXV.
THE EARL'S BEDCHAMBER.
HAVING washed the blood from
his face, Donal sought Simmons.
"His lordship can't see
you now, I am sure, sir," answered the butler; "lord Forgue is with
him."
Donal turned and went straight
up to lord Morven's apartment. As he passed the door of his bedroom opening on
the corridor, he heard voices in debate. He entered the sitting-room. There was
no one there. It was not a time for ceremony. He knocked at the door of the
bedroom. The voices within were loud, and no answer came. He knocked again, and
received an angry permission to enter. He entered, closed the door behind him,
and stood in sight of his lordship, waiting what should follow.
Lord Morven was sitting up
in bed, his face so pale and distorted that Donal thought elsewhere he should
hardly have recognized it. The bed was a large four-post bed; its curtains were
drawn close to the posts, admitting as much air as possible. At the foot of it
stood lord Forgue, his handsome, shallow face flushed with anger, his right arm
straight down by his side, and the hand of it clenched hard. He turned when
Donal entered. A fiercer flush overspread his face, but almost immediately the
look of rage yielded to one of determined insult. Possibly even the appearance
of Donal was a relief to being alone with his father.
"Mr. Grant,"
stammered his lordship, speaking with pain, "you are well come!--just in
time to hear a father curse his son!"
"Even such a threat
shall not make me play a dishonourable part!" said Forgue, looking however
anything but honourable, for the heart, not the brain, moulds the expression.
"Mr. Grant,"
resumed the father, "I have found you a man of sense and refinement! If
you had been tutor to this degenerate boy, the worst trouble of my life would
not have overtaken me!"
Forgue's lip curled, but he
did not speak, and his father went on.
"Here is this fellow
come to tell me to my face that he intends the ruin and disgrace of the family
by a low marriage!"
"It will not be the
first time it has been so disgraced!" retorted the son, "--if fresh
peasant-blood be indeed a disgrace to any family!"
"Bah! the hussey is not
even a wholesome peasant-girl!" cried the father. "Who do you think
she is, Mr. Grant?"
"I do not need to
guess, my lord," replied Donal. "I came now to inform your lordship
of what I had myself seen."
"She must leave the
house this instant!"
"Then I too leave it,
my lord!" said Forgue.
"Where's your
money?" returned the earl contemptuously.
Forgue shifted to an attack
upon Donal.
"Your lordship hardly
places confidence in me," he said; "but it is not the less my duty to
warn you against this man: months ago he knew what was going on, and comes to
tell you now because this evening I chastised him for his rude
interference."
In cooler blood lord Forgue
would not have shown such meanness; but passion brings to the front the thing
that lurks.
"And it is no doubt to
the necessity for forestalling his disclosure that I owe the present ingenuous confession!"
said lord Morven. "--But explain, Mr. Grant."
"My lord," said
Donal calmly, "I became aware that there was something between lord Forgue
and the girl, and was alarmed for the girl: she is the child of friends to whom
I am much beholden. But on the promise of both that the thing should end, I
concluded it better not to trouble your lordship. I may have blundered in this,
but I did what seemed best. This night, however, I discovered that things were
going as before, and it became imperative on my position in your house that I
should make your lordship acquainted with the fact. He assevered there was
nothing dishonest between them, but, having deceived me once, how was I to
trust him again!"
"How indeed! the young
blackguard!" said his lordship, casting a fierce glance at his son.
"Allow me to
remark," said Forgue, with comparative coolness, "that I deceived no
one. What I promised was, that the affair should not go on: it did not; from
that moment it assumed a different and serious aspect. I now intend to marry
the girl."
"I tell you, Forgue, if
you do I will disown you."
Forgue smiled an impertinent
smile and held his peace: the threat had for him no terror.
"I shall be the better
able," continued his lordship, "to provide suitably for Davie; he is
what a son ought to be! But hear me, Forgue: you must be aware that, if I left
you all I had, it would be beggary for one handicapped with a title. You may
think my anger unreasonable, but it comes solely of anxiety on your account.
Nothing but a suitable marriage--the most suitable of all is within your arm's
length--can save you from the life of a moneyless peer--the most pitiable
object on the face of the earth. Were it possible to ignore your rank, you have
no profession, no trade even, in these trade-loving times, to fall back upon.
Except you marry as I please, you will have nothing from me but the contempt of
a title without a farthing to keep it decent. You threaten to leave the
house--can you pay for a railway-ticket?"
Forgue was silent for a
moment.
"My lord," he
said, "I have given my word to the girl: would you have me disgrace your
name by breaking it?"
"Tut! tut! there are
words and words! What obligation can there be in the rash promises of an
unworthy love! Still less are they binding where the man is not his own master!
You are under a bond to your family, under a bond to society, under a bond to
your country. Marry this girl, and you will be an outcast; marry as I would
have you, and no one will think the worse of you for a foolish vow in your
boyhood. Bah! the merest rumour of it will never rise into the serene air of
your position."
"And let the girl go
and break her heart!" said Forgue, with look black as death.
"You need fear no such
catastrophe! You are no such marvel among men that a kitchen-wench will break
her heart for you. She will be sorry for herself, no doubt; but it will be
nothing more than she expected, and will only confirm her opinion of you: she
knows well enough the risk she runs!"
While he spoke, Donal,
waiting his turn, stood as on hot iron. Such sayings were in his ears the foul
talk of hell. The moment the earl ceased, he turned to Forgue, and said:--
"My lord, you have removed
my harder thoughts of you! You have indeed broken your word, but in a way
infinitely nobler than I believed you capable of!"
Lord Morven stared
dumbfounded.
"Your comments are out
of place, Mr. Grant!" said Forgue, with something like dignity. "The
matter is between my father and myself. If you wanted to beg my pardon, you
should have waited a fitting opportunity!"
Donal held his peace. He had
felt bound to show sympathy with his enemy where he was right.
The earl was perplexed: his
one poor ally had gone over to the enemy! He took a glass from the table beside
him, and drank: then, after a moment's silence, apparently of exhaustion and
suffering, said,
"Mr. Grant, I desire a
word with you.--Leave the room, Forgue."
"My lord,"
returned Forgue, "you order me from the room to confer with one whose
presence with you is an insult to me!"
"He seems to me,"
answered his father bitterly, "to be after your own mind in the
affair!--How indeed should it be otherwise! But so far I have found Mr. Grant a
man of honour, and I desire to have some private conversation with him. I
therefore request you will leave us alone together."
This was said so politely,
yet with such latent command, that the youth dared not refuse compliance.
The moment he closed the
door behind him,
"I am glad he
yielded," said the earl, "for I should have had to ask you to put him
out, and I hate rows. Would you have done it?"
"I would have
tried."
"Thank you. Yet a
moment ago you took his part against me!"
"On the girl's
part--and for his honesty too, my lord!"
"Come now, Mr. Grant! I
understand your prejudices, I cannot expect you to look on the affair as I do.
I am glad to have a man of such sound general principles to form the character
of my younger son; but it is plain as a mountain that what would be the duty of
a young man in your rank of life toward a young woman in the same rank, would
be simple ruin to one in lord Forgue's position. A capable man like you can
make a living a hundred different ways; to one born with the burden of a title,
and without the means of supporting it, marriage with such a girl means
poverty, gambling, hunger, squabbling, dirt--suicide!"
"My lord,"
answered Donal, "the moment a man speaks of love to a woman, be she as lowly
and ignorant as mother Eve, that moment rank and privilege vanish, and
distinction is annihilated."
The earl gave a small sharp
smile.
"You would make a good
pleader, Mr. Grant! But if you had seen the consequences of such marriage half
as often as I, you would modify your ideas. Mark what I say: this marriage
shall not take place--by God! What! should I for a moment talk of it with
coolness were there the smallest actual danger of its occurrence--did I not
know that it never could, never shall take place! The boy is a fool, and he
shall know it! I have him in my power--neck and heels in my power! He does not
know it, and never could guess how; but it is true: one word from me, and the
rascal is paralysed! Oblige me by telling him what I have just said. The absurd
marriage shall not take place, I repeat. Invalid as I am, I am not yet
reduced to the condition of an obedient father."
He took up a small bottle,
poured a little from it, added water, and drank--then resumed.
"Now for the girl: who
knows about it?"
"So far as I am aware,
no one but her grandfather. He had come to the castle to inquire after her, and
was with me when we came upon them in the fruit garden."
"Then let no further
notice be taken of it. Tell no one--not even Mrs. Brookes. Let the young fools
do as they please."
"I cannot consent to
that, my lord."
"Why, what the devil
have you to do with it?"
"I am the friend of her
people."
"Pooh! pooh! don't talk
rubbish. What is it to them! I'll see to them. It will all come right. The
affair will settle itself. By Jove, I'm sorry you interfered! The thing would
have been much better left alone."
"My lord," said
Donal, "I can listen to nothing in this strain."
"All I ask is--promise
not to interfere."
"I will not."
"Thank you."
"My lord, you mistake.
I will not promise. Nay, I will interfere. What to do, I do not now know; but I
will save the girl if I can."
"And ruin an ancient
family! You think nothing of that!"
"Its honour, my lord,
will be best preserved in that of the girl."
"Damn you? will you
preach to me?"
Notwithstanding his fierce
words, Donal could not help seeing or imagining an almost suppliant look in his
eye.
"You must do as I tell
you in my house," he went on, "or you will soon see the outside of
it. Come: marry the girl yourself--she is deuced pretty--and I will give you
five hundred pounds for your wedding journey.--Poor Davie!"
"Your lordship insults
me."
"Then, damn you! be off
to your lessons, and take your insolent face out of my sight."
"If I remain in your
house, my lord, it is for Davie's sake."
"Go away," said
the earl; and Donal went.
He had hardly closed the
door behind him, when he heard a bell ring violently; and ere he reached the
bottom of the stair, he met the butler panting up as fast as his short legs and
red nose would permit. He would have stopped to question Donal, who hastened
past him, and in the refuge of his own room, sat down to think. Had his
conventional dignity been with him a matter of importance, he would have left
the castle the moment he got his things together; but he thought much more of
Davie, and much more of Eppy.
He had hardly seated himself
when he jumped up again: he must see Andrew Comin!
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXVI. A NIGHT-WATCH.">
CHAPTER XXXVI.
A NIGHT-WATCH.
WHEN he reached the bottom
of the hill, there at the gate was Forgue, walking up and down, apparently
waiting for him. He would have passed him, but Forgue stepped in front of him.
"Grant," he said,
"it is well we should understand each other!"
"I think, my lord, if
you do not yet understand me, it can scarcely be my fault."
"What did my father
say?"
"I would deliver to
your lordship a message he gave me for you but for two reasons--one, that I believe
he changed his mind though he did not precisely say so, and the other, that I
will not serve him or you in the matter."
"Then you intend
neither to meddle nor make?"
"That is my affair, my
lord. I will not take your lordship into my confidence."
"Don't be unreasonable,
now! Do get off your high horse. Can't you understand a fellow? Everybody can't
keep his temper as you do! I mean the girl no harm."
"I will not talk with
you about her. And whatever you insist on saying to me, I will use against you
without scruple, should occasion offer."
As he spoke he caught a look
on Forgue's face which revealed somehow that it was not for him he had been
waiting, but for Eppy. He turned and went back towards the castle: he might
meet her! Forgue called after him, but he paid no heed.
As he hastened up the hill,
not so much as the rustle of bird or mouse did he hear. He lingered about the
top of the road for half an hour, then turned and went to the cobbler's.
He found Doory in great
distress; for she was not merely sore troubled about her son's child, but
Andrew was in bed and suffering great pain. The moment Donal saw him he went
for the doctor. He said a rib was broken, bound him up, and gave him some
medicine. All done that could be done, Donal sat down to watch beside him.
He lay still, with closed
eyes and white face. So patient was he that his very pain found utterance in a
sort of blind smile. Donal did not know much about pain: he could read in
Andrew's look his devotion to the will of him whose being was his peace, but he
did not know above what suffering his faith lifted him, and held him hovering
yet safe. His faith made him one with life, the eternal Life--and that is
salvation.
In closest contact with the
divine, the original relation restored, the source once more holding its issue,
the divine love pouring itself into the deepest vessel of the man's being,
itself but a vessel for the holding of the diviner and divinest, who can wonder
if keenest pain should not be able to quench the smile of the prostrate! Few
indeed have reached the point of health to laugh at disease, but are there
none? Let not a man say because he cannot that no one can.
The old woman was very calm,
only every now and then she would lift her hands and shake her head, and look
as if the universe were going to pieces, because her husband lay there by the
stroke of the ungodly. And if he had lain there forgotten, then indeed the
universe would have been going to pieces! When he coughed, every pang seemed to
go through her body to her heart. Love is as lovely in the old as in the
young--lovelier when in them, as often, it is more sympathetic and
unselfish--that is, more true.
Donal wrote to Mrs. Brookes
that he would not be home that night; and having found a messenger at the inn,
settled himself to watch by his friend.
The hours glided quietly
over. Andrew slept a good deal, and seemed to have pleasant visions. He was
finding yet more saving. Now and then his lips would move as if he were holding
talk with some friendly soul. Once Donal heard the murmured words, "Lord,
I'm a' yer ain;" and noted that his sleep grew deeper thereafter. He did
not wake till the day began to dawn. Then he asked for some water. Seeing
Donal, and divining that he had been by his bedside all the night, he thanked
him with a smile and a little nod--which somehow brought to his memory certain
words Andrew had spoken on another occasion: "There's ane, an' there's a';
an' the a' 's ane, an' the ane 's a'."
When Donal reached the
castle, he found his breakfast and Mrs. Brookes waiting for him. She told him
that Eppy, meeting her in the passage the night before, had burst into tears,
but she could get nothing out of her, and had sent her to her room; this
morning she had not come down at the proper time, and when she sent after her,
did not come: she went up herself, and found her determined to leave the castle
that very day; she was now packing her things to go, nor did she see any good
in trying to prevent her.
Donal said if she would go
home, there was plenty for her to do there; old people's bones were not easy to
mend, and it would be some time before her grandfather was well again!
Mrs. Brookes said she would
not keep her now if she begged to stay; she was afraid she would come to grief,
and would rather she went home; she would take her home herself.
"The lass is no an ill
ane," she added: " but she disna ken what she wud be at. She wants
some o' the Lord's ain discipleen, I'm thinkin!"
"An' that ye may be
sure she'll get, mistress Brookes!" said Donal.
Eppy was quite ready to go
home and help nurse her grandfather. She thought her conduct must by this time
be the talk of the castle, and was in mortal terror of lord Morven. All the
domestics feared him--it would be hard to say precisely why; it came in part of
seeing him so seldom that he had almost come to represent the ghost some said
lived in the invisible room and haunted the castle.
It was the easier for Eppy
to go home that her grandmother needed her, and that her grandfather would not
be able to say much to her. She was an affectionate girl, and yet her
grandfather's condition roused in her no indignation; for the love of being
loved is such a blinding thing, that the greatest injustice from the dearest to
the next dearest will by some natures be readily tolerated. God help us! we are
a mean set--and meanest the man who is ablest to justify himself!
Mrs. Brookes, having prepared
a heavy basket of good things for Eppy to carry home to her grandmother, and
made it the heavier for the sake of punishing her with the weight of it, set
out with her, saying to herself,
"The jaud wants a wheen
harder wark nor I hae hauden till her han', an' doobtless it's preparin' for
her!"
She was kindly received,
without a word of reproach, by her grandmother; the sufferer, forgetful of, or
forgiving her words of rejection in the garden, smiled when she came near his
bedside; and she turned away to conceal the tears she could not repress. She
loved her grand-parents, and she loved the young lord, and she could not get
the two loves to dwell together peaceably in her mind--a common difficulty with
our weak, easily divided, hardly united natures--frangible, friable, readily
distorted! It needs no less than God himself, not only to unite us to one
another, but to make a whole of the ill-fitting, roughly disjointed portions of
our individual beings. Tearfully but diligently she set about her duties; and
not only the heart, but the limbs and joints of her grandmother were relieved
by her presence; while doubtless she herself found some refuge from anxious
thought in the service she rendered. What she saw as her probable future, I
cannot say; one hour her confidence in her lover's faithfulness would be
complete, the next it would be dashed with huge blots of uncertainty; but her
grandmother rejoiced over her as out of harm's way.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXVII. LORD FORGUE AND LADY ARCTURA.">
CHAPTER XXXVII.
LORD FORGUE AND LADY
ARCTURA.
AT the castle things fell
into their old routine. Nothing had been arranged between lord Forgue and Eppy,
and he seemed content that it should be so. Mrs. Brookes told him that she had
gone home: he made neither remark nor inquiry, manifesting no interest.
It would be well his father
should not see it necessary to push things farther! He did not want to turn out
of the castle! Without means, what was he to do? The marriage could not be
to-day or to-morrow! and in the meantime he could see Eppy, perhaps more easily
than at the castle! He would contrive! He was sorry he had hurt the old fellow,
but he could not help it! he would get in the way! Things would have
been much worse if he had not got first to his father! He would wait a bit, and
see what would turn up! For the tutor-fellow, he must not quarrel with him
downright! No good would come of that! In the end he would have his way! and
that in spite of them all!
But what he really wanted he
did not know. He only knew, or imagined, that he was over head and ears in love
with the girl: what was to come of it was all in the clouds. He had said he
meant to marry her; but to that statement he had been driven, more than he
knew, by the desire to escape the contempt of the tutor he scorned; and he
rejoiced that he had at least discomfited him. He knew that if he did marry
Eppy, or any one else of whom his father did not approve, he had nothing to
look for but absolute poverty, for he knew no way to earn money; he was therefore
unprepared to defy him immediately--whatever he might do by and by. He said to
himself sometimes that he was as willing as any man to work for his wife if
only he knew how; but when he said so, had he always a clear vision of Eppy as
the wife in prospect? Alas, it would take years to make him able to earn even a
woman's wages! It would be a fine thing for a lord to labour like a common man
for the support of a child of the people for whom he had sacrificed everything;
but where was the possibility? When thoughts like these grew too many for him,
Forgue wished he had never seen the girl. His heart would immediately reproach
him; immediately he would comfort his conscience with the reflection that to
wish he had never seen her was a very different thing from wishing to act as if
he had. He loafed about in her neighbourhood as much as he dared, haunted the
house itself in the twilight, and at night even ventured sometimes to creep up
the stair, but for some time he never even saw her: for days Eppy never went
out of doors except into the garden.
Though she had not spoken of
it, Arctura had had more than a suspicion that something was going on between
her cousin and the pretty maid; for the little window of her sitting room
partially overlooked a certain retired spot favoured of the lovers; and after
Eppy left the house, Davie, though he did not associate the facts, noted that
she was more cheerful than before. But there was no enlargement of intercourse
between her and Forgue. They knew it was the wish of the head of the house that
they should marry, but the earl had been wise enough to say nothing openly to
either of them: he believed the thing would have a better chance on its own
merits; and as yet they had shown no sign of drawing to each other. It might, perhaps,
have been otherwise on his part had not the young lord been taken with the
pretty housemaid, though at first he had thought of nothing more than a little
passing flirtation, reckoning his advantage with her by the height on which he
stood in his own regard; but it was from no jealousy that Arctura was relieved
by the departure of Eppy. She had never seen anything attractive in her cousin,
and her religious impressions would have been enough to protect her from any
drawing to him: had they not poisoned in her even the virtue of common
house-friendliness toward a very different man? The sense of relief she had
when Eppy went, lay in being delivered from the presence of something
clandestine, with which she could not interfere so far as to confess knowledge
of it. It had rendered her uneasy; she had felt shy and uncomfortable. Once or
twice she had been on the point of saying to Mrs. Brookes that she thought her
cousin and Eppy very oddly familiar, but had failed of courage. It was no
wonder therefore that she should be more cheerful.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXVIII. ARCTURA AND SOPHIA.">
CHAPTER XXXVIII.
ARCTURA AND SOPHIA.
ABOUT this time her friend,
Miss Carmichael, returned from a rather lengthened visit. But after the
atonement that had taken place between her and Donal, it was with some anxiety
that lady Arctura looked forward to seeing her. She shrank from telling her what
had come about through the wonderful poem, as she thought it, which had so
bewitched her. She shrank too from showing her the verses: they were not of a
kind, she was sure, to meet with recognition from her. She knew she would make
game of them, and that not good-humouredly like Kate, who yet confessed to some
beauty in them. For herself, the poem and the study of its growth had
ministered so much nourishment to certain healthy poetic seeds lying hard and
dry in her bosom, that they had begun to sprout, indeed to shoot rapidly up.
Donal's poem could not fail therefore to be to her thenceforward something
sacred. A related result also was that it had made her aware of something very
defective in her friend's constitution: she did not know whether in her constitution
mental, moral, or spiritual: probably it was in all three. Doubtless, thought
Arctura, she knew most things better than she, and certainly had a great deal
more common sense; but, on the other hand, was she not satisfied with far less
than she could be satisfied with? To believe as her friend believed would not
save her from insanity! She must be made on a smaller scale of necessities than
herself! How was she able to love the God she said she believed in? God should
at least be as beautiful as his creature could imagine him! But Miss Carmichael
would say her poor earthly imagination was not to occupy itself with such a
high subject! Oh, why would not God tell her something about himself--something
direct--straight from himself? Why should she only hear of him at second
hand--always and always?
Alas, poor girl! second
hand? Five hundredth hand rather? And she might have been all the time
communing with the very God himself, manifest in his own shape, which is ours
also!--all the time learning that her imagination could never--not to say
originate, but, when presented, receive into it the unspeakable excess of his
loveliness, of his absolute devotion and tenderness to the creatures, the
children of his father!
In the absence of Miss
Carmichael she had thought with less oppression of many things that in her
presence appeared ghastly-hopeless; now in the prospect of her reappearance she
began to feel wicked in daring a thought of her own concerning the God that was
nearer to her than her thoughts! Such an unhealthy mastery had she gained over
her! What if they met Donal, and she saw her smile to him as she always did
now! One thing she was determined upon--and herein lay the pledge of her coming
freedom!--that she would not behave to him in the least otherwise than her
wont. If she would be worthy, she must be straightforward!
Donal and she had never had
any further talk, much as she would have liked it, upon things poetic. As a
matter of supposed duty--where she had got the idea I do not know--certainly
not from Miss Carmichael, seeing she approved of little poetry but that of
Young, Cowper, Pollok, and James Montgomery--she had been reading the Paradise
Lost, and wished much to speak of it to Donal, but had not the courage.
When Miss Carmichael came,
she at once perceived a difference in her, and it set her thinking. She was not
one to do or say anything without thinking over it first. She had such a
thorough confidence in her judgment, and such a pleasure in exercising it, that
she almost always rejected an impulse. Judgment was on the throne; feeling
under the footstool. There was something in Arctura's carriage which reminded
her of the only time when she had stood upon her rank with her. This was once
she made a remark disparaging a favourite dog: for the animals Arctura could
brave even her spiritual nightmare: they were not under the wrath and curse
like men and women, therefore might be defended! She had on that occasion shown
so much offence that Miss Carmichael saw, if she was to keep her influence over
her, she must avoid rousing the phantom of rank in defence of prejudice. She
was now therefore careful--said next to nothing, but watched her keenly, and
not the less slyly that she looked her straight in the face. There is an effort
to see into the soul of others that is essentially treacherous; wherever,
friendship being the ostensible bond, inquiry outruns regard, it is
treachery--an endeavour to grasp more than the friend would knowingly give.
They went for a little walk
in the grounds; as they returned they met Donal going out with Davie. Arctura
and Donal passed with a bow and a friendly smile; Davie stopped and spoke to
the ladies, then bounded after his friend.
"Have you attended the
scripture-lesson regularly?" asked Miss Carmichael.
"Yes; I have been
absent only once, I think, since you left," replied Arctura.
"Good, my dear! You
have not been leaving your lamb to the wolf!"
"I begin to doubt if he
be a wolf."
"Ah! does he wear his
sheepskin so well? Are you sure he is not plotting to devour sheep and shepherd
together?" said Miss Carmichael, with an open glance of search.
"Don't you think,"
suggested Arctura, "when you are not able to say anything, it would be
better not to be present? Your silence looks like agreement."
"But you can always
protest! You can assert he is all wrong. You can say you do not in the least
agree with him!"
"But what if you are
not sure that you do not agree with him?"
"I thought as
much!" said Miss Carmichael to herself. "I might have foreseen this!"--Here
she spoke.--"If you are not sure you do agree, you can say, 'I can't say I
agree with you!' It is always safer to admit little than much."
"I do not quite follow
you. But speaking of little and much, I am sure I want a great deal more than I
know yet to save me. I have never yet heard what seems enough."
"Is that to say God has
not done his part?"
"No; it is only to say
that I hope he has done more than I have yet heard."
"More than send his son
to die for your sins?"
"More than you say that
means."
"You have but to
believe Christ did so."
"I don't know that he
died for my sins."
"He died for the sins
of the whole world."
"Then I must be
saved!"
"Yes, if you believe
that he made atonement for your sins."
"Then I cannot be saved
except I believe that I shall be saved. And I cannot believe I shall be saved
until I know I shall be saved!"
"You are cavilling,
Arctura! Ah, this is what you have been learning of Mr. Grant! I ought not to
have gone away!"
"Nothing of the
sort!" said Arctura, drawing herself up a little. "I am sorry if I
have said anything wrong; but really I can get hold of nothing! I feel
sometimes as if I should go out of my mind."
"Arctura, I have done
my best for you! If you think you have found a better teacher, no warning, I
fear, will any longer avail!"
"If I did think I had
found a better teacher, no warning certainly would; I am only afraid I have
not. But of one thing I am sure--that the things Mr. Grant teaches are much
more to be desired than--"
"By the unsanctified
heart, no doubt!" said Sophia.
"The unsanctified
heart," rejoined Arctura, astonished at her own boldness, and the sense of
power and freedom growing in her as she spoke, "surely needs God as much
as the sanctified! But can the heart be altogether unsanctified that desires to
find God so beautiful and good that it can worship him with its whole power of
love and adoration? Or is God less beautiful and good than that?"
"We ought to worship
God whatever he is."
"But could we love him
with all our hearts if he were not altogether lovable?"
"He might not be the
less to be worshipped though he seemed so to us. We must worship his justice as
much as his love, his power as much as his justice."
Arctura returned no answer;
the words had fallen on her heart like an ice-berg. She was not, however, so
utterly overwhelmed by them as she would have been some time before; she
thought with herself, "I will ask Mr. Grant! I am sure he does not
think like that! Worship power as much as love! I begin to think she does not
understand what she is talking about! If I were to make a creature needing all
my love to make life endurable to him, and then not be kind enough to him,
should I not be cruel? Would I not be to blame? Can God be God and do anything
conceivably to blame--anything that is not altogether beautiful? She tells me
we cannot judge what it would be right for God to do by what it would be right
for us to do: if what seems right to me is not right to God, I must wrong my conscience
and be a sinner in order to serve him! Then my conscience is not the voice of
God in me! How then am I made in his image? What does it mean? Ah, but that
image has been defaced by the fall! So I cannot tell a bit what God is like?
Then how am I to love him? I never can love him! I am very miserable! I am not
God's child!
Thus, long after Miss
Carmichael had taken a coldly sorrowful farewell of her, Arctura went round and
round the old mill-horse rack of her self-questioning: God was not to be trusted
in until she had done something she could not do, upon which he would take her
into his favour, and then she could trust him! What a God to give all her heart
to, to long for, to dream of being at home with! Then she compared Miss
Carmichael and Donal Grant, and thought whether Donal might not be as likely to
be right as she. Oh, where was assurance, where was certainty about anything!
How was she ever to know? What if the thing she came to know for certain
should be--a God she could not love!
The next day was Sunday.
Davie and his tutor overtook her going home from church. It came as of itself
to her lips, and she said,
"Mr. Grant, how are we
to know what God is like?"
"'Philip saith unto
him, Lord, show us the Father and it sufficeth us. Jesus saith unto him, Have I
been so long time with you, and yet hast thou not known me, Philip? He that
hath seen me hath seen the father, and how sayest thou then, Show us the
father?'"
Thus answered Donal, without
a word of his own, and though the three walked side by side, it was ten minutes
before another was spoken. Then at last said Arctura,
"If I could but see
Christ!"
"It is not necessary to
see him to know what he is like. You can read what those who knew him said he
was like; that is the first step to understanding him, which is the true
seeing; the second is, doing what he tells you: when you understand him--there
is your God!"
From that day Arctura's
search took a new departure. It is strange how often one may hear a thing, yet
never have really heard it! The heart can hear only what it is capable of
hearing; therefore "the times of this ignorance God winked at;" but
alas for him who will not hear what he is capable of hearing!
His failure to get word or
even sight of Eppy, together with some uneasiness at the condition in which her
grandfather continued, induced lord Forgue to accept the invitation--which his
father had taken pains to have sent him--to spend three weeks or a month with a
relative in the north of England. He would gladly have sent a message to Eppy
before he went, but had no one he could trust with it: Davie was too much under
the influence of his tutor! So he departed without sign, and Eppy soon imagined
he had deserted her. For a time her tears flowed yet more freely, but by and by
she began to feel something of relief in having the matter settled, for she
could not see how they were ever to be married. She would have been content to
love him always, she said to herself, were there no prospect of marriage, or
even were there no marriage in question; but would he continue to care for her
love? She did not think she could expect that. So with many tears she gave him
up--or thought she did. He had loved her, and that was a grand thing!
There was much that was
good, and something that was wise in the girl, notwithstanding her folly in
allowing such a lover. The temptation was great: even if his attentions were in
their nature but transient, they were sweet while they passed. I doubt if her
love was of the deepest she had to give; but who can tell? A woman will love
where a man can see nothing lovely. So long as she is able still to love, she
is never quite to be pitied; but when the reaction comes--?
So the dull days went by.
But for lady Arctura a great
hope had begun to dawn--the hope, namely, that the world was in the hand, yea
in the heart of One whom she herself might one day see, in her inmost soul, and
with clearest eyes, to be Love itself--not a love she could not care for, but
the very heart, generating centre, embracing circumference, and crown of all
loves.
Donal prayed to God for lady
Arctura, and waited. Her hour was not yet come, but was coming! Everyone that
is ready the Father brings to Jesus: the disciple is not greater than his
master, and must not think to hasten the hour, or lead one who is not yet
taught of God; he must not be miserable about another as if God had forgotten
him. Strange helpers of God we shall be, if, thinking to do his work, we act as
if he were neglecting it! To wait for God, believing it his one design to
redeem his creatures, ready to put the hand to, the moment his hour strikes, is
the faith fit for a fellow-worker with him!
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XXXIX. THE CASTLE-ROOF.">
CHAPTER XXXIX.
THE CASTLE-ROOF.
ONE stormy Friday night in
the month of March, when a bitter east wind was blowing, Donal, seated at the
plain deal-table he had got Mrs. Brookes to find him that he might use it
regardless of ink, was drawing upon it a diagram, in quest of a simplification
for Davie, when a sudden sense of cold made him cast a glance at his fire. He
had been aware that it was sinking, but, as there was no fuel in the room, had
forgotten it again: it was very low, and he must at once fetch both wood and
coal! In certain directions and degrees of wind this was rather a ticklish
task; but he had taken the precaution of putting up here and there a bit of
rope. Closing the door behind him to keep in what warmth he might, and
ascending the stairs a few feet higher, he stepped out on the bartizan, and so
round the tower to the roof. There he stood for a moment to look about him.
It was a moonlit night, so
far as the clouds, blown in huge and almost continuous masses over the heavens,
would permit the light of the moon to emerge. The roaring of the sea came like
a low rolling mist across the flats. The air gloomed and darkened and lightened
again around him, as the folds of the cloud-blanket overhead were torn, or
dropped trailing, or gathered again in the arms of the hurrying wind. As he
stood, it seemed suddenly to change, and take a touch of south in its blowing.
The same instant came to his ear a loud wail: it was the ghost-music! There was
in it the cry of a discord, mingling with a wild rolling change of harmonies.
He stood "like one forbid," and listened with all his power. It came
again, and again, and was more continuous than he had ever heard it before.
Here was now a chance indeed of tracing it home! As a gaze-hound with his eyes,
as a sleuth-hound with his nose, he stood ready to start hunting with his
listing listening ear. The seeming approach and recession of the sounds might
be occasioned by changes in their strength, not by any change of position!
"It must come from
somewhere on the roof!" he said, and setting down the pail he had brought,
he got on his hands and knees, first to escape the wind in his ears, and next
to diminish its hold on his person. Over roof after roof he crept like a cat,
stopping to listen every time a new gush of the sound came, then starting
afresh in the search for its source. Upon a great gathering of roofs like
these, erected at various times on various levels, and with all kinds of
architectural accommodations of one part to another, sound would be variously
deflected, and as difficult to trace as inside the house! Careless of cold or
danger, he persisted, creeping up, creeping down, over flat leads, over sloping
slates, over great roofing stones, along low parapets, and round ticklish
corners--following the sound ever, as a cat a flitting unconscious bird: when
it ceased, he would keep slowly on in the direction last chosen. Sometimes,
when the moon was more profoundly obscured, he would have to stop altogether,
unable to get a peep of his way.
On one such occasion, when
it was nearly pitch-dark, and the sound had for some time ceased, he was
crouching upon a high-pitched roof of great slabs, his fingers clutched around
the edges of one of them, and his mountaineering habits standing him in good stead,
protected a little from the force of the blast by a huge stack of chimneys that
rose to windward: while he clung thus waiting--louder than he had yet heard it,
almost in his very ear, arose the musical ghost-cry--this time like that of a
soul in torture. The moon came out, as at the cry, to see, but Donal could spy
nothing to suggest its origin. As if disappointed, the moon instantly withdrew,
the darkness again fell, and the wind rushed upon him full of keen slanting
rain, as if with fierce intent of protecting the secret: there was little
chance of success that night! he must break off the hunt till daylight! If
there was any material factor in the sound, he would be better able to discover
it then! By the great chimney-stack he could identify the spot where he had
been nearest to it! There remained for the present but the task of finding his
way back to his tower.
A difficult task it
was--more difficult than he anticipated. He had not an idea in what direction
his tower lay--had not an idea of the track, if track it could be called, by
which he had come. One thing only was clear--it was somewhere else than where
he was. He set out therefore, like any honest pilgrim who knows only he must go
somewhere else, and began his wanderings. He found himself far more obstructed
than in coming. Again and again he could go no farther in the direction he was
trying, again and again had to turn and try another. It was half-an-hour at
least before he came to a spot he knew, and by that time, with the rain the wind
had fallen a little. Against a break in the clouds he saw the outline of one of
his store-sheds, and his way was thenceforward plain. He caught up his pail,
filled it with coal and wood, and hastened to his nest as quickly as cramped
joints would carry him, hopeless almost of finding his fire still alive.
But when he reached the
stair, and had gone down a few steps, he saw a strange sight: below him, at his
door, with a small wax-taper in her hand, stood the form of a woman, in the
posture of one who had just knocked, and was hearkening for an answer. So
intent was she, and so loud was the wind among the roofs, that she had not
heard his step, and he stood a moment afraid to speak lest he should startle
her. Presently she knocked again. He made an attempt at ventriloquy, saying in
a voice to sound farther off than it was, "Come in." A hand rose to
the latch, and opened the door. By the hand he knew it was lady Arctura.
"Welcome to the stormy
sky, my lady!" he said, as he entered the room after her--a pleasant
object after his crawling excursion!
She started a little at his
voice behind her, and turning was more startled still.
Donal was more like a
chimney-sweep than a tutor in a lord's castle. He was begrimed and blackened
from head to foot, and carried a pailful of coals and wood. Reading readily her
look, he made haste to explain.
"I have been on the
roof for the last hour," he said.
"What were you doing
there," she asked, with a strange mingling of expressions, "in such a
night?"
"I heard the music, my
lady--the ghost-music, you know, that haunts the castle, and--"
"I heard it too,"
she murmured, with a look almost of terror. "I have often heard it before,
but never so loud as to-night. Have you any notion about it, Mr. Grant?"
"None whatever--except
that I am nearly sure it comes from somewhere about the roof."
"If you could clear up
the mystery!"
"I have some hope of
it.--You are not frightened, my lady?"
She had caught hold of the
back of a chair.
"Do sit down. I will
get you some water."
"No, no; I shall be
right in a moment!" she answered. "Your stair has taken my breath
away. But my uncle is in such a strange condition that I could not help coming
to you."
"I have seen him
myself, more than once, very strange."
"Will you come with
me?"
"Anywhere."
"Come then."
She left the room, and led
the way, by the light of her dim taper, down the stair. About the middle of it,
she stopped at a door, and turning said, with a smile like that of a child, and
the first untroubled look Donal had yet seen upon her face--
"How delightful it is
to be taken out of fear! I am not the least afraid now!"
"I am very glad,"
said Donal. "I should like to kill fear; it is the shadow that follows at
the heels of wrong.--Do you think the music has anything to do with your
uncle's condition?"
"I do not know."
She turned again hastily,
and passing through the door, entered a part of the house with which Donal had
no acquaintance. With many bewildering turns, she led him to the great
staircase, down which she continued her course. The house was very still: it
must surely be later than he had thought--only there were so few servants in it
for its extent! His guide went very fast, with a step light as a bird's: at one
moment he had all but lost sight of her in the great curve. At the room in
which Donal first saw the earl, she stopped.
The door was open, but there
was no light within. She led him across to the door of the little chamber
behind. A murmur, but no light, came from it. In a moment it was gone, and the
deepest silence filled the world. Arctura entered. One step within the door she
stood still, and held high her taper. Donal looked in sideways.
A small box was on the floor
against the foot of the farthest wall, and on the box, in a long dressing gown
of rich faded stuff, the silk and gold in which shone feebly in the dim light,
stood the tall meagre form of the earl, with his back to the door, his face to
the wall, close to it, and his arms and hands stretched out against it, like
one upon a cross. He stood without moving a muscle or uttering a sound. What
could it mean? Donal gazed in a blank dismay.
Not a minute had passed,
though it was to him a long and painful time, when the murmuring came again. He
listened as to a voice from another world--a thing terrible to those whose fear
dwells in another world. But to Donal it was terrible as a voice from no other
world could have been; it came from an unseen world of sin and suffering--a
world almost a negation of the eternal, a world of darkness and the shadow of
death. But surely there was hope for that world yet!--for whose were the words
in which its indwelling despair grew audible?
"And we indeed justly;
for we receive the due reward of our deeds; but this man hath done nothing
amiss!"
Again the silence fell, but
the form did not move, and still they stood regarding him.
From far away came the sound
of the ghost-music. The head against the wall began to move as if waking from
sleep. The hands sank along the wall and fell by the sides. The earl gave a
deep sigh, but still stood leaning his forehead against the wall.
Arctura turned, and they
left the room.
She went down the stair, and
on to the library. Its dark oak cases and old bindings reflected hardly a ray
of the poor taper she carried; but the fire was not yet quite out. She set down
the light, and looked at Donal in silence.
"What does it all
mean?" he asked in a hoarse whisper.
"God knows!" she
returned solemnly.
"Are we safe?" he
asked. "May he not come here?"
"I do not think he
will. I have seen him in many parts of the house, but never here."
Even as she spoke the door
swung noiselessly open, and the earl entered. His face was ghastly pale; his
eyes were wide open; he came straight towards them. But he did not see them; or
if he did, he saw them but as phantoms of the dream in which he was
walking--phantoms which had not yet become active in the dream. He drew a chair
to the embers, in his fancy doubtless a great fire, sat for a moment or two
gazing into them, rose, went the whole length of the room, took down a book,
returned with it to the fire, drew towards him Arctura's tiny taper, opened the
book, and began to read in an audible murmur. Donal, trying afterwards to
recall and set down what he had heard, wrote nothing better than this:--
In the heart of the
earth-cave
Lay the king.
Through chancel and choir
and nave
The bells ring.
Said the worm at his side,
Sweet fool,
Turn to thy bride;
Is the night so cool?
Wouldst thou lie like a
stone till the aching morn
Out of the dark be born?
Heavily pressed the night
enorm,
But he heard the voice of
the worm,
Like the sound of a muttered
thunder low,
In the realms where no feet
go.
And he said, I will rise,
I will will myself glad;
I will open my eyes,
And no more sleep sad.
For who is a god
But the man who can spring
Up from the sod,
And be his own king?
I will model my gladness,
Dig my despair--
And let goodness or badness
Be folly's own care!
I will he content,
And the world shall spin
round
Till its force be outspent.
It shall drop
Like a top
Spun by a boy,
While I sit in my tent,
In a featureless joy--
Sit without sound,
And toss up my world,
Till it burst and be drowned
In the blackness upcurled
From the deep hell-ground.
The dreams of a god
Are the worlds of his
slaves:
I will be my own god,
And rule my own knaves!
He went on in this way for
some minutes; then the rimes grew less perfect, and the utterance sank into
measured prose. The tone of the speaker showed that he took the stuff for glowing
verse, and regarded it as embodying his own present consciousness. One might
have thought the worm would have a word to say in rejoinder; but no; the worm
had vanished, and the buried dreamer had made himself a god--his own god! Donal
stole up softly behind him, and peeped at the open book: it was the Novum
Organum!
They glided out of the room,
and left the dreamer to his dreams.
"Do you think,"
said Donal, "I ought to tell Simmons?"
"It would be better. Do
you know where to find him?"
"I do not."
"I will show you a bell
that rings in his room. He will think his lordship has rung it."
They went and rang the bell.
In a minute or two they heard the steps of the faithful servant seeking his
master, and bade each other good-night.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XL. A RELIGION-LESSON.">
CHAPTER XL.
A RELIGION-LESSON.
IN the morning Donal learned
from Simmons that his master was very ill--could not raise his head.
"The way he do moan and
cry!" said Simmons. "You would think sure he was either out of his
mind, or had something heavy upon it! All the years I known him, he been like
that every now an' then, and back to his old self again, little the worse! Only
the fits do come oftener."
Towards the close of school,
as Donal was beginning to give his lesson in religion, lady Arctura entered,
and sat down beside Davie.
"What would you think
of me, Davie," Donal was saying, "if I were angry with you because
you did not know something I had never taught you?"
Davie only laughed. It was
to him a grotesque, an impossible supposition.
"If," Donal
resumed, "I were to show you a proposition of Euclid which you had never
seen before, and say to you, 'Now, Davie, this is one of the most beautiful of
all Euclid's propositions, and you must immediately admire it, and admire
Euclid for constructing it!'--what would you say?"
Davie thought, and looked
puzzled.
"But you wouldn't do
it, sir!" he said. "--I know you wouldn't do it!" he added,
after a moment.
"Why should I
not?"
"It isn't your way,
sir."
"But suppose I were to
take that way?"
"You would not then be
like yourself, sir!"
"Tell me how I should
be unlike myself. Think."
"You would not be
reasonable."
"What would you say to
me?"
"I should say, 'Please,
sir, let me learn the proposition first, and then I shall be able to admire it.
I don't know it yet!'"
"Very good!--Now again,
suppose, when you tried to learn it, you were not able to do so, and therefore
could see no beauty in it--should I blame you?"
"No, sir; I am sure you
would not--because I should not be to blame, and it would not be fair; and you
never do what is not fair!"
"I am glad you think
so: I try to be fair.--That looks as if you believed in me, Davie!"
"Of course I do,
sir!"
"Why?"
"Just because you are
fair."
"Suppose, Davie, I said
to you, 'Here is a very beautiful thing I should like you to learn,' and you,
after you had partly learned it, were to say 'I don't see anything beautiful in
this: I am afraid I never shall!'--would that be to believe in me?"
"No, surely, sir! for
you know best what I am able for."
"Suppose you said, 'I
daresay it is all as good as you say, but I don't care to take so much trouble
about it,'--what would that be?"
"Not to believe in you,
sir. You would not want me to learn a thing that was not worth my trouble, or a
thing I should not be glad of knowing when I did know it."
"Suppose you said,
'Sir, I don't doubt what you say, but I am so tired, I don't mean to do
anything more you tell me,'--would you then be believing in me?"
"No. That might be to
believe your word, but it would not be to trust you. It would be to think my
thinks better than your thinks, and that would be no faith at all."
Davie had at times an oddly
childish way of putting things.
"Suppose you were to
say nothing, but go away and do nothing of what I told you--what would that
be?"
"Worse and worse; it
would be sneaking."
"One question more:
what is faith--the big faith I mean--not the little faith between equals--the
big faith we put in one above us?"
"It is to go at once
and do the thing he tells us to do."
"If we don't, then we
haven't faith in him?"
"No; certainly
not."
"But might not that be
his fault?"
"Yes--if he was not
good--and so I could not trust him. If he said I was to do one kind of thing,
and he did another kind of thing himself, then of course I could not have faith
in him."
"And yet you might feel
you must do what he told you!"
"Yes."
"Would that be faith in
him?"
"No."
"Would you always do
what he told you?"
"Not if he told me to
do what it would be wrong to do."
"Now tell me, Davie,
what is the biggest faith of all--the faith to put in the one only altogether
good person."
"You mean God, Mr.
Grant?"
"Whom else could I
mean?"
"You might mean
Jesus."
"They are one; they
mean always the same thing, do always the same thing, always agree. There is
only one thing they don't do the same in--they do not love the same
person."
"What do you
mean, Mr. Grant?" interrupted Arctura.
She had been listening
intently: was the cloven foot of Mr. Grant's heresy now at last about to appear
plainly?
"I mean this,"
answered Donal, with a smile that seemed to Arctura such a light as she had
never seen on human face, "--that God loves Jesus, not God; and Jesus
loves God, not Jesus. We love one another, not ourselves--don't we,
Davie?"
"You do, Mr.
Grant," answered Davie modestly.
"Now tell me, Davie,
what is the great big faith of all--that which we have to put in the Father of
us, who is as good not only as thought can think, but as good as heart can
wish--infinitely better than anybody but Jesus Christ can think--what is the
faith to put in him?"
"Oh, it is
everything!" answered Davie.
"But what first?"
asked Donal.
"First, it is to do
what he tells us."
"Yes, Davie: it is to
learn his problems by going and doing his will; not trying to understand things
first, but trying first to do things. We must spread out our arms to him as a
child does to his mother when he wants her to take him; then when he sets us
down, saying, 'Go and do this or that,' we must make all the haste in us to go
and do it. And when we get hungry to see him, we must look at his
picture."
"Where is that,
sir?"
"Ah, Davie, Davie!
don't you know that yet? Don't you know that, besides being himself, and just
because he is himself, Jesus is the living picture of God?"
"I know, sir! We have
to go and read about him in the book."
"May I ask you a
question, Mr. Grant?" said Arctura.
"With perfect
freedom," answered Donal. "I only hope I may be able to answer
it."
"When we read about
Jesus, we have to draw for ourselves his likeness from words, and you know what
kind of a likeness the best artist would make that way, who had never seen with
his own eyes the person whose portrait he had to paint!"
"I understand you
quite," returned Donal. "Some go to other men to draw it for them;
and some go to others to hear from them what they must draw--thus getting all
their blunders in addition to those they must make for themselves. But the
nearest likeness you can see of him, is the one drawn by yourself while doing
what he tells you. He has promised to come into those who keep his word. He
will then be much nearer to them than in bodily presence; and such may well be
able to draw for themselves the likeness of God.--But first of all, and before
everything else, mind, Davie, OBEDIENCE!"
"Yes, Mr. Grant; I
know," said Davie.
"Then off with you!
Only think sometimes it is God who gave you your game."
"I'm going to fly my
kite, Mr. Grant."
"Do. God likes to see
you fly your kite, and it is all in his March wind it flies. It could not go up
a foot but for that."
Davie went.
"You have heard that my
uncle is very ill to-day!" said Arctura.
"I have. Poor
man!" replied Donal.
"He must be in a very
peculiar condition."
"Of body and mind both.
He greatly perplexes me."
"You would be quite as
much perplexed if you had known him as long as I have! Never since my father's
death, which seems a century ago, have I felt safe; never in my uncle's
presence at ease. I get no nearer to him. It seems to me, Mr. Grant, that the
cause of discomfort and strife is never that we are too near others, but that
we are not near enough."
This was a remark after
Donal's own heart.
"I understand
you," he said, "and entirely agree with you."
"I never feel that my
uncle cares for me except as one of the family, and the holder of its chief
property. He would have liked me better, perhaps, if I had been dependent on
him."
"How long will he be
your guardian?" asked Donal.
"He is no longer my
guardian legally. The time set by my father's will ended last year. I am three
and twenty, and my own mistress. But of course it is much better to have the
head of the house with me. I wish he were a little more like other people!--But
tell me about the ghost-music: we had not time to talk of it last night!"
"I got pretty near the
place it came from. But the wind blew so, and it was so dark, that I could do
nothing more then."
"You will try
again?"
"I shall indeed."
"I am afraid, if you
find a natural cause for it, I shall be a little sorry."
"How can there be any
other than a natural cause, my lady? God and Nature are one. God is the causing
Nature.--Tell me, is not the music heard only in stormy nights, or at least
nights with a good deal of wind?"
"I have heard it
in the daytime!"
"On a still day?"
"I think not. I think
too I never heard it on a still summer night."
"Do you think it comes
in all storms?"
"I think not."
"Then perhaps it has
something to do not merely with the wind, but with the direction of the
wind!"
"Perhaps. I cannot
say."
"That might account for
the uncertainty of its visits! The instrument may be accessible, yet its
converse with the operating power so rare that it has not yet been discovered.
It is a case in which experiment is not permitted us: we cannot make a wind
blow, neither can we vary the direction of the wind blowing; observation alone
is left us, and that can be only at such times when the sound is heard."
"Then you can do
nothing till the music comes again?"
"I think I can do
something now; for, last night I seemed so near the place whence the sounds
were coming, that the eye may now be able to supplement the ear, and find the
music-bird silent on her nest. If the wind fall, as I think it will in the
afternoon, I shall go again and see whether I can find anything. I noticed last
night that simultaneously with the sound came a change in the wind--towards the
south, I think.--What a night it was after I left you!"
"I think," said
Arctura, "the wind has something to do with my uncle's fits. Was there
anything very strange about it last night? When the wind blows so angrily, I
always think of that passage about the prince of the power of the air being the
spirit that works in the children of disobedience. Tell me what it means."
"I do not know what it
means," answered Donal; "but I suppose the epithet involves a symbol
of the difference between the wind of God that inspires the spiritual true self
of man, and the wind of the world that works by thousands of impulses and
influences in the lower, the selfish self of children that will not obey. I
will look at the passage and see what I can make out of it. Only the spiritual
and the natural blend so that we may one day be astonished!--Would you like to
join the music-hunt, my lady?"
"Do you mean, go on the
roof? Should I be able?"
"I would not have you
go in the night, and the wind blowing," said Donal with a laugh; "but
you can come and see, and judge for yourself. The bartizan is the only anxious
place, but as I mean to take Davie with me, you may think I do not count it
very dangerous!"
"Will it be safe for
Davie?"
"I can venture more
with Davie than with another: he obeys in a moment."
"I will obey too if you
will take me," said Arctura.
"Then, please, come to
the schoolroom at four o'clock. But we shall not go except the wind be
fallen."
When Davie heard what his
tutor proposed, he was filled with the restlessness of anticipation. Often
while helping Donal with his fuel, he had gazed up at him on the roof with
longing eyes, but Donal had never let him go upon it.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLI. THE MUSIC-NEST.">
CHAPTER XLI.
THE MUSIC-NEST.
THE hour came, and with the
very stroke of the clock, lady Arctura and Davie were in the schoolroom. A
moment more, and they set out to climb the spiral of Baliol's tower.
But what a different lady
was Arctura this afternoon! She was cheerful, even merry--with Davie, almost
jolly. Her soul had many alternating lights and glooms, but it was seldom or
never now so clouded as when first Donal saw her. In the solitude of her
chamber, where most the simple soul should be conscious of life as a
blessedness, she was yet often haunted by ghastly shapes of fear; but there
also other forms had begun to draw nigh to her; sweetest rays of hope would
ever and anon break through the clouds, and mock the darkness from her
presence. Perhaps God might mean as thoroughly well by her as even her
imagination could wish!
Does a dull reader remark
that hers was a diseased state of mind?--I answer, The more she needed to be
saved from it with the only real deliverance from any ill! But her misery,
however diseased, was infinitely more reasonable than the healthy joy of such
as trouble themselves about nothing. Some sicknesses are better than any but
the true health.
"I never thought you
were like this, Arkie!" said Davie. "You are just as if you had come
to school to Mr. Grant! You would soon know how much happier it is to have
somebody you must mind!"
"If having me, Davie,"
said Donal, "doesn't help you to be happy without me, there will not have
been much good done. What I want most to teach you is, to leave the door always
on the latch, for some one--you know whom I mean--to come in."
"Race me up the stair,
Arkie," said Davie, when they came to the foot of the spiral.
"Very well,"
assented his cousin.
"Which side will you
have--the broad or the narrow?"
"The broad."
"Well then--one, two,
three, and away we go!"
Davie mounted like a clever
goat, his hand and arm on the newel, and slipping lightly round it. Arctura's
ascent was easier but slower: she found her garments in her way, therefore
yielded the race, and waited for Donal. Davie, thinking he heard her footsteps
behind him all the time, flew up shrieking with the sweet terror of love's
pursuit.
"What a darling the boy
has grown!" said Arctura when Donal overtook her.
"Yes," answered
Donal; "one would think such a child might run straight into the kingdom
of heaven; but I suppose he must have his temptations and trials first: out of
the storm alone comes the true peace."
"Will peace come out of
all storms?"
"I trust so. Every pain
and every fear, every doubt is a cry after God. What mother refuses to go to her
child because he is only crying--not calling her by name!"
"Oh, if I could but
believe so about God! For if it be all right with God--I mean if God be such a
God as to be loved with the heart and soul of loving, then all is well. Is it
not, Mr. Grant?"
"Indeed it is!--And you
are not far from the kingdom of heaven," he was on the point of saying,
but did not--because she was in it already, only unable yet to verify the
things around her, like the man who had but half-way received his sight.
When they reached the top,
he took them past his door, and higher up the stair to the next, opening on the
bartizan. Here he said lady Arctura must come with him first, and Davie must
wait till he came back for him. When he had them both safe on the roof, he told
Davie to keep close to his cousin or himself all the time. He showed them first
his stores of fuel--his ammunition, he said, for fighting the winter. Next he
pointed out where he stood when first he heard the music the night before, and
set down his bucket to follow it; and where he found the bucket, blown thither
by the wind, when he came back to feel for it in the dark. Then he began to
lead them, as nearly as he could, the way he had then gone, but with some, for
Arctura's sake, desirable detours: over one steep-sloping roof they had to
cross, he found a little stair up the middle, and down the other side.
They came to a part where he
was not quite sure about the way. As he stopped to bethink himself, they turned
and looked eastward. The sea was shining in the sun, and the flat wet country
between was so bright that they could not tell where the land ended and the sea
began. But as they gazed a great cloud came over the sun, the sea turned cold
and gray as death--a true March sea, and the land lay low and desolate between.
The spring was gone and the winter was there. A gust of wind, full of keen
hail, drove sharp in their faces.
"Ah, that settles the
question!" said Donal. "The music-bird must wait. We will call upon
her another day.--It is funny, isn't it, Davie, to go a bird's-nesting after
music on the roof of a house?"
"Hark!" said
Arctura; "I think I heard the music-bird!--She wants us to find her nest!
I really don't think we ought to go back for a little blast of wind, and a few
pellets of hail! What do you think, Davie?"
"Oh, for me, I wouldn't
turn for ever so big a storm!" said Davie; "but you know, Arkie, it's
not you or me, Arkie! Mr. Grant is the captain of this expedition, and we must
do as he bids us."
"Oh, surely, Davie! I
never meant to dispute that. Only Mr. Grant is not a tyrant; he will let a lady
say what she thinks!"
"Oh, yes, or a boy
either! He likes me to say what I think! He says we can't get at each
other without. And do you know--he obeys me sometimes!"
Arctura glanced a keen
question at the boy.
"It is quite
true!" said Davie, while Donal listened smiling. "Last winter, for
days together--not all day, you know: I had to obey him most of the time! but
at certain times, I was as sure of Mr. Grant doing as I told him, as he is now
of me doing as he tells me."
"What times were
those?" asked Arctura, thinking to hear of some odd pedagogic device.
"When I was teaching
him to skate!" answered Davie, in a triumph of remembrance. "He said
I knew better than he there, and so he would obey me. You wouldn't believe how
splendidly he did it, Arkie--out and out!" concluded Davie, in a
tone almost of awe.
"Oh, yes, I would
believe it--perfectly!" said Arctura.
Donal suddenly threw an arm
round each of them, and pulled them down sitting. The same instant a fierce
blast burst upon the roof. He had seen the squall whitening the sea, and
looking nearer home saw the tops of the trees between streaming level towards
the castle. But seated they were in no danger.
"Hark!" said
Arctura again; "there it is!"
They all heard the wailing
cry of the ghost-music. But while the blast continued they dared not pursue
their hunt. It kept on in fits and gusts till the squall ceased--as suddenly
almost as it had burst. The sky cleared, and the sun shone as a March sun can.
But the blundering blasts and the swan-shot of the flying hail were all about
still.
"When the storm is upon
us," remarked Donal, as they rose from their crouching position, "it
seems as if there never could be sunshine more; but our hopelessness does not
keep back the sun when his hour to shine is come."
"I understand!"
said Arctura: "when one is miserable, misery seems the law of being; and
in the midst of it dwells some thought which nothing can ever set right! All at
once it is gone, broken up and gone, like that hail-cloud. It just looks its
own foolishness and vanishes."
"Do you know why things
so often come right?" said Donal. "--I would say always come right,
but that is matter of faith, not sight."
Arctura did not answer at
once.
"I think I know what
you are thinking," she said, "but I want to hear you answer your own
question."
"Why do things come
right so often, do you think, Davie?" repeated Donal.
"Is it," returned
Davie, "because they were made right to begin with?"
"There is much in that,
Davie; but there is a better reason than that. It is because things are alive,
and the life at the heart of them, that which keeps them going, is the great,
beautiful God. So the sun for ever returns after the clouds. A doubting man,
like him who wrote the book of Ecclesiasties, puts the evil last, and says 'the
clouds return after the rain;' but the Christian knows that
One has mastery
Who makes the joy the last
in every song."
"You speak like one who
has suffered!" said Arctura, with a kind look in his face.
"Who has not that
lives?"
"It is how you are able
to help others!"
"Am I able to help
others? I am very glad to hear it. My ambition would be to help, if I had any
ambition. But if I am able, it is because I have been helped myself, not
because I have suffered."
"Will you tell me what
you mean by saying you have no ambition?"
"Where your work is
laid out for you, there is no room for ambition: you have got your work to
do!--But give me your hand, my lady; put your other hand on my shoulder. You
stop there, Davie, and don't move till I come to you. Now, my lady--a little
jump! That's it! Now you are safe!--You were not afraid, were you?"
"Not in the least. But
did you come here in the dark?"
"Yes. There is this
advantage in the dark: you do not see how dangerous the way is. We take the
darkness about us for the source of our difficulties: it is a great mistake.
Christian would hardly have dared go through the Valley of the Shadow of Death,
had he not had the shield of the darkness all about him."
"Can the darkness be a
shield? Is it not the evil thing?"
"Yes, the dark that is
within us--the dark of distrust and unwillingness, but not the outside dark of
mere human ignorance. Where we do not see, we are protected. Where we are most
ignorant and most in danger, is in those things that affect the life of God in
us: there the Father is every moment watching his child. If he were not
constantly pardoning and punishing our sins, what would become of us! We must
learn to trust him about our faults as much as about everything else!"
In the earnestness of his
talk he had stopped, but now turned and went on.
"There is my land-, or
roof-mark rather!" he said, "--that chimney-stack! Close by it I
heard the music very near me indeed--when all at once the darkness and the wind
came together so thick that I could do nothing more. We shall do better now in
the daylight--and three of us instead of one!"
"What a huge block of
chimneys!" said Arctura.
"Is it not!"
returned Donal. "It indicates the hugeness of the building below us, of
which we can see so little. Like the volcanoes of the world, it tells us how
much fire is necessary to keep our dwelling warm."
"I thought it was the
sun that kept the earth warm," said Davie.
"So it is, but not the
sun alone. The earth is like a man: the great glowing fire is God in the heart
of the earth, and the great sun is God in the sky, keeping it warm on the other
side. Our gladness and pleasure, our trouble when we do wrong, our love for all
about us, that is God inside us; and the beautiful things and lovable people,
and all the lessons of life in history and poetry, in the Bible, and in
whatever comes to us, is God outside of us. Every life is between two great
fires of the love of God. So long as we do not give ourselves up heartily to
him, we fear his fire will burn us. And burn us it does when we go against its
flames and not with them, refusing to burn with the fire with which God is
always burning. When we try to put it out, or oppose it, or get away from it,
then indeed it burns!"
"I think I know,"
said Davie.
Arctura held her peace.
"But now," said
Donal, "I must go round and have a peep at the other side of the
chimney-stack."
He disappeared, and Arctura
and Davie stood waiting his return. They looked each in the other's face with
the delight of consciously sharing a great adventure. Beyond their feet lay the
wide country and the great sea; over them the sky with the sun in it going down
towards the mountains; under their feet the mighty old pile that was their
home; and under that the earth with its molten heart of fire.
But Davie's look soon
changed to one of triumph in his tutor. "Is is not grand," it said,
"to be all day with a man like that--talking to you and teaching
you?" That at least was how Arctura interpreted it, reading in it almost
an assertion of superiority, in as much as this man was his tutor and not hers.
She replied to the look in words:--
"I am his pupil, too,
Davie," she said, "though Mr. Grant does not know it."
"How can that be,"
answered Davie, "when you are afraid of him? I am not a bit afraid of
him!"
"How do you know I am
afraid of him?" she asked.
"Oh, anybody could see
that!"
She was afraid she had
spoken foolishly, and Davie might repeat her words: she did not desire to
hasten further intimacy with Donal; things were going in that direction fast
enough! Her eyes, avoiding Davie's, kept reconnoitring the stack of chimneys.
"Aren't you glad to
have such a castle all for your own--to do what you like with, Arkie? You know
you could pull it all to pieces if you liked!"
"Would it be less
mine," said Arctura, "if I was not at liberty to pull it all to
pieces? And would it be more mine when I had pulled it to pieces, Davie?"
Donal was coming round the
side of the stack, and heard what she said. It pleased him, for it was not a
little in his own style.
"What makes a thing
your own, do you think, Davie?" she went on.
"To be able to do with
it what you like," replied Davie.
"Whether that be good
or bad?"
"Yes, I think so,"
answered Davie, doubtfully.
"Then I think you are
quite wrong," she rejoined. "The moment you begin to use a thing
wrong, that moment you make it less yours. I can't quite explain it, but that
is how it looks to me."
She ceased, and after a
moment Donal took up the question.
"Lady Arctura is quite
right, Davie," he said. "The nature, that is the good of a thing, is that
only by which it can be possessed. Any other possession is like slave-owning;
it is not a righteous having. The right and the power to use it to its true
purpose, and the using it so, are the conditions that make a thing ours.
To have the right and the power, and not use it so, would be to make the thing
less ours than anybody's.--Suppose you had a very beautiful picture, but from
some defect in your sight you could never see that picture as it really was,
while a servant in your house not only saw it as it was meant to be seen, but
had such delight in gazing on it, that even in his dreams it came to him, and
made him think of things he would not have thought of but for it:--which of
you, you or the servant in your house, would have the more real possession of
that picture? You could sell it away from yourself, and never know anything
about it more; but you could not by all the power of a tyrant take it from your
servant."
"Ah, now I
understand!" said Davie, with a look at lady Arctura which seemed to say,
"You see how Mr. Grant can make me understand!"
"I wonder," said
lady Arctura, "what that curious opening in the side of the chimney-stack
means! It can't be for smoke to come out at!"
"No," said Donal;
"there is not a mark of smoke about it. If it had been meant for that, it
would hardly have been put half-way from the top! I can't make it out! A hole
like that in any chimney must surely interfere with the draught! I must get a
ladder!"
"Let me climb on your
shoulders, Mr. Grant," said Davie.
"Come then; up you
go!" said Donal.
And up went Davie, and
peeped into the horizontal slit.
"It looks very like a
chimney," he said, turning his head and thrusting it in sideways. "It
goes right down to somewhere," he added, bringing his head out again, "but
there is something across it a little way down--to prevent the jackdaws from
tumbling in, I suppose."
"What is it?"
asked Donal.
"Something like a
grating," answered Davie; "--no, not a grating exactly; it is what
you might call a grating, but it seems made of wires. I don't think it would
keep a strong bird out if he wanted to get in."
"Aha!" said Donal
to himself; "what if those wires be tuned! Did you ever see an aeolian
harp, my lady?" he asked: "I never did."
"Yes," answered
lady Arctura, "--once, when I was a little girl. And now you suggest it, I
think the sounds we hear are not unlike those of an aeolian harp! The strings
are all the same length, if I remember. But I do not understand the principle.
They seem all to play together, and make the strangest, wildest harmonies, when
the wind blows across them in a particular way."
"I fancy then we have
found the nest of our music-bird!" said Donal. "The wires Davie
speaks of may be the strings of an aeolian harp! I wonder if there could be a
draught across them! I must get up and see! I must go and get a ladder!"
"But how could
there be an aeolian harp up here?" said Arctura.
"It will be time enough
to answer that question," replied Donal, "when it changes to, 'How
did an aeolian harp get up here?' Something is here that wants accounting for:
it may be an aeolian harp!"
"But in a chimney! The
soot would spoil the strings!"
"Then perhaps it is not
a chimney: is there any sign of soot about, Davie?"
"No, sir; there is
nothing but clean stone and lime."
"You see, my lady! We
do not even know that it is a chimney!"
"What else can it be,
standing with the rest?"
"It may have been built
for one; but if it had ever been used for one, the marks of smoke would remain,
had it been disused ever so long. But to-morrow I will bring up a ladder."
"Could you not do it
now?" said Arctura, almost coaxingly. "I should so like to have the
thing settled!"
"As you please, my
lady! I will go at once. There is one leaning against the garden-wall, not far
from the bottom of the tower."
"If you do not mind the
trouble!"
"I will come and
help," said Davie.
"You mustn't leave lady
Arctura. I am not sure if I can get it up the stair; I am afraid it is too
long. If I cannot, we will haul it up as we did the coal."
He went, and the cousins sat
down to wait his return. It was a cold evening, but Arctura was well wrapt up,
and Davie was hardy. They sat at the foot of the chimney-stack, and began to
talk.
"It is such a long time
since you told me anything, Arkie!" said the boy.
"You do not need me now
to tell you anything: you have Mr. Grant! You like him much better than ever
you did me!"
"You see," said
Davie, thoughtfully, and making no defence against her half-reproach, "he
began by making me afraid of him--not that he meant to do it, I think! he only
meant that I should do what he told me: I was never afraid of you,
Arkie!"
"I was much crosser to
you than Mr. Grant, I am sure!"
"Mr. Grant is never
cross to me; and if ever you were, I've forgotten it, Arkie. I only remember
that I was not good to you. I am sorry for it now when I lie awake in bed; but
I say to myself you forgive me, and go to sleep."
"What makes you think I
forgive you, Davie?"
"Because I love
you."
This was not very logical,
and set Arctura thinking. She did not forgive the boy because he loved her; but
the boy's love to her might make him sure she forgave him! Love is its own
justification, and sees itself in all its objects: forgiveness is an essential belonging
of love, and must be seen where love is seen.
"Are you fond of my
brother?" asked Davie, after a pause.
"Why do you ask
me?"
"Because they say you
and he are going to be married some day, yet you don't seem to care much to be
together."
"It is all
nonsense!" replied Arctura, reddening. "I wish people would not talk
foolishness!"
"Well, I do think he's
not so fond of you as of Eppy!"
"Hush! hush! you must
not speak of such thing."
"I saw him once kiss
Eppy, and I never saw him kiss you!"
"No, indeed!"
"Is it right of Forgue,
if he's going to marry you, to kiss Eppy?--That's what I want to know!"
"He is not going to
marry me."
"He would, if you told
him you wished it. Papa wishes it."
"How do you know
that?"
"From many thing. Once
I heard him say, 'Afterwards, when the house is our own,' and I asked him what
he meant, and he said, 'When Forgue marries Arctura, then the castle will be
Forgue's. That is how it ought to be, you know! Property and title ought never
to be parted.'"
The hot blood rose to
Arctura's temples: was she a mere wrappage to her property--the paper of the
parcel! But she called to mind how strange her uncle was: but for that could he
have been so imprudent as to talk in such a way to a boy whose simplicity rendered
the confidence dangerous?
"You would not like
having to give away your castle--would you, Arkie?" he went on.
"Not to any one I did
not love."
"If I were you, I would
not marry, but keep my castle to myself. I don't see why Forgue should have
your castle!"
"You think I should
make my castle my husband?"
"He would be a good big
husband anyhow, and a strong--one to defend you from your enemies, and not talk
to you when you wanted to be quiet."
"That is all true; but
one might get weary of a stupid husband, however big and strong he was."
"There's another thing,
though!--he wouldn't be a cruel husband! I've heard papa often speak about some
cruel husband! I fancied sometimes he meant himself; but that could not be, you
know."
Arctura made no reply. All
but vanished memories of things she had heard, hints and signs here and there
that all was not right between her uncle and aunt, vaguely returned: could it
be that he now repented of harshness to his wife, that the thought of it was
preying upon him, that it drove him to his drugs for forgetfulness?--But in the
presence of the boy she could not go on thinking in such a direction about his
father. She felt relieved by the return of Donal.
He had found it rather
difficult to get the ladder round the sharp curves of the stair; but at last
they saw him with it on his shoulder coming over a distant roof.
"Now we shall
see!" he said, as he leaned it up against the chimney, and stood panting.
"You have tired
yourself!" said lady Arctura.
"Where's the harm, my
lady? A man must get tired a few times before he lies down!" rejoined
Donald lightly.
Said Davie,
"Must a woman, Mr.
Grant, marry a man she does not love?"
"No, certainly,
Davie."
"Mr. Grant," said
Arctura, in dread of what Davie might say next, "what do you take to be
the duty of one inheriting a property? Ought a woman to get rid of it, or
attend to it herself?"
Donal thought a little.
"We must first settle
the main duty of property," he said; "and that I am hardly prepared
to do."
"Is there not a duty
owing to your family?"
"There are a thousand
duties owing to your family."
"I don't mean those you
are living with merely, but those also who transmitted the property to you.
This property belongs to my family rather than to me, and if I had had a
brother it would have gone to him: should I not do better for the family by
giving it up to the next heir? I am not disinterested in starting the question;
possession and power are of no great importance in my eyes; they are hindrances
to me."
"It seems to me,"
said Donal, "that the fact that you would not have succeeded had there
been a son, points to the fact of a disposer of events: you were sent into the
world to take the property. If so, God expects you to perform the duties of it;
they are not to be got rid of by throwing the thing aside, or giving them to
another to do for you. If your family and not God were the real giver of the
property, the question you put might arise; but I should hardly take interest
enough in it to be capable of discussing it. I understand my duty to my sheep
or cattle, to my master, to my father or mother, to my brother or sister, to my
pupil Davie here; I owe my ancestors love and honour, and the keeping of their
name unspotted, though that duty is forestalled by a higher; but as to the
property they leave behind them, over which they have no more power, and which
now I trust they never think about, I do not see what obligation I can be under
to them with regard to it, other than is comprised in the duties of the property
itself."
"But a family is not
merely those that are gone before; there are those that will come after!"
"The best thing for
those to come after, is to receive the property with its duties performed, with
the light of righteousness radiating from it."
"But what then do you
call the duties of property?"
"In what does the
property consist?"
"In land, to begin
with."
"If the land were of no
value, would the possession of it involve duties?"
"I suppose not."
"In what does the value
of the land consist?"
Lady Arctura did not attempt
an answer to the question, and Donal, after a little pause, resumed.
"If you valued things
as the world values them, I should not care to put the question; but I fear you
may have some lingering notion that, though God's way is the true way, the
world's way must not be disregarded. One thing, however, is certain--that
nothing that is against God's way can be true. The value of property consists
only in its being means, ground, or material to work his will withal. There is
no success in the universe but in his will being done."
Arctura was silent. She had
inherited prejudices which, while she hated selfishness, were yet thoroughly
selfish. Such are of the evils in us hardest to get rid of. They are even
cherished for a lifetime by some of the otherwise loveliest of souls. Knowing
that herein much thought would be necessary for her, and that she would think,
Donal went no farther: a house must have its foundation settled before it is built
upon; argument where the grounds of it are at all in dispute is worse than
useless.
He turned to his ladder, set
it right, mounted, and peered into the opening. At the length of his arm he
could reach the wires Davie had described: they were taut, and free of
rust--were therefore not iron or steel. He saw also that a little down the
shaft a faint light came in from the opposite side: there was another opening
somewhere! Next he saw that each following string--for strings he already
counted them--was placed a little lower than that before it, so that their
succession was inclined to the other side of the shaft--apparently in a plane
between the two openings, that a draught might pass along their plane: this
must surely be the instrument whence the music flowed! He descended.
"Do you know, my
lady," he asked Arctura, "how the aeolian harp is placed for the wind
to wake it?"
"The only one I have
seen," she answered, "was made to fit into a window; the lower sash
was opened just wide enough to let it in, so that the wind entering must pass
across the strings."
Then Donal was all but
certain.
"Of course," he
said, after describing what he had seen, "we cannot be absolutely sure
without having been here with the music, and having experimented by covering and
uncovering the opening; and for that we must wait a south-easterly wind."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLII. COMMUNISM.">
CHAPTER XLII.
COMMUNISM.
BUT Donal did not feel that
even then would he have exhausted the likelihood of discovery. That the source
of the music that had so long haunted the house was an aeolian harp in a
chimney that had never or scarcely been used, might be enough to satisfy some,
but he wanted to know as well why, if this was a chimney, it neither had been
nor was used, and to what room it was a chimney. For the question had come to
him--might not the music hold some relation with the legend of the lost room?
Inquiry after legendary lore
had drawn nearer and nearer, and the talk about such as belonged to the castle
had naturally increased. In this talk was not seldom mentioned a ghost, as yet
seen at times about the place. This Donal attributed to glimpses of the earl in
his restless night-walks; but by the domestics, both such as had seen something
and such as had not, the apparition was naturally associated with the lost
chamber, as the place whence the spectre issued, and whither he returned.
Donal's spare hours were now
much given to his friend Andrew Comin. The good man had so far recovered as to
think himself able to work again; but he soon found it was little he could do.
His strength was gone, and the exertion necessary to the lightest labour caused
him pain. It was sad to watch him on his stool, now putting in a stitch, now
stopping because of the cough which so sorely haunted his thin, wind-blown
tent. His face had grown white and thin, and he had nearly lost his merriment,
though not his cheerfulness; he never looked other than content. He had made up
his mind he was not going to get better, but to go home through a lingering
illness. He was ready to go and ready to linger, as God pleased.
There was nothing wonderful
in this; but to some good people even it did appear wonderful that he showed no
uneasiness as to how Doory would fare when he was gone. The house was indeed
their own, but there was no money in it--not even enough to pay the taxes; and
if she sold it, the price would not be enough to live upon. The neighbours were
severe on Andrew's imagined indifference to his wife's future, and it was in
their eyes a shame to be so cheerful on the brink of the grave. Not one of them
had done more than peep into the world of faith in which Andrew lived. Not one
of them could have understood that for Andrew to allow the least danger of evil
to his Doory, would have been to behold the universe rocking on the slippery
shoulders of Chance.
A little moan escaping her
as she looked one evening into her money-teapot, made Donal ask her a question
or two. She confessed that she had but sixpence left. Now Donal had spent next
to nothing since he came, and had therefore a few pounds in hand. His father
and mother had sent back what he sent them, as being in need of nothing: sir
Gibbie was such a good son to them that they were living in what they counted
luxury: Robert doubted whether he was not ministering to the flesh in allowing
Janet to provide beef-brose for him twice in the week! So Donal was free to
spend for his next neighbours--just what his people, who were grand about
money, would have had him do. Never in their cottage had a penny been wasted;
never one refused where was need.
"An'rew," he
said--and found the mother-tongue here fittest--"I'm thinkin' ye maun be
growin' some short o' siller i' this time o' warklessness!"
"'Deed, I wadna
won'er!" answered Andrew. "Doory says naething aboot sic
triffles!"
"Weel," rejoined
Donal, "I thank God I hae some i' the ill pickle o' no bein' wantit, an'
sae in danger o' cankerin'; an' atween brithers there sudna be twa
purses!"
"Ye hae yer ain fowk to
luik efter, sir!" said Andrew.
"They're weel luikit
efter--better nor ever they war i' their lives; they're as weel aff as I am
mysel' up i' yon gran' castel. They hae a freen' wha but for them wad ill hae
lived to be the great man he is the noo; an' there's naething ower muckle for
him to du for them; sae my siller 's my ain, an' yours. An'rew, an'
Doory's!"
The old man put him through
a catechism as to his ways and means and prospects, and finding that Donal
believed as firmly as himself in the care of the Master, and was convinced
there was nothing that Master would rather see him do with his money than help
those who needed it, especially those who trusted in him, he yielded.
"It's no, ye see,"
said Donal, "that I hae ony doobt o' the Lord providin' gien I had failt,
but he hauds the thing to my han', jist as muckle as gien he said, 'There's for
you, Donal!' The fowk o' this warl' michtna appruv, but you an' me kens better,
An'rew. We ken there's nae guid in siller but do the wull o' the Lord wi'
't--an' help to ane anither is his dear wull. It's no 'at he's short o' siller
himsel', but he likes to gie anither a turn!"
"I'll tak it,"
said the old man.
"There's what I
hae," returned Donal.
"Na, na; nane o'
that!" said Andrew. "Ye're treatin' me like a muckle, reivin',
sornin' beggar--offerin' me a' that at ance! Whaur syne wad be the prolonged
sweetness o' haein' 't i' portions frae yer han', as frae the neb o' an
angel-corbie sent frae verra hame wi' yer denner!"--Here a glimmer of the
old merriment shone through the worn look and pale eyes.--"Na, na,
sir," he went on; "jist talk the thing ower wi' Doory, an' lat her
hae what she wants an' nae mair. She wudna like it. Wha kens what may came i'
the meantime--Deith himsel', maybe! Or see--gie Doory a five shillins, an' whan
that's dune she can lat ye ken!"
Donal was forced to leave it
thus, but he did his utmost to impress upon Doory that all he had was at her
disposal.
"I had new
clothes," he said, "before I came; I have all I want to eat and
drink; and for books, there's a whole ancient library at my service!--what
possibly could I wish for more? It's a mere luxury to hand the money over to
you, Doory! I'm thinkin', Doory," for he had by this time got to address
her by her husband's name for her, "there's naebody i' this warl', 'cep'
the oonseen Lord himsel', lo'es yer man sae weel as you an' me; an' weel ken I
you an' him wad share yer last wi' me; sae I'm only giein' ye o' yer ain gude
wull; an' I'll doobt that gien ye takna sae lang as I hae."
Thus adjured, and satisfied
that her husband was content, the old woman made no difficulty.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLIII. EPPY AND KENNEDY.">
CHAPTER XLIII.
EPPY AND KENNEDY.
WHEN Stephen Kennedy heard
that Eppy had gone back to her grandparents, a faint hope revived in his bosom;
he knew nothing of the late passage between the two parties. He but knew that
she was looking sad: she might perhaps allow him to be of some service to her!
Separation had fostered more and more gentle thoughts of her in his heart; he
was ready to forgive her everything, and believe nothing serious against her,
if only she would let him love her again. Modesty had hitherto kept him from
throwing himself in her way, but he now haunted the house in the hope of
catching a glimpse of her, and when she began to go again into the town, saw
her repeatedly, following her to be near her, but taking care she should not
see him: partly from her self-absorption he had succeeded in escaping her
notice.
At length, however, one
night, he tried to summon up courage to accost her. It was a lovely, moonlit
night, half the street black with quaint shadows, the other half shining like
sand in the yellow light. On the moony side people standing at their doors
could recognize each other two houses away, but on the other, friends might
pass without greeting. Eppy had gone into the baker's; Kennedy had seen her go
in, and stood in the shadow, waiting, all but determined to speak to her. She
staid a good while, but one accustomed to wait for fish learns patience. At
length she appeared. By this time, however, though not his patience, Kennedy's
courage had nearly evaporated; and when he saw her he stepped under an archway,
let her pass, and followed afresh. All at once resolve, which yet was no
resolve, awoke in him. It was as if some one took him and set him before her.
She started when he stepped in front, and gave a little cry.
"Dinna be feart,
Eppy," he said; "I wudna hurt a hair o' yer heid. I wud raither be
skinned mysel'!"
"Gang awa," said
Eppy. "Ye hae no richt to stan' i' my gait!"
"Nane but the richt o'
lo'ein' ye better nor ever!" said Kennedy, "--gien sae be as ye'll
lat me ony gait shaw 't!"
The words softened her; she
had dreaded reproach, if not indignant remonstrance. She began to cry.
"Gien onything i' my
pooer wud mak the grief lichter upo' ye, Eppy," he said, "ye hae but
to name 't! I'm no gauin' to ask ye to merry me, for that I ken ye dinna care
aboot; but gien I micht be luikit upon as a freen', if no to you, yet to
yours--alloot onyw'y to help i' yer trible, I mean, I'm ready to lay me i' the
dirt afore ye. I hae nae care for mysel' ony mair, an' maun do something for
somebody--an' wha sae soon as yersel', Eppy!"
For sole answer, Eppy went
on crying. She was far from happy. She had nearly persuaded herself that all
was over between her and lord Forgue, and almost she could, but for shame, have
allowed Kennedy to comfort her as an old friend. Everything in her mind was so
confused, and everything around her so miserable, that she could but cry. She
continued crying, and as they were in a walled lane into which no windows
looked, Kennedy, in the simplicity of his heart, and the desire to comfort her
who little from him deserved comfort, came up to her, and putting his arm round
her, said again,
"Dinna be feart of me,
Eppy. I'm a man ower sair-hertit to do ye ony hurt. It's no as thinkin' ye my
ain, Eppy, I wud preshume to du onything for ye, but as an auld freen', fain to
tak the dog aff o' ye. Are ye in want o' onything? Ye maun hae a heap o'
trible, I weel ken, wi' yer gran'father's mischance, an' it's easy to
un'erstan' 'at things may well be turnin' scarce aboot ye; but be sure o' this,
that as lang's my mither has onything, she'll be blyth to share the same wi'
you an' yours."
He said his mother,
but she had nothing save what he provided her with.
"I thank ye,
Stephen," said Eppy, touched with his goodness; "but there's nae
necessity; we hae plenty."
She moved on, her apron
still to her eyes. Kennedy followed her.
"Gien the yoong lord
hae wranged ye ony gait," he said from behind her, "an' gien there be
ony amen's ye wad hae o' him,--"
She turned with a quickness
that was fierce, and in the dim light Kennedy saw her eyes blazing.
"I want naething frae
your han', Stephen Kennedy," she said. "My lord's naething to
you--nor yet muckle to me!" she added, with sudden reaction and an
outburst of self-pity, and again fell a weeping--and sobbing now.
With the timidity of a
strong man before the girl he loves and therefore fears, Kennedy once more
tried to comfort her, wiping her eyes with her apron. While he did so, a man,
turning a corner quickly, came almost upon them. He started back, then came
nearer, looked hard at them, and spoke. It was lord Forgue.
"Eppy!" he
exclaimed, in a tone in which indignation blended with surprise.
Eppy gave a cry, and ran to
him. He pushed her away.
"My lord," said
Kennedy, "the lass will nane o' me or mine. I sair doobt there's nane but
yersel' can please her. But I sweir by God, my lord, gien ye du her ony wrang,
I'll no rest, nicht nor day, till I hae made ye repent it."
"Go to the devil!"
said Forgue; "there's an old crow, I suspect, yet to pluck between us! For
me you may take her, though. I don't go halves."
Eppy laid her hand timidly
on his arm, but again he pushed her away.
"Oh, my lord!" she
sobbed, and could say no more for weeping.
"How is it I find you
here with this man?" he asked. "I don't want to be unfair to you, but
it looks rather bad!"
"My lord," said
Kennedy.
"Hold your tongue; let
her speak for herself."
"I had no tryst wi'
him, my lord! I never said come nigh me," sobbed Eppy. "--Ye see what
ye hae dune!" she cried, turning in anger on Kennedy, and her tears
suddenly ceasing. "Never but ill hae ye brocht me! What business had ye to
come efter me this gait, makin' mischief 'atween my lord an' me? Can a body no
set fut ayont the door-sill, but they maun be followt o' them they wud see far
eneuch!"
Kennedy turned and went, and
Eppy with a fresh burst of tears turned to go also. But she had satisfied
Forgue that there was nothing between them, and he was soon more successful
than Kennedy in consoling her.
While absent he had been
able enough to get on without her, but no sooner was he home than, in the weary
lack of interest, the feelings which, half lamenting, half rejoicing, he had
imagined extinct, began to revive, and he went to the town vaguely hoping to
get a sight of Eppy. Coming upon her tête à tête with her old lover, first a
sense of unpardonable injury possessed him, and next the conviction that he was
as madly in love with her as ever. The tide of old tenderness came throbbing
and streaming back over the ghastly sands of jealousy, and ere they parted he
had made with her an appointment to meet the next night in a more suitable
spot.
Donal was seated by Andrew's
bedside reading: he had now the opportunity of bringing many things before him
such as the old man did not know to exist. Those last days of sickness and
weakness were among the most blessed of his life; much that could not be done
for many a good man with ten times his education, could be done for a man like
Andrew Comin.
Eppy had done her best to
remove all traces of emotion ere she re-entered the house; but she could not
help the shining of her eyes: the joy-lamp relighted in her bosom shone through
them: and Andrew looking up when she entered, Donal, seated with his back to
her, at once knew her secret: her grandfather read it from her face, and Donal
read it from his.
"She has seen
Forgue!" he said to himself. "I hope the old man will die soon."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLIV. HIGH AND LOW.">
CHAPTER XLIV.
HIGH AND LOW.
WHEN lord Morven heard of
his son's return, he sent for Donal, received him in a friendly way, gave him
to understand that, however he might fail to fall in with his views, he
depended thoroughly on his honesty, and begged he would keep him informed of
his son's proceedings.
Donal replied that, while he
fully acknowledged his lordship's right to know what his son was doing, he
could not take the office of a spy.
"But I will warn lord
Forgue," he concluded, "that I may see it right to let his father
know what he is about. I fancy, however, he understands as much already."
"Pooh! that would be
only to teach him cunning," said the earl.
"I can do nothing
underhand," replied Donal. "I will help no man to keep an unrighteous
secret, but neither will I secretly disclose it."
Meeting him a few days
after, Forgue would have passed him without recognition, but Donal stopped him,
and said--
"I believe, my lord,
you have seen Eppy since your return."
"What the deuce is that
to you?"
"I wish your lordship
to understand that whatever comes to my knowledge concerning your proceedings
in regard to her, I will report to your father if I see fit."
"The warning is
unnecessary. Few informers, however, would have given me the advantage, and I
thank you: so far I am indebted to you. None the less the shame of the informer
remains!"
"Your lordship's
judgment of me is no more to me than that of yon rook up there."
"You doubt my
honour?" said Forgue with a sneer.
"I do. I doubt you. You
do not know yourself. Time will show. For God's sake, my lord, look to
yourself! You are in terrible danger."
"I would rather do
wrong for love than right for fear. I scorn such threats."
"Threats, my
lord!" echoed Donal. "Is it a threat to warn you that your very
consciousness may become a curse to you? that to know yourself may be your
hell? that you may come to make it your first care to forget what you are? Do
you know what Shakspere says of Tarquin--
Besides, his soul's fair temple is
defaced;
To whose weak ruins muster troops of
cares,
To ask the spotted princess how she
fares--?"
"Oh, hang your
preaching!" cried Forgue, and turned away.
"My lord," said
Donal, "if you will not hear me, there are preachers you must."
"They will not be quite
so long-winded then!" Forgue answered.
"You are right,"
said Donal; "they will not."
All Forgue's thoughts were
now occupied with the question how with least danger Eppy and he were to meet.
He did not contemplate treachery. At this time of his life he could not have
respected himself, little as was required for that, had he been consciously
treacherous; but no man who in love yet loves himself more, is safe from
becoming a traitor: potentially he is one already. Treachery to him who is
guilty of it seems only natural self-preservation; the man who can do a vile
thing is incapable of seeing it as it is; and that ought to make us doubtful of
our judgments of ourselves, especially defensive judgments. Forgue did not
suspect himself--not although he knew that his passion had but just regained a
lost energy, revived at the idea of another man having the girl! It did not
shame him that he had begun to forget her, or that he had been so roused to
fresh desire. If he had stayed away six months, he would practically have
forgotten her altogether. Some may think that, if he had devotion enough to
surmount the vulgarities of her position and manners and ways of thought, his
love could hardly be such as to yield so soon; but Eppy was not in herself
vulgar. Many of even humbler education than she are far less really vulgar than
some in the forefront of society. No doubt the conventionalities of a man like
Forgue must have been sometimes shocked in familiar intercourse with one like
Eppy; but while he was merely flirting with her, the very things that shocked
would also amuse him--for I need hardly say he was not genuinely refined; and
by and by the growing passion obscured them. There is no doubt that, had she
been confronted as his wife with the common people of society, he would have
become aware of many things as vulgarities which were only simplicities; but in
the meantime she was no more vulgar to him than a lamb or a baby is vulgar,
however unfit either for a Belgravian drawing-room. Vulgar, at the same time,
he would have thought and felt her, but for the love that made him do her
justice. Love is the opener as well as closer of eyes. But men who, having
seen, become blind again, think they have had their eyes finally opened.
For some time there was no
change in Eppy's behaviour but that she was not tearful as before. She
continued diligent, never grumbled at the hardest work, and seemed desirous of
making up for remissness in the past, when in truth she was trying to make up
for something else in the present: she would atone for what she would not tell,
by doing immediate duty with the greater devotion. But by and by she began
occasionally to show, both in manner and countenance, a little of the old
pertness, mingled with uneasiness. The phenomenon, however, was so intermittent
and unpronounced, as to be manifest only to eyes familiar with her looks and
ways: to Donal it was clear that the relation between her and Forgue was
resumed. Yet she never went out in the evening except sent by her grandmother,
and then she always came home even with haste--anxious, it might have seemed,
to avoid suspicion.
It was the custom with Donal
and Davie to go often into the fields and woods in the fine weather--they
called this their observation class--to learn what they might of the
multitudinous goings on in this or that of Nature's workshops: there each for
himself and the other exercised his individual powers of seeing and noting and
putting together. Donal knew little of woodland matters, having been chiefly
accustomed to meadows and bare hill-sides; yet in the woods he was the keener
of the two to observe, and could the better teach that he was but a better
learner.
One day, as they were
walking together under the thin shade of a fir-thicket, Davie said, with a
sudden change of subject--
"I wonder if we shall
meet Forgue to-day! he gets up early now, and goes out. It is neither to fish
nor shoot, for he doesn't take his rod or gun; he must be watching or looking
for something!--Shouldn't you say so, Mr. Grant?"
This set Donal thinking.
Eppy was never out at night, or only for a few minutes; and Forgue went out
early in the morning! But if Eppy would meet him, how could he or anyone help
it?
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLV. A LAST ENCOUNTER.">
CHAPTER XLV.
A LAST ENCOUNTER.
NOW for a while, Donal
seldom saw lady Arctura, and when he did, received from her no encouragement to
address her. The troubled look had reappeared on her face. In her smile, as
they passed in hall or corridor, glimmered an expression almost
pathetic--something like an appeal, as if she stood in sore need of his help,
but dared not ask for it. She was again much in the company of Miss Carmichael,
and Donal had good cause to fear that the pharisaism of her would-be directress
was coming down upon her spirit, not like rain on the mown grass, but like
frost on the spring flowers. The impossibility of piercing the Christian
pharisee holding the traditions of the elders, in any vital part--so
pachydermatous is he to any spiritual argument--is a sore trial to the old Adam
still unslain in lovers of the truth. At the same time nothing gives patience
better opportunity for her perfect work. And it is well they cannot be reached
by argument and so persuaded; they would but enter the circles of the
faithful to work fresh schisms and breed fresh imposthumes.
But Donal had begun to think
that he had been too forbearing towards the hideous doctrines advocated by Miss
Carmichael. It is one thing where evil doctrines are quietly held, and the
truth associated with them assimilated by good people doing their best with
what has been taught them, and quite another thing where they are forced upon
some shrinking nature, weak to resist through the very reverence which is its
excellence. The finer nature, from inability to think another of less pure
intent than itself, is often at a great disadvantage in the hands of the coarser.
He made up his mind that, risk as it was to enter into disputations with a
worshipper of the letter, inasmuch as for argument the letter is immeasurably
more available than the spirit--for while the spirit lies in the letter
unperceived, it has no force, and the letter-worshipper is incapable of seeing
that God could not possibly mean what he makes of it--notwithstanding the risk,
he resolved to hold himself ready, and if anything was given him, to cry it out
and not spare. Nor had he long resolved ere the opportunity came.
It had come to be known that
Donal frequented the old avenue, and it was with intent, in the pride of her
acquaintance with scripture, and her power to use it, that Miss Carmichael one
afternoon led her unwilling, rather recusant, and very unhappy disciple
thither: she sought an encounter with him: his insolence towards the
old-established faith must be confounded, his obnoxious influence on Arctura
frustrated! It was a bright autumnal day. The trees were sorely bereaved, but
some foliage yet hung in thin yellow clouds upon their patient boughs. There
was plenty of what Davie called scushlin, that is the noise of walking
with scarce lifted feet amongst the thick-lying withered leaves. But less
foliage means more sunlight.
Donal was sauntering along,
his book in his hand, now and then reading a little, now and then looking up to
the half-bared branches, now and then, like Davie, sweeping a cloud of the
fallen multitude before him. He was in this childish act when, looking up, he
saw the two ladies approaching; he did not see the peculiar glance Miss
Carmichael threw her companion: "Behold your prophet!" it said. He
would have passed with lifted bonnet, but Miss Carmichael stopped, smiling: her
smile was bright because it showed her good teeth, but was not pleasant because
it showed nothing else.
"Glorying over the
fallen, Mr. Grant?" she said.
Donal in his turn smiled.
"That is not Mr.
Grant's way," said Arctura, "--so far at least as I have known
him!"
"How careless the trees
are of their poor children!" said Miss Carmichael, affecting sympathy for
the leaves.
"Pardon me," said
Donal, "if I grudge them your pity: there is nothing more of children in
those leaves than there is in the hair that falls on the barber's floor."
"It is not very
gracious to pull a lady up so sharply!" returned Miss Carmichael, still
smiling: "I spoke poetically."
"There is no poetry in
what is not true," rejoined Donal. "Those are not the children of the
tree."
"Of course," said
Miss Carmichael, a little surprised to find their foils crossed already,
"a tree has no children! but--"
"A tree no
children!" exclaimed Donal. "What then are all those beech-nuts under
the leaves? Are they not the children of the tree?"
"Yes; and lost like the
leaves!" sighed Miss Carmichael.
"Why do you say they
are lost? They must fulfil the end for which they were made, and if so, they
cannot be lost."
"For what end were they
made?"
"I do not know. If they
all grew up, they would be a good deal in the way."
"Then you say there are
more seeds than are required?"
"How could I, when I do
not know what they are required for? How can I tell that it is not necessary
for the life of the tree that it should produce them all, and necessary too for
the ground to receive so much life-rent from the tree!"
"But you must admit
that some things are lost!"
"Yes, surely!"
answered Donal. "Why else should he come and look till he find?"
No such answer had the
theologian expected; she was not immediate with her rejoinder.
"But some of them are
lost after all!" she said.
"Doubtless; there are
sheep that will keep running away. But he goes after them again."
"He will not do that
for ever!"
"He will."
"I do not believe
it."
"Then you do not
believe that God is infinite!"
"I do."
"How can you? Is he not
the Lord God merciful and gracious?"
"I am glad you know
that."
"But if his mercy and
his graciousness are not infinite, then he is not infinite!"
"There are other
attributes in which he is infinite."
"But he is not infinite
in all his attributes? He is partly infinite, and partly finite!--infinite in
knowledge and power, but in love, in forgiveness, in all those things which are
the most beautiful, the most divine, the most Christ-like, he is finite,
measurable, bounded, small!"
"I care nothing for
such finite reasoning. I take the word of inspiration, and go by that!"
"Let me hear
then," said Donal, with an uplifting of his heart in prayer; for it seemed
no light thing for Arctura which of them should show the better reason.
Now it had so fallen that
the ladies were talking about the doctrine called Adoption when first they saw
Donal; whence this doctrine was the first to occur to the champion of orthodoxy
as a weapon wherewith to foil the enemy.
"The most precious
doctrine, if one may say so, in the whole Bible, is that of Adoption. God by
the mouth of his apostle Paul tells us that God adopts some for his children,
and leaves the rest. If because of this you say he is not infinite in mercy,
when the Bible says he is, you are guilty of blasphemy."
In a tone calm to solemnity,
Donal answered--
"God's mercy is
infinite; and the doctrine of Adoption is one of the falsest of false
doctrines. In bitter lack of the spirit whereby we cry Abba, Father,
the so-called Church invented it; and it remains, a hideous mask wherewith
false and ignorant teachers scare God's children from their Father's
arms."
"I hate sentiment--most
of all in religion!" said Miss Carmichael with contempt.
"You shall have
none," returned Donal. "Tell me what is meant by Adoption."
"The taking of
children," answered Miss Carmichael, already spying a rock ahead,
"and treating them as your own."
"Whose children?"
asked Donal.
"Anyone's."
"Whose," insisted
Donal, "are the children whom God adopts?"
She was on the rock, and a
little staggered. But she pulled up courage and said--
"The children of
Satan."
"Then how are they to
be blamed for doing the deeds of their father?"
"You know very well
what I mean! Satan did not make them. God made them, but they sinned and
fell."
"Then did God repudiate
them?"
"Yes."
"And they became the
children of another?"
"Yes, of Satan."
"Then God disowns his
children, and when they are the children of another, adopts them? Miss
Carmichael, it is too foolish! Would that be like a father? Because his
children do not please him, he repudiates them altogether; and then he wants
them again--not as his own, but as the children of a stranger, whom he will
adopt! The original relationship is no longer of any force--has no weight even
with their very own father! What ground could such a parent have to complain of
his children?"
"You dare not say the
wicked are the children of God the same as the good."
"That be far from me!
Those who do the will of God are infinitely more his children than those who do
not; they are born of the innermost heart of God; they are then of the nature
of Jesus Christ, whose glory is obedience. But if they were not in the first
place, and in the most profound fact, the children of God, they could never
become his children in that higher, that highest sense, by any fiction of
adoption. Do you think if the devil could create, his children could ever
become the children of God? But you and I, and every pharisee, publican, and
sinner in the world, are equally the children of God to begin with. That is the
root of all the misery and all the hope. Because we are his children, we must
become his children in heart and soul, or be for ever wretched. If we ceased to
be his, if the relation between us were destroyed, which is impossible, no
redemption would be possible, there would be nothing left to redeem."
"You may talk as you
see fit, Mr. Grant, but while Paul teaches the doctrine, I will hold it; he may
perhaps know a little better than you."
"Paul teaches no such
doctrine. He teaches just what I have been saying. The word translated adoption,
he uses for the raising of one who is a son to the true position of a son."
"The presumption in you
to say what the apostle did or did not mean!"
"Why, Miss Carmichael,
do you think the gospel comes to us as a set of fools? Is there any way of
truly or worthily receiving a message without understanding it? A message is
sent for the very sake of being in some measure at least understood. Without
that it would be no message at all. I am bound by the will and express command
of the master to understand the things he says to me. He commands me to see
their rectitude, because they being true, I ought to be able to see them true.
In the hope of seeing as he would have me see, I read my Greek Testament every
day. But it is not necessary to know Greek to see what Paul means by the
so-translated adoption. You have only to consider his words with intent
to find out his meaning, and without intent to find in them the teaching of
this or that doctor of divinity. In the epistle to the Galatians, whose child
does he speak of as adopted? It is the father's own child, his heir, who
differs nothing from a slave until he enters upon his true relation to his
father--the full status of a son. So also, in another passage, by the same word
he means the redemption of the body--its passing into the higher condition of
outward things, into a condition in itself, and a home around it, fit for the
sons and daughters of God--that we be no more like strangers, but like what we
are, the children of the house. To use any word of Paul's to make human being
feel as if he were not by birth, making, origin, or whatever word of closer
import can be found, the child of God, or as if anything he had done or could
do could annul that relationship, is of the devil, the father of evil, not
either of Paul or of Christ.--Why, my lady," continued Donal, turning to
Arctura, "all the evil lies in this--that he is our father and we are not
his children. To fulfil the poorest necessities of our being, we must be his
children in brain and heart, in body and soul and spirit, in obedience and hope
and gladness and love--his out and out, beyond all that tongue can say, mind
think, or heart desire. Then only is our creation finished--then only are we
what we were made to be. This is that for the sake of which we are troubled on
all sides."
He ceased. Miss Carmichael
was intellectually cowed, but her heart was nowise touched. She had never had
that longing after closest relation with God which sends us feeling after the
father. But now, taking courage under the overshadowing wing of the divine,
Arctura spoke.
"I do hope what you say
is true, Mr. Grant!" she said with a longing sigh.
"Oh yes, hope!
we all hope! But it is the word we have to do with!" said Miss Carmichael.
"I have given you the
truth of this word!" said Donal.
But as if she heard neither
of them, Arctura went on,
"If it were but
true!" she moaned. "It would set right everything on the face of the
earth!"
"You mean far more than
that, my lady!" said Donal. "You mean everything in the human heart,
which will to all eternity keep moaning and crying out for the Father of it,
until it is one with its one relation!"
He lifted his bonnet, and
would have passed on.
"One word, Mr.
Grant," said Miss Carmichael. "--No man holding such doctrines could
with honesty become a clergyman of the church of Scotland."
"Very likely,"
replied Donal, "Good afternoon."
"Thank you, Mr.
Grant!" said Arctura. "I hope you are right."
When he was gone, the ladies
resumed their walk in silence. At length Miss Carmichael spoke.
"Well, I must say, of
all the conceited young men I have had the misfortune to meet, your Mr. Grant
bears the palm! Such self-assurance! such presumption! such forwardness!"
"Are you certain,
Sophia," rejoined Arctura, "that it is self-assurance, and not
conviction that gives him his courage?"
"He is a teacher of
lies! He goes dead against all that good men say and believe! The thing is as
clear as daylight: he is altogether wrong!"
"What if God be sending
fresh light into the minds of his people?"
"The old light is good
enough for me!"
"But it may not be good
enough for God! What if Mr. Grant should be his messenger to you and me!"
"A likely thing! A raw
student from the hills of Daurside!"
"I cherish a profound
hope that he may be in the right. Much good, you know, did come out of Galilee!
Every place and every person is despised by somebody!"
"Arctura! He has
infected you with his frightful irreverence!"
"If he be a messenger of
Jesus Christ," said Arctura, quietly, "he has had from you the
reception he would expect, for the disciple must be as his master."
Miss Carmichael stood still
abruptly. Her face was in a flame, but her words came cold and hard.
"I am sorry," she
said, "our friendship should come to so harsh a conclusion, lady Arctura;
but it is time it should end when you speak so to one who has been doing her
best for so long to enlighten you! If this be the first result of your new
gospel--well! Remember who said, 'If an angel from heaven preach any other
gospel to you than I have preached, let him be accursed!"
She turned back.
"Oh, Sophia, do not
leave me so!" cried Arctura.
But she was already yards
away, her skirt making a small whirlwind that went after her through the
withered leaves. Arctura burst into tears, and sat down at the foot of one of
the great beeches. Miss Carmichael never looked behind her. She met Donal
again, for he too had turned: he uncovered, but she took no heed. She had done
with him! Her poor Arctura.
Donal was walking gently on,
thinking, with closed book, when the wind bore to his ear a low sob from
Arctura. He looked up, and saw her: she sat weeping like one rejected. He could
not pass or turn and leave her thus! She heard his steps in the withered
leaves, glanced up, dropped her head for a moment, then rose with a feeble
attempt at a smile. Donal understood the smile: she would not have him troubled
because of what had taken place!
"Mr. Grant," she
said, coming towards him, "St. Paul laid a curse upon even an angel from
heaven if he preached any other gospel than his! It is terrible!"
"It is terrible, and I
say amen to it with all my heart," returned Donal. "But the
gospel you have received is not the gospel of Paul; it is one substituted for
it--and that by no angel from heaven, but by men with hide-bound souls, who, in
order to get them into their own intellectual pockets, melted down the ingots
of the kingdom, and re-cast them in moulds of wretched legalism, borrowed of
the Romans who crucified their master. Grand, childlike, heavenly things they
must explain, forsooth, after vulgar worldly notions of law and right! But they
meant well, seeking to justify the ways of God to men, therefore the curse of
the apostle does not fall, I think, upon them. They sought a way out of their
difficulties, and thought they had found one, when in reality it was their
faith in God himself that alone got them out of the prison of their theories.
But gladly would I see discomfited such as, receiving those inventions at the
hundredth hand, and moved by none of the fervour with which they were first
promulgated, lay, as the word and will of God, lumps of iron and heaps of dust
upon live, beating, longing hearts that cry out after their God!"
"Oh, I do hope what you
say is true!" panted Arctura. "I think I shall die if I find it is
not!"
"If you find what I
tell you untrue, it will only be that it is not grand and free and bounteous
enough. To think anything too good to be true, is to deny God--to say the
untrue may be better than the true--that there might be a greater God than he.
Remember, Christ is in the world still, and within our call."
"I will think of what
you tell me," said Arctura, holding out her hand.
"If anything in
particular troubles you," said Donal, "I shall be most glad to help
you if I can; but it is better there should not be much talking. The thing lies
between you and your Father."
With these words he left
her. Arctura followed slowly to the house, and went straight to her room, her
mind filling as she went with slow-reviving strength and a great hope. No doubt
some of her relief came from the departure of her incubus friend; but that must
soon have vanished in fresh sorrow, save for the hope and strength to which
this departure yielded the room. She trusted that by the time she saw her again
she would be more firmly grounded concerning many things, and able to set them
forth aright. She was not yet free of the notion that you must be able to
defend your convictions; she scarce felt at liberty to say she believed a
thing, so long as she knew an argument against it which she could not show to
be false. Alas for our beliefs if they go no farther than the poor horizon of
our experience or our logic, or any possible wording of the beliefs themselves!
Alas for ourselves if our beliefs are not what we shape our lives, our actions,
our aspirations, our hopes, our repentances by!
Donal was glad indeed to
hope that now at length an open door stood before the poor girl. He had been growing
much interested in her, as one on whom life lay heavy, one who seemed ripe for
the kingdom of heaven, yet in whose way stood one who would neither enter
herself, nor allow her to enter that would. She was indeed fit for nothing but
the kingdom of heaven, so much was she already the child of him whom, longing
after him, she had not yet dared to call her father. His regard for her was
that of the gentle strong towards the weak he would help; and now that she
seemed fairly started on the path of life, the path, namely, to the knowledge
of him who is the life, his care over her grew the more tender. It is the part
of the strong to serve the weak, to minister that whereby they too may grow
strong. But he rather than otherwise avoided meeting her, and for a good many
days they did not so much as see each other.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLVI. A HORRIBLE STORY.">
CHAPTER XLVI.
A HORRIBLE STORY.
THE health of the earl
remained fluctuating. Its condition depended much on the special indulgence.
There was hardly any sort of narcotic with which he did not at least make
experiment, if he did not indulge in it. He made no pretence even to himself of
seeking therein the furtherance of knowledge; he wanted solely to find how this
or that, thus or thus modified or combined, would contribute to his living a
life such as he would have it, and other quite than that ordered for him by a
power which least of all powers he chose to acknowledge. The power of certain
drugs he was eager to understand: the living source of him and them and their
correlations, he scarcely recognized. This came of no hostility to religion
other than the worst hostility of all--that of a life irresponsive to its
claims. He believed neither like saint nor devil; he believed and did not obey,
he believed and did not yet tremble.
The one day he was better,
the other worse, according, as I say, to the character and degree of his
indulgence. At one time it much affected his temper, taking from him all
mastery of himself; at another made him so dull and stupid, that he resented
nothing except any attempt to rouse him from his hebetude. Of these differences
he took unfailing note; but the worst influence of all was a constant one, and
of it he made no account: however the drugs might vary in their operations upon
him, to one thing they all tended--the destruction of his moral nature.
Urged more or less all his
life by a sort of innate rebellion against social law, he had done great
wrongs--whether also committed what are called crimes, I cannot tell: no
repentance had followed the remorse their consequences had sometimes
occasioned. And now the possibility of remorse even was gradually forsaking
him. Such a man belongs rather to the kind demoniacal than the kind human; yet
so long as nothing occurs giving to his possible an occasion to embody itself
in the actual, he may live honoured, and die respected. There is always, not
the less, the danger of his real nature, or rather unnature, breaking out in
this way or that diabolical.
Although he went so little
out of the house, and apparently never beyond the grounds, he yet learned a
good deal at times of things going on in the neighbourhood: Davie brought him
news; so did Simmons; and now and then he would have an interview with his half
acknowledged relative, the factor.
One morning before he was
up, he sent for Donal, and requested him to give Davie a half-holiday, and do
something for him instead.
"You know, or perhaps
you don't know, that I have a house in the town," he said, "--the
only house, indeed, now belonging to the earldom--a not very attractive house
which you must have seen--on the main street, a little before you come to the
Morven Arms."
"I believe I know the
house, my lord," answered Donal, "with strong iron stanchions to the
lower windows, and--?"
"Yes, that is the
house; and I daresay you have heard the story of it--I mean how it fell into
its present disgrace! The thing happened more than a hundred years ago. But I
have spent some nights in it myself notwithstanding."
"I should like to hear
it, my lord," said Donal.
"You may as well have
it from myself as from another! It does not touch any of us, for the family was
not then represented by the same branch as now; I might else be thin-skinned
about it. No mere legend, mind you, but a very dreadful fact, which resulted in
the abandonment of the house! I think it time, for my part, that it should be
forgotten and the house let. It was before the castle and the title parted
company: that is a tale worth telling too! there was little fair play in
either! but I will not trouble you with it now.
"Into the generation
then above ground," the earl began, assuming a book-tone the instant he began
to narrate, "by one of those freaks of nature specially strange and more
inexplicable than the rest, had been born an original savage. You know that the
old type, after so many modifications have been wrought upon it, will sometimes
reappear in its ancient crudity amidst the latest development of the race,
animal and vegetable too, I suppose!--well, so it was now: I use no figure of
speech when I say that the apparition, the phenomenon, was a savage. I do not
mean that he was an exceptionally rough man for his position, but for any
position in the Scotland of that age. No doubt he was regarded as a madman, and
used as a madman; but my opinion is the more philosophical--that, by an arrest
of development, into the middle of the ladies and gentlemen of the family came
a veritable savage, and one out of no darkest age of history, but from beyond
all record--out of the awful prehistoric times."
His lordship visibly and
involuntarily shuddered, as at the memory of something he had seen: into that
region he had probably wandered in his visions.
"He was a fierce and
furious savage--worse than anything you can imagine. The only sign of any
influence of civilization upon him was that he was cowed by the eye of his
keeper. Never, except by rarest chance, was he left alone and awake: no one
could tell what he might not do!
"He was of gigantic
size, with coarse black hair--the brawniest fellow and the ugliest, they
say--for you may suppose my description is but legendary: there is no portrait
of him on our walls!--with a huge, shapeless, cruel, greedy mouth,"--
As his lordship said the
words, Donal, with involuntary insight, saw both cruelty and greed in the mouth
that spoke, though it was neither huge nor shapeless.
--"lips hideously red
and large, with the whitest teeth inside them.--I give you the
description," said his lordship, who evidently lingered not without
pleasure on the details of his recital, "just as I used to hear it from my
old nurse, who had been all her life in the family, and had it from her mother
who was in it at the time.--His great passion, his keenest delight, was animal
food. He ate enormously--more, it was said, than three hearty men. An hour
after he had gorged himself, he was ready to gorge again. Roast meat was his
main delight, but he was fond of broth also.--He must have been more like Mrs.
Shelley's creation in Frankenstein than any other. All the time I read
that story, I had the vision of my far-off cousin constantly before me, as I
saw him in my mind's eye when my nurse described him; and often I wondered
whether Mrs. Shelley could have heard of him.--In an earlier age and more
practical, they would have got rid of him by readier and more thorough means,
if only for shame of having brought such a being into the world, but they sent
him with his keeper, a little man with a powerful eye, to that same house down
in the town there: in an altogether solitary place they could persuade no man
to live with him. At night he was always secured to his bed, otherwise his
keeper would not have had courage to sleep, for he was as cunning as he was
hideous. When he slept during the day, which he did frequently after a meal,
his attendant contented himself with locking his door, and keeping his ears
awake. At such times only did he venture to look on the world: he would step
just outside the street-door, but would neither leave it, nor shut it behind
him, lest the savage should perhaps escape from his room, bar it, and set the
house on fire.
"One beautiful Sunday
morning, the brute, after a good breakfast, had fallen asleep on his bed, and
the keeper had gone down stairs, and was standing in the street with the door
open behind him. All the people were at church, and the street was empty as a
desert. He stood there for some time, enjoying the sweet air and the scent of
the flowers, went in and got a light to his pipe, put coals on the fire, saw
that the hugh cauldron of broth which the cook had left in his charge when he
went to church--it was to serve for dinner and supper both--was boiling
beautifully, went back, and again took his station in front of the open door.
Presently came a neighbour woman from her house, leading by the hand a little
girl too young to go to church. She stood talking with him for some time.
"Suddenly she cried,
'Good Lord! what's come o' the bairn?' The same instant came one piercing
shriek--from some distance it seemed. The mother darted down the neighbouring
close. But the keeper saw that the door behind him was shut, and was filled
with horrible dismay. He darted to an entrance in the close, of which he always
kept the key about him, and went straight to the kitchen. There by the fire
stood the savage, gazing with a fixed fishy eye of rapture at the cauldron,
which the steam, issuing in little sharp jets from under the lid, showed to be
boiling furiously, with grand prophecy of broth. Ghastly horror in his very
bones, the keeper lifted the lid--and there, beside the beef, with the broth
bubbling in waves over her, lay the child! The demon had torn off her frock,
and thrust her into the boiling liquid!
"There rose such an
outcry that they were compelled to put him in chains and carry him no one knew
whither; but nurse said he lived to old age. Ever since, the house has been
uninhabited, with, of course, the reputation of being haunted. If you happen to
be in its neighbourhood when it begins to grow dark, you may see the children
hurry past it in silence, now and then glancing back in dread, lest something
should have opened the never-opened door, and be stealing after them. They call
that something The Red Etin,--only this ogre was black, I am sorry to
say; red was the proper colour for him."
"It is a horrible
story!" said Donal.
"I want you to go to
the house for me: you do not mind going, do you?"
"Not in the
least," answered Donal.
"I want you to search a
certain bureau there for some papers.--By the way, have you any news to give me
about Forgue?"
"No, my lord,"
answered Donal. "I do not even know whether or not they meet, but I am
afraid."
"Oh, I daresay,"
rejoined his lordship, "the whim is wearing off! One pellet drives out
another. Behind the love in the popgun came the conviction that it would be
simple ruin! But we Graemes are stiff-necked both to God and man, and I don't
trust him much."
"He gave you no
promise, if you remember, my lord."
"I remember very well;
why the deuce should I not remember? I am not in the way of forgetting things!
No, by God! nor forgiving them either! Where there's anything to forgive
there's no fear of my forgetting!"
He followed the utterance
with a laugh, as if he would have it pass for a joke, but there was no ring in
the laugh.
He then gave Donal detailed
instructions as to where the bureau stood, how he was to open it with a curious
key which he told him where to find in the room, how also to open the secret
part of the bureau in which the papers lay.
"Forget!" he
echoed, turning and sweeping back on his trail; "I have not been in that
house for twenty years: you can judge whether I forget!--No!" he added
with an oath, "if I found myself forgetting I should think it time to look
out; but there is no sign of that yet, thank God! There! take the keys, and be
off! Simmons will give you the key of the house. You had better take that of
the door in the close: it is easier to open."
Donal went away wondering at
the pleasure his frightful tale afforded the earl: he had seemed positively to
gloat over the details of it! These were much worse than I have recorded: he
showed special delight in narrating how the mother took the body of her child
out of the pot!
He sought Simmons and asked
him for the key. The butler went to find it, but returned saying he could not
lay his hands upon it; there was, however, the key of the front door: it might
prove stiff! Donal took it, and having oiled it well, set out for Morven House.
But on his way he turned aside to see the Comins.
Andrew looked worse, and he
thought he must be sinking. The moment he saw Donal he requested they might be
left alone for a few minutes.
"My yoong freen',"
he said, "the Lord has fauvoured me greatly in grantin' my last days the
licht o' your coontenance. I hae learnt a heap frae ye 'at I kenna hoo I could
hae come at wantin' ye."
"Eh, An'rew!"
interrupted Donal, "I dinna weel ken hoo that can be, for it aye seemt to
me ye had a' the knowledge 'at was gaein'!"
"The man can ill taich
wha's no gaein' on learnin'; an' maybe whiles he learns mair frae his scholar
nor the scholar learns frae him. But it's a' frae the Lord; the Lord is that
speerit--an' first o' a' the speerit o' obeddience, wi'oot which there's no
learnin'. Still, my son, it may comfort ye a wee i' the time to come, to think
the auld cobbler Anerew Comin gaed intil the new warl' fitter company for the
help ye gied him afore he gaed. May the Lord mak a sicht o' use o' ye! Fowk say
a heap aboot savin' sowls, but ower aften, I doobt, they help to tak frae them
the sense o' hoo sair they're in want o' savin'. Surely a man sud ken in
himsel' mair an' mair the need o' bein' saved, till he cries oot an' shoots, 'I
am saved, for there's nane in h'aven but thee, an' there's nane upo' the
earth I desire besides thee! Man, wuman, child, an' live cratur, is but a
portion o' thee, whauron to lat the love o' thee rin ower!' Whan a man can say
that, he's saved; an' no till than, though for lang years he may hae been aye
comin' nearer to that goal o' a' houp, the hert o' the father o' me, an' you,
an' Doory, an' Eppy, an' a' the nations o' the earth!"
He stopped weary, but his
eyes, fixed on Donal, went on where his voice had ended, and for a time Donal
seemed to hear what his soul was saying, and to hearken with content. But
suddenly their light went out, the old man gave a sigh, and said:--
"It's ower for this
warl', my freen'. It's comin'--the hoor o' darkness. But the thing 'at's true
whan the licht shines, is as true i' the dark: ye canna work, that's a'. God
'ill gie me grace to lie still. It's a' ane. I wud lie jist as I used to sit,
i' the days whan I men'it fowk's shune, an' Doory happent to tak awa' the licht
for a moment;--I wud sit aye luikin' doon throuw the mirk at my wark, though I
couldna see a stime o' 't, the alison (awl) i' my han' ready to put in
the neist steek the moment the licht fell upo' the spot whaur it was to gang.
That's hoo I wud lie whan I'm deein', jist waitin' for the licht, no for the
dark, an' makin' an incense-offerin' o' my patience whan I hae naething ither
to offer, naither thoucht nor glaidness nor sorrow, naething but patience
burnin' in pain. He'll accep' that; for, my son, the maister's jist as easy to
please as he's ill to saitisfee. Ye hae seen a mither ower her wee lassie's
sampler? She'll praise an' praise 't, an' be richt pleast wi' 't; but wow gien
she was to be content wi' the thing in her han'! the lassie's man, whan she cam
to hae ane, wud hae an ill time o' 't wi' his hose an' his sarks! But noo I hae
a fauvour to beg o' ye--no for my sake but for hers: gien ye hae the warnin',
ye'll be wi' me whan I gang? It may be a comfort to mysel'--I dinna ken--nane
can tell 'at hasna dee'd afore--nor even than, for deiths are sae
different!--doobtless Lazarus's twa deiths war far frae alike!--but it'll be a
great comfort to Doory--I'm clear upo' that. She winna fin' hersel' sae
lanesome like, losin' sicht o' her auld man, gien the freen' o' his hert be
aside her whan he gangs."
"Please God, I'll be at
yer comman'," said Donal.
"Noo cry upo' Doory,
for I wudna see less o' her nor I may. It may be years 'afore I get a sicht o'
her lo'in' face again! But the same Lord 's in her an' i' me, an' we canna far
be sun'ert, hooever lang the time 'afore we meet again."
Donal called Doory, and took
his leave.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLVII. MORVEN HOUSE.">
CHAPTER XLVII.
MORVEN HOUSE.
OPPOSITE Morven House was a
building which had at one time been the stables to it, but was now part of a
brewery; a high wall shut it off from the street; it was dinner-time with the
humbler people of the town, and there was not a soul visible, when Donal put
the key in the lock of the front door, opened it, and went in: he had timed his
entrance so, desiring to avoid idle curiosity, and bring no gathering feet
about the house. Almost on tiptoe he entered the lofty hall, high above the
first story. The dust lay thick on a large marble table--but what was that?--a
streak across it, brushed sharply through the middle of the dust! It was
strange! But he would not wait to speculate on the agent! The room to which the
earl had directed him was on the first floor, and he ascended to it at once--by
the great oak staircase which went up the sides of the hall.
The house had not been
dismantled, although things had at different times been taken from it, and when
Donal opened a leaf of shutter, he saw tables and chairs and cabinets inlaid
with silver and ivory. The room looked stately, but everything was deep in
dust; carpets and curtains were thick with the deserted sepulchres of moths;
and the air somehow suggested a tomb: Donal thought of the tombs of the kings
of Egypt before ravaging conquerors broke into them, when they were yet full of
all such gorgeous furniture as great kings desired, against the time when the
souls should return to reanimate the bodies so carefully spiced and stored to
welcome them, and the great kings would be themselves again, with the added
wisdom of the dead and judged. Conscious of a curious timidity, feeling a kind
of awesomeness about every form in the room, he stepped softly to the bureau,
applied its key, and following carefully the directions the earl had given him,
for the lock was Italian, with more than one quip and crank and wanton wile
about it, succeeded in opening it. He had no difficulty in finding its secret
place, nor the packet concealed in it; but just as he laid his hands on it, he
was aware of a swift passage along the floor without, past the door of the
room, and apparently up the next stair. There was nothing he could distinguish
as footsteps, or as the rustle of a dress; it seemed as if he had heard but a
disembodied motion! He darted to the door, which he had by habit closed behind
him, and opened it noiselessly. The stairs above as below were covered with
thick carpet: any light human foot might pass without a sound; only haste would
murmur the secret to the troubled air.
He turned, replaced the
packet, and closed the bureau. If there was any one in the house, he must know
it, and who could tell what might follow! It was the merest ghost of a sound he
had heard, but he must go after it! Some intruder might be using the earl's
house for his own purposes!
Going softly up, he paused
at the top of the second stair, and looked around him. An iron-clenched door
stood nearly opposite the head of it; and at the farther end of a long passage,
on whose sides were several closed doors, was one partly open. From that
direction came the sound of a little movement, and then of low voices--one
surely that of a woman! It flashed upon him that this must be the
trysting-place of Eppy and Forgue. Fearing discovery before he should have
gathered his wits, he stepped quietly across the passage to the door opposite,
opened it, not without a little noise, and went in.
It was a strange-looking
chamber he had entered--that, doubtless, once occupied by the ogre--The Reid
Etin. Even in the bewilderment of the moment, the tale he had just heard was so
present to him that he cast his eyes around, and noted several things to
confirm the conclusion. But the next instant came from below what sounded like
a thundering knock at the street door--a single knock, loud and
fierce--possibly a mere runaway's knock. The start it gave Donal set his heart
shaking in his bosom.
Almost with it came a little
cry, and the sound of a door pulled open. Then he heard a hurried, yet
carefully soft step, which went down the stair.
"Now is my time!"
said Donal to himself. "She is alone!"
He came out, and went along
the passage. The door at the end of it was open, and Eppy stood in it. She saw
him coming, and gazed with widespread eyes of terror, as if it were The Reid
Etin himself--waked, and coming to devour her. As he came, her blue eyes opened
wider, and seemed to fix in their orbits; just as her name was on his lips, she
dropped with a sharp moan. He caught her up, and hurried with her down the
stair.
As he reached the first
floor, he heard the sound of swift ascending steps, and the next moment was
face to face with Forgue. The youth started back, and for a moment stood
staring. His enemy had found him! But rage restored to him his self-possession.
"Put her down, you
scoundrel!" he said.
"She can't stand,"
Donal answered.
"You've killed her, you
damned spy!"
"Then I have been more
kind than you!"
"What are you going to
do with her?"
"Take her home to her
dying grandfather."
"You've hurt her, you
devil! I know you have!"
"She is only
frightened. She is coming to herself. I feel her waking!"
"You shall feel me
presently!" cried Forgue. "Put her down, I say."
Neither of them spoke loud,
for dread of neighbours.
Eppy began to writhe in
Donal's arms. Forgue laid hold of her, and Donal was compelled to put her down.
She threw herself into the arms of her lover, and was on the point of fainting
again.
"Get out of the
house!" said Forgue to Donal.
"I am here on your
father's business!" returned Donal.
"A spy and
informer!"
"He sent me to fetch
him some papers."
"It is a lie!"
said Forgue; "I see it in your face!"
"So long as I speak the
truth," rejoined Donal, "it matters little that you should think me a
liar. But, my lord, you must allow me to take Eppy home."
"A likely thing!"
answered Forgue, drawing Eppy closer, and looking at him with contempt.
"Give up the
girl," said Donal sternly, "or I will raise the town, and have a
crowd about the house in three minutes."
"You are the
devil!" cried Forgue. "There! take her--with the consequences! If you
had let us alone, I would have done my part.--Leave us now, and I'll promise to
marry her. If you don't, you will have the blame of what may happen--not
I."
"But you will,
dearest?" said Eppy in a tone terrified and beseeching.
Gladly she would have had
Donal hear him say he would.
Forgue pushed her from him.
She burst into tears. He took her in his arms again, and soothed her like a
child, assuring her he meant nothing by what he had said.
"You are my own!"
he went on; "you know you are, whatever our enemies may drive us to!
Nothing can part us. Go with him, my darling, for the present. The time will
come when we shall laugh at them all. If it were not for your sake, and the
scandal of the thing, I would send the rascal to the bottom of the stair. But
it is better to be patient."
Sobbing bitterly, Eppy went
with Donal. Forgue stood shaking with impotent rage.
When they reached the
street, Donal turned to lock the door. Eppy darted from him, and ran down the
close, thinking to go in again by the side door. But it was locked, and Donal
was with her in a moment.
"You go home alone,
Eppy," he said; "it will be just as well I should not go with you. I
must see lord Forgue out of the house."
"Eh, ye winna hurt
him!" pleaded Eppy.
"Not if I can help it.
I don't want to hurt him. You go home. It will be better for him as well as
you."
She went slowly away,
weeping, but trying to keep what show of calm she could. Donal waited a minute
or two, went back to the front door, entered, and hastening to the side door
took the key from the lock. Then returning to the hall, he cried from the
bottom of the stair,
"My lord, I have both
the keys; the side door is locked; I am about to lock the front door, and I do
not want to shut you in. Pray, come down."
Forgue came leaping down the
stair, and threw himself upon Donal in a fierce attempt after the key in his
hand. The sudden assault staggered him, and he fell on the floor with Forgue
above him, who sought to wrest the key from him. But Donal was much the
stronger; he threw his assailant off him; and for a moment was tempted to give
him a good thrashing. From this the thought of Eppy helped to restrain him, and
he contented himself with holding him down till he yielded. When at last he lay
quiet,
"Will you promise to
walk out if I let you up?" said Donal. "If you will not, I will drag
you into the street by the legs."
"I will," said
Forgue; and getting up, he walked out and away without a word.
Donal locked the door,
forgetting all about the papers, and went back to Andrew's. There was Eppy,
safe for the moment! She was busy in the outer room, and kept her back to him.
With a word or two to the grandmother, he left them, and went home, revolving
all the way what he ought to do. Should he tell the earl, or should he not? Had
he been a man of rectitude, he would not have hesitated a moment; but knowing
he did not care what became of Eppy, so long as his son did not marry her, he
felt under no obligation to carry him the evil report. The father might have a
right to know, but had he a right to know from him?
A noble nature finds it
almost impossible to deal with questions on other than the highest grounds:
where those grounds are unrecognized, the relations of responsibility may be
difficult indeed to determine. All Donal was able to conclude on his way home,
and he did not hurry, was, that, if he were asked any questions, he would speak
out what he knew--be absolutely open. If that should put a weapon in the hand
of the enemy, a weapon was not the victory.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLVIII. PATERNAL REVENGE.">
CHAPTER XLVIII.
PATERNAL REVENGE.
NO sooner had he entered the
castle, where his return had been watched for, than Simmons came to him with
the message that his lordship wanted to see him. Then first Donal remembered
that he had not brought the papers! Had he not been sent for, he would have
gone back at once to fetch them. As it was, he must see the earl first.
He found him in a worse
condition than usual. His last drug or combination of drugs had not agreed with
him; or he had taken too much, with correspondent reaction: he was in a vile
temper. Donal told him he had been to the house, and had found the papers, but
had not brought them--had, in fact, forgotten them.
"A pretty fellow you
are!" cried the earl. "What, you left those papers lying about where
any rascal may find them and play the deuce with them!"
Donal assured him they were
perfectly safe, under the same locks and keys as before.
"You are always going
about the bush!" cried the earl. "You never come to the point! How
the devil was it you locked them up again?--To go prying all over the house, I
suppose!"
Donal told him as much of
the story as he would hear. Almost immediately he saw whither it tended, he
began to abuse him for meddling with things he had nothing to do with. What
right had he to interfere with lord Forgue's pleasures! Things of the sort were
to be regarded as non-existent! The linen had to be washed, but it was not done
in the great court! Lord Forgue was a youth of position: why should he be
balked of his fancy! It might be at the expense of society!
Donal took advantage of the
first pause to ask whether he should not go back and bring the papers: he would
run all the way, he said.
"No, damn you!"
answered the earl. "Give me the keys--all the keys--house-keys and all. I
should be a fool myself to trust such a fool again!"
As Donal was laying the last
key on the table by his lordship's bedside, Simmons appeared, saying lord
Forgue desired to know if his father would see him.
"Oh, yes! send him
up!" cried the earl in a fury. "All the devils in hell at once!"
His lordship's rages came up
from abysses of misery no man knew but himself.
"You go into the next
room, Grant," he said, "and wait there till I call you."
Donal obeyed, took a book
from the table, and tried to read. He heard the door to the passage open and
close again, and then the sounds of voices. By degrees they grew louder, and at
length the earl roared out, so that Donal could not help hearing:
"I'll be damned soul
and body in hell, but I'll put a stop to this! Why, you son of a snake! I have
but to speak the word, and you are--well, what--. Yes, I will hold my tongue,
but not if he crosses me!--By God! I have held it too long already!--letting
you grow up the damnablest ungrateful dog that ever snuffed carrion!--And your
poor father periling his soul for you, by God, you rascal!"
"Thank heaven, you
cannot take the title from me, my lord!" said Forgue coolly. "The
rest you are welcome to give to Davie! It won't be too much, by all
accounts!"
"Damn you and your
title! A pretty title, ha, ha, ha!--Why, you infernal fool, you have no more
right to the title than the beggarly kitchen-maid you would marry! If you but
knew yourself, you would crow in another fashion! Ha, ha, ha!"
At this Donal opened the
door.
"I must warn your
lordship," he said, "that if you speak so loud, I shall hear every
word."
"Hear and be damned to
you!--That fellow there--you see him standing there--the mushroom that he is!
Good God! how I loved his mother! and this is the way he serves me! But there
was a Providence in the whole affair! Never will I disbelieve in a Providence
again! It all comes out right, perfectly right! Small occasion had I to be
breaking heart and conscience over it ever since she left me! Hang the
pinchbeck rascal! he's no more Forgue than you are, Grant, and never will be
Morven if he live a hundred years! He's not a short straw better than any
bastard in the street! His mother was the loveliest woman ever breathed!--and
loved me--ah, God! it is something after all to have been loved so--and by such
a woman!--a woman, by God! ready and willing and happy to give up everything
for me! Everything, do you hear, you damned rascal! I never married her!
Do you hear, Grant? I take you to witness; mark my words: we, that fellow's
mother and I, were never married--by no law, Scotch, or French, or Dutch, or
what you will! He's a damned bastard, and may go about his business when he
pleases. Oh, yes! pray do! Marry your scullion when you please! You are your
own master--entlrely your own master!--free as the wind that blows to go where
you will and do what you please! I wash my hands of you. You'll do as you
please--will you? Then do, and please me: I desire no better revenge! I
only tell you once for all, the moment I know for certain you've married the
wench, that moment I publish to the world--that is, I acquaint certain gossips
with the fact, that the next lord Morven will have to be hunted for like a
truffle--ha! ha! ha!"
He burst into a fiendish fit
of laughter, and fell back on his pillow, dark with rage and the unutterable
fury that made of his being a volcano. The two men had been standing dumb
before him, Donal pained for the man on whom this phial of devilish wrath had
been emptied, he white and trembling with dismay--an abject creature, crushed
by a cruel parent. When his father ceased, he still stood, still said nothing:
power was gone from him. He grew ghastly, uttered a groan, and wavered. Donal
supported him to a chair; he dropped into it, and leaned back, with streaming
face. It was miserable to think that one capable of such emotion concerning the
world's regard, should be so indifferent to what alone can affect a man--the
nature of his actions--so indifferent to the agony of another as to please
himself at all risk to her, although he believed he loved her, and perhaps did
love her better than any one else in the world. For Donal did not at all trust
him regarding Eppy--less now than ever. But these thoughts went on in him
almost without his thinking them; his attention was engrossed with the passionate
creatures before him.
The father too seemed to
have lost the power of motion, and lay with his eyes closed, breathing heavily.
But by and by he made what Donal took for a sign to ring the bell. He did so,
and Simmons came. The moment he entered, and saw the state his master was in,
he hastened to a cupboard, took thence a bottle, poured from it something
colourless, and gave it to him in water. It brought him to himself. He sat up
again, and in a voice hoarse and terrible said:--
"Think of what I have
told you, Forgue. Do as I would have you, and the truth is safe; take your way
without me, and I will take mine without you. Go."
Donal went. Forgue did not
move.
What was Donal to do or
think now? Perplexities gathered upon him. Happily there was time for thought,
and for prayer, which is the highest thinking. Here was a secret affecting the
youth his enemy, and the boy his friend! affecting society itself--that society
which, largely capable and largely guilty of like sins, yet visits with such
unmercy the sins of the fathers upon the children, the sins of the offender
upon the offended! But there is another who visits them, and in another
fashion! What was he to do? Was he to hold his tongue and leave the thing as
not his, or to speak out as he would have done had the case been his own? Ought
the chance to be allowed the nameless youth of marrying his cousin? Ought the
next heir to the lordship to go without his title? Had they not both a claim
upon Donal for the truth? Donal thought little of such things himself, but did
that affect his duty in the matter? He might think little of money, but would
he therefore look on while a pocket was picked?
On reflection he saw,
however, that there was no certainty the earl was speaking the truth; for
anything he knew of him, he might be inventing the statement in order to have
his way with his son! For in either case he was a double-dyed villian; and if
he spoke the truth was none the less capable of lying.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER XLIX. FILIAL RESPONSE.">
CHAPTER XLIX.
FILIAL RESPONSE.
ONE thing then was clear to
Donal, that for the present he had nothing to do with the affair. Supposing the
earl's assertion true, there was at present no question as to the succession;
before such question could arise, Forgue might be dead; before that, his father
might himself have disclosed the secret; while, the longer Donal thought about
it, the greater was his doubt whether he had spoken the truth. The man who
could so make such a statement to his son concerning his mother, must indeed
have been capable of the wickedness assumed! but also the man who could make
such a statement was surely vile enough to lie! The thing remained uncertain,
and he was assuredly not called upon to act!
But how would Forgue carry
himself? His behaviour now would decide or at least determine his character. If
he were indeed as honourable as he wished to be thought, he would tell Eppy
what had occurred, and set himself at once to find some way of earning his and
her bread, or at least to become capable of earning it. He did not seem to
cherish any doubt of the truth of what had fallen in rage from his father's
lips, for, to judge by his appearance, to the few and brief glances Donal had
of him during the next week or so, the iron had sunk into his soul: he looked
more wretched than Donal could have believed it possible for man to be--abject
quite. It manifested very plainly what a miserable thing, how weak and
weakening, is the pride of this world. One who could be so cast down, was
hardly one, alas, of whom to expect any greatness of action! He was not likely
to have honesty or courage enough to decline a succession that was not
his--even though it would leave his way clear to marry Eppy. Whether any of Forgue's
misery arose from the fact that Donal had been present at the exposure of his
position, Donal could not tell; but he could hardly fail to regard him as a
dangerous holder of his secret--one who would be more than ready to take
hostile action in the matter! At the same time, such had seemed the paralysing
influence of the shock upon him, that Donal doubted if he had been, at any time
during the interview, so much aware of his presence as not to have forgotten it
entirely before he came to himself. Had he remembered the fact, would he not
have come to him to attempt securing his complicity? If he meant to do right,
why did he hesitate?--there was but one way, and that plain before him!
But presently Donal began to
see many things an equivocating demon might urge: the claims of his mother; the
fact that there was no near heir--he did not even know who would come in his
place; that he would do as well with the property as another; that he had been
already grievously wronged; that his mother's memory would be yet more
grievously wronged; that the marriage had been a marriage in the sight of God,
and as such he surely of all men was in heaven's right to regard it! and his
mother had been the truest of wives to his father! These things and more Donal
saw he might plead with himself; and if he was the man he had given him no
small ground to think, he would in all probability listen to them. He would
recall or assume the existence of many precedents in the history of noble
families; he would say that, knowing the general character of their heads, no
one would believe a single noble family without at least one unrecorded,
undiscovered, or well concealed irregularity in its descent; and he would judge
it the cruellest thing to have let him know the blighting fact, seeing that in
ignorance he might have succeeded with a good conscience.
But what kind of a father
was this, thought Donal, who would thus defile his son's conscience! he had not
done it in mere revenge, but to gain his son's submission as well! Whether the poor
fellow leaned to the noble or ignoble, it was no marvel he should wander about
looking scarce worthy the name of man! If he would but come to him that he
might help him! He could at least encourage him to refuse the evil and choose
the good! But even if he would receive such help, the foregone passages between
them rendered it sorely improbable it would ever fall to him to afford it!
That his visits to Eppy were
intermitted, Donal judged from her countenance and bearing; and if he hesitated
to sacrifice his own pride to the truth, it could not be without contemplating
as possible the sacrifice of her happiness to a lie. In such delay he could
hardly be praying "Lead me not into temptation:" if not actively
tempting himself, he was submitting to be tempted; he was lingering on the evil
shore.
Andrew Comin staid yet a
week--slowly, gently fading out into life--darkening into eternal
day--forgetting into knowledge itself. Donal was by his side when he went, but
little was done or said; he crept into the open air in his sleep, to wake from
the dreams of life and the dreams of death and the dreams of sleep all at once,
and see them mingling together behind him like a broken wave--blending into one
vanishing dream of a troubled, yet, oh, how precious night past and gone!
Once, about an hour before
he went, Donal heard him murmur, "When I wake I am still with thee!"
Doory was perfectly calm.
When he gave his last sigh, she sighed too, said, "I winna be lang,
Anerew!" and said no more. Eppy wept bitterly.
Donal went every day to see
them till the funeral was over. It was surprising how many of the town's folk
attended it. Most of them had regarded the cobbler as a poor talkative
enthusiast with far more tongue than brains! Because they were so far behind
and beneath him, they saw him very small!
One cannot help reflecting
what an indifferent trifle the funeral, whether plain to bareness, as in
Scotland, or lovely with meaning as often in England, is to the spirit who has
but dropt his hurting shoes on the weary road, dropt all the dust and heat,
dropt the road itself, yea the world of his pilgrimage--which never was, never
could be, never was meant to be his country, only the place of his
sojourning--in which the stateliest house of marble can be but a tent--cannot
be a house, yet less a home. Man could never be made at home here, save by a
mutilation, a depression, a lessening of his being; those who fancy it their
home, will come, by growth, one day to feel that it is no more their home than
its mother's egg is the home of the lark.
For some time Donal's
savings continued to support the old woman and her grand-daughter. But ere long
Doory got so much to do in the way of knitting stockings and other things, and
was set to so many light jobs by kindly people who respected her more than her
husband because they saw her less extraordinary, that she seldom troubled him.
Miss Carmichael offered to do what she could to get Eppy a place, if she
answered certain questions to her satisfaction. How she liked her catechizing I
do not know, but she so far satisfied her interrogator that she did find her a
place in Edinburgh. She wept sore at leaving Auchars, but there was no help:
rumour had been more cruel than untrue, and besides there was no peace for her
near the castle. Not once had lord Forgue sought her since he gave her up to
Donal, and she thought he had then given her up altogether. Notwithstanding his
kindness to her house, she all but hated Donal--perhaps the more nearly that
her conscience told he had done nothing but what was right.
Things returned into the old
grooves at the castle, but the happy thought of his friend the cobbler,
hammering and stitching in the town below, was gone from Donal. True, the
craftsman was a nobleman now, but such he had always been!
Forgue mooned about, doing
nothing, and recognizing no possible help save in what was utter defeat. If he
had had any faith in Donal, he might have had help fit to make a man of him,
which he would have found something more than an earl. Donal would have taught
him to look things in the face, and call them by their own names. It would have
been the redemption of his being. To let things be as they truly are, and act
with truth in respect of them, is to be a man. But Forgue showed little sign of
manhood, present or to come.
He was much on horseback,
now riding furiously over everything, as if driven by the very fiend, now
dawdling along with the reins on the neck of his weary animal. Donal once met
him thus in a narrow lane. The moment Forgue saw him, he pulled up his horse's
head, spurred him hard, and came on as if he did not see him. Donal shoved
himself into the hedge, and escaped with a little mud.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER L. A SOUTH-EASTERLY WIND.">
CHAPTER L.
A SOUTH-EASTERLY WIND.
ONE morning, Donal in the
schoolroom with Davie, a knock came to the door, and lady Arctura entered.
"The wind is blowing
from the south-east," she said.
"Listen then, my lady,
whether you can hear anything," said Donal. "I fancy it is a very
precise wind that is wanted."
"I will listen,"
she answered, and went.
The day passed, and he heard
nothing more. He was at work in his room in the warm evening twilight, when
Davie came running to his door, and said Arkie was coming up after him. He rose
and stood at the top of the stair to receive her. She had heard the music, she
said--very soft: would he go on the roof?
"Where were you, my
lady," asked Donal, "when you heard it? I have heard nothing up
here!"
"In my own little
parlour," she replied. "It was very faint, but I could not mistake
it."
They went upon the roof. The
wind was soft and low, an excellent thing in winds. They knew the paths of the
roof better now, and had plenty of light, although the moon, rising large and
round, gave them little of hers yet, and were soon at the foot of the great
chimney-stack, which grew like a tree out of the house. There they sat down to
wait and hearken.
"I am almost sorry to
have made this discovery!" said Donal.
"Why?" asked lady
Arctura. "Should not the truth be found, whatever it may be? You at least
think so!"
"Most certainly,"
answered Donal. "And if this be the truth, as I fully expect it will
prove, then it is well it should be found to be. But I should have liked better
it had been something we could not explain."
"I doubt if I
understand you."
"Things that cannot be
explained so widen the horizon around us! open to us fresh regions for question
and answer, for possibility and delight! They are so many kernels of knowledge
closed in the hard nuts of seeming contradiction.--You know, my lady, there are
stories of certain houses being haunted by a mysterious music presaging evil to
the family?"
"I have heard of such
music. But what can be the use of it?"
"I do not know. I see
not the smallest use in it. If it were of use it would surely be more common!
If it were of use, why should those who have it be of the class less favoured,
so to speak, of the Lord of the universe, and the families of his poor never have
it?"
"Perhaps for the same
reason that they have their other good things in this life!" said Arctura.
"I am answered,"
confessed Donal, "and have no more to say. These tales, if they require of
us a belief in any special care over such houses, as if they were more precious
in the eyes of God than the poorest cottage in the land, I cast them from
me."
"But," said
Arctura, in a deprecating tone, "are not those houses which have more
influence more important than the others?"
"Surely--those which
have more good influence. But such are rarely the great houses of a
country. Our Lord was not an Asmonaean prince, but the son of a humble maiden,
his reputed father a working man."
"I do not see--I should
like to understand how that has to do with it."
"You may be sure the
Lord took the position in life in which it was most possible to do the highest
good; and without driving the argument--for every work has its own
specialty--it seems probable that the true ends of his coming will still be
better furthered from the standpoint of humble circumstances, than from that of
rank and position."
"You always
speak," said Arctura, "as if there were only the things Jesus
Christ came for to be cared about:--is there nothing but salvation
worthy a human being's regard?"
"If you give a true and
large enough meaning to the word salvation, I answer you at once, Nothing.
Only in proportion as a man is saved, will he do the work of the world
aright--the whole design of which is to rear a beautiful blessed family. The
world is God's nursery for his upper rooms. Oneness with God is the end of the
order of things. When that is attained, we shall do greater things than the
Lord himself did on the earth!--But was not that Æolus?--Listen!"
There came a low prolonged
wail.
The ladder was in readiness;
Donal set it up in haste, climbed to the cleft, and with a sheet of brown paper
in his hands, waited the next cry of the prisoned chords. He was beginning to
get tired of his position, when suddenly came a stronger puff, and he heard the
music distinctly in the shaft beside him. It swelled and grew. He spread the
sheet of paper over the opening, the wind blew it flat against the chimney, and
the sound instantly ceased. He removed it, and again came the sound. The wind
continued, and grew stronger, so that they were able to make the simple
experiment until no shadow of a doubt was left: they had discovered the source
of the music! By certain dispositions of the paper they were even able to
modify it.
Donal descended, and said to
Davie,
"I wish you not to say
a word about this to any one, Davie, before lady Arctura or I give you leave.
You have a secret with us now. The castle belongs to lady Arctura, and she has
a right to ask you not to speak of it to any one without her
permission.--I have a reason, my lady," he went on, turning to Arctura:
"will you, please, desire Davie to attend to what I say. I will
immediately explain to you, but I do not want Davie to know my reason until you
do. You can on the instant withdraw your prohibition, should you not think my
reason a good one."
"Davie," said
Arctura, "I too have faith in Mr. Grant: I beg you will keep all this a
secret for the present."
"Oh surely, cousin
Arkie!" said Davie. "--But, Mr. Grant, why should you make Arkie
speak to me too?"
"Because the thing is
her business, not mine. Run down and wait for me in my room. Go steadily over
the bartizan, mind."
Donal turned again to
Arctura.
"You know they say
there is a hidden room in the castle, my lady?"
"Do you believe
it?" she returned.
"I think there may be
such a place."
"Surely if there had
been, it would have been found long ago."
"They might have said
that on the first report of the discovery of America!"
"That was far off, and
across a great ocean!"
"And here are thick
walls, and hearts careless an timid!--Has any one ever set in earnest about
finding it?"
"Not that I know
of."
"Then your objection
falls to the ground. If you could have told me that one had tried to find the
place, but without success, I would have admitted some force in it, though it
would not have satisfied me without knowing the plans he had taken, and how
they were carried out. On the other hand it may have been known to many who
held their peace about it.--Would you not like to know the truth concerning
that too?"
"I should indeed. But
would not you be sorry to lose another mystery?"
"On the contrary, there
is only the rumour of a mystery now, and we do not quite believe it. We are not
at liberty, in the name of good sense, to believe it yet. But if we find the
room, or the space even where it may be, we shall probably find also a
mystery--something never in this world to be accounted for, but suggesting a
hundred unsatisfactory explanations. But, pardon me, I do not in the least
presume to press it."
Lady Arctura smiled.
"You may do what you
please," she said. "If I seemed for a moment to hesitate, it was only
that I wondered what my uncle would say to it. I should not like to vex
him."
"Certainly not; but
would he not be pleased?"
"I will speak to him,
and find out. He hates what he calls superstition, and I fancy has curiosity
enough not to object to a search. I do not think he would consent to pulling
down, but short of that, I don't think he will mind. I should not wonder if he
even joined in the search."
Donal thought with himself
it was strange then he had never undertaken one. Something told him the earl
would not like the proposal.
"But tell me, Mr.
Grant--how would you set about it?" said Arctura, as they went towards the
tower.
"If the question were
merely whether or not there was such a room, and not the finding of it,--"
"Excuse me--but how
could you tell whether there was or was not such a room except by searching for
it?"
"By determining whether
there was or was not some space in the castle unaccounted for."
"I do not see."
"Would you mind coming
to my room? It will be a lesson for Davie too!"
She assented, and Donal gave
them a lesson in cubic measure and content. He showed them how to reckon the
space that must lie within given boundaries: if then within those boundaries
they could not find so much, part of it must he hidden. If they measured the
walls of the castle, allowing of course for their thickness and every
irregularity, and from that calculated the space they must hold; then measured
all the rooms and open places within the walls, allowing for all partitions;
and having again calculated, found the space fall short of what they had from
the outside measurements to expect; they must conclude either that they had
measured or calculated wrong, or that there was space in the castle to which
they had no access.
"But," continued
Donal, when they had in a degree mastered the idea, "if the thing was, to
discover the room itself, I should set about it in a different way; I should
not care about the measuring. I would begin and go all over the castle, first
getting the outside shape right in my head, and then fitting everything inside
it into that shape of it in my brain. If I came to a part I could not so fit at
once, I would examine that according to the rules I have given you, take exact
measurements of the angles and sides of the different rooms and passages, and
find whether these enclosed more space than I could at once discover inside
them.--But I need not follow the process farther: pulling down might be the
next thing, and we must not talk of that!"
"But the thing is worth
doing, is it not, even if we do not go so far as to pull down?"
"I think so."
"And I think my uncle
will not object.--Say nothing about it though, Davie, till we give you
leave."
That we was pleasant
in Donal's ears.
Lady Arctura rose, and they
all went down together. When they reached the hall, Davie ran to get his kite.
"But you have not told
me why you would not have him speak of the music," said Arctura, stopping
at the foot of the great stair.
"Partly because, if we
were to go on to make search for the room, it ought to be kept as quiet as
possible, and the talk about the one would draw notice to the other; and partly
because I have a hope that the one may even guide us to the other."
"You will tell me about
that afterwards," said Arctura, and went up the stair.
That night the earl had
another of his wandering fits; also all night the wind blew from the
south-east.
In the morning Arctura went
to him with her proposal. The instant he understood what she wished, his
countenance grew black as thunder.
"What!" he cried,
"you would go pulling the grand old bulk to pieces for the sake of a
foolish tale about the devil and a set of cardplayers! By my soul, I'll be
damned if you do!--Not while I'm above ground at least! That's what comes of
putting such a place in the power of a woman! It's sacrilege! By heaven, I'll
throw my brother's will into chancery rather!"
His rage was such as to
compel her to think there must be more in it than appeared. The wilderness of
the temper she had roused made her tremble, but it also woke the spirit of her
race, and she repented of the courtesy she had shown him: she had the right to
make what investigations she pleased! Her father would not have left her the
property without good reasons for doing so; and of those reasons some might
well have lain in the character of the man before her!
Through all this rage the
earl read something of what had sent the blood of the Graemes to her cheek and
brow.
"I beg your pardon, my
love," he said, "but if he was your father, he was my brother!"
"He is my
father!" said Arctura coldly.
"Dead and gone and all
but forgotten!"
"No, my lord; not for
one day forgotten! not for one moment unloved!"
"Ah, well, as you
please! but because you love his memory must I regard him as a Solon? 'T is
surely no great treason to reflect upon the wisdom of a dead man!"
"I wish you good day, my
lord!" said Arctura, very angry, and left him.
But when presently she found
that she could not lift up her heart to her father in heaven, gladly would she
have sent her anger from her. Was it not plainly other than good, when it came
thus between her and the living God! All day at intervals she had to struggle
and pray against it; a great part of the night she lay awake because of it; but
at length she pitied her uncle too much to be very angry with him any
more, and so fell asleep.
In the morning she found
that all sense of his having authority over her had vanished, and with it her
anger. She saw also that it was quite time she took upon herself the duties of
a landowner. What could Mr. Grant think of her--doing nothing for her people!
But she could do little while her uncle received the rents and gave orders to
Mr. Graeme! She would take the thing into her own hands! In the meantime, Mr.
Grant should, if he pleased, go on quietly with his examination of the house.
But she could not get her
interview with her uncle out of her head, and was haunted with vague suspicions
of some dreadful secret about the house belonging to the present as well as the
past. Her uncle seemed to have receded to a distance incalculable, and to have
grown awful as he receded. She was of a nature almost too delicately
impressionable; she not only felt things keenly, but retained the sting of them
after the things were nearly forgotten. But then the swift and rare response of
her faculties arose in no small measure from this impressionableness. At the
same time, but for instincts and impulses derived from her race, her
sensitiveness might have degenerated into weakness.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LI. A DREAM.">
CHAPTER LI.
A DREAM.
ONE evening, as Donal was
walking in the little avenue below the terraces, Davie, who was now advanced to
doing a little work without his master's immediate supervision, came running to
him to say that Arkie was in the schoolroom and wanted to see him.
He hastened to her.
"A word with you,
please, Mr. Grant," she said.
Donal sent the boy away.
"I have debated with
myself all day whether I should tell you," she began--and her voice
trembled not a little; "but I think I shall not be so much afraid to go to
bed if I do tell you what I dreamt last night."
Her face was very pale, and
there was a quiver about her mouth: she seemed ready to burst into tears.
"Do tell me," said
Donal sympathetically.
"Do you think it very
silly to mind one's dreams?" she asked.
"Silly or not,"
answered Donal, "as regards the general run of dreams, it is plain you
have had one that must be minded. What we must mind, it cannot be silly
to mind."
"I am in no mood, I
fear, for philosophy," she rejoined, trying to smile. "It has taken
such a hold of me that I cannot get rid of it, and there is no one I could tell
it to but you; any one else would laugh at me; but you never laugh at anybody!
"I went to bed as well
as usual, only a little troubled about my uncle's strangeness, and soon fell
asleep, to find myself presently in a most miserable place. It was like a
brick-field--but a deserted brick-field. Heaps of broken and half-burnt bricks
were all about. For miles and miles they stretched around me. I walked fast to
get out of it. Nobody was near or in sight; there was not a sign of human
habitation from horizon to horizon.
"All at once I saw
before me a dreary church. It was old, tumble-down, and dirty--not in the least
venerable--very ugly--a huge building without shape, like most of our churches.
I shrank from the look of it: it was more horrible to me than I could account
for; I feared it. But I must go in--why, I did not know, but I must: the dream
itself compelled me.
"I went in. It looked
as if nobody had crossed its threshold for a hundred years. The pews were
mouldering away; the canopy over the pulpit had half fallen, and rested its
edge on the book-board; the great galleries had in parts tumbled into the body
of the church, in other parts they hung sloping from the walls. The centre of
the floor had fallen in, and there was a great, descending slope of earth,
soft-looking, mixed with bits of broken and decayed wood, from the pews above
and the coffins below. I stood gazing down in horror unutterable. How far the
gulf went I could not see. I was fascinated by its slow depth, and the thought
of its possible contents--when suddenly I knew rather than perceived that
something was moving in its darkness: it was something dead--something
yellow-white. It came nearer; it was slowly climbing; like one dead and stiff
it was labouring up the slope. I could neither cry out nor move. It was about
three yards below me, when it raised its head: it was my uncle, dead, and
dressed for the grave. He beckoned me--and I knew I must go; I had to go, nor
once thought of resisting. My heart became like lead, but immediately I began
the descent. My feet sank in the mould of the ancient dead, soft as if
thousands of graveyard moles were for ever burrowing in it, as down and down I
went, settling and sliding with the black plane. Then I began to see the sides
and ends of coffins in the walls of the gulf; and the walls came closer and
closer as I descended, until they scarcely left me room to get through. I
comforted myself with the thought that those in these coffins had long been
dead, and must by this time be at rest, nor was there any danger of seeing
mouldy hands come out to seize me. At last I saw that my uncle had stopped, and
I stood still, a few yards above him, more composed than I can understand."
"The wonder is we are
so believing, yet not more terrified, in our dreams," said Donal.
"He began to heave and
pull at a coffin that seemed to stop the way. Just as he got it dragged on one
side, I saw on the bright silver handle of it the Morven crest. The same
instant the lid rose, and my father came out of the coffin, looking alive and
bright; my uncle stood beside him like a corpse beside a soul. 'What do you
want with my child?' he said; and my uncle cowered before him. He took my hand
and said, 'Come with me, my child.' And I went with him--oh, so gladly! My fear
was gone, and so was my uncle. He led me up the way we had come down, but when
we came out of the hole, instead of finding myself in the horrible church, I
was in my own room. I looked round--no one was near! I was sorry my father was
gone, but glad to be in my own room. Then I woke--and here was the terrible
thing--not in my bed--but standing in the middle of the floor, just where my
dream had left me! I cannot get rid of the thought that I really went
somewhere. I have been haunted with it the whole day. It is a terror to me--for
if I did, where is my help against going again!"
"In God our
saviour," said Donal. "--But had your uncle given you anything?"
"I wish I could think
so; but I do not see how he could."
"You must change your
room, and get mistress Brookes to sleep near you."
"I will."
Gladly would Donal have
offered to sleep, like one of his colleys, outside her door, but Mrs. Brookes
was the only one to help her.
He began at once to make
observations towards determining the existence or non-existence of a hidden
room, but in the quietest way, so as to attract no attention, and had soon
satisfied himself concerning some parts that it could not be there. Without free
scope and some one to help him, the thing was difficult. To guage a building
which had grown through centuries, to fit the varying tastes and changing needs
of the generations, was in itself not easy, and he judged it all but impossible
without drawing observation and rousing speculation. Great was the chaotic
element in the congeries of erections and additions, brought together by
various contrivances, and with daringly enforced communication. Open spaces
within the walls, different heights in the stories of contiguous buildings,
breaks in the continuity of floors, and various other irregularities, he found
confusingly obstructive.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LII. INVESTIGATION.">
CHAPTER LII.
INVESTIGATION.
THE autumn brought terrible
storms. Many fishing boats came to grief. Of some, the crews lost everything:
of others, the loss of their lives delivered their crews from smaller losses.
There were many bereaved in the village, and Donal went about among them, doing
what he could, and getting help for them where his own ability would not reach
their necessity. Lady Arctura wanted no persuasion to go with him in some of
his visits; and the intercourse she thus gained with humanity in its simpler
forms, of which she had not had enough for the health of her own nature, was of
high service to her. Perhaps nothing helps so much to believe in the Father, as
the active practical love of the brother. If he who loveth not his brother whom
he hath seen, can ill love God whom he hath not seen, then he who loves his
brother must surely find it the easier to love God! Arctura found that to visit
the widow and the fatherless in their afflictions; to look on and know them as
her kind; to enter into their sorrows, and share the elevating influence of
grief genuine and simple, the same in every human soul, was to draw near to
God. She met him in his children. For to honour, love, and be just to our
neighbour, is religion; and he who does these things will soon find that he
cannot live without the higher part of religion, the love of God. If that do
not follow, the other will sooner or later die away, leaving the man the worse
for having had it. She found her way to God easier through the crowd of her
fellows; while their troubles took her off her own, set them at a little distance
from her, and so put it in her power to understand them better.
One day after the fishing
boats had gone out, rose a terrible storm. Some of them made for the harbour
again--such as it was; others kept out to sea; Stephen Kennedy's boat came
ashore bottom upward. His body was cast on the sands close to the spot where
Donal dragged the net from the waves. There was sorrow afresh through the
village: Kennedy was a favourite; and his mother was left childless. No son
would any more come sauntering in with his long slouch in the gloamin'; and
whether she would ever see him again--to know him--who could tell! For
the common belief does not go much farther than paganism in yielding comfort to
those whose living loves have disappeared--the fault not of Christianity, but
of Christians.
The effect of the news upon
Forgue I have some around for conjecturing: I believe it made him care a little
less about marrying the girl, now that he knew no rival ready to take her; and
feel also that he had one enemy the less, one danger the less, in the path he
would like to take. Within a week after, he left the castle, and if his father
knew where he went, he was the only one who did. He had been pressing him to
show some appearance of interest in his cousin; Forgue had professed himself
unequal to the task at present: if he might go away for a while, he said, he
would doubtless find it easier when he returned.
The storms were over, the
edges and hidden roots had begun to dream of spring, and Arctura had returned
to her own room to sleep, when one afternoon she came to the schoolroom and
told Donal she had had the terrible dream again.
"This time," she
said, "I came out, in my dream, on the great stair, and went up to my
room, and into bed, before I waked. But I dare not ask mistress Brookes whether
she saw me--"
"You do not imagine you
were out of the room?" said Donal.
"I cannot tell. I hope
not. If I were to find I had been, it would drive me out of my senses! I was
thinking all day about the lost room: I fancy it had something to do with
that."
"We must find the room,
and have done with it!" said Donal.
"Are you so sure we
can?" she asked, her face brightening.
"If there be one, and
you will help me, I think we can," he answered.
"I will help you."
"Then first we will try
the shaft of the music-chimney. That it has never smoked, at least since those
wires were put there, makes it something to question--though the draught across
it might doubtless have prevented it from being used. It may be the chimney to
the very room. But we will first try to find out whether it belongs to any room
we know. I will get a weight and a cord: the wires will be a plague, but I
think we can pass them. Then we shall see how far the weight goes down, and
shall know on what floor it is arrested. That will be something gained: the
plane of inquiry will be determined. Only there may be a turn in the chimney,
preventing the weight from going to the bottom."
"When shall we set
about it?" said Arctura, almost eagerly.
"At once," replied
Donal.
She went to get a shawl.
Donal went to the gardener's
tool-house, and found a suitable cord. There was a seven-pound weight, but that
would not pass the wires! He remembered an old eight-day clock on a back stair,
which was never going. He got out its heavier weight, and carried it, with the
cord and the ladder, to his own stair--at the foot of which was lady
Arctura--waiting for him.
There was that in being thus
associated with the lovely lady; in knowing that peace had began to visit her
through him, that she trusted him implicitly, looking to him for help and even
protection; in knowing that nothing but wrong to her could be looked for from
uncle or cousin, and that he held what might be a means of protecting her,
should undue influence be brought to bear upon her--there was that in all this,
I say, that stirred to its depth the devotion of Donal's nature. With the help
of God he would foil her enemies, and leave her a free woman--a thing well
worth a man's life! Many an angel has been sent on a smaller errand!
Such were his thoughts as he
followed Arctura up the stair, she carrying the weight and the cord, he the
ladder, which it was not easy to get round the screw of the stair. Arctura
trembled with excitement as she ascended, grew frightened as often as she found
she had outstripped him, waited till the end of the ladder came poking round,
and started again before the bearer appeared.
Her dreams had disquieted
her more than she had yet confessed: had she been taking a way of her own, and
choosing a guide instead of receiving instruction in the way of understanding?
Were these things sent for her warning, to show her into what an abyss of death
her conduct was leading her?--But the moment she found herself in the open air
of Donal's company, her doubts and fears vanished for the time. Such a one as
he must surely know better than those others the way of the Spirit! Was he not
more childlike, more straightforward, more simple, and, she could not but
think, more obedient than those? Mr. Carmichael was older, and might be more
experienced; but did his light shine clearer than Donal's? He might be a priest
in the temple; but was there not a Samuel in the temple as well as an Eli? It
the young, strong, ruddy shepherd, the defender of his flock, who was sent by
God to kill the giant! He was too little to wear Saul's armour; but he could
kill a man too big to wear it! Thus meditated Arctura as she climbed the stair,
and her hope and courage grew.
A delicate conscience,
sensitive feelings, and keen faculties, subjected to the rough rasping of
coarse, self-satisfied, unspiritual natures, had almost lost their equilibrium.
As to natural condition no one was sounder than she; yet even now when she had
more than begun to see its falsehood, a headache would suffice to bring her
afresh under the influence of the hideous system she had been taught, and wake
in her all kinds of deranging doubts and consciousnesses. Subjugated so long to
the untrue, she required to be for a time, until her spiritual being should be
somewhat individualized, under the genial influences of one who was not afraid
to believe, one who knew the master. Nor was there danger to either so long as
he sought no end of his own, so long as he desired only His will, so long as he
could say, "Whom is there in heaven but thee! and there is none upon earth
that I desire besides thee!"
By the time she reached the
top she was radiantly joyous in the prospect of a quiet hour with him whose
presence and words always gave her strength, who made the world look less
mournful, and the will of God altogether beautiful; who taught her that the
glory of the Father's love lay in the inexorability of its demands, that it is
of his deep mercy that no one can get out until he has paid the uttermost
farthing.
They stepped upon the roof
and into the gorgeous afterglow of an autumn sunset. The whole country, like
another sea, was flowing from that that well of colour, in tidal waves of an
ever advancing creation. Its more etherial part, rushing on above, broke on the
old roofs and chimneys and splashed its many tinted foam all over them; while
through it and folded in it came a cold thin wind that told of coming death.
Arctura breathed a deep breath, and her joy grew. It is wonderful how small a
physical elevation, lifting us into a slightly thinner air, serves to raise the
human spirits! We are like barometers, only work the other way; the higher we
go, the higher goes our mercury.
They stood for a moment in
deep enjoyment, then simultaneously turned to each other.
"My lady," said
Donal, "with such a sky as that out there, it hardly seems as if there
could be such a thing as our search to-night! Hollow places, hidden away for
evil cause, do not go with it at all! There is the story of gracious invention
and glorious gift; here the story of greedy gathering and self-seeking, which
all concealment involves!"
"But there may be
nothing, you know, Mr. Grant!" said Arctura, troubled for the house.
"There may be nothing.
But if there is such a room, you may be sure it has some relation with terrible
wrong--what, we may never find out, or even the traces of it."
"I shall not be
afraid," she said, as if speaking with herself. "It is the terrible
dreaming that makes me weak. In the morning I tremble as if I had been in the
hands of some evil power."
Donal turned his eyes upon
her. How thin she looked in the last of the sunlight! A pang went through him
at the thought that one day he might be alone with Davie in the huge castle,
untended by the consciousness that a living light and loveliness flitted
somewhere about its gloomy and ungenial walls. But he would not think the
thought! How that dismal Miss Carmichael must have worried her! When the very
hope of the creature in his creator is attacked in the name of religion; when
his longing after a living God is met with the offer of a paltry escape from
hell, how is the creature to live! It is God we want, not heaven; his
righteousness, not an imputed one, for our own possession; remission, not
letting off; love, not endurance for the sake of another, even if that other be
the one loveliest of all.
They turned from the sunset
and made their way to the chimney-stack. There once more Donal set up his
ladder. He tied the clock-weight to the end of his cord, dropped it in, and
with a little management got it through the wires. It went down and down,
gently lowered, till the cord was all out, and still it would go.
"Do run and get some
more," said Arctura.
"You do not mind being
left alone?"
"No--if you will not be
long."
"I will run," he
said--and run he did, for she had scarcely begun to feel the loneliness when he
returned panting.
He took the end she had been
holding, tied on the fresh cord he had brought, and again lowered away. As he
was beginning to fear that after all he had not brought enough, the weight
stopped, resting, and drew no more.
"If only we had eyes in
that weight," said Arctura, "like the snails at the end of their
horns!"
"We might have greased
the bottom of the weight," said Donal, "as they do the lead when they
want to know what kind of bottom there is to the sea: it might have brought up
ashes. If it will not go any farther, I will mark the string at the mouth, and
draw it up."
He moved the weight up and
down a little; it rested still, and he drew it up.
"Now we must mark off
it the height of the chimney above the parapet wall," he said; "and
then I will lower the weight towards the court below, until this last knot
comes to the wall: the weight will then show us on the outside how far down the
house it went inside.--Ah, I thought so!" he went on, looking over after
the weight; "--only to the first floor, or thereabouts!--No, I think it is
lower!--But anyhow, my lady, as you can see, the place with which the chimney,
if chimney it be, communicates, must be somewhere about the middle of the
house, and perhaps is on the first floor; we can't judge very well looking down
from here, and against a spot where are no windows. Can you imagine what place
it might be?"
"I cannot,"
answered Arctura; "but I could go into every room on that floor without
anyone seeing me."
"Then I will let the
weight down the chimney again, and leave it for you to see, if you can, below.
If you find it, we must do something else."
It was done, and they
descended together. Donal went back to the schoolroom, not expecting to see her
again till the next day. But in half an hour she came to him, saying she had
been into every room on that floor, both where she thought it might be, and
where she knew it could not be, and had not seen the weight.
"The probability then
is," replied Donal, "that thereabout somewhere--there, or farther
down in that neighbourhood--lies the secret; but we cannot be sure, for the
weight may not have reached the bottom of the shaft. Let us think what we shall
do next.
He placed a chair for her by
the fire. They had the room to themselves.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LIII. MISTRESS BROOKES UPON THE EARL.">
CHAPTER LIII.
MISTRESS BROOKES UPON THE
EARL.
THEY were hardly seated when
Simmons appeared, saying he had been looking everywhere for her ladyship, for
his lordship was taken as he had never seen him before: he had fainted right
out in the half-way room, and he could not get him to.
Having given orders to send
at once to Auchars for the doctor, lady Arctura hastened with Donal to the room
on the stair. The earl was stretched motionless and pale on the floor. But for
a slight twitching in one muscle of the face, they might have concluded him
dead. They tried to get something down his throat, but without success. The men
carried him up to his chamber.
He began to come to himself,
and lady Arctura left him, telling Simmons to come to the library when he
could, and let them know how he was.
In about an hour he came:
the doctor had been, and his master was better.
"Do you know any cause
for the attack?" asked her ladyship.
"I'll tell you all
about it, my lady, so far as I know," answered the butler. "--I was
there in that room with him--I had taken him some accounts, and was answering
some questions about them, when all at once there came a curious noise in the
wall. I can't think what it was--an inward rumbling it was, that seemed to go
up and down the wall with a sort of groaning, then stopped a while, and came
again. It sounded nothing very dreadful to me; perhaps if it had been in the
middle of the night, I mightn't have liked it. His lordship started at the
first sound of it, turned pale and gasped, then cried out, laid his hand on his
heart, and rolled off his chair. I did what I could for him, but it wasn't like
one of his ordinary attacks, and so I came to your ladyship. He's such a
ticklish subject, you see, my lady! It's quite alarming to be left alone with
him. It's his heart; and you know, my lady--I should be sorry to frighten you,
but you know, Mr. Grant, a gentleman with that complaint may go off any moment.
I must go back to him now, my lady, if you please."
Arctura turned and looked at
Donal.
"We must be
careful," he said.
"We must," she
answered. "Just thereabout is one of the few places in the house where you
hear the music."
"And thereabout the
music-chimney goes down! That is settled! But why should my lord be frightened
so?"
"I cannot tell. He is
not like other people, you know."
"Where else is the
music heard? You and your uncle seem to hear it oftener than anyone else."
"In my own room. But we
will talk to-morrow. Good night."
"I will remain here the
rest of the evening," said Donal, "in case Simmons might want me to
help with his lordship."
It was well into the night,
and he still sat reading in the library, when Mrs. Brookes came to him. She had
had to get his lordship "what he ca'd a cat--something or ither, but was
naething but mustard to the soles o' 's feet to draw awa' the bluid."
"He's better the
noo," she said. "He's taen a doze o' ane o' thae drogues he's aye
potterin' wi'--fain to learn the trade o' livin' for ever, I reckon! But that's
a thing the Lord has keepit in 's ain han's. The tree o' life was never aten
o', an' never wull be noo i' this warl'; it's lang transplantit. But eh, as to
livin' for ever, or I wud be his lordship, I wud gie up the ghost at
ance!"
"What makes you say
that, mistress Brookes?" asked Donal.
"It's no ilk ane I wud
answer sic a queston til," she replied; "but I'm weel assured ye hae
sense an' hert eneuch baith, no to hurt a cratur'; an' I'll jist gang sae far
as say to yersel', an' 'atween the twa o' 's, 'at I hae h'ard frae them 'at's
awa'--them 'at weel kent, bein' aboot the place an' trustit--that whan the fit
was upon him, he was fell cruel to the bonnie wife he merriet abro'd an'
broucht hame wi' him--til a cauld-hertit country, puir thing, she maun hae
thoucht it!"
"How could he have been
cruel to her in the house of his brother? Even if he was the wretch to be
guilty of it, his brother would never have connived at the ill-treatment of any
woman under his roof!"
"Hoo ken ye the auld
yerl sae weel?" asked Mrs. Brookes, with a sly glance.
"I ken," answered
Donal, direct as was his wont, but finding somehow a little shelter in the
dialect, "'at sic a dauchter could ill hae been born to ony but a man
'at--weel, 'at wad at least behave til a wuman like a man."
"Ye're i' the richt! He
was the ten'erest-heartit man! But he was far frae stoot, an' was a heap by
himsel', nearhan' as mickle as his lordship the present yerl. An' the lady was
that prood, an' that dewotit to the man she ca'd her ain, that never a word o'
what gaed on cam to the ears o' his brither, I daur to say, or I s' warran' ye
there wud hae been a fine steer! It cam, she said--my auld auntie said--o' some
kin' o' madness they haena a name for yet. I think mysel' there's a madness o'
the hert as weel 's o' the heid; an' i' that madness men tak their women for a
property o' their ain, to be han'led ony gait the deevil puts intil them. Cries
i' the deid o' the nicht, an' never a shaw i' the mornin' but white cheeks an'
reid een, tells its ain tale. I' the en', the puir leddy dee'd, 'at micht hae
lived but for him; an' her bairnie dee'd afore her; an' the wrangs o'
bairns an' women stick lang to the wa's o' the universe! It was said she cam
efter him again;--I kenna; but I hae seen an' h'ard i' this hoose what--I s'
haud my tongue aboot!--Sure I am he wasna a guid man to the puir wuman!--whan
it comes to that, maister Grant, it's no my leddy an' mem, but
we're a' women thegither! She dee'dna i' this hoose, I un'erstan'; but i' the
hoose doon i' the toon--though that's neither here nor there. I wadna won'er
but the conscience micht be waukin' up intil him! Some day it maun wauk up.
He'll be sorry, maybe, whan he kens himsel' upo' the border whaur respec' o'
persons is ower, an' a woman s' a guid 's a man--maybe a wheen better! The Lord
'll set a' thing richt, or han' 't ower til anither!"
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LIV. LADY ARCTURA'S ROOM.">
CHAPTER LIV.
LADY ARCTURA'S ROOM.
THE next day, when he saw
lady Arctura, Donal was glad to learn that, for all the excitement of the day
before, she had passed a good night, and never dreamed at all.
"I've been thinking it
all over, my lady," he said, "and it seems to me that, if your uncle
heard the noise of our plummet so near, the chimney can hardly rise from the
floor you searched; for that room, you know, is half-way between the
ground-floor and first floor. Still, sound does travel so! We must betake
ourselves to measurement, I fear.--But another thing came into my head last
night which may serve to give us a sort of parallax. You said you heard the
music in your own room: would you let me look about in it a little? something
might suggest itself!--Is it the room I saw you in once?"
"Not that,"
answered Arctura, "but the bedroom beyond it. I hear it sometimes in
either room, but louder in the bedroom. You can examine it when you please.--If
only you could find my bad dream, and drive it out!--Will you come now?"
"It is near the earl's
room: is there no danger of his hearing anything?"
"Not the least. The
room is not far from his, it is true, but it is not in the same block; there
are thick walls between. Besides he is too ill to be up."
She led the way, and Donal
followed her up the main staircase to the second floor, and into the small,
curious, ancient room, evidently one of the oldest in the castle, which she had
chosen for her sitting-room. Perhaps if she had lived less in the shadow, she
might have chosen a less gloomy one: the sky was visible only through a little
lane of walls and gables and battlements. But it was very charming, with its
odd nooks and corners, recesses and projections. It looked an afterthought, the
utilization of a space accidentally defined by rejection, as if every one of
its sides were the wall of a distinct building.
"I do wish, my
lady," said Donal, "you would not sit so much where is so little
sunlight! Outer and inner things are in their origin one; the light of the sun
is the natural world-clothing of the truth, and whoever sits much in the
physical dark misses a great help to understanding the things of the light. If
I were your director," he went on, "I would counsel you to change
this room for one with a broad, fair outlook; so that, when gloomy thoughts hid
God from you, they might have his eternal contradiction in the face of his
heaven and earth."
"It is but fair to tell
you," replied Arctura, "that Sophia would have had me do so; but
while I felt about God as she taught me, what could the fairest sunlight be to
me?"
"Yes, what
indeed!" returned Donal. "Do you know," he added presently, his
eyes straying about the room, "I feel almost as if I were trying to
understand a human creature. A house is so like a human mind, which gradually
disentangles and explains itself as you go on to know it! It is no accidental
resemblance, for, as an unavoidable necessity, every house must be like those
that built it."
"But in a very old
house," said Arctura, "so many hands of so many generations have been
employed in the building, and so many fancied as well as real necessities have
been at work, that it must be a conflict of many natures."
"But where the house
continues in the same family, the builders have more or less transmitted their
nature, as well as their house, to those who come after them."
"Do you think
then," said Arctura, almost with a shudder, "that I inherit a nature
like the house left me--that the house is an outside to me--fits my very self
as the shell fits the snail?"
"The relation of outer
and inner is there, but there is given with it an infinite power to modify.
Everyone is born nearer to God than to any ancestor, and it rests with him to
cultivate either the godness or the selfness in him, his original or his
mere ancestral nature. The fight between the natural and the spiritual man is
the history of the world. The man who sets his faults inherited, makes
atonement for the sins of those who went before him; he is baptized for the dead,
not with water but with fire."
"That seems to me
strange doctrine," said Arctura, with tremulous objection.
"If you do not like it,
do not believe it. We inherit from our ancestors vices no more than virtues,
but tendencies to both. Vice in my great-great-grandfather may in me be an
impulse."
"How horrible!"
cried Arctura.
"To say that we inherit
sin from Adam, horrifies nobody: the source is so far back from us, that we let
the stream fill our cisterns unheeded; but to say we inherit it from this or
that nearer ancestor, causes the fact to assume its definite and individual
reality, and make a correspondent impression."
"Then you allow that it
is horrible to think oneself under the influence of the vices of certain wicked
people, through whom we come where we are?"
"I would allow it, were
it not that God is nearer to us than any vices, even were they our own; he is
between us and those vices. But in us they are not vices--only possibilities,
which become vices when they are yielded to. Then there are at the same time
all sorts of counteracting and redeeming influences. It may be that wherein a
certain ancestor was most wicked, his wife was especially lovely. He may have
been cruel, and she tender as the hen that gathers her chickens under her wing.
The main danger is perhaps, of being caught in some sudden gust of unsuspected
impulse, and carried away of the one tendency before the other has time to
assert and the will to rouse itself. But those who doubt themselves and try to
do right may hope for warning. Such will not, I think, be allowed to go far out
of the way for want of that. Self-confidence is the worst traitor."
"You comfort me a
little."
"And then you must
remember," continued Donal, "that nothing in its immediate root is
evil; that from best human roots worst things spring. No one, for instance,
will be so full of indignation, of fierceness, of revenge, as the selfish man
born with a strong sense of justice.--But you say this is not the room in which
you hear the music best?"
"No, it is here."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LV. HER BED-CHAMBER.">
CHAPTER LV.
HER BED-CHAMBER.
LADY ARCTURA opened the door
of her bedroom. Donal glanced round it. It was as old-fashioned as the other.
"What is behind that
press there--wardrobe, I think you call it?" he asked.
"Only a recess,"
answered lady Arctura. "The press, I am sorry to say, is too high to get
into it."
Possibly had the press stood
in the recess, the latter would have suggested nothing; but having caught sight
of the opening behind the press, Donal was attracted by it. It was in the same
wall with the fireplace, but did not seem formed by the projection of the
chimney, for it did not go to the ceiling.
"Would you mind if I
moved the wardrobe a little on one side?" he asked.
"Do what you
like," she answered.
Donal moved it, and found
the recess rather deep for its size. The walls of the room were wainscotted to
the height of four feet or so, but the recess was bare. There were signs of
hinges on one, and of a bolt on the other of the front edges: it had seemingly
been once a closet, whose door continued the wainscot. There were no signs of
shelves in it; the plaster was smooth.
But Donal was not satisfied.
He took a big knife from his pocket, and began tapping all round. The moment he
came to the right-hand side, there was a change in the sound.
"You don't mind if I
make a little dust, my lady?" he said.
"Do anything you
please," answered Arctura.
He sought in several places
to drive the point of his knife into the plaster; it would nowhere enter it
more than a quarter of an inch: here was no built wall, he believed, but one
smooth stone. He found nothing like a joint till he came near the edge of the
recess: there was a limit of the stone, and he began at once to clear it. It
gave him a straight line from the bottom to the top of the recess, where it met
another at right angles.
"There does seem, my lady,"
he said, "to be some kind of closing up here, though it may of course turn
out of no interest to us! Shall I go on, and see what it is?"
"By all means,"
she answered, but turned pale as she spoke.
Donal looked at her
anxiously. She understood his look.
"You must not mind my
feeling a little silly," she said. "I am not silly enough to give way
to it."
He went on again with his
knife, and had presently cleared the outlines of a stone that filled nearly all
the side of the recess. He paused.
"Go on! go on!"
said Arctura.
"I must first get a
better tool or two," answered Donal. "Will you mind being left?"
"I can bear it. But do
not be long. A few minutes may evaporate my courage."
Donal hurried away to get a
hammer and chisel, and a pail to put the broken plaster in. Lady Arctura stood
and waited. The silence closed in upon her. She began to feel eerie. She
felt as if she had but to will and see through the wall to what lay beyond it.
To keep herself from so willing, she had all but reduced herself to mental
inaction, when she started to her feet with a smothered cry: a knock not over
gentle sounded on the door of the outer room. She darted to the bedroom-door
and flung it to--next to the press, and with one push had it nearly in its
place. Then she opened again the door, thinking to wait for a second knock on
the other before she answered. But as she opened the inner, the outer door also
opened--slowly--and a face looked in. She would rather have had a visitor from
behind the press! It was her uncle; his face cadaverous; his eyes dull, but
with a kind of glitter in them; his look like that of a housebreaker. In terror
of himself, in terror lest he should discover what they had been about, in
terror lest Donal should appear, wishing to warn the latter, and certain that,
early as it was, her uncle was not himself, with intuitive impulse, the moment
she saw him, she cried out,
"Uncle! what is that
behind you?"
She felt afterwards, and was
very sorry, that it was both a deceitful and cruel thing to do; but she did it,
as I have said, by a swift, unreflecting instinct--which she concluded, in
thinking about it, came from the ready craft of some ancestor, and illustrated
what Donal had been saying.
The earl turned like one
struck on the back, imagined something of which Arctura knew nothing, cowered
to two-thirds of his height, and crept away. Though herself trembling from head
to foot, Arctura was seized with such a pity, that she followed him to his
room; but she dared not go in. She stood a moment in the passage within sight
of his door, and thought she heard his bell ring. Now Simmons might meet Donal!
In a moment or two, however, she was relieved. Donal came round a turn,
carrying his implements. She signed to him to make haste, and he was just safe
inside her room when Simmons came along on his way to his master's. She drew
the door to, as if she had been just coming out, and said,
"Knock at my door as
you return, and tell me how your master is: I heard his bell."
She then begged Donal to go
on with his work, but stop it the moment she made a noise with the handle of
the door, and resumed her place outside till Simmons should re-appear. Full ten
minutes she stood waiting: it seemed an hour. Though she heard Donal at work
within, and knew Simmons must soon come, though the room behind her was her
own, and familiar to her from childhood, the long empty passage in front of her
appeared frightful. What might not come pacing along towards her! At last she
heard her uncle's door--steps--and the butler approached. She shook the handle
of the door, and Donal's blows ceased.
"I can't make him out,
my lady!" said Simmons. "It is nothing very bad, I think, this time;
but he gets worse and worse--always taking more and more o' them horrid drugs.
It's no use trying to hide it: he'll drop off sudden one o' these days! I've
heard say laudanum don't shorten life; but it's not one nor two, nor half a
dozen sorts o' laudanums he keeps mixing in that poor inside o' his! The end
must come, and what will it be? It's better you should be prepared for it when
it do come, my lady. I've just been a giving of him some into his skin--with a
little sharp-pointed thing, a syringe, you know, my lady: he says it's the only
way to take some medicines. He's just a slave to his medicines, my lady!"
As soon as he was gone,
Arctura returned to Donal. He had knocked the plaster away, and uncovered a
slab, very like one of the great stones on some of the roofs. The next thing
was to prize it from the mortar, and that was not difficult. The instant he
drew the stone away, a dank chill assailed them, accompanied by a humid smell,
as from a long-closed cellar. They stood and looked, now at each other, now at
the opening in the wall, where was nothing but darkness. The room grew cold and
colder. Donal was anxious as to how Arctura might stand what discovery lay
before them, and she was anxious to read his sensations. For her sake he tried
to hide all expression of the awe that was creeping over him, and it gave him
enough to do.
"We are not far from
something, my lady!" he said. "It makes one think of what He said who
carries the light everywhere--that there is nothing covered that shall not be
revealed, neither hid that shall not be known. Shall we leave it for the
present?"
"Anything but that!"
said Arctura with a shiver; "--anything but an unknown terrible
something!"
"But what can you do
with it?"
"Let the daylight in
upon it."
Her colour returned as she
spoke, and a look of determination came into her eyes.
"You will not be afraid
to be left then when I go down?"
"I am cowardly enough
to be afraid, but not cowardly enough to let you go alone. I will share with
you. I shall not be afraid--not much--not too much, I mean--if I
am with you."
Donal hesitated.
"See!" she went
on, "I am going to light a candle, and ask you to come down with me--if
down it be: it may be up!"
"I am ready, my
lady," said Donal.
She lighted the candle.
"Had we not better lock
the door, my lady?"
"That might set them
wondering," she answered. "We should have to lock both the doors of
this room, or else both the passage-doors! The better way will be to pull the
press after us when we are behind it."
"You are right, my
lady. Please take some matches with you."
"To be sure."
"You will carry the
candle, please. I must have my hands free. Try to let the light shine past me
as much as you can, that I may see where I am going. But I shall depend most on
my hands and feet."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LVI. THE LOST ROOM.">
CHAPTER LVI.
THE LOST ROOM.
DONAL then took the light
from her hand, and looked in. The opening went into the further wall and turned
immediately to the left. He gave her back the candle, and went in. Arctura
followed close.
There was a stair in the
thickness of the wall, going down steep and straight. It was not wide enough to
let them go abreast. "Put your hand on my shoulder, my lady," said
Donal. "That will keep us together. If I fall, you must stand stock-still."
She put her hand on his
shoulder, and they began their descent. The steps were narrow and high,
therefore the stair was steep They had gone down from thirty to thirty-five
steps, when they came to a level passage, turning again at right angles to the
left. It was twice the width of the stair. Its sides, like those of the stair,
were of roughly dressed stones, and unplastered. It led them straight to a
strong door. It was locked, and in the rusty lock they could see the key from
within. To the right was another door, a smaller one, which stood wide open.
They went through, and by a short passage entered an opener space. Here on one
side there seemed to be no wall, and they stood for a moment afraid to move
lest they should tumble into darkness. But sending the light about, and feeling
with hands and feet, they soon came to an idea of the place they were in. It
was a little gallery, with arches on one side opening into a larger place, the
character of which they could only conjecture, for nearly all they could determine
was, that it went below and rose above where they stood. On the other side was
a plain wall, such as they had had on both sides of them.
They had been speaking in
awe-filled whispers, and were now in silence endeavouring to send their sight
through the darkness beyond the arches.
"Listen, my lady,"
said Donal.
From above their heads came
a chord of the aerial music, soft and faint and wild! A strange effect it had!
it was like news of the still airy night and the keen stars, come down through
secret ways into the dark places of the earth, from spaces so wide that they
seem the most awful of prisons! It sweetly fostered Arctura's courage.
"That must be how the
songs of angels sounded, with news of high heaven, to the people of old!"
she said.
Donal was not in so high a
mood. He was occupied at the moment with the material side of things.
"We can't be far,"
he said, "from the place where our plummet came down! But let us try a
little further."
The next moment they came
against a cord, and at their feet was the weight of the clock.
At the other end of the
little gallery they came again to a door and again to a stair, turning to the
right; and again they went down. Arctura kept up bravely. The air was not so
bad as might have been feared, though it was cold and damp. This time they
descended but a little way, and came to a landing place, on the right of which
was a door. Donal raised a rusty latch and pushed; the door swung open against
the wall, dropping from one hinge with the slight shock. Two steps more they
descended, and stood on a stone floor.
Donal thought at first they
must be in one of the dungeons, but soon bethought himself that they had not
descended far enough for that.
A halo of damp surrounded
their candle; its weak light seemed scarcely to spread beyond it; for some
moments they took in nothing of what was around them. The floor first began to
reveal itself to Donal's eye: in the circle of the light he saw, covered with
dust as it was, its squares of black and white marble. Then came to him a gleam
of white from the wall; it was a tablet; and at the other end was something
like an altar, or a tomb.
"We are in the old
chapel of the castle!" he said. "--But what is that?" he added
instantly with an involuntary change of voice, and a shudder through his whole
nervous being.
Arctura turned; her hand
sought his and clasped it convulsively. They stood close to something which the
light itself had concealed from them. Ere they were conscious of an idea
concerning it, each felt the muscles of neck and face drawn, as if another
power than their own invaded their persons. But they were live wills, and would
not be overcome. They forced their gaze; perception cleared itself; and slowly
they saw and understood.
With strangest dream-like
incongruity and unfitness, the thing beside them was a dark bedstead, with
carved posts and low wooden tester, richly carved!--This in the middle of a
chapel!--But there was no speculation in them; they could only see, not think.
Donal took the candle. From the tester hung large pieces of stuff that had once
made heavy curtains, but seemed hardly now to have as much cohesion as the dust
on a cobweb; it held together only in virtue of the lightness to which decay
had reduced it. On the bed lay a dark mass, like bed clothes and bedding not
quite turned to dust--they could yet see something like embroidery in one or
two places--dark like burnt paper or half-burnt flaky rags, horrid as a dream
of dead love!
Heavens! what was that shape
in the middle?--what was that on the black pillow?--what was that thick line
stretching towards one of the head-posts? They stared speechless. Arctura
pressed close to Donal. His arm went round her to protect her from what
threatened almost to overwhelm himself--the inroad of an unearthly horror.
Plain to the eyes of both, the form in the middle of the bed was that of a
human body, slowly crumbling where it lay. Bed and blankets and quilt, sheets
and pillows had crumbled with it through the long wasting years, but something
of its old shape yet lingered with the dust: that was a head that lay on the
pillow; that was the line of a long arm that pointed across the pillow to the
post.--What was that hanging from the bedpost and meeting the arm? God in
heaven! there was a staple in the post, and from the staple came a chain!--and
there at its other end a ring, lying on the pillow!--and through it--yes
through it, the dust-arm passed!--This was no mere death-bed; it was a torture
bed--most likely a murder-bed; and on it yet lay the body that died on it--had
lain for hundreds of years, unlifted for kindly burial: the place of its
decease had been made its tomb--closed up and hidden away!
A bed in a chapel, and one
dead thereon!--how could it be? Had the woman--for Donal imagined the form yet
showed it the body of a woman--been carried thither of her own desire, to die
in a holy place? That could not be: there was the chain! Had she sought refuge
there from some persecutor? If so, he has found her! She was a captive--mad
perhaps, more likely hated and the victim of a terrible revenge; left, probably
enough, to die of hunger, or disease--neglected or tended, who could tell? One
thing, only was clear--that there she died, and there she was buried!
Arctura was trembling. Donal
drew her closer, and would have taken her away. But she said in his ear, as if
in dread of disturbing the dust,
"I am not
frightened--not very. It is only the cold, I think."
They went softly to the
other end of the chapel, almost clinging together as they went. They saw three
narrow lancet windows on their right, but no glimmer came through them.
They came to what had seemed
an altar, and such it still seemed. But on its marble-top lay the dust plainly
of an infant--sight sad as fearful, and full of agonizing suggestion! They
turned away, nor either looked at the other. The awful silence of the place seemed
settling on them like a weight. Donal made haste, nor did Arctura seem less
anxious to leave it.
When they reached the stair,
he made her go first: he must be between her and the terror! As they passed the
door on the other side of the little gallery--down whose spiracle had come no
second breath--Donal said to himself he must question that door, but to Arctura
he said nothing: she had had enough of inquiry for the moment!
Slowly they ascended to
Arctura's chamber. Donal replaced the slab, and propped it in its position;
gathered the plaster into the pail; replaced the press, and put a screw through
the bottom of it into the floor. Arctura stood and watched him all the time.
"You must leave your
room again, my lady!" said Donal.
"I will. I shall speak
to mistress Brookes at once."
"Will you tell her all
about it?"
"We must talk about
that!"
"How will she bear
it," thought Donal; "how after such an experience, can she spend the
rest of the day alone? There is all the long afternoon and evening to be
met!"
He gave the last turn to the
screw in the floor, and rose. Then first he saw that Arctura had turned very
white.
"Do sit down, my
lady!" he said. "I would run for mistress Brookes, but I dare not
leave you."
"No, no; we will go
down together! Give me that bottle of eau de Cologne, please."
Donal did not know either
eau de Cologne or its bottle, but he darted to the dressing-table and guessed
correctly. It revived her, and she began to take deep breaths. Then with a
strong effort she rose to go down.
The time for speech
concerning what they had seen, was not come!
"Would you not like, my
lady," said Donal, "to come to the schoolroom this afternoon? You
could sit beside while I give Davie his lessons!"
"Yes," she
answered at once; "I should like it much!--Is there not something you
could give me to do?--Will you not teach me something?"
"I should like to begin
you with Greek, and teach you a little mathematics--geometry first of
all."
"You frighten me!"
"Your fright wouldn't
outlast the beginning," said Donal. "Anyhow, you will have Davie and
me for company! You must be lonely sometimes! You see little of Miss Carmichael
now, I fancy."
"She has not been near
me since that day in the avenue! We salute now and then coming out of church.
She will not come again except I ask her; and I shall be in no haste: she would
only assume I was sorry, and could not do without her!"
"I should let her wait,
my lady!" said Donal. "She sorely wants humbling!"
"You do not know her,
Mr. Grant, if you think anything I could do would have that effect on
her."
"Pardon me, my lady; I
did not imagine it your task to humble her! But you need not let her ride over
you as she used to do; she knows nothing really, and a great many things
unreally. Unreal knowledge is worse than ignorance.--Would not Miss Graeme be a
better friend?"
"She is much more
lovable; but she does not trouble her head about the things I care for.--I mean
religion," she added hesitatingly.
"So much the
better,--"
"Mr. Grant!"
"You did not let me
finish, my lady!--So much the better, I was going to say, till she begins to
trouble her heart about it--or rather to untrouble her heart with it!
The pharisee troubled his head, and no doubt his conscience too, and did not go
away justified; but the poor publican, as we with our stupid pity would call
him, troubled his heart about it; and that trouble once set a going, there is
no fear. Head and all must soon follow.--But how am I to get rid of this
plaster without being seen?"
"I will show you the
way to your own stair without going down--the way we came once, you may
remember. You can take it to the top of the house till it is dark.--But I do
not feel comfortable about my uncle's visit. Can it be that he suspects
something? Perhaps he knows all about the chapel--and that stair too!"
"He is a man to enjoy
having a secret!--But our discovery bears out what we were saying as to the
likeness of house and man--does it not?"
"You don't mean there
is anything like that in me?" rejoined Arctura, looking frightened.
"You!" he
exclaimed. "--But I mean no individual application," he added,
"except as reflected from the general truth. This house is like every
human soul, and so, like me and you and all of us. We have found the chapel of
the house, the place they used to pray to God in, built up, lost, forgotten,
filled with dust and damp--and the mouldering dead lying there before the Lord,
waiting to be made live again and praise him!"
"I said you meant
me!" murmured Arctura, with a faint, sad smile.
"No; the time is past
for that. It is long since first you were aware of the dead self in the lost chapel;
a hungry soul soon misses both, and knows, without being sure of it, that they
are somewhere. You have kept searching for them in spite of all persuasion that
the quest was foolish."
Arctura's eyes shone in her
pale face; but they shone with gathering tears. Donal turned away, and took up
the pail. She rose, and guided him to his tower-stair, where he went up and she
went down.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LVII. THE HOUSEKEEPER'S ROOM.">
CHAPTER LVII.
THE HOUSEKEEPER'S ROOM.
AS the clock upon the
schoolroom chimney-piece struck the hour, Arctura entered, and at once took her
seat at the table with Davie--much to the boy's wonder and pleasure. Donal gave
her a Euclid, and set her a task: she began at once to learn it--and after a
while so brief that Davie stared incredulous, said,
"If you please, Mr.
Grant, I think I could be questioned upon it now."
Less than a minute sufficed
to show Donal that she thoroughly understood what she had been learning, and he
set her then a little more. By the time their work was over he had not a doubt
left that suchlike intellectual occupation would greatly subserve all phases of
her health. With entireness she gave herself to the thing she had to do; and
Donal thought how strong must be her nature, to work so calmly, and think so
clearly, after what she had gone through that morning.
School over, and Davie gone
to his rabbits.
"Mistress Brookes
invites us to supper with her," said lady Arctura. "I asked her to
ask us. I don't want to go to bed till I am quite sleepy. You don't mind, do
you?"
"I am very glad, my
lady," responded Donal.
"Don't you think we had
better tell her all about it?"
"As you think fit. The
secret is in no sense mine; it is only yours; and the sooner it ceases to be a
secret the better for all of us!"
"I have but one reason
for keeping it," she returned.
"Your uncle?"
"Yes; I know he will be
annoyed. But there may be other reasons why I should reveal the thing."
"There may
indeed!" said Donal.
"Still, I should be sorry
to offend him more than I cannot help. If he were a man like my father, I
should never dream of going against him; I should in fact leave everything to
him he cared to attend to. But seeing he is the man he is, it would be absurd.
I dare not let him manage my affairs for me much longer. I must understand for
myself how things are going."
"You will not, I hope,
arrange anything without the presence of a lawyer! I fear I have less
confidence in your uncle than you have!"
Arctura made no reply, and
Donal was afraid he had hurt her; but the next moment she looked up with a sad
smile, and said,
"Well, poor man! we
will not compare our opinions of him: he is my father's brother, and I shall be
glad not to offend him. But my father would have reason to be dissatisfied if I
left everything to my uncle as if he had not left everything to me. If he had
been another sort of man, my father would surely have left the estate to
him!"
At nine o'clock they met in
the housekeeper's room--low-ceiled, large, lined almost round with oak presses,
which were mistress Brookes's delight. She welcomed them as to her own house,
and made an excellent hostess.
But Donal would not mix the
tumbler of toddy she would have had him take. For one thing he did not like his
higher to be operated upon from his lower: it made him feel as if possessed by
a not altogether real self. But the root of his objection lay in the teaching
of his mother. The things he had learned of his parents were to him his patent
of nobility, vouchers that he was honourably descended: of his birth he was as
proud as any man. And hence this night he was led to talk of his father and
mother, and the things of his childhood. He told Arctura all about the life he
had led; how at one time he kept cattle in the fields, at another sheep on the
mountains; how it came that he was sent to college, and all the story of sir
Gibbie. The night wore on. Arctura listened--did nothing but listen; she was
enchanted. And it surprised Donal himself to find how calmly he could now look
back upon what had seemed to threaten an everlasting winter of the soul. It was
indeed the better thing that Ginevra should be Gibbie's wife!
A pause had come, and he had
fallen into a brooding memory of things gone by, when a sudden succession of
quick knocks fell on his ear. He started--strangely affected. Neither of his
companions took notice of it, though it was now past one o'clock. It was like a
knocking with knuckles against the other side of the wall of the room.
"What can that
be?" he said, listening for more.
"H'ard ye never that
'afore, maister Grant?" said the housekeeper. "I hae grown sae used
til't my ears hardly tak notice o' 't!"
"What is it?"
asked Donal.
"Ay, what is't? Tell ye
me that gien ye can!" she returned "It's jist a chappin', an' God's
trowth it's a' I ken aboot the same! It comes, I believe I'm safe to say, ilka
nicht; but I couldna tak my aith upo' 't, I hae sae entirely drappit peyin' ony
attention til't. There's things aboot mony an auld hoose, maister Grant, 'at'll
tak the day o' judgment to explain them. But sae lang as they keep to their ain
side o' the wa', I dinna see I need trible my heid aboot them. Efter the
experrience I had as a yoong lass, awa' doon in Englan' yon'er, at a place my
auntie got me intil--for she kenned a heap o' gran' fowk throuw bein' hersel'
sae near conneckit wi' them as hoosekeeper i' the castel here--efter that, I'm
sayin,' I wadna need to be that easy scaret?"
"What was it?"
said lady Arctura. "I don't think you ever told me."
"No, my dear lady; I
wud never hae thocht o' tellin' ye ony sic story sae lang as ye was ower yoong
no to be frichtit at it; for 'deed I think they're muckle to blame 'at tells
bairns the varra things they're no fit to hear, an' fix the dreid 'afore the
sense. But I s' tell ye the noo, gien ye care to hear. It's a some awsome
story, but there's something unco fulish-like intil't as weel. I canna say I
think muckle 'o craturs 'at trible their heids aboot their heids!--But that's
tellin' 'aforehan'!"
Here the good woman paused
thoughtful.
"I am longing to hear
your story, mistress Brookes," said Donal, supposing she needed
encouragement.
"I'm but thinkin' hoo
to begin," she returned, "sae as to gie ye a richt haud o' the
thing.--I'm thinkin' I canna do better nor jist tell 't as it cam to
mysel'!--Weel, ye see, I was but a yoong lass, aboot--weel, I micht be twenty,
mair or less, whan I gaed til the place I speak o'. It was awa' upo' the
borders o' Wales, like as gien folk ower there i' Perth war doobtfu' whether
sic or sic a place was i' the hielan's or the lowlan's. The maister o' the
hoose was a yoong man awa' upo' 's traivels, I kenna whaur--somewhaur upo' the
continent, but that's a mickle word; an' as he had the intention o' bein' awa'
for some time to come, no carin' to settle doon aff han' an' luik efter his
ain, there was but ane gey auld wuman to hoosekeep, an' me to help her, an' a
man or twa aboot the place to luik efter the gairden--an' that was a'. Hoose
an' gairden was to let, an' was intil the han's o' ane o' thae agents, as they
ca' them, for that same purpose--to let, that is, for a term o' years. Weel, ae
day there cam a gentleman to luik at the place, an' he was sae weel pleased wi'
't--as weel he micht, for eh, it was a bonny place!--aye lauchin' like, whaur
this place is aye i' the sulks!--na, no aye! I dinna mean that, my lady,
forgettin' at it's yours!--but ye maun own it taks a heap o' sun to gar this
auld hoose here luik onything but some dour--an' I beg yer pardon, my
lady!"
"You are quite right,
mistress Brookes!" said Arctura with a smile. "If it were not for you
it would be dour dour.--You do not know, Mr. Grant--mistress Brookes herself
does not know how much I owe her! I should have gone out of my mind for very
dreariness a hundred times but for her."
"The short an' the lang
o' 't was," resumed mistress Brookes, "that the place was let an' the
place was ta'en, mickle to the satisfaction o' a' pairties concernt. The auld
hoosekeeper, she bein' a fixtur like, was to bide, an' I was to bide as weel,
under the hoosekeeper, an' haein' nothing to do wi' the stranger servan's.
"They cam. There was a
gentleman o' a middle age, an' his leddy some yoonger nor himsel', han'some but
no bonnie--but that has naething to do wi' my tale 'at I should tak up yer time
wi' 't, an' it growin' some late."
"Never mind the time,
mistress Brookes," said Arctura; we can do just as we please about that!
One time is as good as another--isn't it, Mr. Grant?"
"I sometimes sit up
half the night myself," said Donal. "I like to know God's night. Only
it won't do often, lest we make the brain, which is God's too, like a watch
that won't go."
"It's sair upsettin' to
the wark!" said the housekeeper. "What would the house be like if I
was to do that!"
"Do go on, please,
mistress Brookes," said Arctura.
"Please do,"
echoed Donal.
"Sir, an' my lady, I'm
ready to sit till the cock's be dune crawin', an' the day dune dawin', to
pleasur the ane or the twa o' ye!--an' sae for my true tale!--They war varra
dacent, weel-behavet fowk, wi' a fine faimly, some grown an' some growin'. It
was jist a fawvour to see sic a halesome clan--frae auchteen or thereawa' doon
tu the wee toddlin' lassie was the varra aipple o' the e'e to a' the e'en aboot
the place! But that's naither here nor yet there! A' gaed on as a' should gang
on whaur the servan's are no ower gran' for their ain wark, nor ower meddlesome
wi' the wark o' their neebours; naething was negleckit, nor onything girned
aboot; but a' was peace an' hermony, as quo' the auld sang about out bonny Kilmeny--that
is, till ae nicht.--You see I'm tellin' ye as it cam' to mysel' an' no til
anither!
"As I lay i' my bed
that nicht--an' ye may be sure at my age I lay nae langer nor jist to turn me
ower ance, an' in general no that ance--jist as I was fa'in' asleep, up gat sic
a romage i' the servan' ha', straucht 'aneth whaur I was lyin', that I thoucht
to mysel', what upo' earth's come to the place!--'Gien it bena the day o'
judgment, troth it's no the day o' sma' things!' I said. It was as gien a' the
cheirs an' tables thegither war bein' routit oot o' their places, an' syne set
back again, an' the tables turnt heels ower heid, an' a' the glaiss an' a' the
plate for the denner knockit aboot as gien they had been sae mony hailstanes
that warna wantit ony mair, but micht jist lie whaur they fell. I couldna for
the life o' me think what it micht betoken, save an' excep' a general frenzy
had seized upo' man an' wuman i' the hoose! I got up in a hurry: whatever was
gaein' on, I wudna wullin'ly gang wantin' my share o' the sicht! An' jist as I
opened my door, wha should I hear but the maister cryin' at the heid o' the
stair,--'What, i' the name o' a' that's holy,' says he, 'is the meanin' o'
this?' An' I ran til him, oot o' the passage, an' through the swing-door, into
the great corridor; an' says I,--''Deed, sir, I was won'erin'! an' wi' yer
leave, sir, I'll gang an' see,' I said, gaitherin' my shawl aboot me as weel as
I could to hide what was 'aneth it, or raither what wasna 'aneth it, for I
hadna that mickle on. But says he, 'No, no, you must not go; who knows what it
may be? I'll go myself. They may be robbers, and the men fighting them. You
stop where you are.' Sayin' that, he was half-ways doon the stair. I stood
whaur I was, lookin' doon an' hearkenin', an' the noise still goin' on. But he
could but hae won the len'th o' the hall, whan it stoppit a' at ance an'
a'thegither. Ye may think what a din it maun hae been, whan I tell ye the
quaiet that cam upo' the heels o' 't jist seemed to sting my twa lugs. The same
moment I h'ard the maister cryin' til me to come doon. I ran, an' whan I
reached the servan's ha', whaur he stood jist inside the door, I stood aside
him an' glowered. For, wad ye believe me! the place was as dacent an' still as
ony kirkyard i' the munelicht! There wasna a thing oot o' it's place, nor an
air o' dist, nor the sma'est disorder to be seen! A' the things luikit as gien
they had sattlet themsel's to sleep as usual, an' had sleepit till we cam an'
waukit them. The maister glowert at me, an' I glowert at the maister. But a' he
said was,--'A false alarm, ye see, Rose!' What he thoucht I canna tell, but
withoot anither word we turnt, an' gaed up the stair again thegither.
"At the tap o' the
stair, the lang corridor ran awa' intil the dark afore 's, for the can'le the
maister carried flangna licht half to the en' o' 't; an' frae oot o' the mirk
on a suddent cam to meet 's a rampaugin' an' a rattlin' like o' a score o' nowt
rinnin' awa' wi' their iron tethers aboot their necks--sic a rattlin' o' iron
chains as ye never h'ard! an' a groanin' an' a gruntin' jist fearsome. Again we
stood an' luikit at ane anither; an' my word! but the maister's face was eneuch
to fricht a body o' 'tsel', lat alane the thing we h'ard an' saw naething til
accoont for! 'Gang awa' back to yer bed, Rose,' he said; 'this'll never do!'
'An' hoo are ye to help it, sir?' said I. 'That I cannot tell,' answered he;
but I wouldn't for the world your mistress heard it! I left her fast asleep,
and I hope she'll sleep through it.--Did you ever hear anything strange about
the house before we came?' 'Never, sir,' said I, 'as sure as I stan' here
shiverin'!'--for the nicht was i' the simmer, an' warm to that degree! an' yet
I was shiverin' as i' the cauld fit o' a fivver; an' my moo' wud hardly consent
to mak the words I soucht to frame!
"We stood like mice
'afore the cat for a minute or twa, but there cam naething mair; an' by degrees
we grew a kin' o' ashamet, like as gien we had been doobtfu' as to whether we
had h'ard onything; an' whan again he said to me gang to my bed, I gaed to my
bed, an' wasna lang upo' the ro'd, for fear I wud hear onything mair--an' intil
my bed, an' my heid 'aneth the claes, an' lay trim'lin'. But there was nane
mair o' 't that nicht, an' I wasna ower sair owercome to fa' asleep.
"I' the mornin' I tellt
the hoosekeeper a' aboot it; but she held her tongue in a mainner that was, to
say the least o' 't, varra strange. She didna lauch, nor she didna grue nor yet
glower, nor yet she didna say the thing was nonsense, but she jist h'ard an'
h'ard an' saidna a word. I thoucht wi' mysel', is't possible she disna believe
me? but I couldna mak that oot aither. Sae as she heild her tongue, I jist pu'd
the bridle o' mine, an' vooed there should be never anither word said by me
till ance she spak hersel'. An' I wud sune hae had eneuch o' haudin' my tongue,
but I hadna to haud it to onybody but her; an' I cam to the conclusion that she
was feart o' bein' speirt questons by them 'at had a richt to speir them, for
that she had h'ard o' something 'afore, an' kenned mair nor she was at leeberty
to speak aboot.
"But that was only the
beginnin', an' little to what followed! For frae that nicht there was na ae
nicht passed but some ane or twa disturbit, an' whiles it was past a' bidin.'
The noises, an' the rum'lin's, an' abune a' the clankin' o' chains, that gaed
on i' that hoose, an' the groans, an' the cries, an' whiles the whustlin', an'
what was 'maist waur nor a', the lauchin', was something dreidfu', an' 'ayont
believin' to ony but them 'at was intil't. I sometimes think maybe the terror
o' 't maks it luik waur i' the recollection nor it was; but I canna keep my
senses an' no believe there was something a'thegither by ord'nar i' the affair.
An' whan, or lang, it cam to the knowledge o' the lady, an' she was waukit up
at nicht, an' h'ard the thing, whatever it was, an' syne whan the bairns war
waukit up, an' aye the romage, noo i' this room, noo i' that, sae that the
leevin' wud be cryin' as lood as the deid, though they could ill mak sic a din,
it was beyond a' beirin', an' the maister made up his min' to flit at ance,
come o' 't what micht!
"For, as I oucht to hae
tellt ye, he had written to the owner o' the hoose, that was my ain
maister--for it wasna a hair o' use sayin' onything further to the agent; he
only leuch, an' declaret it maun be some o' his ain folk was playin' tricks
upon him--which it angert him to hear, bein' as impossible as it was fause; sae
straucht awa' to his lan'lord he wrote, as I say; but as he was travellin'
aboot on the continent, he supposed either the letter had not reached him, an'
never wud reach him or he was shelterin' himsel' under the idea they wud think
he had never had it, no wantin' to move in the matter. But the varra day he had
made up his min' that nothing should make him spend another week in the house,
for Monday nights were always the worst, there cam a letter from the gentleman,
sayin' that only that same hoor that he was writin' had he received the
maister's letter; an' he was sorry he had not had it before, but prayed him to
put up with things till he got to him, and he would start at the farthest in
two days more, and would set the thing right in less time than it would take to
tell him what was amiss.--A strange enough letter to be sure! Mr. Harper, that
was their butler, told me he had read every word of it! And so, as, not to
mention the terrors of the nicht, the want of rest was like to ruin us
altogether, we were all on the outlook for the appearance of oor promised
deliverer, sae cock-sure o' settin' things straucht again!
"Weel, at last, an'
that was in a varra feow days, though they luikit lang to some i' that hoose,
he appearit--a nice luikin' gentleman, wi' sae sweet a smile it wasna hard to
believe whate'er he tellt ye. An' he had a licht airy w'y wi' him, that was to
us oppresst craturs strangely comfortin', ill as it was to believe he could ken
what had been goin' on, an' treat it i' that fashion! Hooever,--an' noo, my
lady, an' Mr. Grant, I hae to tell ye what the butler told me, for I wasna
present to hear for mysel'. Maybe he wouldn't have told me, but that he wasn't
an old man, though twice my age, an' seemt to have taken a likin' to me, though
it never came to anything; an' as I was always ceevil to any person that was ceevil
to me, an' never went farther than was becomin', he made me the return o'
talkin' to me at times, an' tellin' me what he knew.
"The young gentleman
was to stop an' lunch with the master, an' i' the meantime would have a glass
o' wine an' a biscuit; an' pullin' a bunch o' keys from his pocket, he desired
Mr. Harper to take a certain one and go to the door that was locked inside the
wine-cellar, and bring a bottle from a certain bin. Harper took the key, an'
was just goin' from the room, when he h'ard the visitor--though in truth he was
more at hame there than any of us--h'ard him say, 'I'll tell you what you've
been doing, sir, and you'll tell me whether I'm not right!' Hearin' that, the
butler drew the door to, but not that close, and made no haste to leave it, and
so h'ard what followed.
"'I'll tell you what
you've been doin',' says he. 'Didn't you find a man's head--a skull, I mean,
upon the premises?' 'Well, yes, I believe we did, when I think of it!' says the
master; 'for my butler'--an' there was the butler outside a listenin' to the
whole tale!--'my butler came to me one mornin', sayin', "Look here, sir!
that is what I found in a little box, close by the door of the wine-cellar!
It's a skull!" "Oh," said I '--it was the master that was
speakin'--'"it'll be some medical student has brought it home to the
house!" So he asked me what he had better do with it.' 'And you told him,'
interrupted the gentleman, 'to bury it!' 'I did; it seemed the proper thing to
do.' 'I hadn't a doubt of it!' said the gentleman: 'that is the cause of all
the disturbance.' 'That?' says the master. 'That, and nothing else!' answers
the gentleman. And with that, as Harper confessed when he told me, there cam
ower him such a horror, that he daured nae longer stan' at the door; but for
goin' doon to the cellar to fetch the bottle o' wine, that was merely beyond
his human faculty. As it happed, I met him on the stair, as white as a sheet,
an' ready to drop. 'What's the matter, Mr. Harper?' said I; and he told me all
about it. 'Come along,' I said; 'we'll go to the cellar together! It's broad
daylight, an' there's nothing to hurt us!' So he went down.
"'There, that's the box
the thing was lyin' in!' said he, as we cam oot o' the wine-cellar. An' wi'
that cam a groan oot o' the varra ground at oor feet! We both h'ard it, an'
stood shakin' an' dumb, grippin' ane anither. 'I'm sure I don't know what in
the name o' heaven it can all mean!' said he--but that was when we were on the
way up again. 'Did ye show 't ony disrespec'?' said I. 'No,' said he; 'I but
buried it, as I would anything else that had to be putten out o' sight,' An' as
we wur talkin' together--that was at the top o' the cellar-stair--there cam a
great ringin' at the bell, an' said he, 'They're won'erin' what's come o' me
an' their wine, an' weel they may! I maun rin.' As soon as he entered the
room--an' this again, ye may see, my leddy an' maister Grant, he tellt me
efterwards--'Whaur did ye bury the heid ye tuik frae the cellar?' said his
master til him, an' speiredna a word as to hoo he had been sae lang gane for
the wine. 'I buried it i' the garden,' answered he. 'I hope you know the spot!'
said the strange gentleman. 'Yes, sir, I do,' said Harper. 'Then come and show
me,' said he.
"So the three of them
went oot thegither, an' got a spade; an' luckily the butler was able to show
them at once the varra spot. An' the gentleman he howkit up the skull wi' his
ain han's, carefu' not to touch it with the spade, an' broucht it back in his
han' to the hoose, knockin' the earth aff it with his rouch traivellin' gluves.
But whan Harper lookit to be told to take it back to the place where he found
it, an' trembled at the thoucht, wonderin' hoo he was to get haud o' me an' naebody
the wiser, for he didna want to show fricht i' the day-time, to his grit
surprise an' no sma' pleesur, the gentleman set the skull on the chimley-piece.
An' as lunch had been laid i' the meantime, for Mr. Heywood--I hae jist gotten
a grup o' his name--had to be awa' again direckly, he h'ard the whole story as
he waitit upo' them. I suppose they thoucht it better he should hear an' tell
the rest, the sooner to gar them forget the terrors we had come throuw.
"Said the gentleman,
'Now you'll have no more trouble. If you do, write to me, to the care o'--so
an' so--an' I'll release you from your agreement. But please to remember that
you brought it on yourself by interfering, I can't exackly say with my
property, but with the property of one who knows how to defend it without
calling in the aid of the law--which indeed would probably give him little
satisfaction.--It was the burying of that skull that brought on you all the
annoyance.' 'I always thought,' said the master, 'the dead preferred having
their bones buried. Their ghosts indeed, according to Cocker, either wouldna or
couldna lie quiet until their bodies were properly buried: where then could be
our offence?' 'You may say what you will,' answered Mr. Heywood, 'and I cannot
answer you, or preten' to explain the thing; I only know that when that head is
buried, these same disagreeables always begin.' 'Then is the head in the way of
being buried and dug up again?' asked the master. 'I will tell you the whole
story, if you like,' answered his landlord. 'I would gladly hear it,' says he,
'for I would fain see daylight on the affair!' 'That I cannot promise you,' he
said; 'but the story, as it is handed down in the family, you shall hear.'
"You may be sure, my
leddy, Harper was wide awake to hearken, an' the more that he might tell it
again in the hall!
"'Somewhere about a
hundred and fifty years ago,' Mr. Heywood began, 'on a cold, stormy night,
there came to the hall-door a poor pedlar,'--a travelling merchant, you know,
my leddy--'with his pack on his back, and would fain have parted with some of
his goods to the folk of the hall. The butler, who must have been a rough sort
of man--they were rough times those--told him they wanted nothing he could give
them, and to go about his business. But the man, who was something obstinate, I
dare say, and, it may weel be, anxious to get shelter, as much for the nicht
bein' gurly as to sell his goods, keepit on beggin' an' implorin' to lat the
women-folk at the least luik at what he had broucht. At last the butler, oot o'
a' patience wi' the man, ga'e him a great shove awa' frae the door, sae that
the poor man fell doon the steps, an' bangt the door to, nor ever lookit to see
whether the man gat up again or no.
"'I' the mornin' the
pedlar they faund him lyin' deid in a little wud or shaw, no far frae the
hoose. An' wi' that up got the cry, an' what said they but that the butler had
murdert him! Sae up he was ta'en an' put upo' 's trial for't. An' whether the
man was not likit i' the country-side, I cannot tell,' said the gentleman, 'but
the cry was against him, and things went the wrong way for him--and that though
no one aboot the hoose believed he had done the deed, more than he micht hae
caused his death by pushin' him doon the steps. An' even that he could hardly have
intendit, but only to get quit o' him; an' likely enough the man was weak,
perhaps ill, an' the weicht o' his pack on his back pulled him as he pushed.'
Still, efter an' a'--an' its mysel' 'at's sayin' this, no the gentleman, my
lady--in a pairt o' the country like that, gey an' lanely, it was not the nicht
to turn a fallow cratur oot in! 'The butler was, at the same time, an old and
trusty servan',' said Mr. Heywood, 'an' his master was greatly concernt aboot
the thing. It is impossible at this time o' day,' he said, 'to un'erstan' hoo
such a thing could be--i' the total absence o' direc' evidence, but the short
an' the weary lang o' 't was, that the man was hangt, an' hung in irons for the
deed.
"'An' noo ye may be
thinkin' the ghaist o' the puir pedlar began to haunt the hoose; but naething
o' the kin'! There was nae disturbance o' that, or ony ither sort. The man was
deid an' buried, whaever did or didna kill him, an' the body o' him that was
said to hae killed him, hung danglin' i' the win', an' naither o' them said a
word for or again the thing.
"'But the hert o' the
man's maister was sair. He couldna help aye thinkin' that maybe he was to
blame, an' micht hae done something mair nor he thoucht o' at the time to get
the puir man aff; for he was absolutely certain that, hooever rouch he micht
hae been; an' hooever he micht hae been the cause o' deith to the troublesome
pedlar, he hadna meant to kill him; it was, in pairt at least, an accident, an'
he thoucht the hangin' o' 'im for 't was hard lines. The maister was an auld
man, nearhan' auchty, an' tuik things the mair seriously, I daursay, that he
wasna that far frae the grave they had sent the puir butler til afore his
time--gien that could be said o' ane whause grave was wi' the weather-cock! An'
aye he tuik himsel' to task as to whether he ouchtna to hae dune something
mair--gane to the king maybe--for he couldna bide the thoucht o' the puir man
that had waitit upon him sae lang an' faithfu', hingin' an' swingin' up there,
an' the flesh drappin' aff the banes o' 'im, an' still the banes hingin' there,
an' swingin' an' creakin' an' cryin'! The thoucht, I say, was sair upo' the
auld man. But the time passed, an' I kenna hoo lang or hoo short it may tak for
a body in sic a position to come asun'er, but at last the banes began to drap,
an' as they drappit, there they lay--at the fut o' the gallows, for naebody
caret to meddle wi' them. An' whan that cam to the knowledge o' the auld
gentleman, he sent his fowk to gether them up an' bury them oot o' sicht. An'
what was left o' the body, the upper pairt, hauden thegither wi' the irons,
maybe--I kenna weel hoo, hung an' swung there still, in ilk win' that blew. But
at the last, oot o' sorrow, an' respec' for the deid, hooever he dee'd, his
auld maister sent quaietly ae mirk nicht, an' had the lave o' the banes taen
doon an' laid i' the earth.
"'But frae that moment,
think ye there was ony peace i' the hoose? A clankin' o' chains got up, an' a
howlin', an' a compleenin' an' a creakin' like i' the win'--sic a stramash
a'thegither, that the hoose was no fit to be leevit in whiles, though it was
sometimes waur nor ither times, an' some thoucht it had to do wi' the airt the
win' blew: aboot that I ken naething. But it gaed on like that for months,
maybe years,'--Mr. Harper wasna sure hoo lang the gentleman said--'till the
auld man 'maist wished himsel' in o' the grave an' oot o' the trouble.
"'At last ae day cam an
auld man to see him--no sae auld as himsel', but ane he had kenned whan they
wur at the college thegither. An' this was a man that had travelled greatly,
an' was weel learnt in a heap o' things ordinar' fowk, that gies themsel's to
the lan', an' the growin' o' corn, an' beasts, ir no likely to ken mickle
aboot. He saw his auld freen' was in trouble, an' didna carry his age calm-like
as was nat'ral, an' sae speirt him what was the matter. An' he told him the
whole story, frae the hangin' to the bangin'. "Weel," said the
learnit man, whan he had h'ard a', "gien ye'll tak my advice, ye'll jist sen'
an' howk up the heid, an' tak it intil the hoose wi' ye, an' lat it bide there
whaur it was used sae lang to be;--do that, an' it's my opinion ye'll hear nae
mair o' sic unruly gangin's on." The auld gentleman tuik the advice,
kennin' no better. But it was the richt advice, for frae that moment the romour
was ower, they had nae mair o' 't. They laid the heid in a decent bit box i'
the cellar, an' there it remaint, weel content there to abide the day o' that
jeedgment that'll set mony anither jeedgment to the richt-aboot; though what
pleesur could be intil that cellar mair nor intil a hole i' the earth, is a
thing no for me to say! So wi' that generation there was nae mair trouble.
"'But i' the coorse o'
time cam first ane an' syne anither, wha forgot, maybe leuch at, the haill
affair, an' didna believe a word o' the same. But they're but fules that gang
again the experrience o' their forbeirs!--what wud ye hae but they wud beery
the heid! An' what wud come o' that but an auld dismay het up again! Up gat the
din, the rampaugin', the clankin', an' a', jist the same as 'afore! But the
minute that, frichtit at the consequences o' their folly, they acknowledged the
property o' the ghaist in his ain heid, an' tuik it oot o' the earth an' intil
the hoose again, a' was quaiet direc'ly--quaiet as hert could desire.'
"Sae that was the
story!
"An' whan the lunch was
ower, an' Mr. Harper was thinkin' the moment come whan they would order him to
tak the heid, an' him trimlin' at the thoucht o' touchin' 't, an' lay't whaur
it was--an' whaur it had sae aften been whan it had a sowl intil 't, the
gentleman got up, an' says he til him, 'Be so good,' says he, 'as fetch me my
hat-box from the hall.' Harper went an' got it as desired, an' the gentleman
took an' unlockit it, an' roon' he turnt whaur he stood, an' up he tuik the
skull frae the chimley-piece, neither as gien he lo'ed it nor feared it--as
what reason had he to do either?--an' han'let it neither rouchly, nor wi' ony
show o' mickle care, but intil the hat-box it gaed, willy, nilly, an' the lid
shutten doon upo' 't, an' the key turnt i' the lock o' 't; an' as gien he wad
mak the thing richt sure o' no bein' putten again whaur it had sic an objection
to gang, up he tuik in his han' the hat-box, an' the contrairy heid i' the inside
o' 't, an' awa' wi' him on his traivels, here awa' an' there awa' ower the face
o' the globe: he was on his w'y to Spain, he said, at the moment; an' we saw
nae mair o' him nor the heid, nor h'ard ever a soon' mair o' clankin', nor
girnin', nor ony ither oonholy din.
"An' that's the trowth,
mak o' 't what ye like, my leddy an' maister Grant!"
Mistress Brookes was silent,
and for some time not a syllable was uttered by either listener. At last Donal
spoke.
"It is a strange story,
mistress Brookes," he said; "and the stranger that it would show some
of the inhabitants of the other world apparently as silly after a hundred and
fifty years as when first they arrived there."
"I can say naething
anent that, sir," answered mistress Brookes; "I'm no accoontable for
ony inference 'at's to be drawn frae my ower true tale; an' doobtless, sir, ye
ken far better nor me;--but whaur ye see sae mony folk draw oot the threid o' a
lang life, an' never ae sensible thing, that they could help, done or said,
what for should ye won'er gien noo an' than ane i' the ither warl' shaw himsel'
siclike. Whan ye consider the heap o' folk that dees, an' hoo there maun be sae
mony mair i' the ither warl' nor i' this, I confess for my pairt I won'er mair
'at we're left at peace at a', an' that they comena swarmin' aboot 's i' the
nicht, like black doos. Ye'll maybe say they canna, an' ye'll maybe say they
come; but sae lang as they plague me nae waur nor oor freen' upo' the tither
side o' the wa', I canna say I care that mickle. But I think whiles hoo thae
ghaists maun lauch at them that lauchs as gien there was nae sic craturs i' the
warl'! For my pairt I naither fear them nor seek til them: I'll be ane wi' them
mysel' afore lang!--only I wad sair wuss an' houp to gang in amo' better behavet
anes nor them 'at gangs aboot plaguin' folk."
"You speak the best of
sense, mistress Brookes," said Donal; "but I should like to
understand why the poor hanged fellow should have such an objection to having
his skull laid in the ground! Why had he such a fancy for his old bones? Could
he be so closely associated with them that he could not get on without the
plenty of fresh air they got him used to when they hung on the gallows? And why
did it content him to have only his head above ground? It is bewildering! We
couldn't believe our bones rise again, even if Paul hadn't as good as told us
they don't! Why should the dead haunt their bones as if to make sure of having
their own again?"
"But," said
mistress Brookes, "beggin' yer pardon, sir, what ken ye as to what they
think? Ye may ken better, but maybe they dinna; for haena ye jist allooed that
sic conduc' as I hae describit is no fit, whaever be guilty o' the same,
whether rowdy laddies i' the streets, or craturs ye canna see i' the hoose? They
may think they'll want their banes by an' by though ye ken better; an' whatever
you wise folk may think the noo, ye ken it's no that lang sin' a' body, ay, the
best o' folk, thoucht the same; an' there's no a doobt they a' did at the time
that man was hangt. An' ye maun min' 'at i' the hoose the heid o' 'im wudna
waste as it wud i' the yerd!"
"But why bother about
his heid more than the rest of his bones?"
"Weel, sir, I'm
thinking a ghaist, ghaist though he be, canna surely be i' twa places at ance.
He could never think to plague til ilk bane o' finger an' tae was gethert i'
the cellar! That wud be houpless! An' thinkin' onything o' his banes, he micht
weel think maist o' 's heid, an' keep an e'e upo' that. Nae mony ghaists hae
the chance o' seein' sae muckle o' their banes as this ane, or sayin' to
themsel's, 'Yon's mine, whaur it swings!' Some ghaists hae a cat-like natur for
places, an' what for no for banes? Mony's the story that hoosekeeper, honest
wuman, telled me: whan what had come was gane, it set her openin' oot her pack!
I could haud ye there a' nicht tellin' ye ane efter anither o' them. But it's
time to gang to oor beds."
"It is our turn to tell
you something," said lady Arctura; "--only you must not mention it
just yet: Mr. Grant has found the lost room!"
For a moment Mrs. Brookes
said nothing, but neither paled nor looked incredulous; her face was only fixed
and still, as if she were finding explanation in the discovery.
"I was aye o' the min'
it was," she said, "an' mony's the time I thoucht I wud luik for't to
please mysel'! It's sma' won'er--the soon's, an' the raps, an' siclike!"
"You will not change
your mind when you hear all," said Arctura. "I asked you to give us
our supper because I was afraid to go to bed."
"You shouldn't have
told her, sir!"
"I've seen it with my
own eyes!"
"You've been into
it, my lady?--What--what--?"
"It is a chapel--the
old castle-chapel--mentioned, I know, somewhere in the history of the place,
though no one, I suppose, ever dreamed the missing room could be that!--And in
the chapel," continued Arctura, hardly able to bring out the words, for a
kind of cramping of the muscles of speech, "there was a bed! and in the
bed the crumbling dust of a woman! and on the altar what was hardly more than
the dusty shadow of a baby?"
"The Lord be aboot
us!" cried the housekeeper, her well-seasoned composure giving way;
"ye saw that wi' yer ain e'en, my lady!--Mr. Grant! hoo could ye lat her
leddyship luik upo' sic things!"
"I am her ladyship's
servant," answered Donal.
"That's varra true! But
eh, my bonny bairn, sic sichts is no for you!"
"I ought to know what
is in the house!" said Arctura, with a shudder. "But already I feel
more comfortable that you know too. Mr. Grant would like to have your advice as
to what--.--You'll come and see them, won't you?"
"When you please, my
lady.--To-night?"
"No, no! not
to-night.--Was that the knocking again?--Some ghosts want their bodies to be
buried, though your butler--"
"I wouldna
wonder!" responded mistress Brookes, thoughtfully.
"Where shall we bury
them?" asked Donal.
"In Englan'," said
the housekeeper, "I used to hear a heap aboot consecrated ground; but to
my min' it was the bodies o' God's handiwark, no the bishop, that consecrated
the ground. Whaur the Lord lays doon what he has done wi', wad aye be a sacred
place to me. I daursay Moses, whan he cam upo' 't again i' the desert, luikit
upo' the ground whaur stood the buss that had burned, as a sacred place though
the fire was lang oot!--Thinkna ye, Mr. Grant?"
"I do," answered
Donal. "But I do not believe the Lord Jesus thought one spot on the face
of the earth more holy than another: every dust of it was his father's, neither
more nor less, existing only by the thought of that father! and I think that is
what we must come to.--But where shall we bury them?--where they lie, or in the
garden?"
"Some wud doobtless hae
dist laid to dist i' the kirkyard; but I wudna wullin'ly raise a clash i' the
country-side. Them that did it was yer ain forbeirs, my leddy; an' sic things
are weel forgotten. An' syne what wud the earl say? It micht upset him mair nor
a bit! I'll consider o' 't."
Donal accompanied them to
the door of the chamber which again they shared, and then betook himself to his
own high nest. There more than once in what remained of the night, he woke,
fancying he heard the ghost-music sounding its coronach over the dead below.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LVIII. A SOUL DISEASED.">
CHAPTER LVIII.
A SOUL DISEASED.
"PAPA is very ill
to-day, Simmons tells me," said Davie, as Donal entered the schoolroom.
"He says he has never seen him so ill. Oh, Mr. Grant, I hope he is not
going to die!"
"I hope not,"
returned Donal--not very sure, he saw when he thought about it, what he meant;
for if there was so little hope of his becoming a true man on this side of some
awful doom, why should he hope for his life here?
"I wish you would talk
to him as you do to me, Mr. Grant!" resumed Davie, who thought what had
been good for himself must be good for everybody.
Of late the boy had been
more than usual with his father, and he may have dropped some word that turned
his father's thoughts toward Donal and his ways of thinking: however weak the
earl's will, and however dull his conscience, his mind was far from being
inactive. In the afternoon the butler brought a message that his lordship would
be glad to see Mr. Grant when school was over.
Donal found the earl very
weak, but more like a live man, he thought, than he had yet seen him. He
pointed to a seat, and began to talk in a way that considerably astonished the
tutor.
"Mr. Grant," he
began, with not a little formality, "I have known you long enough to
believe I know you really. Now I find myself, partly from the peculiarity of my
constitution, partly from the state of my health, partly from the fact that my
views do not coincide with those of the church of Scotland, and there is no
episcopal clergyman within reach of the castle--I find myself, I say, for these
reasons, desirous of some conversation with you, more for the sake of
identifying my own opinions, than in the hope of receiving from you what it
would be unreasonable to expect from one of your years."
Donal held his peace; the
very power of speech seemed taken from him: he had no confidence in the man,
and nothing so quenches speech as lack of faith. But the earl had no idea of
this distrust, never a doubt of his listener's readiness to take any position
he required him to take. Experience had taught him as little about Donal as
about his own real self.
"I have long been
troubled," continued his lordship after a momentary pause, "with a
question of which one might think the world must by this time be weary--which
yet has, and always will have, extraordinary fascination for minds of a certain
sort--of which my own is one: it is the question of the freedom of the
will:--how far is the will free? or how far can it be called free, consistently
with the notion of a God over all?"
He paused, and Donal sat
silent--so long that his lordship opened the eyes which, the better to enjoy
the process of sentence-making, he had kept shut, and half turned his head
towards him: he had begun to doubt whether he was really by his bedside, or but
one of his many visions undistinguishable by him from realities. Re-assured by
the glance, he resumed.
"I cannot, of course,
expect from you such an exhaustive and formed opinion as from an older man who
had made metaphysics his business, and acquainted himself with all that had
been said upon the subject; at the same time you must have expended a
considerable amount of thought on these matters!"
He talked in a quiet, level
manner, almost without inflection, and with his eyes again closed--very much as
if he were reading a book inside him.
"I have had a good
deal," he went on, "to shake my belief in the common ideas on such
points.--Do you believe there is such a thing as free will?"
He ceased, awaiting the
answer which Donal felt far from prepared to give him.
"My lord," he said
at length, "what I believe, I do not feel capable, at a moment's notice,
of setting forth; neither do I think, however unavoidable such discussions may
be in the forum of one's own thoughts, that they are profitable between men. I
think such questions, if they are to be treated at all between man and man, and
not between God and man only, had better be discussed in print, where what is
said is in some measure fixed, and can with a glance be considered afresh. But
not so either do I think they can be discussed to any profit."
"What do you mean?
Surely this question is of the first importance to humanity!"
"I grant it, my lord,
if by humanity you mean the human individual. But my meaning is, that
there are many questions, and this one, that can be tested better than
argued."
"You seem fond of
paradox!"
"I will speak as
directly as I can: such questions are to be answered only by the moral nature,
which first and almost only they concern; and the moral nature operates in
action, not discussion."
"Do I not then,"
said his lordship, the faintest shadow of indignation in his tone, "bring
my moral nature to bear on a question which I consider from the ground of
duty?"
"No, my lord,"
answered Donal, with decision; "you bring nothing but your intellectual
nature to bear on it so; the moral nature, I repeat, operates only in action.
To come to the point in hand: the sole way for a man to know he has freedom is
to do something he ought to do, which he would rather not do. He may strive to
acquaint himself with the facts concerning will, and spend himself imagining
its mode of working, yet all the time not know whether he has any will."
"But how am I to put a
force in operation, while I do not know whether I possess it or not?"
"By putting it in operation--that
alone; by being alive; by doing the next thing you ought to do, or abstaining
from the next thing you are tempted to, knowing you ought not to do it. It
sounds childish; and most people set action aside as what will do any time, and
try first to settle questions which never can be settled but in just this
divinely childish way. For not merely is it the only way in which a man can
know whether he has a free will, but the man has in fact no will at all unless
it comes into being in such action."
"Suppose he found he
had no will, for he could not do what he wished?"
"What he ought, I said,
my lord."
"Well, what he
ought," yielded the earl almost angrily.
"He could not find it
proved that he had no faculty for generating a free will. He might indeed doubt
it the more; but the positive only, not the negative, can be proved."
"Where would be the
satisfaction if he could only prove the one thing and not the
other."
"The truth alone can be
proved, my lord; how should a lie be proved? The man that wanted to prove he
had no freedom of will, would find no satisfaction from his test--and the less
the more honest he was; but the man anxious about the dignity of the nature given
him, would find every needful satisfaction in the progress of his
obedience."
"How can there be free
will where the first thing demanded for its existence or knowledge of itself is
obedience?"
"There is no free will
save in resisting what one would like, and doing what the Truth would have him
do. It is true the man's liking and the truth may coincide, but therein he will
not learn his freedom, though in such coincidence he will always
thereafter find it, and in such coincidence alone, for freedom is
harmony with the originating law of one's existence."
"That's dreary
doctrine."
"My lord, I have spent
no little time and thought on the subject, and the result is some sort of
practical clearness to myself; but, were it possible, I should not care to make
it clear to another save by persuading him to arrive at the same conviction by
the same path--that, namely, of doing the thing required of him."
"Required of him by
what?"
"By any one, any thing,
any thought, with which can go the word required by--anything that
carries right in its demand. If a man does not do the thing which the very
notion of a free will requires, what in earth, heaven, or hell, would be the
use of his knowing all about the will? But it is impossible he should know
anything."
"You are a bold
preacher!" said the earl. "--Suppose now a man was unconscious of any
ability to do the thing required of him?"
"I should say there was
the more need he should do the thing."
"That is
nonsense."
"If it be nonsense, the
nonsense lies in the supposition that a man can be conscious of not possessing
a power; he can only be not conscious of possessing it, and that is a very
different thing. How is a power to be known but by being a power, and how is it
to be a power but in its own exercise of itself? There is more in man than he
can at any given moment be conscious of; there is life, the power of the
eternal behind his consciousness, which only in action can he make his own; of
which, therefore, only in action, that is obedience, can he become conscious,
for then only is it his."
"You are splitting a
hair!"
"If the only way to
life lay through a hair, what must you do but split it? The fact, however, is,
that he who takes the live sphere of truth for a flat intellectual disc, may
well take the disc's edge for a hair."
"Come, come! how does
all this apply to me--a man who would really like to make up his mind about the
thing, and is not at the moment aware of any very pressing duty that he is
neglecting to do?"
"Is your lordship not
aware of some not very pressing duty that you are neglecting to do? Some duties
need but to be acknowledged by the smallest amount of action, to become
paramount in their demands upon us."
"That is the worst of
it!" murmured the earl. "I refuse, I avoid such acknowledgment! Who
knows whither it might carry me, or what it might not go on to demand of
me!"
He spoke like one unaware
that he spoke.
"Yes, my lord,"
said Donal, "that is how most men treat the greatest things! The devil
blinds us that he may guide us!"
"The devil!--bah!"
cried his lordship, glad to turn at right angles from the path of the
conversation; "you don't surely believe in that legendary personage?"
"He who does what the
devil would have him do, is the man who believes in him, not he who does not
care whether he is or not, so long as he avoids doing his works. If there be
such a one, his last thought must be to persuade men of his existence! He is a
subject I do not care to discuss; he is not very interesting to me. But if your
lordship now would but overcome the habit of depending on medicine, you would
soon find out that you had a free will."
His lordship scowled like a
thunder-cloud.
"I am certain, my
lord," added Donal, "that the least question asked by the will
itself, will bring an answer; a thousand asked by the intellect, will bring
nothing."
"I did not send for you
to act the part of father confessor, Mr. Grant," said his lordship, in a
tone which rather perplexed Donal; "but as you have taken upon you the
office, I may as well allow you keep it; the matter to which you refer, that of
my medical treatment of myself, is precisely what has brought me into my
present difficulty. It would be too long a story to tell you how, like poor
Coleridge, I was first decoyed, then enticed from one stage to another; the
desire to escape from pain is a natural instinct; and that, and the necessity
also for escaping my past self, especially in its relations to certain others,
have brought me by degrees into far too great a dependence on the use of drugs.
And now that, from certain symptoms, I have ground to fear a change of some
kind not so far off--I do not of course mean to-morrow, or next year, but
somewhere nearer than it was this time, I won't say last year, but say ten
years ago--why, then, one begins to think about things one has been too ready
to forget. I suppose, however, if the will be a natural possession of the human
being, and if a man should, through actions on the tissue of his brain, have
ceased to be conscious of any will, it must return to him the moment he is free
from the body, that is from the dilapidated brain!"
"My lord, I would not
have you count too much upon that. We know very little about these things; but
what if the brain give the opportunity for the action which is to result in
freedom? What if there should, without the brain, be no means of working our
liberty? What if we are here like birds in a cage, with wings, able to fly but
not flying about the cage; and what if, when we are dead, we shall indeed be
out of the cage, but without wings, having never made use of such as we had
while we had them? Think for a moment what we should be without the
senses!"
"We shall be able at
least to see and hear, else where were the use of believing in another
world?"
"I suspect, my lord, the
other world does not need our believing in it to make a fact of it. But if a
man were never to teach his soul to see, if he were obstinately to close his
eyes upon this world, and look at nothing all the time he was in it, I should
be very doubtful whether the mere fact of going a little more dead, would make
him see. The soul never having learned to see, its sense of seeing,
correspondent to and higher than that of the body, never having been developed,
how should it expand and impower itself by mere deliverance from the one best
schoolmaster to whom it would give no heed? The senses are, I suspect, only the
husks under which are ripening the deeper, keener, better senses belonging to
the next stage of our life; and so, my lord, I cannot think that, if the will
has not been developed through the means and occasions given in, the mere
passing into another condition will set it free. For freedom is the unclosing
of the idea which lies at our root, and is the vital power of our existence.
The rose is the freedom of the rose tree. I should think, having lost his
brain, and got nothing instead, a man would find himself a mere centre of
unanswerable questions."
"You go too far for
me," said his lordship, looking a little uncomfortable, "but I think
it is time to try and break myself a little of the habit--or almost time. By
degrees one might, you know,--eh?"
"I have little faith in
doing things by degrees, my lord--except such indeed as by their very nature
cannot be done at once. It is true a bad habit can only be contracted by
degrees; and I will not say, because I do not know, whether anyone has ever
cured himself of one by degrees; but it cannot be the best way. What is bad
ought to be got rid of at once."
"Ah, but, don't you
know? that might cost you your life!"
"What of that, my lord!
Life, the life you mean, is not the first thing."
"Not the first thing!
Why, the Bible says, 'All that a man hath will he give for his life'!"
"That is in the Bible;
but whether the Bible says it, is another thing."
"I do not understand
silly distinctions."
"Why, my lord, who said
that?"
"What does it matter
who said it?"
"Much always;
everything sometimes."
"Who said it
then?"
"The devil."
"The devil he did! And
who ought to know better, I should like to ask!"
"Every man ought to
know better. And besides, it is not what a man will or will not do, but what a
man ought or ought not to do!"
"Ah, there you have me,
I suppose! But there are some things so damned difficult, that a man must be
very sure of his danger before he can bring himself to do them!"
"That may be, my lord:
in the present case, however, you must be aware that the danger is not to the
bodily health alone; these drugs undermine the moral nature as well!"
"I know it: I cannot be
counted guilty of many things; they were done under the influence of hellish
concoctions. It was not I, but these things working in me--on my brain, making
me see things in a false light! This will be taken into account when I come to
be judged--if there be such a thing as a day of judgment."
"One thing I am sure
of," said Donal, "that your lordship will have fair play. At first,
not quite knowing what you were about, you may not have been much to blame; but
afterwards, when you knew that you were putting yourself in danger of doing you
did not know what, you were as much to blame as if you made a
Frankenstein-demon, and turned him loose on the earth, knowing yourself utterly
unable to control him."
"And is not that what
the God you believe in does every day?"
"My lord, the God I
believe in has not lost his control over either of us."
"Then let him set the
thing right! Why should we draw his plough?"
"He will set it right,
my lord,--but probably in a way your lordship will not like. He is compelled to
do terrible things sometimes."
"Compelled!--what
should compel him?"
"The love that is in
him, the love that he is. He cannot let us have our own way to the ruin of
everything in us he cares for!"
Then the spirit awoke in
Donal--or came upon him--and he spoke.
"My lord," he
said, "if you would ever again be able to thank God; if there be one in
the other world to whom you would go; if you would make up for any wrong you
have ever done; if you would ever feel in your soul once more the innocence of
a child; if you care to call God your father; if you would fall asleep in peace
and wake to a new life; I conjure you to resist the devil, to give up the evil
habit that is dragging you lower and lower every hour. It will be very hard, I
know! Anything I can do, watching with you night and day, giving myself to help
you, I am ready for. I will do all that lies in me to deliver you from the
weariness and sickness of the endeavour. I will give my life to strengthen
yours, and count it well spent and myself honoured: I shall then have lived a
life worth living! Resolve, my lord--in God's name resolve at once to be free.
Then you shall know you have a free will, for your will will have made itself
free by doing the will of God against all disinclination of your own. It will
be a glorious victory, and will set you high on the hill whose peak is the
throne of God."
"I will begin
to-morrow," said the earl feebly, and with a strange look in his eyes.
"--But now you must leave me. I need solitude to strengthen my resolve.
Come to me again to-morrow. I am weary, and must rest awhile. Send
Simmons."
Donal was nowise misled by
the easy, postponed consent, but he could not prolong the interview. He rose
and went. In the act of shutting the door behind him, something, he did not
know what, made him turn his head: the earl was leaning over the little table
by his bedside, and pouring something from a bottle into a glass. Donal stood
transfixed. The earl turned and saw him, cast on him a look of almost
demoniacal hate, put the glass to his lips and drank off its contents, then
threw himself back on his pillows. Donal shut the door--not so softly as he
intended, for he was agitated; a loud curse at the noise came after him. He
went down the stair not only with a sense of failure, but with an exhaustion
such as he had never before felt.
There are men of natures so
inactive that they cannot even enjoy the sight of activity around them: men
with schemes and desires are in their presence intrusive. Their existence is a
sleepy lake, which would not be troubled even with the wind of far-off labour.
Such lord Morven was not by nature; up to manhood he had led even a stormy
life. But when his passions began to yield, his self-indulgence began to take
the form of laziness; and it was not many years before he lay with never a struggle
in the chains of the evil power which had now reduced him to moral poltroonery.
The tyranny of this last wickedness grew worse after the death of his wife. The
one object of his life, if life it could be called, was only and ever to make
it a life of his own, not the life which God had meant it to be, and had made
possible to him. On first acquaintance with the moral phenomenon, it had seemed
to Donal an inhuman and strangely exceptional one; but reflecting, he came
presently to see that it was only a more pronounced form of the universal human
disease--a disease so deep-seated that he who has it worst, least knows or can
believe that he has any disease, attributing all his discomfort to the
condition of things outside him; whereas his refusal to accept them as they
are, is one most prominent symptom of the disease. Whether by stimulants or
narcotics, whether by company or ambition, whether by grasping or study,
whether by self-indulgence, by art, by books, by religion, by love, by
benevolence, we endeavour after another life than that which God means for
us--a life of truth, namely, of obedience, humility, and self-forgetfulness, we
walk equally in a vain show. For God alone is, and without him we are
not. This is not the mere clang of a tinkling metaphysical cymbal; he that
endeavours to live apart from God must at length find--not merely that he has
been walking in a vain show, but that he has been himself but the phantom of a
dream. But for the life of the living God, making him be, and keeping him being,
he must fade even out of the limbo of vanities!
He more and more seldom went
out of the house, more and more seldom left his apartment. At times he would
read a great deal, then for days would not open a book, but seem absorbed in
meditation--a meditation which had nothing in it worthy of the name. In his
communications with Donal, he did not seem in the least aware that he had made
him the holder of a secret by which he could frustrate his plans for his
family. These plans he clung to, partly from paternity, partly from contempt
for society, and partly in the fancy of repairing the wrong he had done his
children's mother. The morally diseased will atone for wrong by fresh wrong--in
its turn to demand like reparation! He would do anything now to secure his sons
in the position of which in law he had deprived them by the wrong he had done
the woman whom all had believed his wife. Through the marriage of the eldest
with the heiress, he would make him the head of the house in power as in
dignity, and this was now almost the only tie that bound him to the reality of
things. He cared little enough about Forgue, but his conscience was haunted
with his cruelties to the youth's mother. These were often such as I dare not
put on record: they came all of the pride of self-love and self-worship--as
evil demons as ever raged in the fiercest fire of Moloch. In the madness with
which they possessed him, he had inflicted upon her not only sorest
humiliations, but bodily tortures: he would see, he said, what she would bear for
his sake! In the horrible presentments of his drug-procured dreams they
returned upon him in terrible forms of righteous retaliation. And now, though
to himself he was constantly denying a life beyond, the conviction had begun to
visit and overwhelm him that he must one day meet her again: fain then would he
be armed with something which for her sake he had done for her children! One of
the horrible laws of the false existence he led was that, for the deadening of
the mind to any evil, there was no necessity it should be done and done again;
it had but to be presented in the form of a thing done, or a thing going to be
done, to seem a thing reasonable and doable. In his being, a world of false
appearances had taken the place of reality; a creation of his own had displaced
the creation of the essential Life, by whose power alone he himself falsely
created; and in this world he was the dupe of his own home-born phantoms. Out
of this conspiracy of marsh and mirage, what vile things might not issue! Over
such a chaos the devil has power all but creative. He cannot in truth create,
but he can with the degenerate created work moral horrors too hideous to be
analogized by any of the horrors of the unperfected animal world. Such are
being constantly produced in human society; many of them die in the darkness in
which they are generated; now and then one issues, blasting the public day with
its hideous glare. Because they are seldom seen, many deny they exist, or need
be spoken of if they do. But to terrify a man at the possibilities of his
neglected nature, is to do something towards the redemption of that nature.
School-hours were over, but
Davie was seated where he had left him, still working. At sight of him Donal,
feeling as if he had just come from the presence of the damned, almost burst
into tears. A moment more and Arctura entered: it was as if the roof of hell
gave way, and the blue sky of the eternal came pouring in heavenly deluge
through the ruined vault.
"I have been to call
upon Sophia," she said.
"I am glad to hear
it," answered Donal: any news from an outer world of yet salvable humanity
was welcome as summer to a land of ice.
"Yes," she said;
"I am able to go and see her now, because I am no longer afraid of
her--partly, I think, because I no longer care what she thinks of me. Her power
over me is gone."
"And will never
return," said Donal, "while you keep close to the master. With him
you need no human being to set you right, and will allow no human being to set
you wrong; you will need neither friend nor minister nor church, though all
will help you. I am very glad, for something seems to tell me I shall not be
long here."
Arctura dropped on a
chair--pale as rosy before.
"Has anything fresh
happened?" she asked, in a low voice that did not sound like hers.
"Surely you will not leave me while--.--I thought--I thought--.--What is
it?"
"It is only a feeling I
have," he answered. "I believe I am out of spirits."
"I never saw you so
before!" said Arctura. "I hope you are not going to be ill."
"Oh, no; it is not
that! I will tell you some day, but I cannot now. All is in God's hands!"
She looked anxiously at him,
but did not ask him any question more. She proposed they should take a turn in
the park, and his gloom wore gradually off.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LIX. DUST TO DUST.">
CHAPTER LIX.
DUST TO DUST.
THE next night, as if by a
common understanding, for it was without word spoken, the three met again in
the housekeeper's room, where she had supper waiting. Of business nothing was
said until that was over. Mistress Brookes told them two or three of the
stories of which she had so many, and Donal recounted one or two of those that
floated about his country-side.
"I've been
thinkin'," said mistress Brookes at length, "seein' it's a bonny starry
nicht, we couldna do better than lift an' lay doon this varra nicht. The hoose
is asleep."
"What do you say to
that place in the park where was once a mausoleum?" said Donal.
"It's the varra
place!--an' the sooner the better--dinna ye think, my lady?"
Arctura with a look referred
the question to Donal.
"Surely," he
answered. "But will there not be some preparations to make?"
"There's no need o'
mony!" returned the housekeeper. "I'll get a fine auld sheet, an'
intil 't we'll put the remains, an' row them up, an' carry them to their hame.
I'll go an' get it, my lady.--But wouldna 't be better for you and me, sir, to
get a' that dune by oorsel's? My leddy could j'in us whan we cam up."
"She wouldn't like to
be left here alone. There is nothing to be called fearsome!"
"Nothing at all,"
said Arctura.
"The forces of
nature," said Donal, "are constantly at work to destroy the dreadful,
and restore the wholesome. It is but a few handfuls of clean dust."
The housekeeper went to one
of her presses, and brought out a sheet. Donal put a plaid round lady Arctura.
They went up to her room, and so down to the chapel. Half-way down the narrow
descent mistress Brookes murmured, "Eh, sirs!" and said no more.
Each carried a light, and
the two could see the chapel better. A stately little place it was: when the
windows were unmasked, it would be beautiful!
They stood for some moments
by the side of the bed, regarding in silence. Seldom sure had bed borne one who
slept so long!--one who, never waking might lie there still! When they spoke it
was in whispers.
"How are we to manage
it, mistress Brookes?" said Donal.
"Lay the sheet handy,
alang the side o' the bed, maister Grant, an' I s' lay in the dist, han'fu' by
han'fu'. I hae that respec' for the deid, I hae no difficlety aboot han'lin'
onything belongin' to them."
"Gien it hadna been
that he tuik it again," said Donal, "the Lord's ain body wad hae come
to this."
As he spoke he laid the
sheet on the bed, and began to lay in it the dry dust and air-wasted bones,
handling them as reverently as if the spirit had but just departed. Mistress
Brookes would have prevented Arctura, but she insisted on having her share in the
burying of her own: who they were God knew, but they should be hers anyhow, and
one day she would know! For to fancy we go into the other world a set of
spiritual moles burrowing in the dark of a new and unknown existence, is worthy
only of such as have a lifeless Law to their sire. We shall enter it as
children with a history, as children going home to a long line of living
ancestors, to develop closest relations with them. She would yet talk, live
face to face, with those whose dust she was now lifting in her two hands to
restore it to its dust. Then they carried the sheet to the altar, and thence
swept into it every little particle, back to its mother dust. That done, Donal
knotted the sheet together, and they began to look around them.
Desirous of discovering
where the main entrance to the chapel had been, Donal spied under the windows a
second door, and opened it with difficulty. It disclosed a passage below the
stair, three steps lower than the floor of the chapel, parallel with the wall,
and turning, at right angles under the gallery. Here he saw signs of an
obliterated door in the outer wall, but could examine no farther for the
present.
In the meantime his
companions had made another sort of discovery: near the foot of the bed was a
little table, on which were two drinking vessels, apparently of pewter, and a
mouldering pack of cards! Card-playing and the hidden room did hold some
relation with each other! The cards and the devil were real!
Donal took up the sheet--a
light burden, and Arctura led the way. Arrived at her room, they went softly
across to the door opening on Donal's stair--not without fear of the earl, whom
indeed they might meet anywhere--and by that descending, reached the open air,
and took their way down the terraces and through the park to the place of
burial.
It was a frosty night, with
the waning sickle of a moon low in the heaven, and many brilliant stars above
it. Followed by faint ethereal shadows, they passed over the grass, through the
ghostly luminous dusk--of funereal processions one of the strangest that ever
sought a tomb.
The ruin was in a hollow,
surrounded by trees. Donal removed a number of fallen stones and dug a grave.
They lowered into it the knotted sheet, threw in the earth again, heaped the
stones above, and left the dust with its dust. Then silent they went back,
straight along the green, moon-regarded rather than moon-lit grass: if any one
had seen them through the pale starry night, he would surely have taken them
for a procession of the dead themselves!
No dream of death sought
Arctura that night, but in the morning she woke suddenly from one of
disembodied delight.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LX. A LESSON ABOUT DEATH.">
CHAPTER LX.
A LESSON ABOUT DEATH.
WHATEVER lady Arctura might
decide concerning the restoration of the chapel to the light of day, Donal
thought it would not be amiss to find, without troubling her, what he could of
its relation to the rest of the house: and it favoured his wish that Arctura
was prevailed upon by the housekeeper to remain in bed the next day. Her strong
will, good courage, and trusting heart, had made severe demands upon an
organization as delicate as responsive. It was now Saturday: he resolved to go
alone in the afternoon to explore--and first of all would try the door beside
the little gallery.
As soon as he was free, he
got the tools he judged necessary, and went down.
The door was of strong sound
oak, with ornate iron hinges right across it. He was on the better side for
opening it, that is, the inside, but though the ends of the hinges were
exposed, the door was so well within the frame that it was useless to think of
heaving them off the bearing-pins. The huge lock and its bolt were likewise
before him, but the key was in the lock from the other side, so that it could
not be picked; while the nails that fastened it to the door were probably
riveted through a plate. But there was the socket into which the bolt shot!
that was merely an iron staple! he might either force it out with a lever, or
file it through! Having removed the roughest of the rust with which it was
caked, and so reduced its thickness considerably, he set himself to the task of
filing it through, first at the top then at the bottom. It was a slow but a
sure process, and would make no great noise.
Although it was broad
daylight outside, so like midnight was it here and the season that belongs to
the dead, that he was haunted with the idea of a presence behind him. But not
once did he turn his head to see, for he knew that if he yielded to the inclination,
it would but return the stronger. Old experience had taught him that the way to
meet the horrors of the fancy is to refuse them a single hair's-breadth of
obedience. And as he worked the conviction grew that the only protection
against the terrors of alien presence is the consciousness of the home presence
of the eternal: if a man felt that presence, how could he fear any other? But
for those who are not one with the source of being, every manifestation of that
being in a life other than their own, must be more or less a terror to them; it
is alien, antipathous, other,--it may be unappeasable, implacable. The
time must even come when to such their own being will be a horror of repugnant
consciousness; for God not self is ours--his being, not our own, is our home;
he is our kind.
The work was slow--the
impression on the hard iron of the worn file so weak that he was often on the
point of giving up the attempt. Fatigue at length began to invade him, and
therewith the sense of his situation grew more keen: great weariness overcomes
terror; the beginnings of weariness enhance it. Every now and then he would
stop, thinking he heard the cry of a child, only to recognize it as the noise
of his file. He resolved at last to stop for the night, and after tea go to the
town to buy a new and fitter file.
The next day was Sunday, and
in the afternoon Donal and Davie were walking in the old avenue together. They
had been to church, and had heard a dull sermon on the most stirring fact next
to the resurrection of the Lord himself--his raising of Lazarus. The whole
aspect of the thing, as presented by the preaching man, was so dull and unreal,
that not a word on the subject had passed between them on the way home.
"Mr. Grant, how could
anybody make a dead man live again?" said Davie suddenly.
"I don't know, Davie,"
answered Donal. "If I could know how, I should probably be able to do it
myself."
"It is very hard to
believe."
"Yes, very hard--that
is, if you do not know anything about the person said to have done it, to
account for his being able to do it though another could not. But just
think of this: if one had never seen or heard about death, it would be as hard,
perhaps harder, to believe that anything could bring about that change. The one
seems to us easy to understand, because we are familiar with it; if we had seen
the other take place a few times, we should see in it nothing too strange,
nothing indeed but what was to be expected in certain circumstances."
"But that is not enough
to prove it ever did take place."
"Assuredly not. It
cannot even make it look in the least probable."
"Tell me, please,
anything that would make it look probable."
"I will not answer your
question directly, but I will answer it. Listen, Davie.
"In all ages men have
longed to see God--some men in a grand way. At last, according to the story of
the gospel, the time came when it was fit that the Father of men should show
himself to them in his son, the one perfect man, who was his very image. So
Jesus came to them. But many would not believe he was the son of God, for they
knew God so little that they did not see how like he was to his Father. Others,
who were more like God themselves, and so knew God better, did think him the
son of God, though they were not pleased that he did not make more show. His
object was, not to rule over them, but to make them know, and trust, and obey
his Father, who was everything to him. Now when anyone died, his friends were
so miserable over him that they hardly thought about God, and took no comfort
from him. They said the dead man would rise again at the last day, but that was
so far off, the dead was gone to such a distance, that they did not care for
that. Jesus wanted to make them know and feel that the dead were alive all the
time, and could not be far away, seeing they were all with God in whom we live;
that they had not lost them though they could not see them, for they were quite
within his reach--as much so as ever; that they were just as safe with, and as
well looked after by his father and their father, as they had ever been in all
their lives. It was no doubt a dreadful-looking thing to have them put in a
hole, and waste away to dust, but they were not therefore gone out--they were
only gone in! To teach them all this he did not say much, but just called one
or two of them back for a while. Of course Lazarus was going to die again, but
can you think his two sisters either loved him less, or wept as much over him
the next time he died?"
"No; it would have been
foolish."
"Well, if you think
about it, you will see that no one who believes that story, and weeps as they
did the first time, can escape reproof. Where Jesus called Lazarus from, there
are his friends, and there are they waiting for him! Now, I ask you, Davie, was
it worth while for Jesus to do this for us? Is not the great misery of our
life, that those dear to us die? Was it, I say, a thing worth doing, to let us
see that they are alive with God all the time, and can be produced any moment
he pleases?"
"Surely it was, sir! It
ought to take away all the misery!"
"Then it was a natural
thing to do; and it is a reasonable thing to think that it was done. It was
natural that God should want to let his children see him; and natural he should
let them know that he still saw and cared for those they had lost sight of. The
whole thing seems to me reasonable; I can believe it. It implies indeed a world
of things of which we know nothing; but that is for, not against it, seeing
such a world we need; and if anyone insists on believing nothing but what he
has seen something like, I leave him to his misery and the mercy of God."
If the world had been so made
that men could easily believe in the maker of it, it would not have been a
world worth any man's living in, neither would the God that made such a world,
and so revealed himself to such people, be worth believing in. God alone knows
what life is enough for us to live--what life is worth his and our while; we
may be sure he is labouring to make it ours. He would have it as full, as
lovely, as grand, as the sparing of nothing, not even his own son, can render
it. If we would only let him have his own way with us! If we do not trust him,
will not work with him, are always thwarting his endeavours to make us alive,
then we must be miserable; there is no help for it. As to death, we know next
to nothing about it. "Do we not!" say the faithless. "Do we not
know the darkness, the emptiness, the tears, the sinkings of heart, the
desolation!" Yes, you know those; but those are your things, not death's.
About death you know nothing. God has told us only that the dead are alive to
him, and that one day they will be alive again to us. The world beyond the
gates of death is, I suspect, a far more homelike place to those that enter it,
than this world is to us.
"I don't like
death," said Davie, after a silence.
"I don't want you to
like, what you call death, for that is not the thing itself--it is only your
fancy about it. You need not think about it at all. The way to get ready for it
is to live, that is, to do what you have to do."
"But I do not want to
get ready for it. I don't want to go to it; and to prepare for it is like going
straight into it!"
"You have to go to it
whether you prepare for it or not. You cannot help going to it. But it must be
like this world, seeing the only way to prepare for it is to do the thing God
gives us to do."
"Aren't you afraid of death,
Mr. Grant?"
"No, I am not. Why
should I fear the best thing that, in its time, can come to me? Neither will
you be afraid when it comes. It is not the dreadful thing it looks."
"Why should it look
dreadful if it is not dreadful?"
"That is a very proper
question. It looks dreadful, and must look dreadful, to everyone who cannot see
in it that which alone makes life not dreadful. If you saw a great dark cloak
coming along the road as if it were round somebody, but nobody inside it, you
would be frightened--would you not?"
"Indeed I should. It
would be awful!"
"It would. But if you
spied inside the cloak, and making it come towards you, the most beautiful
loving face you ever saw--of a man carrying in his arms a little child--and saw
the child clinging to him, and looking in his face with a blessed smile, would
you be frightened at the black cloak?"
"No; that would be
silly."
"You have your answer!
The thing that makes death look so fearful is that we do not see inside it.
Those who see only the black cloak, and think it is moving along of itself, may
well be frightened; but those who see the face inside the cloak, would be fools
indeed to be frightened! Before Jesus came, people lived in great misery about
death; but after he rose again, those who believed in him always talked of
dying as falling asleep; and I daresay the story of Lazarus, though it was not
such a great thing after the rising of the Lord himself, had a large share in
enabling them to think that way about it."
When they went home, Davie,
running up to lady Arctura's room, recounted to her as well as he could the
conversation he had just had with Mr. Grant.
"Oh, Arkie!" he
said, "to hear him talk, you would think Death hadn't a leg to stand
upon!"
Arctura smiled; but it was a
smile through a cloud of unshed tears. Lovely as death might be, she would like
to get the good of this world before going to the next!--As if God would deny
us any good!--At one time she had been willing to go, she thought, but she was
not now!--The world had of late grown very beautiful to her!
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXI. THE BUREAU.">
CHAPTER LXI.
THE BUREAU.
ON the Monday night Donal
again went down into the hidden parts of the castle. Arctura had come to the
schoolroom, but seemed ill able for her work, and he did not tell her what he
was doing farther.
They were rather the ghosts
of fears than fears themselves that had assailed him, and this time they hardly
came near him as he wrought. With his new file he made better work than before,
and soon finished cutting through the top of the staple. Trying it then with a
poker as a lever, he broke the bottom part across; so there was nothing to hold
the bolt, and with a creaking noise of rusty hinges the door slowly opened to
his steady pull. Nothing appeared but a wall of plank! He gave it a push; it
yielded: another door, close-fitting, and without any fastening, flew open,
revealing a small closet or press, and on the opposite side of it a third door.
This he could not at once open. It was secured, however, with a common lock,
which cost him scarcely any trouble. It opened on a little room, of about nine
feet by seven. He went in. It contained nothing but an old-fashioned secretary
or bureau, and a seat like a low music-stool.
"It may have been a
vestry for the priest!" thought Donal; "but it must have been used
later than the chapel, for this desk is not older than the one at The Mains,
which mistress Jean said was made for her grandmother!"
Then how did it get into the
place? There was no other door! Above the bureau was a small window, or what
seemed a window doubtful with dirt; but door there was not! It was not too
large to enter by the oak door, but it could not have got to it along any of
the passages he had come through! It followed that there must, and that not so very
long ago, have been another entrance to the place in which he stood!
He turned to look at the way
he had himself come: it was through a common press of painted deal, filling the
end of the little room, there narrowed to about five feet. When the door in the
back of it was shut, it looked merely a part of the back of the press.
He turned again to the
bureau, with a strange feeling at his heart. The cover was down, and on it lay
some sheets of paper, discoloured with dust and age. A pen lay with them, and
beside was an ink-bottle of the commonest type, the ink in powder and flakes.
He took up one of the sheets. It had a great stain on it. The bottle must have
been overturned! But was it ink? No; it stood too thick on the paper. With a
gruesome shiver Donal wetted his finger and tried the surface of it: a little
came off, a tinge of suspicious brown. There was writing on the paper! What was
it? He held the faded lines close to the candle. They were not difficult to
decipher. He sat down on the stool, and read thus--his reading broken by the
stain: there was no date:--
"My husband for such I
will--blot--are in the sight of God--blot--men why are you so
cruel what--blot--deserve these terrors--blot--in thought have
I--blot--hard upon me to think of another."
Here the writing came below
the blot, and went on unbroken.
"My little one is gone
and I am left lonely oh so lonely. I cannot but think that if you had loved me
as you once did I should yet be clasping my little one to my bosom and you
would have a daughter to comfort you after I am gone. I feel sure I cannot long
survive this--ah there my hand has burst out bleeding again, but do not think I
mind it, I know it was only an accident, you never meant to do it, though you
teased me by refusing to say so--besides it is nothing. You might draw ever
drop of blood from my body and I would not care if only you would not make my
heart bleed so. Oh, it is gone all over my paper and you will think I have done
it to let you see how it bleeds--but I cannot write it all over again it is too
great a labour and too painful to write, so you must see it just as it is. I
dare not think where my baby is, for if I should be doomed never to see her
because of the love I have borne to you and consented to be as you wished if I
am cast out from God because I loved you more than him I shall never see you
again--for to be where I could see you would never be punishment enough for my
sins."
Here the writing stopped:
the bleeding of the hand had probably brought it to a close. The letter had
never been folded, but lying there, had lain there. He looked if he could find
a date; there was none. He held the sheet up to the light, and saw a paper
mark; while close by lay another sheet with merely a date--in the same hand, as
if the writer had been about to commence another in lieu of the letter spoiled.
"Strange!" thought
Donal with himself; "an old withered grief looks almost as pitiful as an
old withered joy!--But who is to say either is withered? Those who look upon
death as an evil, yet regard it as the healer of sorrows! Is it such? No one
can tell how long a grief may last unwithered! Surely till the life heals it!
He is a coward who would be cured of his sorrow by mere lapse of time, by the
mere forgetting of a brain that grows musty with age. It is God alone who can
heal--the God of the dead and of the living! and the dead must find him, or be
miserable for evermore!"
He had not a doubt that the
letter he had read was in the writing of the mother of the present earl's
children.
What was he to do? He had
thought he was looking into matters much older--things over which the
permission of lady Arctura extended; and in truth what he had discovered, or
seen corroborated, was a thing she had a right to know! but whether he ought to
tell her at once he did not yet see. He took up his candle, and with a feeling
of helpless dismay, withdrew to his chamber. But when he reached the door of
it, yielding to a sudden impulse, he turned away, and went farther up the
stair, and out upon the bartizan.
It was a frosty night, and
the stars were brilliant. He looked up and said,
"Oh Saviour of men, thy
house is vaulted with light; thy secret places are secret from excess of light;
in thee is no darkness at all; thou hast no terrible crypts and built-up
places; thy light is the terror of those who love the darkness! Fill my heart
with thy light; let me never hunger or thirst after anything but thy will--that
I may walk in the light, and light not darkness may go forth from me."
As he turned to go in, came
a faint chord from the aeolian harp.
"It sings, brooding
over the very nest of evil deeds!" he thought. "The light eternal,
with keen arrows of radiant victory, will yet at last rout from the souls of
his creatures the demons that haunt them!
"But if there be
creatures of God that have turned to demons, may not human souls themselves
turn to demons? Would they then be victorious over God, too strong for him to
overcome--beyond the reach of repentance?
"How would they live?
By their own power? Then were they Gods!--But they did not make themselves, and
could not live of themselves. If not, then they must live by God's power. How
then should they be beyond his reach?
"If the demons can
never be brought back, then the life of God, the all-pure, goes out to keep
alive, in and for evil, that which is essentially bad; for that which is
irredeemable is essentially bad."
Thus reasoned Donal with
himself, and his reasoning, instead of troubling his faith, caused him to cling
the more to the only One, the sole hope and saviour of the hearts of his men
and women, without whom the whole universe were but a charnel house in which
the ghosts of the dead went about crying, not over the life that was gone from
them, but its sorrows.
He stood and gazed out over
the cold sea. And as he gazed, a shivering surge of doubt, a chill wave of
negation, came rolling over him. He knew that in a moment he would strike out
with the energy of a strong swimmer, and rise to the top of it; but now it was
tumbling him about at its evil will. He stood and gazed--with a dull sense that
he was waiting for his will. Suddenly came the consciousness that he and his
will were one; that he had not to wait for his will, but had to wake--to will,
that is, and do, and so be. And therewith he said to himself:--
"It is neither time,
nor eternity, nor human consolation, nor everlasting sleep, nor the satisfied
judgment, nor attained ambition, even in love itself, that is the cure for
things; it is the heart, the will, the being of the Father. While that remains,
the irremediable, the irredeemable cannot be. If there arose a grief in the
heart of one of his creatures not otherwise to be destroyed, he would take it
into himself, there consume it in his own creative fire--himself bearing the
grief, carrying the sorrow. Christ died--and would die again rather than leave one
heart-ache in the realms of his love--that is, of his creation. 'Blessed are
they who have not seen and yet have believed!'"
Over his head the sky was
full of shining worlds--mansions in the Father's house, built or building.
"We are not at the end
of things," he thought, "but in the beginnings and on the threshold
of creation! The Father is as young as when first the stars of the morning
sang--the Ancient of Days who can never grow old! He who has ever filled the
dull unbelieving nations with food and gladness, has a splendour of delight for
the souls that believe, ever as by their obedience they become capable of
receiving it."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXII. THE CRYPT.">
CHAPTER LXII.
THE CRYPT.
"WHEN are you going
down again to the chapel, Mr. Grant?" said lady Arctura: she was better
now, and able to work.
"I was down last night,
and want to go again this evening by myself--if you don't mind, my lady,"
he answered. "I am sure it will be better for you not to go down till you
are ready to give your orders to have everything cleared away for the light and
air to enter. The damp and closeness of the place are too much for you."
"I think it was rather
the want of sleep that made me ill," she answered; "but you can do
just as you please."
"I thank you for your
confidence, my lady," returned Donal. "I do not think you will repent
it."
"I know I shall
not."
Having some things to do
first, it was late before Donal went down--intent on learning the former main
entrance, and verifying the position of the chapel in the castle.
He betook himself to the end
of the passage under the little gallery, and there examined the signs he had
observed: those must be the outer ends of two of the steps of the great staircase!
they came through, resting on the wall. That end of the chapel, then, adjoined
the main stair. Evidently, too, a door had been built up in the process of
constructing the stair. The chapel then had not been entered from that level
since the building of the stair. Originally there had, most likely, been an
outside stair to this door, in an open court.
After a little more
examination, partial of necessity, from lack of light, he was on his way out,
and already near the top of the mural stair, thinking of the fresh observations
he would take outside in the morning, when behind, overtaking him from the
regions he had left, came a blast of air, and blew out his candle. He
shivered--not with the cold of it, though it did breathe of underground damps and
doubtful growths, but from a feeling of its having been sent after him to make
him go down again--for did it not indicate some opening to the outer air? He
relighted his candle and descended, carefully guarding it with one hand. The
cold sigh seemed to linger about him as he went--gruesome as from a closed
depth, the secret bosom of the castle, into which the light never entered. But,
wherever it came from last, however earthy and fearful, it came first from the
open regions of life, and had but passed through a gloom that life itself must
pass! Could it have been a draught down the pipe of the music-chords? No, for
they would have loosed some light-winged messenger with it! He must search till
he found its entrance below!
He crossed the little
gallery, descended, and went again into the chapel: it lay as still as the tomb
which it was no more. He seemed to miss the presence of the dead, and feel the
place deserted. All round its walls, as far as he could reach or see, he
searched carefully, but could perceive no sign of possible entrance for the
messenger blast. It came again!--plainly through the open door under the
windows. He went again into the passage outside the wall, and the moment he
turned into it, the draught seemed to come from beneath, blowing upwards. He
stooped to examine; his candle was again extinguished. Once more he relighted
it. Searching then along the floor and the foot of the walls, he presently
found, in the wall of the chapel itself, close to the ground, a narrow
horizontal opening: it must pass under the floor of the chapel! All he saw was
a mere slit, but the opening might be larger, and partially covered by the
flooring-slab, which went all the length of the slit! He would try to raise it!
That would want a crowbar! but having got so far, he would not rest till he
knew more! It must be very late and the domestics all in bed; but what hour it
was he could not tell, for he had left his watch in his room. It might be
midnight and he burrowing like a mole about the roots of the old house, or like
an evil thing in the heart of a man! No matter! he would follow up his
search--after what, he did not know.
He crept up, and out of the
castle by his own stair, so to the tool-house. It was locked. But lying near
was a half-worn shovel: that might do! he would have a try with it! Like one in
a dream of ancient ruins, creeping through mouldy and low-browed places, he
went down once more into the entrails of the house.
Inserting the sharp edge of
the worn shovel in the gap between the stone and that next it, he raised it
more readily than he had hoped, and saw below it a small window, whose sill
sloped steeply inward. How deep the place might be, and whether it would be
possible to get out of it again, he must discover before entering. He took a letter
from his pocket, lighted it, and threw it in. It revealed a descent of about
seven feet, into what looked like a cellar. He blew his candle out, put it in
his pocket, got into the window, slid down the slope, and reached his new level
with ease. He then lighted his candle, and looked about him.
His eye first fell on a
large flat stone in the floor, like a gravestone, but without any ornament or
inscription. It was a roughly vaulted place, unpaved, its floor of damp
hard-beaten earth. In the wall to the right of that through which he had
entered, was another opening, low down, like the crown of an arch the rest of
which was beneath the floor. As near as he could judge, it was right under the
built-up door in the passage above. He crept through it, and found himself
under the spiral of the great stair, in the small space at the bottom of its
well. On the floor lay a dust-pan and a house-maid's-brush--and there was the
tiny door at which they were shoved in, after their morning's use upon the
stair! It was open--inwards; he crept through it: he was in the great hall of
the house--and there was one of its windows wide open! Afraid of being by any
chance discovered, he put out his light, and proceeded up the stair in the
dark.
He had gone but a few steps
when he heard the sound of descending feet. He stopped and listened: they
turned into the half-way room. When he reached it, he heard sounds which showed
that the earl was in the closet behind it. Things rushed together in his mind.
He hurried up to lady Arctura's room, thence descended, for the third time that
night--but no farther than the oak door, passed through it, entered the little
chamber, and hastening to the farther end of it, laid his ear against the wall.
Plainly enough he heard the sounds he had expected--those of the dream-walking
rather than sleep-walking earl, moaning, and calling in a low voice of entreaty
after some one whose name did not grow audible to the listener.
"Ah!" thought
Donal, "who would find it hard to believe in roaming and haunting ghosts,
that had once seen this poor man roaming his own house, and haunting that
chamber! How easily I could punish him now, with a lightning blast of
terror!"
It was but a thought; it did
not amount to a temptation; Donal knew he had no right. Vengeance belongs to
the Lord, for he alone knows how to use it.
I do not believe that mere
punishment exists anywhere in the economy of the highest; I think mere
punishment a human idea, not a divine one. But the consuming fire is more
terrible than any punishment invented by riotous and cruel imagination.
Punishment indeed it is--not mere punishment; a power of God for his
creature. Love is God's being; love is his creative energy; they are one: God's
punishments are for the casting out of the sin that uncreates, for the
recreating of the things his love made and sin has unmade.
He heard the lean hands of
the earl go slowly sweeping, at the ends of his long arms, over the wall: he
had seen the thing, else he could hardly have interpreted the sounds; and he
heard him muttering on and on, though much too low for his words to be
distinguishable. Had they been, Donal by this time was so convinced that he had
to do with an evil and dangerous man, that he would have had little scruple in
listening. It is only righteousness that has a right to secrecy, and does not
want it; evil has no right to secrecy, alone intensely desires it, and rages at
being foiled of it; for when its deeds come to the light, even evil has
righteousness enough left to be ashamed of them. But he could remain no longer;
his very soul felt sick within him. He turned hastily away to leave the place.
But carrying his light too much in front, and forgetting the stool, he came
against it and knocked it over, not without noise. A loud cry from the other
side of the wall revealed the dismay he had caused. It was followed by a
stillness, and then a moaning.
He made haste to find
Simmons, and send him to his master. He heard nothing afterwards of the affair.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXIII. THE CLOSET.">
CHAPTER LXIII.
THE CLOSET.
TENDER over lady Arctura,
Donal would ask a question or two of the housekeeper before disclosing what
further he had found. He sought her room, therefore, while Arctura and Davie,
much together now, were reading in the library.
"Did you ever hear
anything about that little room on the stair, mistress Brookes?" he asked.
"I canna say," she
answered--but thoughtfully, "--Bide a wee: auld auntie did mention
something ance aboot--bide a wee--I hae a wullin' memory--maybe I'll min' upo'
't i' the noo!--It was something aboot biggin' up an' takin' doon--something he
was to do, an' something he never did!--I'm sure I canna tell! But gie me time,
an' I'll min' upo' 't! Ance is aye wi' me--only I maun hae time!"
Donal waited, and said not a
word.
"I min' this
much," she said at length, "--that they used to be thegither i' that
room. I min' too that there was something aboot buildin' up ae wa', an' pu'in'
doon anither.--It's comin'--it's comin' back to me!"
She paused again awhile, and
then said:
"All I can recollec',
Mr. Grant, is this: that efter her death, he biggit up something no far frae
that room!--what was't noo?--an' there was something aboot makin' o' the room
bigger! Hoo that could be by buildin' up, I canna think! Yet I feel sure that
was what he did!"
"Would you mind coming
to the place?" said Donal. "To see it might help you to
remember."
"I wull, sir. Come ye
here aboot half efter ten, an' we s' gang thegither."
As soon as the house was
quiet, they went. But Mistress Brookes could recall nothing, and Donal gazed
about him to no purpose.
"What's that?" he
said at last, pointing to the wall on the other side of which was the little
chamber.
Two arches, in chalk, as it
seemed, had attracted his gaze. Light surely was about to draw nigh through the
darkness! Chaos surely was settling a little towards order!
The one arch was drawn
opposite the hidden chamber; the other against the earl's closet, as it had
come to be called in the house--most of the domestics thinking he there said
his prayers. It looked as if there had been an intention of piercing the wall
with such arches, to throw the two small rooms on the other side as recesses
into the larger. But if that had been the intent, what could the building of a
wall, vaguely recollected by mistress Brookes, have been for? That a wall had
been built he did not doubt, for he believed he knew the wall, but why?
"What's that?"
said Donal.
"What?" returned
Mrs. Brookes.
"Those two
arches."
The housekeeper looked at
them thoughtfully for a few moments.
"I canna help
fancyin'," she said slowly, "--yes, I'm sure that's the varra thing
my aunt told me aboot! That's the twa places whaur he was goin' to tak the wall
doon, to mak the room lairger. But I'm sure she said something aboot buildin' a
wall as weel!"
"Look here," said
Donal; "I will measure the distance from the door to the other side of
this first arch.--Now come into the closet behind. Look here! This same
measurement takes us right up to the end of the place! So you see if we were to
open the other arch, it would be into something behind this wall."
"Then this may be the
varra wa' he biggit?"
"I don't doubt it; but
what could he have had it built for, if he was going to open the other wall? I
must think it all over!--It was after his wife's death, you say?"
"Yes, I believe
so."
"One might have thought
he would not care about enlarging the room after she was gone!"
"But, sir, he wasna
jist sic a pattren o' a guidman;" said the housekeeper. "An' what for
mak this room less?"
"May it not have been
for the sake of shutting out, or hiding something?" suggested Donal.
"I do remember a
certain thing!--Curious!--But what then as to the openin' o' 't efter?"
"He has never done
it!" said Donal significantly. "The thing takes shape to me in this
way:--that he wanted to build something out of sight--to annihilate it; but in
order to prevent speculation, he professed the intention of casting the one
room into the other; then built the wall across, on the pretence that it was necessary
for support when the other was broken through--or perhaps that two recesses
with arches would look better; but when he had got the wall built, he put off
opening the arches on one pretext or another, till the thing should be
forgotten altogether--as you see it is already, almost entirely!--I have been
at the back of that wall, and heard the earl moaning and crying on this side of
it!"
"God bless me!"
cried the good woman. "I'm no easy scaret, but that's fearfu' to think
o'!"
"You would not care to
come there with me?"
"No the nicht, sir.
Come to my room again, an' I s' mak ye a cup o' coffee, an' tell ye the
story--it's a' come back to me noo--the thing 'at made my aunt tell me aboot
the buildin' o' this wa'. 'Deed, sir, I hae hardly a doobt the thing was jist
as ye say!"
They went to her room: there
was lady Arctura sitting by the fire!
"My lady!" cried
the housekeeper. "I thoucht I left ye soon' asleep!"
"So I was, I
daresay," answered Arctura; "but I woke again, and finding you had
not come up, I thought I would go down to you. I was certain you and Mr. Grant
would be somewhere together! Have you been discovering anything more?"
Mrs. Brookes gave Donal a
look: he left her to tell as much or as little as she pleased.
"We hae been prowlin'
aboot the hoose, but no doon yon'er, my lady. I think you an' me wad do weel to
lea' that to Mr. Grant!"
"When your ladyship is
quite ready to have everything set to rights," said Donal, "and to
have a resurrection of the chapel, then I shall be glad to go with you again.
But I would rather not even talk more about it just at present."
"As you please, Mr.
Grant," replied lady Arctura. "We will say nothing more till I have
made up my mind. I don't want to vex my uncle, and I find the question rather a
difficult one--and the more difficult that he is worse than usual.--Will you
not come to bed now, mistress Brookes?"
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXIV. THE GARLAND-ROOM.">
CHAPTER LXIV.
THE GARLAND-ROOM.
ALL through the terrible
time, the sense of help and comfort and protection in the presence of the young
tutor, went on growing in the mind of Arctura. It was nothing to her--what
could it be?--that he was the son of a very humble pair; that he had been a
shepherd, and a cow-herd, and a farm labourer--less than nothing. She never
thought of the facts of his life except sympathetically, seeking to enter into
the feelings of his memorial childhood and youth; she would never have known
anything of those facts but for their lovely intimacies of all sorts with Nature--nature
divine, human, animal, cosmical. By sharing with her his emotional history,
Donal had made its facts precious to her; through them he had gathered his
best--by home and by prayer, by mother and father, by sheep and mountains and
wind and sky. And now he was to her a tower of strength, a refuge, a strong
city, the shadow of a great rock in a weary land. She trusted him the more that
he never invited her trust--never put himself before her; for always before her
he set Life, the perfect heart-origin of her and his yet unperfected humanity,
teaching her to hunger and thirst after being righteous like God, with the
assurance of being filled. She had once trusted in Miss Carmichael, not with
her higher being, only with her judgment, and both her judgment and her friend
had misled her. Donal had taught her that obedience, not to man but to God, was
the only guide to holy liberty, and so had helped her to break the bonds of
those traditions which, in the shape of authoritative utterances of this or that
church, lay burdens grievous to be borne upon the souls of men. For Christ,
against all the churches, seemed to her to express Donal's mission. An
air of peace, an atmosphere of summer twilight after the going down of the sun,
seemed to her to precede him and announce his approach with a radiation felt as
rest. She questioned herself nowise about him. Falling in love was a thing
unsuggested to her; if she was in what is called danger, it was of a better
thing.
The next day she did not
appear: mistress Brookes had persuaded her to keep her bed again for a day or
two. There was nothing really the matter with her, she said herself, but she
was so tired she did not care to lift her head from the pillow. She had slept
well, and was troubled about nothing. She sent to beg Mr. Grant to let Davie go
and read to her, and to give him something to read, good for him as well as for
her.
Donal did not see Davie
again till the next morning.
"Oh, Mr. Grant!"
he said, "you never saw anything so pretty as Arkie is in bed! She is so
white, and so sweet! and she speaks with a voice so gentle and low! She was so
kind to me for going to read to her! I never saw anybody like her! She looks as
if she had just said her prayers, and God had told her she should have
everything she wanted."
Donal wondered a little, but
hoped more. Surely she must be finding rest in the consciousness of God! But
why was she so white? Was she going to die? A pang shot to his heart: if she
were to go from the castle, it would be hard to stay in it, even for the sake
of Davie! Donal, no more than Arctura, imagined himself fallen in love: he had
loved once, and his heart had not yet done aching--though more with the memory
than the presence of pain! He was utterly satisfied with what the Father of the
children had decreed, and would never love again! But he did not seek to hide
from himself that the friendship of lady Arctura, and the help she sought and
he gave, had added a fresh and strong interest to his life. At the first dawn
of power in his heart, when he began to make songs in the fields and on the
hills, he had felt that to brighten with true light the clouded lives of
despondent brothers and sisters was the one thing worthest living for:
it was what the Lord came into the world for; neither had his trouble made him
forget it--for more than one week or so: while the pain was yet gnawing
grievously, he woke to it again with self-accusation--almost self-contempt. To
have helped this lovely creature, whose life had seemed lapt in an ever
closer-clasping shroud of perplexity, was a thing to be glad of--not to the day
of his death, but to the never-ending end of his life! was an honour conferred
upon him by the Father, to last for evermore! For he had helped to open a human
door for the Lord to enter! she within heard him knock, but, trying, was unable
to open! To be God's helper with our fellows is the one high calling; the
presence of God in the house the one high condition.
At the end of a week Arctura
was better, and able to see Donal. She had had mistress Brookes's bed moved
into the same room with her own, and had made the dressing-room into a
sitting-room. It was sunny and pleasant--the very place, Donal thought, he
would have chosen for her. The bedroom too, which the housekeeper had persuaded
her to take when she left her own, was one of the largest in the castle--the
Garland-room--old-fashioned, of course, but as cheerful as stateliness would
permit, with gorgeous hangings and great pictures--far from homely, but with
sun in it half the day. Donal congratulated her on the change. She had been
prevented from making one sooner, she said, by the dread of owing any comfort
to circumstance: it might deceive her as to her real condition!
"It could not deceive
God, though," answered Donal, "who fills with righteousness those who
hunger after it. It is pride to refuse anything that might help us to know him;
and of all things his sun-lit world speaks of the father of lights! If that
makes us happier, it makes us fitter to understand him, and he can easily send
what cloud may be needful to temper it. We must not make our own world, inflict
our own punishments, or order our own instruction; we must simply obey the
voice in our hearts, and take lovingly what he sends."
The next day she told him
she had had a beautiful night, full of the loveliest dreams. One of them was,
that a child came out of a grassy hillock by the wayside, called her mamma, and
said she was much obliged to her for taking her off the cold stone, and making
her a butterfly; and with that the child spread out gorgeous and great wings
and soared up to a white cloud, and there sat laughing merrily to her.
Every afternoon Davie read
to her, and thence Donal gained a duty--that of finding suitable pabulum for
the two. He was not widely read in light literature, and it made necessary not
a little exploration in the region of it.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXV. THE WALL.">
CHAPTER LXV.
THE WALL.
ON the day after the last triad
in the housekeeper's parlour, as Donal sat in the schoolroom with Davie--about
noon it was--he became aware that for some time he had been hearing laborious
blows apparently at a great distance: now that he attended, they seemed to be
in the castle itself, deadened by mass, not distance. With a fear gradually
becoming more definite, he sat listening for a few moments.
"Davie," he said,
"run and see what is going on."
The boy came rushing back in
great excitement.
"Oh, Mr. Grant, what do
you think!" he cried. "I do believe my father is after the lost room!
They are breaking down a wall!"
"Where?" asked
Donal, half starting from his seat.
"In the little room
behind the half-way room--on the stair, you know!"
Donal was silent: what might
not be the consequences!
"You may go and see
them at work, Davie," he said. "We shall have no more lessons this
morning.--Was your papa with them?"
"No, sir--at least, I
did not see him. Simmons told me he sent for the masons this morning, and set
them to take the wall down. Oh, thank you, Mr. Grant! It is such fun! I do
wonder what is behind it! It may be a place you know quite well, or a place you
never saw before!"
Davie ran off, and Donal
instantly sped to a corner where he had hidden some tools, thence to lady Arctura's
deserted room, and so to the oak door. He remembered seeing another staple in
the same post, a little lower down: if he could get that out, he would drive it
in beside the remains of the other, so as to hold the bolt of the lock: if the
earl knew the way in, as doubtless he did, he must not learn that another had
found it--not yet at least! As he went down, every blow of the masons pounding
at the wall, seemed in his very ears.
He peeped through the
press-door: they had not yet got through the wall: no light was visible! He
made haste to restore things--only a stool and a few papers--to their exact
positions when first he entered. Close to him on the other side of the
partition, shaking the place, the huge blows were falling like those of a ram
on the wall of a besieged city, of which he was the whole garrison. He stepped
into the press and drew the door after him: with his last glance behind him he
saw, in the faint gleam of light that came with it, a stone fall: he must make
haste: the demolition would go on much faster now; but before they had the
opening large enough to pass, he would have done what he wanted! With a strong
piece of iron for a lever, he drew the staple from the post, then drove it in
astride of the bolt, careful to time his blows to those of the masons. That
done, he ran down to the chapel, gathered what dust he could sweep up from
behind the altar and laid it on its top, restored on the bed, with its own
dust, a little of the outline of what had lain there, dropped the slab to its place
in the floor of the passage, closed the door of the chapel with some difficulty
because of its broken hinge, and ascended.
The sounds of battering had
ceased, and as he passed the oak door he laid his ear to it: some one was in
the place! the lid of the bureau shut with a loud bang, and he heard a lock
turned. The wall could not be half down yet: the earl must have entered the
moment he could get through!
Donal hastened up, and out
of the dreadful place, put the slab in the opening, secured it with a strut
against the opposite side of the recess, and closed the shutters and drew the
curtains of the room; if the earl came up the stair in the wall, found the
stone immovable, and saw no light through any chink about its edges, he would
not suspect it had been displaced!
He went then to lady
Arctura.
"I have a great deal to
tell you," he said, "but at this moment I cannot: I am afraid of the
earl finding me with you!"
"Why should you mind
that?" said Arctura.
"Because I think he is
suspicious about the lost room. He has had a wall taken down this morning.
Please do not let him see you know anything about it. Davie thinks he is set on
finding the lost room: I think he knew all about it long ago. You can ask him
what he has been doing: you must have heard the masons!"
"I hope I shall not
stumble into anything like a story, for if I do I must out with
everything!"
In the afternoon, Davie was
full of the curious little place his father had discovered behind the wall;
but, if that was the lost room, he said, it was not at all worth making such a
fuss about: it was nothing but a big closet, with an old desk-kind of thing in
it!
In the afternoon also, the
earl went to see his niece. It was the first time they met after his rude
behaviour on her proposal to search for the lost room.
"What were you doing
this morning, uncle?" she said. "There was such a thumping and
banging somewhere in the castle! Davie said you were determined, he
thought, to find the lost room."
"Nothing of the kind,
my love," answered the earl. "--I do hope they will not spoil the
stair carrying the stones and mortar down!"
"What was it then,
uncle?"
"Simply this, my dear:
my late wife, your aunt, and I, had a plan for taking that closet behind my
room on the stair into the room itself. In preparation, I had a wall built
across the middle of the closet, so as to divide it and make two recesses of
it, and act also as a buttress to the weakened wall. Then your aunt died, and I
hadn't the heart to open the recesses or do anything more in the matter. So one
half of the closet was cut off, and remained inaccessible. But there had been
left in it an old bureau, containing papers of some consequence, for it was
heavy, and intended to occupy the same position after the arches were opened.
Now, as it happens, I want one of those papers, so the wall has had to come
down again."
"But, uncle, what a
pity!" said Arctura. "Why did you not open the arches? The recesses
would have been so pretty in that room!"
"I am sorry I did not
think of asking you what you would like done about it, my child! The fact is I
never thought of your taking any interest in the matter; I had naturally lost
all mine. You will please to observe, however, I have only restored what I had
myself disarranged--not meddled with anything belonging to the castle!"
"But now you have the
masons here, why not go on, and make a little search for the lost room?"
said Arctura, venturing once more.
"We might pull down the
castle and be none the wiser! Bah! the building up of half the closet may have
given rise to the whole story!"
"Surely, uncle, the
legend is older than that!"
"It may be; you cannot
be sure. Once a going, it would immediately cry back to a remote age. Prove
that any one ever spoke of it before the building of that foolish wall."
"Surely some remember
hearing it long before that!"
"Nothing is more
treacherous than a memory confronted with a general belief," said the
earl, and took his leave.
The next morning Arctura
went to see the alteration. She opened the door of the little room: it was
twice its former size, and two bureaus were standing against the wall! She
peeped into the cupboard at the end of it, but saw nothing there.
That same morning she made
up her mind that she would go no farther at present in regard to the chapel: it
would be to break with her uncle!
In the evening, she
acquainted Donal with her resolve, and he could not say she was wrong. There
was no necessity for opposing her uncle--there might soon come one! He told her
how he had entered the closet from behind, and of the noise he had made the
night before, which had perhaps led to the opening of the place; but he did not
tell her of what he had found on the bureau. The time might come when he must
do so, but now he dared not render her relations with her uncle yet more
uncomfortable; neither was it likely such a woman would consent to marry such a
man as her cousin had shown himself; when that danger appeared, it would be
time to interpose; for the mere succession to an empty title, he was not sure
that he was bound to speak. The branch which could produce such scions, might
well be itself a false graft on the true stem of the family!--if not, what was
the family worth? He must at all events be sure it was his business before he
moved in the matter!
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXVI. PROGRESS AND CHANGE.">
CHAPTER LXVI.
PROGRESS AND CHANGE.
THINGS went on very quietly
for a time. Arctura grew better, resumed her studies, and made excellent
progress. She would have worked harder, but Donal would not let her. He hated
forcing--even with the good will of the plant itself. He believed in a holy,
unhasting growth. God's ways want God's time.
Long after, people would
sometimes say to him--
"That is very well in
the abstract; but in these days of hurry a young fellow would that way be left
ages behind!"
"With God," would
Donal say.
"Tut, tut! the thing
would never work!"
"For your ends,"
Donal would answer, "it certainly would never work; but your ends are not
those of the universe!"
"I do not pretend they
are; but they are the success of the boy."
"That is one of the
ends of the universe; and your reward will be to thwart it for a season. I
decline to make one in a conspiracy against the design of our creator: I would
fain die loyal!"
He was of course laughed at,
and not a little despised, as an extravagant enthusiast. But those who laughed
found it hard to say for what he was enthusiastic. It seemed hardly for
education, when he would even do what he could sometimes to keep a pupil back!
He did not care to make the best of any one! The truth was, Donal's best was so
many miles a-head of theirs, that it was below their horizon altogether. If
there be any relation between time and the human mind, every forcing of human
process, whether in spirit or intellect, is hurtful, a retarding of God's plan.
Lady Arctura's old troubles
were gradually fading into the limbo of vanities. At times, however, mostly
when unwell, they would come in upon her like a flood: what if, after all, God
were the self-loving being theology presented--a being from whom no loving
human heart could but recoil with a holy dislike! what if it was because of a
nature specially evil that she could not accept the God in whom the priests and
elders of her people believed! But again and again, in the midst of profoundest
wretchedness from such doubt, had a sudden flush of the world's beauty--that
beauty which Jesus has told us to consider and the modern pharisee to avoid,
broken like gentlest mightiest sunrise through the hellish fog, and she had
felt a power upon her as from the heart of a very God--a God such as she would
give her life to believe in--one before whom she would cast herself in
speechless adoration--not of his greatness--of that she felt little, but of his
lovingkindness, the gentleness that was making her great. Then would she care
utterly for God and his Christ, nothing for what men said about them: the Lord
never meant his lambs to be under the tyranny of any, least of all the tyranny
of his own most imperfect church! its work is to teach; where it cannot teach,
it must not rule! Then would God appear to her not only true, but real--the
heart of the human, to which she could cling, and so rest. The corruption of all
religion comes of leaving the human, and God as the causing Human, for
something imagined holier. Men who do not see the loveliness of the Truth,
search till they find a lie they can call lovely. What but a human reality
could the heart of man ever love! what else are we offered in Jesus but the
absolutely human? That Jesus has two natures is of the most mischievous
fictions of theology. The divine and the human are not two.
Suddenly, after an absence
of months, reappeared lord Forgue--cheerful, manly, on the best terms with his
father, and plainly willing to be on still better terms with his cousin! He had
left the place a mooning youth; he came back a man of the world--easy in
carriage, courteous in manners, serene in temper, abounding in what seemed the
results of observation, attentive but not too attentive, jolly with Davie,
distant with Donal, polite to all. Donal could hardly receive the evidence of
his senses: he would have wondered more had he known every factor in the
change. All about him seemed to say it should not be his fault if the follies
of his youth remained unforgotten; and his airy carriage sat well upon him.
None the less Donal felt there was no restoration of the charm which had at
first attracted him; that was utterly vanished. He felt certain he had been
going down hill, and was now, instead of negatively, consciously and positively
untrue.
With gradations undefined,
but not unmarked of Donal, as if the man found himself under influences of
which the youth had been unaware, he began to show himself not indifferent to
the attractions of his cousin. He expressed concern that her health was not
what it had been; sought her in her room when she did not appear; professed an
interest in knowing what books she was reading, and what were her studies with
Donal; behaved like a good brother-cousin, who would not be sorry to be
something more.
And now the earl, to the
astonishment of the household, began to appear at table; and, apparently as a
consequence of this, Donal was requested rather than invited to take his meals
with the family--not altogether to his satisfaction, seeing he could not only
read while he ate alone, but could get through more quickly, and have the time
thus saved, for things of greater consequence. His presence made it easier for
lord Forgue to act his part, and the manners he brought to the front left
little to be desired. He bowed to the judgment of Arctura, and seemed to
welcome that of his father, to whom he was now as respectful as moralist could
desire. Yet he sometimes faced a card he did not mean to show: who that is not
absolutely true can escape the mishap!--there was condescension in his
politeness to Donal! and this, had there been nothing else, would have been
enough to revolt Arctura. But in truth he impressed her altogether as a man of
outsides; she felt that she did not see the man he was, but the nearest
approach he could make to the man he would be taken for. He was gracious,
dignified, responsive, kind, amusing, accurate, ready--everything but true. He would
make of his outer man all but what it was meant for--a revelation of the inner.
It was that notwithstanding. He was a man dressed in a man, and his dress was a
revelation of much that he was, while he intended it only to show much that he
was not. No man can help unveiling himself, however long he may escape even his
own detection. There is nothing covered that shall not be revealed. Things were
meant to come out, and be read, and understood, in the face of the universe.
The soul of every man is as a secret book, whose content is yet written on its
cover for the reading of the wise. How differently is it read by the fool,
whose very understanding is a misunderstanding! He takes a man for a God when
on the point of being eaten up of worms! he buys for thirty pieces of silver
him whom the sepulchre cannot hold! Well for those in the world of revelation,
who give their sins no quarter in this!
Forgue had been in Edinburgh
a part of the time, in England another part. He had many things to tell of the
people he had seen, and the sports he had shared in. He had developed and
enlarged a vein of gentlemanly satire, which he kept supplied by the
observation and analysis of the peculiarities, generally weaknesses, of others.
These, as a matter of course, he judged merely by the poor standard of society:
questioned concerning any upon the larger human scale, he could give no account
of them. To Donal's eyes, the man was a shallow pool whose surface brightness
concealed the muddy bottom.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXVII. THE BREAKFAST-ROOM.">
CHAPTER LXVII.
THE BREAKFAST-ROOM.
TWO years before, lady
Arctura had been in the habit of riding a good deal, but after an accident to a
favourite horse for which she blamed herself, she had scarcely ridden at all.
It was quite as much, however, from the influence of Miss Carmichael upon her
spirits, that she had forsaken the exercise. Partly because her uncle was
neither much respected nor much liked, she had visited very little; and after
mental trouble assailed her, growing under the false prescriptions of the
soul-doctor she had called in, she withdrew more and more, avoiding even
company she would have enjoyed, and which would before now have led her to
resume it.
For a time she persisted in
refusing to ride with Forgue. In vain he offered his horse, assuring her that
Davie's pony was quite able to carry him; she had no inclination to ride, she
said. But at last one day, lest she should be guilty of unkindness, she
consented, and so enjoyed the ride--felt, indeed, so much the better for it,
that she did not thereafter so positively as before decline to allow her cousin
to look out for a horse fit to carry her; and Forgue, taking her consent for
granted, succeeded, with the help of the factor, in finding for her a beautiful
creature, just of the sort to please her. Almost at sight of him she agreed to
his purchase.
This put Forgue in great
spirits, and much contentment with himself. He did not doubt that, gaining thus
opportunity so excellent, he would quickly succeed in withdrawing her from the
absurd influence which, to his dismay, he discovered his enemy had in his
absence gained over her. He ought not to have been such a fool, he said to
himself, as to leave the poor child to the temptations naturally arising in
such a dreary solitude! He noted with satisfaction, however, that the parson's
daughter seemed to have forsaken the house. And now at last, having got rid of
the folly that a while possessed him, he was prepared to do his duty by the
family, and, to that end, would make unfaltering use of the fascinations
experience had taught him he was, in a most exceptional degree, gifted with! He
would at once take Arctura's education in his own hands, and give his full
energy to it! She should speedily learn the difference between the assistance
of a gentleman and that of a clotpoll!
He had in England improved
in his riding as well as his manners, and knew at least how a gentleman, if not
how a man, ought to behave to the beast that carried him. Also, having ridden a
good deal with ladies, he was now able to give Arctura not a few hints to the
improvement of her seat, her hand, her courage; nor was there any nearer road,
he judged from what he knew of his cousin, to her confidence and gratitude,
than showing her a better way in a thing.
But thinking that in
teaching her to ride he could make her forget the man who had been teaching her
to live, he was not a little mistaken in the woman he desired to captivate.
He did not yet love her even
in the way he called loving, else he might have been less confident; but he
found her very pleasing. Invigorated by the bright frosty air, the life of the
animal under her, and the exultation of rapid motion, she seemed better in
health, more merry and full of life, than he had ever seen her: he put all down
to his success with her. He was incapable of suspecting how little of it was
owing to him; incapable of believing how much to the fact that she now turned
to the father of spirits without fear, almost without doubt; thought of him as
the root of every delight of the world--at the heart of the horse she rode, in
the wind that blew joy into hers as she swept through its yielding bosom; knew
him as altogether loving and true, the father of Jesus Christ, as like him as
like could be like--more like him than any one else in the universe could be
like another--like him as only eternal son can be like eternal father.
It was no wonder that with
such a well of living water in her heart she should be glad--merry even, and
ready for anything her horse could do! Flying across a field in the very
wildness of pleasure, her hair streaming behind her, and her pale face glowing,
she would now and then take a jump Forgue declared he could not face in cold
blood: he did not know how far from cold her blood was! He began to wonder he
had been such a fool as neglect her for--well, never mind!--and to feel
something that was like love, and was indeed admiration. But for the searing
brand of his past, he might have loved her truly--as a man may, without being
the most exalted of mortals; for in love we are beyond our ordinary selves; the
deep thing in us peers up into the human air, and is of God--therefore cannot
live long in the mephitic air of a selfish and low nature, but sinks again out
of sight.
He was not at his ease with
Arctura; he was afraid of her. When a man is conscious of wrong, knows in his
history what would draw a hideous smudge over the portrait he would present to
the eyes of her he would please, he may well be afraid of her. He makes liberal
allowance for himself, but is not sure she will! And before Forgue lay a social
gulf which he could pass only on the narrow plank of her favour! The more he
was with her, the more he admired her, the more he desired to marry her; the
more satisfied he grew with his own improvement, the more determined he became
that for no poor, unjust scruples would he forgo his happiness. There was but
one trifle to be kept from the world; it might know everything else about him!
and once in possession of the property, who would dispute the title? Then again
he was not certain that his father had not merely invented a threat!
Surely if the fact were such, he would, even in rage diabolic, have kept it to
himself!
Impetuous, and accustomed to
what he counted success, he soon began to make plainer advance toward the end
on which his self-love and cupidity at least were set. But, knowing in a vague
manner how he had carried himself before he went, Arctura, uninfluenced by the
ways of the world, her judgment unwarped, her perception undimmed, her
instincts nice, her personal delicacy exacting, had never imagined he could
approach her on any ground but that of cousinship and a childhood of shared
sports. She had seen that Donal was far from pleased with him, and believed
Forgue knew that she knew he had been behaving badly. Her behaviour to him was indeed
largely based on the fact that he was in disgrace: she was sorry for him.
By and by, however, she
perceived that she had been allowing too much freedom where she was not
prepared to allow more, and so one day declined to go with him. They had not had
a ride for a fortnight, the weather having been unfavourable; and now when a
morning broke into the season like a smile from an estranged friend, she would
not go! He was annoyed--then alarmed, fearing adverse influence. They were
alone in the breakfast-room.
"Why will you not,
Arctura?" he asked reproachfully: "do you not feel well?"
"I am quite well,"
she answered.
"It is such a lovely
day!" he pleaded.
"I am not in the mood.
There are other things in the world besides riding, and I have been wasting my
time--riding too much. I have learnt next to nothing since Larkie came."
"Oh, bother! what have
you to do with learning! Health is the first thing."
"I don't think so--and
learning is good for the health. Besides, I would not be a mere animal for
perfect health!"
"Let me help you then
with your studies."
"Thank you," she
answered, laughing a little, "but I have a good master already! We, that
is Davie and I, are reading Greek and mathematics with Mr. Grant."
Forgue's face flushed.
"I ought to know as
much of both as he does!" he said.
"Ought perhaps!
But you know you do not."
"I know enough to be
your tutor."
"Yes, but I know enough
not to be your pupil!"
"What do you
mean?"
"That you can't
teach."
"How do you know
that?"
"Because you do not
love either Greek or mathematics, and no one who does not love can teach."
"That is nonsense! If I
don't love Greek enough to teach it, I love you enough to teach you,"
said Forgue.
"You are my
riding-master," said Arctura; "Mr. Grant is my master in Greek."
Forgue strangled an
imprecation on Mr. Grant, and tried to laugh, but there was not a laugh inside
him.
"Then you won't ride
to-day?" he said.
"I think not,"
replied Arctura.
She ought to have said she
would not. It is a pity to let doubt alight on decision. Her reply re-opened
the whole question.
"I cannot see what
should induce you to allow that fellow the honour of reading with you!"
said Forgue. "He's a long-winded, pedantic, ill-bred lout!"
"Mr. Grant is my
friend!" said Arctura, and raising her head looked him in the eyes.
"Take my word for it,
you are mistaken in him," he said.
"I neither value nor
ask your opinion of him," returned Arctura. "I merely acquaint you
with the fact that he is my friend."
"Here's the devil and
all to pay!" thought Forgue.
"I beg your
pardon," he said: "you do not know him as I do!"
"Not?--and with so much
better opportunity of judging!"
"He has never played
the dominie with you!" said Forgue foolishly.
"Indeed he has!"
"He has! Confound his
insolence! How?"
"He won't let me study
as I want.--How has he interfered with you?"
"We won't quarrel about
him," rejoined Forgue, attempting a tone of gaiety, but instantly
growing serious. "We who ought to be so much to each other--"
Something told him he had
already gone too far.
"I do not know what you
mean--or rather, I am not willing to think I know what you mean," said
Arctura. "After what took place--"
In her turn she ceased: he
had said nothing!
"Jealous!"
concluded Forgue; "--a good sign!"
"I see he has been
talking against me!" he said.
"If you mean Mr. Grant,
you mistake. He never, so far as I remember, once mentioned you to me."
"I know better!"
"You are rude. He
never spoke of it; but I have seen enough with my own eyes--"
"If you mean that silly
fancy--why, Arctura!--you know it was but a boyish folly!"
"And since then you
have grown a man!--How many months has it taken?"
"I assure you, on the
word of a gentleman, there is nothing in it now. It is all over, and I am
heartily ashamed of it."
A pause of a few seconds
followed: it seemed as many minutes, and unbearable.
"You will come
out with me?" said Forgue: she might be relenting, though she did not look
like it!
"No," she said;
"I will not."
"Well," he
returned, with simulated coolness, "this is rather cavalier treatment, I
must say!--To throw a man over who has loved you so long--and for the sake of a
lesson in Greek!"
"How long, pray, have
you loved me?" said Arctura, growing angry. "I was willing to be
friendly with you, so much so that I am sorry it is no longer possible!"
"You punish me pretty
sharply, my lady, for a trifle of which I told you I was ashamed!" said
Forgue, biting his lip. "It was the merest--"
"I do not wish to hear
anything about it!" said Arctura sternly. Then, afraid she had been
unkind, she added in altered tone: "You had better go and have a gallop.
You may have Larkie if you like."
He turned and left the room.
She only meant to pique him, he said to himself. She had been cherishing her
displeasure, and now she had had her revenge would feel better and be sorry
next! It was a very good morning's work after all! It was absurd to think she
preferred a Greek lesson from a clown to a ride with lord Forgue! Was not she
too a Graeme!
Partly to make
reconciliation the easier, partly because the horse was superior to his own, he
would ride Larkie!
But his reasoning was not so
satisfactory to him as to put him in a good temper, and poor Larkie had to
suffer for his ill-humour. His least movement that displeased him put him in a
rage, and he rode him so foolishly as well as tyrannically that he brought him
home quite lame, thus putting an end for a time to all hope of riding again
with Arctura.
Instead of going and telling
her what he had done, he sent for the farrier, and gave orders that the mishap
should not be mentioned.
A week passed, and then
another; and as he could say nothing about riding, he was in a measure
self-banished from Arctura's company. A furious jealousy began to master him.
He scorned to give place to it because of the insult to himself if he allowed a
true ground for it. But it gradually gained power. This country bumpkin, this
cow-herd, this man of spelling-books and grammars, to come between his cousin
and him! Of course he was not so silly as imagine for a moment she cared for
him!--that she would disgrace herself by falling in love with a fellow just
loosed from the plough-tail! She was a Graeme, and could never be a traitor to
her blood! If only he had not been such an infernal fool! A vulgar little thing
without an idea in her head! So unpleasant--so disgusting at last with her
love-making! Nothing pleased her but hugging and kissing!--That was how he
spoke to himself of the girl he had been in love with!
Damn that schoolmaster! She
would never fall in love with him, but he might prevent her from falling in
love with another! No attractions could make way against certain
prepossessions! The girl had a fancy for being a saint, and the lout burned
incense to her! So much he gathered from Davie. His father must get rid
of the fellow! If he thought he was doing so well with Davie, why not send the
two away together till things were settled?
But the earl thought it
would be better to win Donal. He counselled him that every Grant was lord
Seafield's cousin, and every highlander an implacable enemy where his pride was
hurt. His lordship did not reflect that, if what he said were true of Donal, he
must have left the castle long ago. There was but one thing would have made it
impossible for Donal to remain--interference, namely, between him and his
pupil.
Forgue did not argue with
his father. He had given that up. At the same time, if he had told all that had
passed between him and Donal, the earl would have confessed he had advised an
impossibility.
Forgue took a step in a very
different direction: he began to draw to himself the good graces of Miss Carmichael:
he did not know how little she could serve him. Without being consciously
insincere, she flattered him, and speedily gained his confidence. Well
descended on the mother-side, she had grown up fit, her father said, to adorn
any society: with a keen appreciation of the claims and dignities of the
aristocracy, she was well able to flatter the prejudices she honoured and
shared in. Careful not to say a word against his cousin, she made him feel more
and more that his chief danger lay in the influence of Donal. She fanned thus
his hatred of the man who first came between him and his wrath; next, between
him and his "love;" and last, between him and his fortunes.
If only Davie would fall
ill, and require change of air! But Davie was always in splendid health!
Now that he saw himself in
such danger of failing, he fancied himself far more in love with Arctura than
he was. And as he got familiarized with the idea of his illegitimacy, although
he would not assent to it, he made less and less of it--which would have been a
proof to any other than himself that he believed it. In further sign of the
same, he made no inquiry into the matter--did not once even question his father
about it. If it was true, he did not want to know it: he would treat his lack
of proof as ignorance, and act as with the innocence of ignorance! A fellow
must take for granted what was commonly believed! At last, and the last was not
long in arriving, he almost ceased to trouble himself about it.
His father laughed at his
fear of failure with Arctura, but at times contemplated the thing as an awful
possibility--not that he loved Forgue much. The only way fathers in sight of
the grave can fancy themselves holding on to the things they must leave, is in
their children; but lord Morven had a stronger and better reason for his
unrighteousness: in a troubled, self-reproachful way, he loved the memory of
their mother, and through her cared even for Forgue more than he knew. They
were also his own as much as if he had been legally married to her! For the
relation in which they stood to society, he cared little so long as it
continued undiscovered. He enjoyed the idea of stealing a march on society, and
seeing the sons he had left at such a disadvantage behind him, ruffling it, in
spite of absurd law, with the foolish best. From the grave he would so have his
foot on the neck of his enemy Law!--he was one of the many who can rejoice in
even a stolen victory. Nor would he ever have been the fool to let the truth
fly, except under the reaction of evil drugs, and the rush of fierce wrath at
the threatened ruin of his cherished scheme.
Arctura thenceforth avoided
her cousin as much as she could--only remembering that the house was hers, and
she must not make him feel he was not welcome to use it. They met at meals, and
she tried to behave as if nothing unpleasant had happened and things were as
before he went away.
"You are very cruel,
Arctura," he said one morning he met her in the terrace avenue.
"Cruel?" returned
Arctura coldly; "I am not cruel. I would not willingly hurt anyone."
"You hurt me much; you
give me not a morsel, not a crumb of your society!"
"Percy," said
Arctura, "if you will be content to be my cousin, we shall get on well
enough; but if you are set on what cannot be--once for all, believe me, it is
of no use. You care for none of the things I live for! I feel as if we belonged
to different worlds, so little have we in common. You may think me hard, but it
is better we should understand each other. If you imagine that, because I have
the property, you have a claim on me, be sure I will never acknowledge it. I
would a thousand times rather you had the property and I were in my
grave!"
"I will be anything, do
anything, learn anything you please!" cried Forgue, his heart aching with
disappointment.
"I know what such
submission is worth!" said Arctura. "I should be everything till we
were married, and then nothing! You dissemble, you hide even from yourself, but
you are not hard to read."
Perhaps she would not have
spoken just so severely, had she not been that morning unusually annoyed with
his behaviour to Donal, and at the same time specially pleased with the calm,
unconsciously dignified way in which Donal took it, casting it from him as the
rock throws aside the sea-wave: it did not concern him! The dull world has got
the wrong phrase: it is he who resents an affront who pockets it! he who takes
no notice, lets it lie in the dirt.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXVIII. LARKIE.">
CHAPTER LXVIII.
LARKIE.
IT was a lovely day in
spring.
"Please, Mr.
Grant," said Davie, "may I have a holiday?"
Donal looked at him with a
little wonder: the boy had never before made such a request! But he answered
him at once.
"Yes, certainly, Davie.
But I should like to know what you want it for."
"Arkie wants very much
to have a ride to-day. She says Larkie--I gave him his name, to rime with Arkie--she
says Larkie will forget her, and she does not wish to go out with Forgue, so
she wants me to go with her on my pony."
"You will take good
care of her, Davie?"
"I will take
care of her, but you need not be anxious about us, Mr. Grant. Arkie is a
splendid rider, and much pluckier than she used to be!"
Donal did, however--he could
not have said why--feel a little anxiety. He repressed it as unfaithfulness,
but it kept returning. He could not go with them--there was no horse for him,
and to go on foot, would, he feared, spoil their ride. He was so much afraid
also of presuming on lady Arctura's regard for him, that he would have shrunk
from offering had it been more feasible. He got a book, and strolled into the
park, not even going to see them off: Forgue might be about the stable, and
make things unpleasant!
Had Forgue been about the
stable, he would, I think, have somehow managed to prevent the ride, for
Larkie, though much better, was not yet cured of his lameness. Arctura did not
know he had been lame, or that he had therefore been very little exercised, and
was now rather wild, with a pastern-joint far from equal to his spirit. There
was but a boy about the stable, who either did not understand, or was afraid to
speak: she rode in a danger of which she knew nothing. The consequence was
that, jumping the merest little ditch in a field outside the park, they had a
fall. The horse got up and trotted limping to the stable; his mistress lay
where she fell. Davie, wild with misery, galloped home. From the height of the
park Donal saw him tearing along, and knew something was amiss. He ran, got
over the wall, found the pony's track, and following it, came where Arctura
lay.
There was a little clear
water in the ditch: he wet his handkerchief, and bathed her face. She came to
herself, opened her eyes with a faint smile, and tried to raise herself, but
fell back helpless, and closed her eyes again.
"I believe I am
hurt!" she murmurmed. "I think Larkie must have fallen!"
Donal would have carried
her, but she moaned so, that he gave up the idea at once. Davie was gone for
help; it would be better to wait! He pulled off his coat and laid it over her,
then kneeling, raised her head a little from the damp ground upon his arm. She
let him do as he pleased, but did not open her eyes.
They had not long to wait.
Several came running, among them lord Forgue. He fell beside his cousin on his
knees, and took her hand in his. She neither moved nor spoke. As instead of
doing anything he merely persisted in claiming her attention, Donal saw it was
for him to give orders.
"My lady is much
hurt," he said: "one of you go at once for the doctor; the others
bring a hand-barrow--I know there is one about the place. Lay the squab of a
sofa on it, and make haste. Let mistress Brookes know."
"Mind your own
business," said Forgue.
"Do as Mr. Grant tells
you," said lady Arctura, without opening her eyes.
The men departed running.
Forgue rose from his knees, and walked slowly to a little distance, where he
stood gnawing his lip.
"My lord," said
Donal, "please run and fetch a little brandy for her ladyship. She has
fainted."
What could Forgue do but
obey! He started at once, and with tolerable speed. Then Arctura opened her
eyes, and smiled.
"Are you suffering
much, my lady?" asked Donal.
"A good deal," she
answered, "but I don't mind it.--Thank you for not leaving me.--It is no
more than I can bear, only bad when I try to move."
"They will not be long
now," he said.
Again she closed her eyes,
and was silent. Donal watched the sweet face, which a cloud of suffering would
every now and then cross, and lifted up his heart to the saviour of men.
He saw them coming with the
extemporized litter, behind them mistress Brookes, with Forgue and one of the
maids.
When she came up, she
addressed herself in silence to Donal. He told her he feared her ladyship's
spine was hurt, After his direction she put her hands under her and the maid
took her feet, while he, placing his other arm under her shoulders, and gently
rising, raised her body. Being all strong and gentle, they managed the moving well,
and laid her slowly on the litter. Except a moan or two, and a gathering of the
brows, she gave no sign of suffering; nothing to be called a cry escaped her.
Donal at the head and a
groom at the foot, lifted the litter, and with ordered step, started for the
house. Once or twice she opened her eyes and looked up at Donal, then, as if
satisfied, closed them again. Before they reach the house the doctor met them,
for they had to walk slowly.
Forgue came behind in a
devilish humour. He knew that first his ill usage of Larkie, and then his
preventing anything being said about it, must have been the cause of the
accident; but he felt with some satisfaction--for self simply makes devils of
us--that if she had not refused to go out with him, it would not have happened;
he would not have allowed her to mount Larkie. "Served her right!" he
caught himself saying once, and was ashamed--but presently said it again. Self
is as full of worms as it can hold; God deliver us from it!
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXIX. THE SICK-CHAMBER.">
CHAPTER LXIX.
THE SICK-CHAMBER.
SHE was carried to her room
and laid on her bed. The doctor requested Mrs. Brookes and Donal to remain, and
dismissed the rest, then proceeded to examine her. There were no bones broken,
he said, but she must be kept very quiet. The windows must be darkened, and she
must if possible sleep. She gave Donal a faint smile, and a pitiful glance, but
did not speak. As he was following the doctor from the room, she made a sign to
Mrs. Brookes with her eyes that she wanted to speak to him.
He came, and bent over to
hear, for she spoke very feebly.
"You will come and see
me, Mr. Grant?"
"I will, indeed, my
lady."
"Every day?"
"Yes, most
certainly," he replied.
She smiled, and so dismissed
him. He went with his heart full.
A little way from the door
stood Forgue, waiting for him to come out. He had sent the doctor to his
father. Donal passed him with a bend of the head. He followed him to the
schoolroom.
"It is time this farce
was over, Grant!" he said.
"Farce, my lord!"
repeated Donal indignantly.
"These attentions to my
lady."
"I have paid her no
more attention than I would your lordship, had you required it," answered
Donal sternly.
"That would have been
convenient doubtless! But there has been enough of humbug, and now for an end
to it! Ever since you came here, you have been at work on the mind of that
inexperienced girl--with your damned religion!--for what end you know best! and
now you've half killed her by persuading her to go out with you instead of me!
The brute was lame and not fit to ride! Any fool might have seen that!"
"I had nothing to do
with her going, my lord. She asked Davie to go with her, and he had a holiday
on purpose."
"All very fine,
but--"
"My lord, I have told
you the truth, but not to justify myself: you must be aware your opinion is of
no value in my eyes! But tell me one thing, my lord: if my lady's horse was
lame, how was it she did not know? You did!"
Forgue thought Donal knew
more than he did, and was taken aback.
"It is time the place
was clear of you!" he said.
"I am your father's
servant, not yours," answered Donal, "and do not trouble myself as to
your pleasure concerning me. But I think it is only fair to warn you that,
though you cannot hurt me, nothing but honesty can take you out of my
power."
Forgue turned on his heel,
went to his father, and told him he knew now that Donal was prejudicing
the mind of lady Arctura against him; but not until it came in the course of
the conversation, did he mention the accident she had had.
The earl professed himself
greatly shocked, got up with something almost like alacrity from his sofa, and
went down to inquire after his niece. He would have compelled Mrs. Brookes to
admit him, but she was determined her lady should not be waked from a sleep
invaluable to her, for the sake of receiving his condolements, and he had to
return to his room without gaining anything.
If she were to go, the
property would be his, and he could will it as he pleased--that was, if she
left no will. He sent for his son and cautioned him over and over to do nothing
to offend her, but wait: what might come, who could tell! It might prove a
serious affair!
Forgue tried to feel shocked
at the coolness of his father's speculation, but allowed that, if she was
determined not to receive him as her husband, the next best thing, in the
exigence of affairs, would certainly be that she should leave a world for whose
uses she was ill fitted, and go where she would be happier. The things she
would then have no farther need of, would be welcome to those to whom by right
they belonged more really than to her! She was a pleasant thing to look upon,
and if she had loved him he would rather have had the property with than
without her; but there was this advantage, he would be left free to choose!
Lady Arctura lay suffering,
feverish, and restless. Mrs. Brookes would let no one sit up with her but
herself. The earl would have sent for "a suitable nurse!" a friend of
his in London would find one! but she would not hear of it. And before the
night was over she had greater reason still for refusing to yield her post: it
was evident her young mistress was more occupied with Donal Grant than with the
pain she was suffering! In her delirium she was constantly desiring his
presence. "I know he can help me," she would say; "he is a
shepherd, like the Lord himself!" And mistress Brookes, though by no means
devoid of the prejudices of the rank with which her life had been so much
associated, could not but allow that a nobler life must be possible with one
like Donal Grant than with one like lord Forgue.
In the middle of the night
Arctura became so unquiet, that her nurse, calling the maid she had in a room
near, flew like a bird to Donal, and asked him to come down. He had but
partially undressed, thinking his help might be wanted, and was down almost as
soon as she. Ere he came, however, she had dismissed the maid.
Donal went to the bedside.
Arctura was moaning and starting, sometimes opening her eyes, but
distinguishing nothing. Her hand lay on the counterpane: he laid his upon it.
She gave a sigh as of one relieved; a smile came flickering over her face, and
she lay still for some time. Donal sat down beside her, and watched. The moment
he saw her begin to be restless or look distressed, he laid his hand upon hers;
she was immediately quiet, and lay for a time as if she knew herself safe. When
she seemed about to wake, he withdrew.
So things went on for many
nights. Donal slept instead of working when his duties with Davie were over,
and lay at night in the corridor, wrapt in his plaid. For even after Arctura
began to recover, her nights were sorely troubled, and her restoration would
have been much retarded, had not Donal been near to make her feel she was not
abandoned to the terrors she passed through.
One night the earl,
wandering about in the anomalous condition of neither ghost nor genuine mortal,
came suddenly upon what he took for a huge animal in wait to devour. He was not
terrified, for he was accustomed to such things, and thought at first it was
not of this world: he had no doubt of the reality of his visions, even when he
knew they were invisible to others, and even in his waking moments had begun to
believe in them as much as in the things then evident to him--or rather,
perhaps, to disbelieve equally in both. He approached to see what it was, and
stood staring down upon the mass. Gently it rose and confronted him--if
confronting that may be called where the face remained so undefined--for Donal
took care to keep his plaid over his head: he had hope in the probable
condition of the earl! He turned from him and walked away.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXX. A PLOT.">
CHAPTER LXX.
A PLOT.
BUT his lordship had his
suspicions, and took measures to confirm or set them at rest--with the result
that he concluded Donal madly in love with his niece, and unable, while she was
ill, to rest anywhere but, with the devotion of a savage, outside her door: if
he did not take precautions, the lout would oust the lord! Ever since Donal
spoke so plainly against his self-indulgence, he had not merely hated but
feared the country lad. He recognized that Donal feared nothing, had no respect
of persons, would speak out before the world. He was doubtful also whether he
had not allowed him to know more than it was well he should know. It was time
to get rid of him--only it must be done cautiously, with the appearance of a
good understanding! If he had him out of the house before she was able to see
him again, that would do! And if in the meantime she should die, all would be
well! His distrust, once roused, went farther than that of his son. He had not
the same confidence in blue blood; he knew a few things more than
Forgue--believed it quite possible that the daughter of a long descent of lords
and ladies should fall in love with a shepherd-lad. And as no one could tell
what might have to be done if the legal owner of the property persisted in
refusing her hand to the rightful owner of it, the fellow might be seriously in
the way!
Arctura slowly recovered.
She had not yet left her room, but had been a few hours on the couch every day
for a fortnight, and the doctor, now sanguine of her final recovery, began to
talk of carrying her to the library. The earl, who never suspected that Mrs.
Brookes, having hitherto kept himself from her room, would admit the tutor, the
moment he learned that the library was in view for her, decided that there must
be no more delay. He had by this time contrived a neat little plan.
He sent for Donal. He had
been thinking, the earl said, that he must want a holiday: he had not seen his
parents since he came to the castle! and he had been thinking besides, how
desirable it was that Davie should see some other phases of life than those to
which he had hitherto been accustomed. There was great danger of boys brought
up in his position getting narrow, and careless of the lives and feelings of
their fellowmen! He would take it as a great kindness if Donal, who had a
regard to the real education of his pupil, would take him to his home,
and let him understand the ways of life among the humbler classes of the
nation--so that, if ever he went into parliament, he might have the advantage
of knowing the heart of the people for whom he would have to legislate.
Donal listened, and could
not but agree with the remarks of his lordship. In himself he had not the least
faith--wondered indeed which of them thought the other the greater fool to
imagine that after all that had passed Donal would place any confidence in what
the earl said; but he listened. What lord Morven really had in his mind, he
could not surmise; but not the less to take Davie to his father and mother was
a delightful idea. The boy was growing fast, and had revealed a faculty quite
rare in one so young, for looking to the heart of things, and seeing the
relation of man to man; therefore such a lesson as the earl proposed would
indeed be invaluable to him! Then again, this faculty had been opened in him
through a willing perception of those eternal truths, in a still higher
relation of persons, which are open only to the childlike nature; whence he
would be especially fitted for such company as that of his father and mother,
who could now easily receive the boy as well as himself, since their house and
their general worldly condition had been so much bettered by their friend, sir
Gibbie! With them Davie would see genuine life, simplicity, dignity, and
unselfishness--the very embodiment of the things he held constantly before him!
There might be some other reason behind the earl's request which it would be
well for him to know; but he would sooner discover that by a free consent than
by hanging back: anything bad it could hardly be! He shrank indeed from leaving
lady Arctura while she was yet so far from well, but she was getting well much
faster now: for a fortnight there had been no necessity for his presence to
soothe her while she slept. Neither did she yet know, so far, at least, as he
or mistress Brookes was aware, that he had ever been near her in the night! It
was well also because of the position of things between him and lord Forgue,
that he should be away for a while: it would give a chance for that foolish
soul to settle down, and let common sense assume the reins, while yet the
better coachman was not allowed to mount the box! He had, of course, heard
nothing of the strained relations between him and lady Arctura; he might
otherwise have been a little more anxious. For the earl, Davie, he thought,
would be a kind of pledge or hostage--in regard of what, he could not specify;
but, though he little suspected what such a man was capable of sacrificing to
gain a cherished end, some security for him, some hold over him, seemed to
Donal not undesirable.
When Davie heard the
proposal, he was wild with joy. Actually to see the mountains, and the sheep,
and the colleys, of which Donal had told him such wonderful things! To be out
all night, perhaps, with Donal and the dogs and the stars and the winds!
Perhaps a storm would come, and he would lie in Donal's plaid under some great
rock, and hear the wind roaring around them, but not able to get at them! And
the sheep would come and huddle close up to them, and keep them warm with their
woolly sides! and he would stroke their heads and love them! Davie was no
longer a mere child--far from it; but what is loveliest in the child's heart
was only the stronger in him; and the prospect of going with Donal was a thing
to be dreamed of day and night till it came! Nor were the days many before
their departure was definitely settled.
The earl would have Mr.
Grant treat his pupil precisely as one of his own standing: he might take him
on foot if he pleased!
The suggestion was eagerly
accepted by both. They got their boxes ready for the carrier, packed their
wallets, and one lovely morning late in spring, just as summer was showing her
womanly face through its smiles and tears, they set out together.
It was with no small dismay
that Arctura heard of the proposal. She said nothing, however--only when Donal
came to take his leave she broke down a little.
"We shall often wish,
Davie and I, that you were with us, my lady," he said.
"Why?" she asked,
unable to say more.
"Because we shall often
feel happy, and what then can we do but wish you shared our happiness!"
She burst into tears, and
presently was able to speak.
"Don't think me
silly," she said. "I know God is with me, and as soon as you are gone
I will go to him to comfort me. But I cannot help feeling as if you were
leaving me like a lamb among wolves. I can give no reason for it; I only feel
as if some danger were near me. But I have you yet, mistress Brookes: God and
you will take care of me!--Indeed, if I hadn't you," she added, laughing
through her tears, "I should run away with Mr. Grant and Davie!"
"If I had known you
felt like that," said Donal, "I would not have gone. Yet I hardly see
how I could have avoided it, being Davie's tutor, and bound to do as his father
wishes with him. Only, dear lady Arctura, there is no chance in this or in
anything! We will not forget you, and in three weeks or a month we shall be
back."
"That is a long
time," said Arctura, ready to weep again.
Is it necessary to say she
was not a weak woman? It is not betrayal of feeling, but avoidance of duty,
that constitutes weakness. After an illness he has borne like a hero, a strong
man may be ready to weep like a child. What the common people of society think
about strength and weakness, is poor stuff, like the rest of their wisdom.
She speedily recovered her
composure, and with the gentlest smile bade Donal good-bye. She was in her
sitting-room next the state-chamber where she now slept; the sun was shining in
at the open window, and with it came the song of a little bird, clear and
sweet.
"You hear him,"
said Donal. "--how he trusts God without knowing it! We are made
able to trust him knowing in whom we believe! Ah, dear lady Arctura! no heart
even yet can tell what things God has in store for them who will just let him
have his way with them. Good-bye. Write to me if anything comes to you that I
can help you in. And be sure I will make haste to you the moment you let me
know you want me."
"Thank you, Mr. Grant:
I know you mean every word you say! If I need you, I will not hesitate to send
for you--only if you come, it will be as my friend, and not--"
"It will be as your
servant, not lord Morven's," said Donal. "I quite understand. Good
bye. The father of Jesus Christ, who was so sure of him, will take care of you:
do not be afraid."
He turned and went; he could
no longer bear the look of her eyes.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXI. GLASHGAR.">
CHAPTER LXXI.
GLASHGAR.
OUT of Arctura's sight Donal
had his turn of so-called weakness!
The day was a glorious one,
and Davie, full of spirits, could not understand why he seemed so unlike
himself.
"Arkie would scold you,
Mr. Grant!" he said.
Donal avoided the town, and
walked a long way round to get into the road beyond it, his head bent as if he
were pondering a pain. At moments he felt as if he must return at once, and
refuse to leave the castle for any reason. But he could not see that it was the
will of God he should do so. A presentiment is not a command. A prophecy may
fail of the least indication of duty. Hamlet defying augury is the consistent
religious man Shakspere takes pains to show him. A presentiment may be true,
may be from God himself, yet involve no reason why a man should change his way,
should turn a step aside from the path before him. St. Paul received warning
after warning on his road to Jerusalem that bonds and imprisonment awaited him,
and these warnings he knew came from the spirit of prophecy, but he heeded them
only to set his face like a flint. He knew better than imagine duty determined
by consequences, or take foresight for direction. There is a higher guide, and
he followed that. So did Donal now. Moved to go back, he did not go
back--neither afterwards repented that he did not.
I will not describe the
journey. Suffice it to say that, after a few days of such walking as befitted
an unaccustomed boy, they climbed the last hill, crossed the threshold of
Robert Grant's cottage, and were both clasped in the embrace of Janet. For
Davie rushed into the arms of Donal's mother, and she took him to the same
heart to which she had taken wee sir Gibbie: the bosom of the peasant woman was
indeed one to fee to.
Then followed delights which
more than equalled the expectations of Davie. One of them was seeing how Donal
was loved. Another was a new sense of freedom: he had never imagined such
liberty as he now enjoyed. It was as if God were giving it to him. fresh out of
his sky, his mountains, his winds. Then there was the twilight on the
hill-side, with the sheep growing dusky around him; when Donal would talk about
the shepherd of the human sheep; and hearing him Davie felt not only that there
was once, but that there is now a man altogether lovely--the heart of all
beauty everywhere--a man who gave himself up to his perfect father and his
father's most imperfect children, that he might bring his brothers and sisters
home to their father; for all his delight is in his father and his father's
children. He showed him how the heart of Jesus was, all through, the heart of a
son, a son that adored his perfect father; and how if he had not had his
perfect son to help him, God could not have made any of us, could never have
got us to be his little sons and daughters, loving him with all our might. Then
Davie's heart would glow, and he would feel ready to do whatever that son might
want him to do; and Donal hoped, and had good ground for hoping, that, when the
hour of trial came, the youth would be able to hold, not merely by the unseen,
but by the seemingly unpresent and unfelt, in the name of the eternally true.
Donal's youth began to seem
far behind him. All bitterness was gone out of his memories of lady Galbraith.
He loved her tenderly, but was pleased she should be Gibbie's.
How much of this happy
change was owing to his interest in lady Arctura he did not inquire: greatly
interested in her--more in very important ways than he had ever been in lady
Galbraith--he was so jealous of his heart, shrank so much from the danger of
folly, knew so well how small an amount of yielding might unfit him for the
manly and fresh performance of his duties--among which came first a due regard
for her well-being lest he should himself fail or mislead her--that he often
turned his thoughts into another channel, lest in that they should run too
swiftly, deepen it too fast, and go far to imprison themselves in another
agony.
To lady Galbraith he
confided his uneasiness about lady Arctura--not that he could explain--he could
only confess himself infected with her uneasiness, and the rather that he knew
better than she the nature of those with whom she might have to cope. If Mrs.
Brookes had not been there, he dared not have come away, he said, leaving her with
such a dread upon her.
Sir Gibbie listened
open-mouthed to the tale of the finding of the lost chapel, hidden away because
it held the dust of the dead, and perhaps sometimes their wandering ghosts.
They assured him that, if he
would bring lady Arctura to them, they would take care of her: had she not
better give up the weary property, they said, and come and live with them, and
be free as the lark? But Donal said, that, if God had given her a property, he
would not have her forsake her post, but wait for him to relieve her. She must
administer her own kingdom ere she could have an abundant entrance into his!
Only he wished he were near her again to help her!
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXII. SENT, NOT CALLED.">
CHAPTER LXXII.
SENT, NOT CALLED.
HE had been at home about
ten days, during which not a word had come to Davie or himself from the castle,
and was beginning to grow, not perhaps anxious, but hungry for news of lady
Arctura, when from a sound sleep he started suddenly awake one midnight to find
his mother by his bedside: she had roused him with difficulty.
"Laddie," she
said, "I'm thinkin ye're wantit."
"Whaur am I wantit,
mother?" he asked, rubbing his eyes, but with anxiety already throbbing at
his heart.
"At the castle,"
she replied.
"Hoo ken ye that?"
he asked.
"It wad be ill tellin'
ye," she answered. "But gien I was you, Donal, I wad be aff afore the
day brak, to see what they're duin' wi' yon puir leddy at the muckle place ye
left. My hert's that sair aboot her, I canna rest a moment till I hae ye awa'
upo' the ro'd til her!"
Long before his mother had
ended, Donal was out of bed, and hurrying on his clothes. He had the
profoundest faith in whatever his mother said. Was it a vision she had had? He
had never been told she had the second sight! It might have been only a dream,
or an impression so deep she must heed it! One thing was plain: there was no
time to ask questions! It was enough that his mother said "Go;" more
than enough that it was for lady Arctura! How quickest could he go? There were
horses at sir Gibbie's: he would make free with one! He put a crust of bread in
his pocket, and set out running. There was a little moonlight, enough for one
who knew every foot of the way; and in half an hour of swift descent, he was at
the stable door of Glashruach.
Finding himself unable to
rouse anyone, he crept through a way he knew, opened the door, without a
moment's hesitation saddled and bridled sir Gibbie's favourite mare, led her
out, and mounted her.
Safe in the saddle, with four
legs busy under him, he had time to think, and began to turn over in his mind
what he must do. But he soon saw there was no planning anything till he knew
what was the matter--of which he had dreadful forebodings. His imagination
started and spurred by fear, he thought of many dread possibilities concerning
which he wondered that he had never thought of them before: if he had he could
not have left the castle! What might not a man in the mental and moral
condition of the earl, unrestrained by law or conscience, risk to secure the
property for his son? Might he not poison her, smother her, kill her somehow,
anyhow that was safest? Then rushed into his mind what the housekeeper had told
him of his cruelty to his wife: a man like that, no longer feeling, however
knowing the difference between right and wrong, hardly knowing the
difference between dreaming a thing and doing the thing, was no fitter member
of a family than any devil in or out of hell! He would have blamed himself
bitterly had he not been sure he was not following his own will in going away.
If there were a better way it had not been intended he should take it, else it
would have been shown him! But now he would be restrained by no delicacy
towards the earl: whatever his hand found to do he would do, regardless of
appearances! If he could not reach lady Arctura, he would seek the help of the
law, tell what he knew, and get a warrant of search. He dared not think what he
dreaded, but he would trust nothing but seeing her with his own eyes, and hearing
from her own mouth that all was well--which could not be, else why should his
mother have sent him to her? Doubtless the way would unfold before him as he
went on; but if everything should seem to go against him, he would yet say with
sir Philip Sidney that, "since a man is bound no farther to himself than
to do wisely, chance is only to trouble them that stand upon chance." If
his plans or attempts should one after the other fail, "there's a divinity
that shapes our ends, rough-hew them how we will"! So he rode on, careful
over his mare, lest much haste should be little speed. The animal was strong
and in good condition, and by the time Donal had seen the sun rise, ascend the
heavens, and go half-way down their western slope, and had stopped three times to
refresh the mare, he found himself, after much climbing and descent, on a good
level road that promised by nightfall to bring him to the place of his desire.
But the mare was now getting
tired, and no wonder, for she had had more than a hard day's work. Donal
dismounted every now and then to relieve her, that he might go the faster when
he mounted again, comforting himself that in the true path the delays are as
important as the speed; for the hour is the point, not the swiftness: an hour
too soon may even be more disastrous than an hour too late! He would arrive at
the right time for him whose ways are not as our ways inasmuch as they are
greatly better! The sun went down and the stars came out, and the long twilight
began. But before he was a mile farther he became aware that the sky had
clouded over, the stars had vanished, and rain was at hand. The day had been
sultry, and relief was come. Lightning flamed out, and darkness full of thunder
followed. The storm was drawing nearer, but his mare, though young and
high-spirited, was too weary to be frightened; the rain refreshed both, and
they made a little more speed. But it was dark night, with now grumbling now
raging storm, before they came where, had it been light, Donal would have
looked to see the castle.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXIII. IN THE NIGHT.">
CHAPTER LXXIII.
IN THE NIGHT.
WHEN he reached the town, he
rode into the yard of the Morven Arms, and having found a sleepy ostler, gave
up his mare: he would be better without her at the castle!--whither he was
setting out to walk when the landlord appeared.
"We didna luik to see
you, sir, at this time!" he said.
"Why not?"
returned Donal.
"We thoucht ye was awa'
for the simmer, seein' ye tuik the yoong gentleman wi' ye, an' the yerl himsel'
followt!"
"Where is he
gone?" asked Donal.
"Oh! dinna ye ken, sir?
hae na ye h'ard?"
"Not a word."
"That's verra strange,
sir!--There's a clean clearance at the castel. First gaed my lord Forgue, an'
syne my lord himsel' an' my lady, an' syne gaed the hoosekeeper--her mither was
deein', they said. I'm thinkin' there maun be a weddin' to the fore. There was
some word o' fittin' up the auld hoose i' the toon, 'cause lord Forgue didna
care aboot bein' at the castel ony langer. It's strange ye haena h'ard, sir!"
Donal stood absorbed in
awful hearing. Surely some letter must have miscarried! The sure and firm-set
earth seemed giving way under his feet.
"I will run up to the
castle, and hear all about it," he said. "Look after my mare, will
you?"
"But I'm tellin' ye,
sir, ye'll fin' naebody there!" said the man. "They're a' gane frae
the hoose ony gait. There's no a sowl aboot that but deif Betty Lobban, wha
wadna hear the angel wi' the last trump. Mair by token, she's that feart for
robbers she gangs til her bed the minute it begins to grow dark, an' sticks her
heid 'aneth the bed-claes--no 'at that maks her ony deifer!"
"Then you think there
is no use in going up?"
"Not the
smallest," answered the inn-keeper.
"Get me some supper
then. I will take a look at my mare."
He went and saw that she was
attended to--then set off for the castle as fast as his legs would carry him.
There was foul play beyond a doubt!--of what sort he could not tell! If the
man's report was correct, he would go straight to the police! Then first he
remembered, in addition to the other reported absences, that before he left
with Davie, the factor and his sister had gone together for a holiday: had this
been contrived?
He mounted the hill and drew
near the castle. A terrible gloom fell upon him: there was not a light in the
sullen pile! It was darksome even to terror! He went to the main entrance, and
rang the great bell as loud as he could ring it, but there was no answer to the
summons, which echoed and yelled horribly, as if the house were actually empty.
He rang again, and again came the horrible yelling echo, but no more answer
than if it had been a mausoleum. He had been told what to expect, yet his heart
sank within him. Once more he rang and waited; but there was no sound of hearing.
The place grew terrible to him. But his mother had sent him there, and into it
he must go! He must at least learn whether it was indeed abandoned! There was
false play! he kept repeating to himself; but what was it? where and how was it
to be met?
As to getting into the house
there was no difficulty. He had but to climb two walls to get to the door of
Baliol's tower, and the key of that he always carried. If he had not had it, he
would yet soon have got in; he knew the place better than any one else about
it. Happily he had left the door locked when he went away, else probably they
would have secured it otherwise. He entered softly, and, with a strange feeling
of dread, went winding up the stair to his room--slowly, because he did not yet
know at all what he was to do. If there were no false play, surely at least
Mrs. Brookes would have written to tell him they were going! If only he could
learn where she was! Before he reached the top he found himself very weary. He
staggered in, and fell on his bed in the dark.
But he could not rest. The
air seemed stifling. The storm had lulled, but the atmosphere was full of
thunder. He got up and opened the window. A little breath came in and revived
him; then came a little wind, and in the wind the moan of its harp. It woke
many memories. There again was the lightning! The thunder broke with a great
bellowing roar among the roofs and chimneys. It was to his mind! He went out on
the roof, and mechanically took his way toward the nest of the music. At the
base of the chimneys he sat down, and stared into the darkness. The lightning
came; he saw the sea lie watching like a perfect peace to take up drift souls,
and the land bordering it like a waste of dread; then the darkness swallowed
both; and the thunder came so loud that it not only deafened but seemed to
blind him beyond the darkness, that his brain turned to a lump of clay. Then
came a silence, and the silence was like a deeper deafness. But from the
deafness burst and trickled a faint doubtful stream: could it be a voice,
calling, calling, from a great distance? Was he the fool of weariness and
excitement, or did he actually hear his own name? Whose voice could it be but
lady Arctura's, calling to him from the spirit world! They had killed her, and
she was calling to let him know she was in the land of liberty! With that came
another flash and another roar of thunder--and there was the voice again:
"Mr. Grant! Mr. Grant! come, come! You promised!" Did he actually
hear the words? They sounded so far away that it seemed as if he ought not to
hear them. But could the voice be from the spirit-land? Would she claim his
promise thence, tempting him thither? She would not! And she knew he would not
go before his hour, if all the spirits on the other side were calling him. But
he had heard of voices from far away, while those who called were yet in the
body! If she would but say whither, he would follow her that moment! Once more
it came, but very faint; he could not tell what it said. A wail of the
ghost-music followed close.--God in heaven! could she be down in the chapel? He
sprang to his feet. With superhuman energy he leapt up and caught the edge of
the cleft, drew himself up till his mouth reached it, and cried aloud,
"Lady Arctura!"
There came no answer.
"I am stupid as
death!" he said to himself: "I have let her call me in vain!"
"I am coming!" he
cried again, revived with sudden joy. He dropped on the roof, and sped down the
stair to the door that opened on the second floor. All was dark as underground,
but he knew the way so well he needed but a little guidance from his hands. He
hurried to lady Arctura's chamber, and the spot where the press stood, ready
with one shove to send it yards out of his way. There was no press there!--nothing
but a smooth, cold, damp wall! His heart sank within him. Was he in a terrible
dream? No, no! he had but made a mistake--had trusted too much to his knowledge
of the house, and was not where he thought he was! He struck a light. Alas!
alas! he was where he had intended! It was her room! There was the wardrobe,
but nearer the door! Where it had stood was no recess!--nothing but a great
patch of fresh plaster! It was no dream, but a true horror!
Instinctively clutching his
skene dhu, he darted to the great stair. It must have been the voice of
Arctura he had heard! She was walled up in the chapel!
Down the stair, with swift
noiseless foot he sped, and stopped at the door of the half-way room. It was
locked!
There was but one way left!
To the foot of the stair he shot. Good heavens! if that way also should have
been known to the earl! He crept through the little door underneath the stair,
feeling with his hands ere his body was through: the arch was open! In an
instant he was in the crypt.
But now to get up through
the opening into the passage above--stopped with a heavy slab! He sprang at the
steep slope of the window-sill, but there was no hold, and as often as he
sprang he slipped down again. He tried and tried until he was worn out and
almost in despair. She might be dying! he was close to her! he could not reach
her! He stood still for a moment to think. To his mind came the word, "He
that believeth shall not make haste." He thought with himself, "God
cannot help men with wisdom when their minds are in too great a tumult to hear
what he says!" He tried to lift up his heart and make a silence in his
soul.
As he stood he seemed to
see, through the dark, the gloomy place as it first appeared when he threw in
the lighted letter. All at once he started from his quiescence, dropped on his
hands and knees, and crawled until he found the flat stone like a gravestone.
Out came his knife, and he dug away the earth at one end, until he could get
both hands under it. Then he heaved it from the floor, and shifting it along,
got it under the opening in the wall.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXIV. A MORAL FUNGUS.">
CHAPTER LXXIV.
A MORAL FUNGUS.
SPIRITUAL insanity,
cupidity, cruelty, and possibly immediate demoniacal temptation had long been
working in and on a mind that had now ceased almost to distinguish between the
real and the unreal. Every man who bends the energies of an immortal spirit to
further the ends and objects of his lower being, fails so to distinguish; but
with the earl the blindness had wrought outward as well as inwardly, so that he
was even unable, during considerable portions of his life, to tell whether
things took place outside or inside him. Nor did this trouble him--he was past
caring. He would argue that what equally affected him had an equal right to be
by him regarded as existent. He paid no heed to the different natures of the
two kinds of existence, their different laws, and the different demands they
made upon the two consciousnesses; he had in fact, by a long course of
disobedience growing to utter disuse of conscience, arrived nearly at
non-individuality. In regard to what was outside him he was but a mirror, in
regard to what was inside him a mere vessel of imperfectly interacting forces.
And now his capacities and incapacities together had culminated in a hideous
plot, in which it would be hard to say whether the folly, the crime, or the
cunning predominated: he had made up his mind that, if the daughter of his
brother refused to wed her cousin, and so carry out what he asserted to have
been the declared wish of her father, she should go after her father, and leave
her property to the next heir, so that if not in one way then in another the
law of nature might be fulfilled, and title and property united without the
intervention of a marriage. As to any evil that therein might be imagined to
befall his niece, he quoted the words of Hamlet--"Since no man has ought
of what he leaves, what is't to leave betimes?"--she would be no worse
than she must have been when the few years of her natural pilgrimage were of
necessity over: the difference to her was not worth thinking of beside the
difference to the family! At the same time perhaps a scare might serve, and she
would consent to marry Forgue to escape a frightful end!
The moment Donal was gone,
he sent Forgue to London, and set himself to overcome the distrust of him which
he could not but see had for some time been growing in her. With the sweet
prejudices of a loving nature to assist him, he soon prevailed so far that,
without much entreaty, she consented to accompany him to London--for a month or
so, he said, while Davie was gone. The proposal had charms for her: she had
been there with her father when a mere child, and never since. She wrote to
Donal to let him know: how it was that her letter never reached him, it is
hardly needful to inquire.
The earl, in order, he said,
to show his recognition of her sweet compliance, made arrangements for posting
it all the way. He would take her by the road he used to travel himself when he
was a young man: she should judge whether more had not been lost than gained by
rapidity! Whatever shortened any natural process, he said, simply shortened
life itself. Simmons should go before, and find a suitable place for them!
They were hardly gone when
Mrs. Brookes received a letter pretendedly from the clergyman of the parish, in
a remote part of the south, where her mother, now a very old woman, lived,
saying she was at the point of death, and could not die in peace without seeing
her daughter. She went at once.
The scheme was a madman's,
excellently contrived for the instant object, but with no outlook for
immediately resulting perils.
After the first night on the
road, he turned across country, and a little towards home; after the next
night, he drove straight back, but as it was by a different road, Arctura
suspected nothing. When they came within a few hours of the castle, they stopped
at a little inn for tea; there he contrived to give her a certain dose. At the
next place where they stopped, he represented her as his daughter taken
suddenly ill: he must go straight home with her, however late they might be.
Giving an imaginary name to their destination, and keeping on the last post-boy
who knew nothing of the country, he directed him so as completely to bewilder
him, with the result that he set them down at the castle supposing it a
different place, and in a different part of the country. The thing was after
the earl's own heart; he delighted in making a fool of a fellow-mortal. He sent
him away so as not to enter the town: it was of importance his return should
not be known.
It is a marvel he could
effect what followed; but he had the remnants of great strength, and when under
influences he knew too well how to manage, was for the time almost as powerful
as ever: he got his victim to his room on the stair, and thence through the oak
door.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXV. THE PORCH OF HADES.">
CHAPTER LXXV.
THE PORCH OF HADES.
WHEN Arctura woke from her
unnatural sleep, she lay a while without thought, then began to localize
herself. The last place she recalled was the inn where they had tea: she must
have been there taken ill, she thought, and was now in a room of the same. It
was quite dark: they might have left a light by her! She lay comfortably
enough, but had a suspicion that the place was not over clean, and was glad to
find herself not undrest. She turned on her side: something pulled her by the
wrist. She must have a bracelet on, and it was entangled in the coverlet! She
tried to unclasp it, but could not: which of her bracelets could it be? There
was something attached to it!--a chain--a thick chain! How odd! What could it mean?
She lay quiet, slowly waking to fuller consciousness.--Was there not a strange
air, a dull odour in the room? Undefined as it was, she had smelt it before,
and not long since!--It was the smell of the lost chapel!--But that was at home
in the castle! she had left it two days before! Was she going out of her mind?
The dew of agony burst from
her forehead. She would have started up, but was pulled hard by the wrist! She
cried on God.--Yes, she was lying on the very spot where that heap of
woman-dust had lain! she was manacled with the same ring from which that
woman's arm had wasted--the decay of centuries her slow redeemer! Her being
recoiled so wildly from the horror, that for a moment she seemed on the edge of
madness. But madness is not the sole refuge from terror! Where the door of the
spirit has once been opened wide to God, there is he, the present help
in time of trouble! With him in the house, it is not only that we need fear
nothing, but that is there which in its own being and nature casts out fear.
God and fear cannot be together. It is a God far off that causes fear. "In
thy presence is fulness of joy." Such a sense of absolute helplessness
overwhelmed Arctura that she felt awake in her an endless claim upon the
protection of her original, the source of her being. And what sooner would any
father have of his children than action on such claim! God is always calling us
as his children, and when we call him as our father, then, and not till then,
does he begin to be satisfied. And with that there fell upon Arctura a kind of
sleep, which yet was not sleep; it was a repose such as perhaps is the sleep of
a spirit.
Again the external began to
intrude. She pictured to herself what the darkness was hiding. Her feelings
when first she came down into the place returned on her memory. The tide of
terror began again to rise. It rose and rose, and threatened to become
monstrous. She reasoned with herself: had she not been brought in safety
through its first and most dangerous inroad?--but reason could not outface
terror. It was fear, the most terrible of all terrors, that she feared. Then
again woke her faith: if the night hideth not from him, neither does the
darkness of fear!
It began to thunder, first
with a low distant muttering roll, then with a loud and near bellowing. Was it
God coming to her? Some are strangely terrified at thunder; Arctura had the
child's feeling that it was God that thundered: it comforted her as with the
assurance that God was near. As she lay and heard the great organ of the heavens,
its voice seemed to grow articulate; God was calling to her, and saying,
"Here I am, my child! be not afraid!"
Then she began to reason
with herself that the worst that could happen to her was to lie there till she
died of hunger, and that could not be so very bad! And therewith across the
muttering thunder came a wail of the ghost-music. She started: had she not
heard it a hundred times before, as she lay there in the dark alone? Was she
only now for the first time waking up to it--she, the lady they had shut up
there to die--where she had lain for ages, with every now and then that sound
of the angels singing, far above her in the blue sky?
She was beginning to wander.
She reasoned with herself, and dismissed the fancy; but it came and came again,
mingled with real memories, mostly of the roof, and Donal.
By and by she fell asleep,
and woke in a terror which seemed to have been growing in her sleep. She sat
up, and stared into the dark. From where stood the altar, seemed to rise and
approach her a form of deeper darkness. She heard nothing, saw nothing, but
something was there. It came nearer. It was but a fancy; she knew it; but the
fancy assumed to be: the moment she gave way, and acknowledged it, that moment
it would have the reality it had been waiting for, and clasp her in its
skeleton-arms! She cried aloud, but it only came nearer; it was about to seize
her!
A sudden, divine
change!--her fear was gone, and in its place a sense of absolute safety: there
was nothing in all the universe to be afraid of! It was a night of June, with
roses, roses everywhere! Glory be to the Father! But how was it? Had he sent
her mother to think her full of roses? Why her mother? God himself is the heart
of every rose that ever bloomed! She would have sung aloud for joy, but no
voice came; she could not utter a sound. What a thing this would be to tell
Donal Grant! This poor woman cried, and God heard her, and saved her out of all
her distresses! The father had come to his child! The cry had gone from her
heart into his!
If she died there, would
Donal come one day and find her? No! No! She would speak to him in a dream, and
beg him not to go near the place! She would not have him see her lie like that
he and she standing together had there looked upon!
With that came Donal's
voice, floated and rolled in music and thunder. It came from far away; she did
not know whether she fancied or really heard it. She would have responded with
a great cry, but her voice vanished in her throat. Her joy was such that she
remembered nothing more.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXVI. THE ANGEL OF THE LORD.">
CHAPTER LXXVI.
THE ANGEL OF THE LORD.
STANDING upon the edge of
the stone leaned against the wall, Donal seized the edge of the slab which
crossed the opening near the top, and drew himself up into the sloping
window-sill. Pressing with all his might against the sides of the window, he
succeeded at last in pushing up the slab so far as to get a hold with one hand
on the next to it. Then slowly turning himself on his side, while the whole
weight of the stone rested on his fingers, he got the other hand also through
the crack. This effected, he hauled and pushed himself up with his whole force,
careless of what might happen to his head. The top of it came bang against the
stone, and lifted it so far that he got head and neck through. The thing was
done! With one more Herculean lift of his body and the stone together, like a
man rising from the dead, he rose from the crypt into the passage.
But the door of the chapel
would not yield to a gentle push.
"My lady," he
cried, "don't be afraid. I must make a noise. It's only Donal Grant! I'm
going to drive the door open."
She heard the words! They
woke her from her swoon of joy. "Only Donal Grant!" What less of an only
could there be in the world for her! Was he not the messenger who raised the
dead!
She tried to speak, but not
a word would come. Donal drew back a pace, and sent such a shoulder against the
door that it flew to the wall, then fell with a great crash on the floor.
"Where are you, my
lady?" he cried.
But still she could not
speak.
He began feeling about.
"Not on that terrible
bed!" she heard him murmur.
Fear lest in the darkness he
should not find her, gave her back her voice.
"I don't mind it
now!" she said feebly.
"Thank God!" cried
Donal; "I've found you at last!"
Worn out, he sank on his
knees, with his head on the bed, and fell a sobbing like a child.
She would have put out her
hand through the darkness to find him, but the chain checked it. He heard the
rattle of it, and understood.
"Chained too, my
dove!" he said, but in Gaelic.
His weakness was over. He
thanked God, and took courage. New life rushed through every vein. He rose to
his feet in conscious strength.
"Can you strike a
light, and let me see you, Donal?" said Arctura.
Then first she called him by
his Christian name: it had been so often in her heart if not on her lips that
night!
The dim light wasted the
darkness of the long buried place, and for a moment they looked at each other.
She was not so changed as Donal had feared to find her--hardly so change to him
as he was to her. Terrible as had been her trial, it had not lasted long, and
had been succeeded by a heavenly joy. She was paler than usual, yet there was a
rosy flush over her beautiful face. Her hand was stretched towards him, its
wrist clasped by the rusty ring, and tightening the chain that held it to the
post.
"How pale and tired you
look!" she said.
"I am a little
tired," he answered. "I came almost without stopping. My mother sent
me. She said I must come, but she did not tell me why."
"It was God sent
you," said Arctura.
Then she briefly told him
what she knew of her own story.
"How did he get the
ring on to your wrist?" said Donal.
He looked closer and saw
that her hand was swollen, and the skin abraded.
"He forced it on!"
he said. "How it must hurt you!"
"It does hurt now you
speak of it," she replied. "I did not notice it before.--Do you
suppose he left me here to die?"
"Who can tell!"
returned Donal. "I suspect he is more of a madman than we knew. I wonder
if a soul can be mad.--Yes; the devil must be mad with self-worship! Hell is
the great madhouse of creation!"
"Take me away,"
she said.
"I must first get you
free," answered Donal.
She heard him rise.
"You are not going to
leave me?" she said.
"Only to get a tool or
two."
"And after that?"
she said.
"Not until you wish
me," he answered. "I am your servant now--his no more."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXVII. THE ANGEL OF THE DEVIL.">
CHAPTER LXXVII.
THE ANGEL OF THE DEVIL.
THERE came a great burst of
thunder. It was the last of the storm. It bellowed and shuddered, went, and
came rolling up again. It died away at last in the great distance, with a low
continuous rumbling as if it would never cease. The silence that followed was
like the Egyptian darkness; it might be felt.
Out of the tense heart of
the silence came a faint sound. It came again and again, at regular intervals.
"That is my uncle's
step!" said Arctura in a scared whisper through the dark.
It was plainly a slow
step--far off, but approaching.
"I wonder if he has a
light!" she added hurriedly. "He often goes in the dark without one.
If he has you must get behind the altar."
"Do not speak a
word," said Donal; let him think you are asleep. If he has no light, I
will stand so that he cannot come near the bed without coming against me. Do
not be afraid; he shall not touch you."
The steps were coming nearer
all the time. A door opened and shut. Then they were loud--they were coming
along the gallery! They ceased. He was standing up there in the thick darkness!
"Arctura," said a
deep, awful voice.
It was that of the earl.
Arctura made no answer.
"Dead of fright!"
muttered the voice. "All goes well. I will go down and see. She might have
proved as obstinate as the boys' mother!"
Again the steps began. They
were coming down the stair. The door at the foot of it opened. The earl entered
a step or two, then stopped. Through the darkness Donal seemed to know exactly
where he stood. He knew also that he was fumbling for a match, and watched
intently for the first spark. There came a sputter and a gleam, and the match
failed. Ere he could try another, Donal made a swift blow at his arm. It
knocked the box from his hand.
"Ha!" he cried,
and there was terror in the cry, "she strikes at me through the
dark!"
Donal kept very still.
Arctura kept as still as he. The earl turned and went away.
"I will bring a
candle!" he muttered.
"Now, my lady, we must
make haste," said Donal. "Do you mind being left while I fetch my
tools?"
"No--but make
haste," she answered.
"I shall be back before
him," he returned.
"Be careful you do not
meet him," said Arctura.
There was no difficulty now,
either in going or returning. He sped, and in a space that even to Arctura
seemed short, was back. There was no time to use the file: he attacked the
staple, and drew it from the bed-post, then wound the chain about her arm, and
tied it there.
He had already made up his
mind what to do with her. He had been inclined to carry her away from the
house: Doory would take care of her! But he saw that to leave the enemy in
possession would be to yield him an advantage. Awkward things might result from
it! the tongues of inventive ignorance and stupidity would wag wildly! He would
take her to her room, and there watch her as he would the pearl of price!
"There! you are free,
my lady," he said. "Now come."
He took her hands, and she
raised herself wearily.
"The air is so
stifling!" she said.
"We shall soon have
better!" answered Donal.
"Shall we go on the
roof?" she said, like one talking in her sleep.
"I will take you to
your own room," replied Donal. "--But I will not leave you," he
added quickly, seeing a look of anxiety cloud her face, "--so long as your
uncle is in the house."
"Take me where you
will," rejoined Arctura.
There was no way but through
the crypt: she followed him without hesitation. They crept through the little
closet under the stair, and were in the hall of the castle.
As they went softly up the
stair, Donal had an idea.
"He is not back
yet!" he said: "we will take the key from the oak door; he will think
he has mislaid it, and will not find out that you are gone. I wonder what he
will do!"
Cautiously listening to be
sure the earl was not there, he ran to the oak door, locked it, and brought
away the key. Then they went to the room Arctura had last occupied.
The door was ajar; there was
a light in the room. They went softly, and peeped in. The earl was there,
turning over the contents of her writing-desk.
"He will find
nothing," she whispered with a smile.
Donal led her away.
"We will go to your old
room," he said. "The whole recess is built up with stone and lime: he
cannot come near you that way!"
She made no objection. Donal
secured the doors, lighted a fire, and went to look for food. They had agreed
upon a certain knock, without which she was to open to none.
While she was yet changing
the garments in which she had lain on the terrible bed, she heard the earl go
by, and the door of his room close. Apparently he had concluded to let her pass
the night without another visit: he had himself had a bad fright, and had
probably not got over it. A little longer and she heard Donal's gentle signal
at the door of the sitting-room. He had brought some biscuits and a little wine
in the bottom of a decanter from the housekeeper's room: there was literally
nothing in the larder, he said.
They sat down and ate the
biscuits. Donal told his adventures. They agreed that she must write to the
factor to come home at once, and bring his sister. Then Donal set to with his
file upon the ring: her hand was much too swollen to admit of its being removed
as it had been put on. It was not easy to cut it, partly from the constant
danger of hurting her swollen hand, partly that the rust filled and blunted the
file.
"There!" he said
at last, "you are free! And now, my lady, you must take some rest. The
door to the passage is secure. Lock this one inside, and I will draw the sofa
across it outside: if he come wandering in the night, and get into this room,
he will not reach your door."
Weary as he was, Donal could
not sleep much. In the middle of the night he heard the earl's door open, and
watched and followed him. He went to the oak door, and tried in vain to open
it.
"She has taken
it!" he muttered, in what seemed to Donal an awe-struck voice.
All night long he roamed the
house a spirit grievously tormented. In the gray of the morning, having perhaps
persuaded himself that the whole affair was a trick of his imagination, he went
back to his room.
In the morning Donal left
the house, having first called to Arctura and warned her to lock the door of
the sitting-room the moment he was gone. He ran all the way down to the inn,
paid his bill, bought some things in the town for their breakfast, and taking
the mare, rode up to the castle, and rang the bell. No notice was taken. He went
and put up his animal, then let himself into the house by Baliol's tower, and
began to sing. So singing he went up the great stair, and into and along the
corridor where the earl lay.
The singing roused him, and
brought him to his door in a rage. But the moment he saw Donal his countenance
fell.
"What the devil are you
doing here?" he said.
"They told me in the
town you were in England, my lord!"
"I wrote to you,"
said the earl, "that we were gone to London, and that you need be in no
haste to return. I trust you have not brought Davie with you?"
"I have not, my
lord."
"Then make what haste
back to him you can. He must not be alone with bumpkins! You may stay there
with him till I send for you--only mind you go on with your studies. Now be
off. I am at home but for a few hours on business, and leave again by the
afternoon coach!"
"I do not go, my lord,
until I have seen my mistress."
"Your mistress! Who,
pray, is your mistress!"
"I am no longer in your
service, my lord."
"Then what, in the name
of God, have you done with my son?"
"In good time, my lord,
when you have told me where my mistress is! I am in this house as lady
Arctura's servant; and I desire to know where I shall find her."
"In London."
"What address, please
your lordship? I will wait her orders here."
"You will leave this
house at once," said the earl. "I will not have you here in both her
ladyship's absence and my own."
"My lord, I am not
ignorant how things stand: I am in lady Arctura's house; and here I remain till
I receive her commands."
"Very well! By all
means!"
"I ask you again for
her address, my lord."
"Find it for yourself.
You will not obey my orders: am I to obey yours?"
He turned on his heel, and
flung to his door.
Donal went to lady Arctura.
She was in the sitting-room, anxiously waiting his return. She had heard their
voices, but nothing that passed. He told her what he had done; then produced
his provisions, and together they prepared their breakfast. By and by they
heard the earl come from his room, go here and there through the still house,
and return to his apartment.
In the afternoon he left the
house. They watched him away--ill able, apparently, even to crawl along. He
went down the hill, nor once lifted his head. They turned and looked at each
other. Profound pity for the wretched old man was the feeling of both. It was
followed by one of intense relief and liberty.
"You would like to be
rid of me now, my lady," said Donal; "but I don't see how I can leave
you. Shall I go and fetch Miss Carmichael?"
"No, certainly,"
answered Arctura. "I cannot apply to her."
"It would be a pity to
lose the advantage of your uncle's not knowing what has become of you."
"I wonder what he will
do next! If I were to die now, the property would be his, and then
Forgue's!"
"You can will it away,
I suppose, my lady!" answered Donal.
Arctura stood thoughtful.
"Is Forgue a bad man,
Mr. Grant?"
"I dare not trust
him," answered Donal.
"Do you think he had
any knowledge of this plot of his father's?"
"I cannot tell. I do
not believe he would have left you to die in the chapel."
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXVIII. RESTORATION.">
CHAPTER LXXVIII.
RESTORATION.
THE same afternoon, while
Donal was reading to Arctura in the library, there came a loud ringing of the
door-bell. Donal ran to see, and to his great delight, there was mistress
Brookes, half wild with anxious terror.
"Is my leddy
safe?" she cried--then clasped Donal in her arms and embraced him as if he
had been her son.
From the moment she
discovered herself fooled, she had been imagining all manner of terrible
things--yet none so terrible as the truth. There was no end to her objurgations,
exclamations, anathemas, and interjections.
"Now I can leave you in
peace, my lady!" said Donal, who had not resumed his seat.
"Noo ye can bide whaur
ye are, an' be thankfu'!" said mistress Brookes. "Wha daur meddle wi'
ye, an' me i' the hoose! An' wha kens what the mad yerl, for mad I s' uphaud
him, an' fit only to be lockit up--wha kens what he may do neist! Maister
Grant, I cannot lat ye oot o' the hoose."
"I was only going as
far as mistress Comin's," replied Donal.
"Weel, ye can gang; but
min' ye're hame i' gude time!"
"I thought of putting
up there, but I will do as my lady pleases."
"Come home," said
Arctura.
Donal went, and the first
person he saw when he entered the house was Eppy. She turned instantly away,
and left the room: he could not help seeing why.
The old woman welcomed him
with her usual cordiality, but not her usual cheerfulness: he had scarcely
noted since her husband's death any change on her manner till now: she looked
weary of the world.
She sat down, smoothed her
apron on her knees, gave him one glance in the face, then looked down at her
hands, and said nothing.
"I ken what ails ye,
Doory," said Donal; "but i' the name o' him 'at's awa', hearken til
me.--The lass is no lost, naither is the Lord asleep. Yer lamb 's been sair
misguidit, sair pluckit o' her bonny woo', but gien for that she haud the
closer by the Lord's flock, she'll ken it wasna for want o' his care the tod
got a grup o' her. It's a terrible pity for the bonny cratur, disgracin' them
'at aucht her! What for winna yoong fowk believe them 'at speyks true, but wull
believe them 'at tells them little but lees! Still, it's no as gien she had
been stealin'! She's wrangt her puir sel', an' she's wrangt us a', an' she's
wrangt the Lord; but for a' that ye canna luik doon upon her as upo' the man
'at's grown rich at the cost o' his neebours. There's mony a gran' prood leddy
'ill hae to stan' aside to lat Eppy pass up, whan we're 'afore the richteous
judge."
"Eh, but ye speyk like
my Anerew!" cried the poor woman, wiping her old eyes with her rough
apron. "I s' do what I can for her; but there's no hidin' o' 't!"
"Hidin' o' 't!"
cried Donal. "The Lord forbid! Sic things are no to be hidden! Sae lang 's
she 's i' the warl', the thing has to be kenned o' a' 'at come nigh her. She
maun beir her burden, puir lass! The Lord he'll lichten 't til her, but he'll
hae naething smugglet up. That's no the w'y o' his kingdom!--I suppose there's
nae doobt wha?"
"Nane. The Lord
forbid!"
Two days after, Mr. Graeme
and his sister returned, and at lady Arctura's request took up their abode at
the castle. She told them that of late she had become convinced her uncle was
no longer capable of attending to her affairs; that he was gone to London; that
she had gone away with him, and was supposed to be with him still, though she
had returned, and he did not know where she was. She did not wish him to know,
but desired for the present to remain concealed. She had her reasons; and
requested therefore as a personal favour that they would not once or to any one
allude to her being at the castle. Mr. Graeme would in the meantime be so good
as make himself acquainted, so far as possible, with the state of affairs
between her and her uncle.
In the course of the
investigations thereupon following, it became clear that a large portion of the
moneys of the estate received by his lordship were nowise accounted for. Lady
Arctura directed that further inquiry should in the meantime be stayed, but
that no more money should be handed over to him.
For some time the factor
heard nothing from his lordship. At length came instructions as to the
forwarding of money, Forgue writing and his father signing. Mr. Graeme replied,
excusing himself as he could, but sending no money. They wrote again. Again he
excused himself. The earl threatened. Mr. Graeme took no heed. His lordship
continued to demand and threaten, but neither he nor his son appeared. The
factor at length wrote that he would pay no money but to lady Arctura. The earl
himself wrote in reply, saying--had he been out of the country that he did not
know she was dead and six weeks in her grave? Again the factor did not reply.
Donal rode back to Glashgar,
and brought Davie home. Lessons were resumed, and Arctura took her full share
in them.
Soon all about the castle
was bustle and labour--masons and carpenters busy from morning to night. The
wall that masked the windows of the chapel was pulled down; the windows, of
stained glass, with never a crack, were cleaned; the passage under them was
opened to the great stair; lady Arctura had a small sweet-toned organ built in
the little gallery, and the mural stair from her own room opened again, that
she might go down when she pleased to play on it--sometimes, in south-easterly
winds, to listen to the aeolian harp dreaming out the music of the spheres.
In the process of removing
the bed, much of it crumbled to dust. The carved tester and back were set up,
the one over the great chimney-piece in the hall, the other over that in
Arctura's room. The altar was replaced where the bed had been. The story of the
finding of the lost chapel was written by Donal, and placed by Arctura among
the records of the family.
But it soon became evident
that what she had passed through had exercised a hurtful influence on lady
Arctura's health. She was almost always happy, but her strength at times would
suddenly desert her. Both Donal and mistress Brookes regarded her with some
anxiety.
Her organ, to which she gave
more labour than she was quite equal to, was now one of her main delights.
Often would its chords be heard creeping through the long ducts and passages of
the castle: either for a small instrument its tone was peculiarly penetrating,
or the chapel was the centre of the system of the house. On the roof would
Donal often sit listening to the sounds that rose through the shaft--airs and
harmonies freed by her worshipping fingers--rejoicing to think how her spirit
was following the sounds, guided by them in lovely search after her native
country.
One day she went on playing
till she forgot everything but her music, and almost unconsciously began to
sing "The Lord is mindful of his own." She was unaware that she had
two listeners--one on the roof above, one in the chapel below.
When twelve months were come
and gone since his departure, the earl one bright morning approached the door
of the castle, half doubting, half believing it his own: he was determined on
dismissing the factor after rigorous examination of his accounts; and he wanted
to see Davie. He had driven to the stables, and thence walked out on the
uppermost terrace, passing the chapel without observing its unmasked windows.
The great door was standing open: he went in, and up the stair, haunted by
sounds of music he had been hearing ever since he stepped on the terrace.
But on the stair was a door
he had never seen! Who dared make changes in his house? The thing was
bewildering! But he was accustomed to be bewildered.
He opened the door--plainly
a new one--and entered a gloomy little passage, lighted from a small aperture
unfit to be called a window. The under side of the bare steps of a narrow stone
stair were above his head. Had he or had he not ever seen the place before? On
the right was a door. He went to it, opened it, and the hitherto muffled music
burst loud on his ear. He started back in dismal apprehension:--there was the
chapel, wide open to the eye of day!--clear and clean!--gone the hideous bed!
gone the damp and the dust! while the fresh air trembled with the organ-breath
rushing and rippling through it, and setting it in sweetest turmoil! He had
never had such a peculiar experience! He had often doubted whether things were
or were not projections from his own brain; he moved and acted in a world of
subdued fact and enhanced fiction; he knew that sometimes he could not tell the
one from the other; but never had he had the apparently real and the actually
unreal brought so much face to face with each other! Everything was as clear to
his eyes as in their prime of vision, and yet there could be no reality
in what he saw!
Ever since he left the
castle he had been greatly uncertain whether the things that seemed to have
taken place there, had really taken place. He got himself in doubt about them
the moment he failed to find the key of the oak door. When he asked himself
what then could have become of his niece, he would reply that doubtless she was
all right: she did not want to marry Forgue, and had slipped out of the way:
she had never cared about the property! To have their own will was all women
cared about! Would his factor otherwise have dared such liberties with him, the
lady's guardian? He had not yet rendered his accounts, or yielded his
stewardship. When she died the property would be his! if she was dead, it was
his! She would never have dreamed of willing it away from him! She did not know
she could: how should she? girls never thought about such things! Besides she
would not have the heart: he had loved her as his own flesh and blood!
At intervals, nevertheless,
he was assailed, at times overwhelmed, by the partial conviction that he had
starved her to death in the chapel. Then he was tormented as with all the
furies of hell. In his night visions he would see her lie wasting, hear her moaning,
and crying in vain for help: the hardest heart is yet at the mercy of a roused
imagination. He saw her body in its progressive stages of decay as the weeks
passed, and longed for the process to be over, that he might go back, and
pretending to have just found the lost room, carry it away, and have it
honourably buried! Should he take it for granted that it had lain there for
centuries, or suggest it must be lady Arctura--that she had got shut up there,
like the bride in the chest? If he could but find an old spring lock to put on
the door! But people were so plaguy sharp nowadays! They found out
everything!--he could not afford to have everything found out!--God
himself must not be allowed to know everything!
He stood staring. As he
stood and stared, his mind began to change: perhaps, after all, what he saw,
might be! The whole thing it had displaced must then be a fancy--a
creation of the dreaming brain! God in heaven! if it could but be proven
that he had never done it! All the other wicked things he was--or supposed
himself guilty of--some of them so heavy that it had never seemed of the
smallest use to repent of them--all the rest might be forgiven him!--But what
difference would that make to the fact that he had done them? He could never
take his place as a gentleman where all was known! They made such a fuss about
a sin or two, that a man went and did worse out of pure despair!
But if he had never murdered
anybody! In that case he could almost consent there should be a God! he could
almost even thank him!--For what! That he was not to be damned for the thing he
had not done--a thing he had had the misfortune to dream he had done--God never
interfering to protect him from the horrible fancy? What was the good of a God
that would not do that much for you--that left his creatures to make fools of
themselves, and only laughed at them!--Bah! There was life in the old dog yet!
If only he knew the thing for a fancy!
The music ceased, and the
silence was a shock to him. Again he began to stare about him. He looked up.
Before him in the air hovered the pale face of the girl he had--or had not
murdered! It was one of his visions--but not therefore more unreal than any
other appearance: she came from the world of his imagination--so real to him
that in expectant moods it was the world into which he was to step the moment
he left the body. She looked sweetly at him! She was come to forgive his sins!
Was it then true? Was there no sin of murder on his soul? Was she there to
assure him that he might yet hope for the world to come? He stretched out his
arms to her. She turned away. He thought she had vanished. The next moment she
was in the chapel, but he did not hear her, and stood gazing up. She threw her
arms around him. The contact of the material startled him with such a
revulsion, that he uttered a cry, staggered back, and stood looking at her in
worse perplexity still. He had done the awful thing, yet had not done it! He
stood as one bound to know the thing that could not be.
"Don't be frightened,
uncle," said Arctura. "I am not dead. The sepulchre is the only
resurrection-house! Uncle, uncle! thank God with me."
The earl stood motionless.
Strange thoughts passed through him at their will. Had her presence dispelled
darkness and death, and restored the lost chapel to the light of day? Had she
haunted it ever since, dead yet alive, watching for his return to pardon him?
Would his wife so receive him at the last with forgiveness and endearment? His
eyes were fixed upon her. His lips moved tremulously once or twice, but no word
came. He turned from her, glanced round the place, and said,
"It is a great
improvement!"
I wonder how it would be
with souls if they waked up and found all their sins but hideous dreams! How
many would loathe the sin? How many would remain capable of doing all again?
But few, perhaps no burdened souls can have any idea of the power that lies in
God's forgiveness to relieve their consciousness of defilement. Those who say,
"Even God cannot destroy the fact!" care more about their own cursed
shame than their Father's blessed truth! Such will rather excuse than confess.
When a man heartily confesses, leaving excuse to God, the truth makes him free,
he knows that the evil has gone from him, as a man knows that he is cured of
his plague.
"I did the thing,"
he says, "but I could not do it now. I am the same, yet not the same. I
confess, I would not hide it, but I loathe it--ten times the more that the evil
thing was mine."
Had the earl been able to
say thus, he would have felt his soul a cleansed chapel, new-opened to the
light and air;--nay, better--a fresh-watered garden, in which the fruits of the
spirit had begun to grow! God's forgiveness is as the burst of a spring morning
into the heart of winter. His autumn is the paying of the uttermost farthing.
To let us go without that would be the pardon of a demon, not the forgiveness
of the eternally loving God. But--Not yet, alas, not yet!
has to be said over so many souls!
Arctura was struck dumb. She
turned and walked out upon the great stair, her uncle following her. All the
way up to the second floor she felt as if he were about to stab her in the
back, but she would not look behind her. She went straight to her room, and
heard her uncle go on to his. She rang her bell, sent for Donal, and told him
what had passed.
"I will go to
him," said Donal.
Arctura said nothing more,
thus leaving the matter entirely in his hands.
Donal found him lying on the
couch.
"My lord," he
said, "you must be aware of the reasons why you should not present
yourself here!"
The earl started up in one
of his ready rages:--they were real enough! With epithets of
contemptuous hatred, he ordered Donal from the room and the house. Donal
answered nothing till the rush of his wrath had abated.
"My lord," he
said, "there is nothing I would not do to serve your lordship. But I have
no choice but tell you that if you do not walk out, you shall be
expelled!"
"Expelled, you
dog!"
"Expelled, my lord. The
would-be murderer of his hostess must at least be put out of the house."
"Good heavens!"
cried the earl, changing his tone with an attempted laugh, "has the poor,
hysterical girl succeeded in persuading a man of your sense to believe her childish
fancies?"
"I believe every word
my lady says, my lord. I know that you had nearly murdered her."
The earl caught up the poker
and struck at his head. Donal avoided the blow. It fell on the marble
chimney-piece. While his arm was yet jarred by the impact, Donal wrenched the
poker from him.
"My lord," he
said, "with my own hands I drew the staple of the chain that fastened her
to the bed on which you left her to die! You were yet in the house when I did
so."
"You damned rascal, you
stole the key. If it had not been for that I should have gone to her again. I
only wanted to bring her to reason!"
"But as you had lost
the key, rather than expose your cruelty, you went away, and left her to
perish! You wanted her to die unless you could compel her to marry your son,
that the title and property might go together; and that when with my own ears I
heard your lordship tell that son that he had no right to any title!"
"What a man may say in
a rage goes for nothing," answered the earl, sulkily rather than fiercely.
"But not what a woman
writes in sorrow!" rejoined Donal. "I know the truth from the
testimony of her you called your wife, as well as from your own mouth!"
"The testimony of the
dead, and at second hand, will hardly be received in court!" returned the
earl.
"If after your
lordship's death, the man now called lord Forgue dares assume the title of
Morven, I will publish what I know. In view of that, your lordship had better
furnish him with the vouchers of his mother's marriage. My lord, I again beg
you to leave the house."
The earl cast his eyes round
the walls as if looking for a weapon. Donal took him by the arm.
"There is no farther
room for ceremony," he said. "I am sorry to be rough with your
lordship, but you compel me. Please remember I am the younger and the stronger
man."
As he spoke he let the earl
feel the ploughman's grasp: it was useless to struggle. His lordship threw
himself on the couch.
"I will not
leave the house. I am come home to die," he yelled. "I'm dying now, I
tell you. I cannot leave the house! I have no money. Forgue has taken
all."
"You owe a large sum to
the estate!" said Donal.
"It is lost--all lost,
I tell you! I have nowhere to go to! I am dying!"
He looked so utterly
wretched that Donal's heart smote him. He stood back a little, and gave himself
time.
"You would wish then to
retire, my lord, I presume?" he said.
"Immediately--to be rid
of you!" the earl answered.
"I fear, my lord, if
you stay, you will not soon be rid of me! Have you brought Simmons with
you?"
"No, damn him! he is
like all the rest of you: he has left me!"
"I will help you to
bed, my lord."
"Go about your
business. I will get myself to bed."
"I will not leave you
except in bed," rejoined Donal with decision; and ringing the bell, he
desired the servant to ask mistress Brookes to come to him.
She came instantly. Before
the earl had time even to look at her, Donal asked her to get his lordship's
bed ready:--if she would not mind doing it herself, he said, he would help her:
he must see his lordship to bed.
She looked a whole book at
him, but said nothing. Donal returned her gaze with one of quiet confidence,
and she understood it. What it said was, "I know what I am doing, mistress
Brookes. My lady must not turn him out. I will take care of him."
"What are you two
whispering at there?" cried the earl. "Here am I at the point of
death, and you will not even let me go to bed!"
"Your room will be
ready in a few minutes, my lord," said Mrs. Brookes; and she and Donal
went to work in earnest, but with the door open between the rooms.
When it was ready,
"Now, my lord,"
said Donal, "will you come?"
"When you are gone. I
will have none of your cursed help!"
"My lord, I am not
going to leave you."
With much grumbling, and a
very ill grace, his lordship submitted, and Donal got him to bed.
"Now put that cabinet
by me on the table," he said.
The cabinet was that in
which he kept his drugs, and had not been touched since he left it.
Donal opened the window,
took up the cabinet, and threw it out.
With a bellow like that of a
bull, the earl sprang out of bed, and just as the crash came from below, ran at
Donal where he stood shutting the window, as if he would have sent him after
the cabinet. Donal caught him and held him fast.
"My lord," he
said, "I will nurse you, serve you, do anything, everything for you; but
for the devil I'll be damned if I move hand or foot! Not one drop of hellish
stuff shall pass your lips while I am with you!"
"But I am dying! I
shall die of the horrors!" shrieked the earl, struggling to get to the
window, as if he might yet do something to save his precious extracts,
tinctures, essences, and compounds.
"We will send for the
doctor," said Donal. "A very clever young fellow has come to the town
since you left: perhaps he can help you. I will do what I can to make you give
your life fair play."
"Come, come! none of
that damned rubbish! My life is of no end of value to me! Besides, it's too
late. If I were young now, with a constitution like yours, and the world before
me, there might be some good in a paring or two of self-denial; but you
wouldn't stab your murderer for fear of the clasp knife closing on your hand! you
would not fire your pistol at him for fear of its bursting and blowing your
brains out!"
"I have no desire to
keep you alive, my lord; but I would give my life to let you get some of the
good of this world before you pass to the next. To lengthen your life
infinitely, I would not give you a single drop of any one of those cursed
drugs!"
He rang the bell again.
"You're a friendly
fellow!" grunted his lordship, and went back to his bed to ponder how to
gain the solace of his passion.
Mrs. Brookes came.
"Will you please send
to Mr. Avory, the new surgeon," said Donal, "and ask him, in my name,
to come to the castle."
The earl was so ill,
however, as to be doubtful, much as he desired them, whether, while rendering
him for the moment less sensible to them, any of his drugs would do no other
than increase his sufferings. He lay with closed eyes, a strange expression of
pain mingled with something like fear every now and then passing over his face.
I doubt if his conscience troubled him. It is in general those, I think, who
through comparatively small sins have come to see the true nature of them,
whose consciences trouble them greatly. Those who have gone from bad to worse
through many years of moral decay, are seldom troubled as other men, or have
any bands in their death. His lordship, it is true, suffered terribly at times
because of the things he had done; but it was through the medium of a roused
imagination rather than a roused conscience: the former deals with
consequences; the latter with the deeds themselves.
He declared he would see no
doctor but his old attendant Dowster, yet all the time was longing for the
young man to appear: he might--who could tell?--save him from the
dreaded jaws of death!
He came. Donal went to him.
He had summoned him, he said, without his lordship's consent, but believed he
would see him; the earl had been long in the habit of using narcotics and
stimulants, though not alcohol, he thought; he trusted Mr. Avory would give his
sanction to the entire disuse of them, for they were killing him, body and
soul.
"To give them up at
once and entirely would cost him considerable suffering," said the doctor.
"He knows that, and
does not in the least desire to give them up. It is absolutely necessary he
should be delivered from the passion."
"If I am to undertake
the case, it must be after my own judgment," said the doctor.
"You must undertake two
things, or give up the case," persisted Donal.
"I may as well hear
what they are."
"One is, that you make
his final deliverance from the habit your object; the other, that you will give
no medicine into his own hands."
"I agree to both; but
all will depend on his nurse."
"I will be his
nurse."
The doctor went to see his
patient. The earl gave one glance at him, recognized firmness, and said not a
word. But when he would have applied to his wrist an instrument recording in
curves the motions of the pulse, he would not consent. He would have no
liberties taken with him, he said.
"My lord, it is but to
inquire into the action of your heart," said Mr. Avory.
"I'll have no spying
into my heart! It acts just like other people's!"
The doctor put his
instrument aside, and laid his finger on the pulse instead: his business was to
help, not to conquer, he said to himself: if he might not do what he would, he
would do what he could.
While he was with the earl,
Donal found lady Arctura, and told her all he had done. She thanked him for
understanding her.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXIX. A SLOW TRANSITION.">
CHAPTER LXXIX.
A SLOW TRANSITION.
A DREARY time followed.
Sometimes the patient would lie awake half the night, howling with misery, and
accusing Donal of heartless cruelty. He knew as well as he what would ease his
pain and give him sleep, but not a finger would he move to save him! He was
taking the meanest of revenges! What did it matter to him what became of his
soul! Surely it was worse to hate as he made him hate than to swallow any
amount of narcotics!
"I tell you,
Grant," he said once, "I was never so cruel to those I treated worst.
There's nothing in the Persian hells, which beat all the rest, to come up to
what I go through for want of my comfort. Promise to give it me, and I will
tell you where to find some."
As often as Donal refused he
would break out in a torrent of curses, then lie still for a space.
"How do you think you
will do without it," Donal once rejoined, "when you find yourself
bodiless in the other world?"
"I'm not there yet!
When that comes, it will be under new conditions, if not unconditioned
altogether. We'll take the world we have. So, my dear boy, just go and get me
what I want. There are the keys!"
"I dare not."
"You wish to kill
me!"
"I wouldn't keep you
alive to eat opium. I have other work than that. Not a finger would I move to
save a life for such a life. But I would willingly risk my own to make you able
to do without it. There would be some good in that!"
"Oh, damn your
preaching!"
But the force of the habit
abated a little. Now and then it seemed to return as strong as ever, but the
fit went off again. His sufferings plainly decreased.
The doctor, having little
yet of a practice, was able to be with him several hours every day, so that
Donal could lie down. As he grew better, Davie, or mistress Brookes, or lady
Arctura would sit with him. But Donal was never farther off than the next room.
The earl's madness was the worst of any, a moral madness: it could not fail to
affect the brain, but had not yet put him beyond his own control. Repeatedly
had Donal been on the verge of using force to restrain him, but had not yet
found himself absolutely compelled to do so: fearless of him, he postponed it
always to the very last, and the last had not yet arrived.
The gentle ministrations of
his niece by and by seemed to touch him. He was growing to love her a little,
He would smile when she came into the room, and ask her how she did. Once he
sat looking at her for some time--then said,
"I hope I did not hurt
you much."
"When?" she asked.
"Then," he
answered.
"Oh, no; you did not
hurt me--much!"
"Another time, I was
very cruel to your aunt: do you think she will forgive me!"
"Yes, I do."
"Then you have forgiven
me?"
"Of course I
have."
"Then of course God
will forgive me too!"
"He will--if you leave
off, you know, uncle."
"That's more than I can
promise."
"If you try, he will
help you."
"How can he? It is a
second nature now!"
"He is your first
nature. He can help you too by taking away the body and its nature
together."
"You're a fine
comforter! God will help me to be good by taking away my life! A nice
encouragement to try! Hadn't I better kill myself and save him the
trouble!"
"It's not the dying,
uncle! no amount of dying would ever make one good. It might only make it less
difficult to be good."
"But I might after all
refuse to be good! I feel sure I should! He had better let me alone!"
"God can do more than
that to compel us to be good--a great deal more than that! Indeed, uncle, we must
repent."
He said no more for some
minutes; then suddenly spoke again.
"I suppose you mean to
marry that rascal of a tutor!" he said.
She started up, and called
Donal. But to her relief he did not answer: he was fast asleep.
"He would not thank you
for the suggestion, I fear," she said, sitting down again. "He is far
above me!"
"Is there no chance for
Forgue then?"
"Not the smallest. I
would rather have died where you left me than--"
"If you love me, don't
mention that!" he cried. "I was not myself--indeed I was not! I don't
know now--that is, I can't believe sometimes I ever did it."
"Uncle, have you asked
God to forgive you!"
"I have--a thousand
times."
"Then I will never
speak of it again."
In general, however, he was
sullen, cantankerous, abusive. They were all compassionate to him, treating him
like a spoiled, but not the less in reality a sickly child. Arctura thought her
grandmother could not have brought him up well; more might surely have been
made of him. But Arctura had him after a lifetime fertile in cause of
self-reproach, had him in the net of sore sickness, at the mercy of the spirit
of God. He was a bad old child--this much only the wiser for being old, that he
had found the ways of transgressors hard.
One night Donal, hearing him
restless, got up from the chair where he watched by him most nights, and saw
him staring, but not seeing: his eyes showed that they regarded nothing
material. After a moment he gave a great sigh, and his jaw fell. Donal thought
he was dead. But presently he came to himself like one escaping from torture: a
terrible dream was behind him, pulling at the skirts of his consciousness.
"I've seen her!"
he said. "She's waiting for me to take me--but where I do not know. She
did not look angry, but then she seldom looked angry when I was worst to
her!--Grant, I beg of you, don't lose sight of Davie. Make a man of him, and
his mother will thank you. She was a good woman, his mother, though I did what
I could to spoil her! It was no use! I never could!--and that was how she kept
her hold of me. If I had succeeded, there would have been an end of her power,
and a genuine heir to the earldom! What a damned fool I was to let it out! Who
would have been the worse!"
"He's a heartless,
unnatural rascal, though," he resumed, "and has made of me the fool I
deserved to be made! His mother must see it was not my fault! I would have set
things right if I could! But it was too late! And you tell me she has had a
hand in letting the truth out--leaving her letters about!--That's some comfort!
She was always fair, and will be the less hard on me. If I could see a chance
of God being half as good to me as my poor wife. She was my wife! I will
say it in spite of all the priests in the stupid universe! She was my wife, and
deserved to be my wife; and if I had her now, I would marry her, because she
would be foolish enough to like it, though I would not do it all the time she
was alive, let her beg ever so! Where was the use of giving in, when I kept her
in hand so easily that way? That was it! It was not that I wanted to do her any
wrong. But you should keep the lead. A man mustn't play out his last trump and
lose the lead. But then you never know about dying! If I had known my poor wife
was going to die, I would have done whatever she wanted. We had merry times
together! It was those cursed drugs that wiled the soul out of me, and then the
devil went in and took its place!--There was curara in that last medicine, I'll
swear!--Look you here now, Grant:--if there were any way of persuading
God to give me a fresh lease of life! You say he hears prayer: why shouldn't
you ask him? I would make you any promise you pleased--give you any security
you wanted, hereafter to live a godly, righteous, and sober life."
"But," said Donal,
"suppose God, reading your heart, saw that you would go on as bad as ever,
and that to leave you any longer would only be to make it the more difficult
for him to do anything with you afterwards?"
"He might give me a
chance! It is hard to expect a poor fellow to be as good as he is
himself!"
"The poor fellow was
made in his image!" suggested Donal.
"Very poorly made
then!" said the earl with a sneer. "We might as well have been made
in some other body's image!"
Donal thought with himself.
Did you ever know a good
woman, my lord?" he asked.
"Know a good
woman?--Hundreds of them!--The other sort was more to my taste! but
there was my own mother! She was rather hard on my father now and then, but she
was a good woman."
"Suppose you had been
in her image, what then?"
"You would have had
some respect for me!"
"Then she was nearer
the image of God than you?"
"Thousands of
miles!"
"Did you ever know a
bad woman?"
"Know a bad woman?
Hundreds that would take your heart's blood as you slept to make a philtre
with!"
"Then you saw a
difference between such a woman and your mother?"
"The one was of heaven,
the other of hell--that was all the little difference!"
"Did you ever know a
bad woman grow better?"
"No, never.--Stop! let
me see" I did once know a woman--she was a married woman too--that made it
all the worse--all the better I mean: she took poison--in good earnest, and
died--died, sir--died, I say--when she came to herself, and knew what she had
done! That was the only woman I ever knew that grew better. How long she might
have gone on better if she hadn't taken the poison, I can't tell. That fixed
her good, you see!"
"If she had gone on,
she might have got as good as your mother?"
"Oh, hang it! no; I did
not say that!"
"I mean, with God
teaching her all the time--for ten thousand years, say--and she always doing
what he told her!"
"Oh, well! I don't know
anything about that. I don't know what God had to do with my mother being so
good! She was none of your canting sort!"
"There is an old
story," said Donal, "of a man who was the very image of God, and ever
so much better than the best of women."
"He couldn't have been
much of a man then!"
"Were you ever afraid,
my lord?"
"Yes, several
times--many a time."
"That man never knew
what fear was."
"By Jove!"
"His mother was good,
and he was better: your mother was good, and you are worse! Whose fault is
that?"
"My own; I'm not
ashamed to confess it!"
"Would to God you
were!" said Donal: "you shame your mother in being worse than she
was. You were made in the image of God, but you don't look like him now any
more than you look like your mother. I have a father and mother, my lord, as like
God as they can look!"
"Of course! of course!
In their position there are no such temptations as in ours!"
"I am sure of one
thing, my lord--that you will never be at any peace until you begin to show the
image in which you were made. By that time you will care for nothing so much as
that he should have his way with you and the whole world."
"It will be long before
I come to that!"
"Probably; but you will
never have a moment's peace till you begin. It is no use talking though. God
has not made you miserable enough yet."
"I am more miserable
than you can think."
"Why don't you cry to
him to deliver you?"
"I would kill myself if
it weren't for one thing."
"It is from yourself he
would deliver you."
"I would, but that I
want to put off seeing my wife as long as I can."
"I thought you wanted
to see her!"
"I long for her
sometimes more than tongue can tell."
"And you don't want to
see her?"
"Not yet; not just yet.
I should like to be a little better--to do something or other--I don't know
what--first. I doubt if she would touch me now--with that small, firm hand she
would catch hold of me with when I hurt her. By Jove, if she had been a man,
she would have made her mark in the world! She had a will and a way with her!
If it hadn't been that she loved me--me, do you hear, you dog!--though there's
nobody left to care a worm-eaten nut about me, it makes me proud as Lucifer
merely to think of it! I don't care if there's never another to love me to all
eternity! I have been loved as never man was loved! All for my own sake, mind
you! In the way of money I was no great catch; and for the rank, she never got
any good of that, nor would if she had lived till I was earl; she had a
conscience--which I never had--and would never have consented to be called
countess. 'It will be no worse than passing for my wife now,' I would say.
'What's either but an appearance? What's any thing of all the damned humbug but
appearance? One appearance is as good as another appearance!' She would only
smile--smile fit to make a mule sad! And then when her baby was dying, and she
wanted me to take her for a minute, and I wouldn't! She laid her down, and got
what she wanted herself, and when she went to take the child again, the absurd
little thing was--was--gone--dead, I mean gone dead, never to cry any more!
There it lay motionless, like a lump of white clay. She looked at me--and
never--in this world--smiled again!--nor cried either--all I could do to make
her!"
The wretched man burst into
tears, and the heart of Donal gave a leap for joy. Common as tears are, fall as
they may for the foolishest things, they may yet be such as to cause joy in
paradise. The man himself may not know why he weeps, and his tears yet indicate
his turning on his road. The earl was as far from a good man as man well could
be; there were millions of spiritual miles betwixt him and the image of God; he
had wept it was hard to say at what--not at his own cruelty, not at his wife's
suffering, not in pity of the little soul that went away at last out of no
human embrace; himself least of all could have told why he wept; yet was that
weeping some sign of contact between his human soul and the great human soul of
God; it was the beginning of a possible communion with the Father of all!
Surely God saw this, and knew the heart he had made--saw the flax smoking yet!
He who will not let us out until we have paid the uttermost farthing, rejoices
over the offer of the first golden grain.
Donal dropped on his knees
and prayed:--
"O Father of us
all!" he said, "in whose hands are these unruly hearts of ours, we
cannot manage ourselves; we ruin our own selves; but in thee is our help
found!"
Prayer went from him; he
rose from his knees.
"Go on; go on; don't
stop!" cried the earl. "He may hear you--who can tell!"
Donal went down on his knees
again.
"O God!" he said,
"thou knowest us, whether we speak to thee or not; take from this man his
hardness of heart. Make him love thee."
There he stopped again. He
could say no more.
"I can't pray, my
lord," he said, rising. "I don't know why. It seems as if nothing I
said meant anything. I will pray for you when I am alone."
"Are there so many
devils about me that an honest fellow can't pray in my company?" cried the
earl. "I will pray myself, in spite of the whole swarm of them, big and
little!--O God, save me! I don't want to be damned. I will be good if thou wilt
make me. I don't care about it myself, but thou canst do as thou pleasest. It
would be a fine thing if a rascal like me were to escape the devil through thy
goodness after all. I'm worth nothing, but there's my wife! Pray, pray, Lord
God, let me one day see my wife again!--For Christ's sake--ain't that the way,
Grant?--Amen."
Donal had dropped on his
knees once more when the earl began to pray. He uttered a hearty Amen.
The earl turned sharply towards him, and saw he was weeping. He put out his
hand to him, and said,
"You'll stand my
friend, Grant?"
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXX. AWAY-FARING.">
CHAPTER LXXX.
AWAY-FARING.
SUDDENLY what strength lady
Arctura had, gave way, and she began to sink. But it was spring with the summer
at hand; they hoped she would recover sufficiently to be removed to a fitter
climate. She did not herself think so. She had hardly a doubt that her time was
come. She was calm, often cheerful, but her spirits were variable. Donal's
heart was sorer than he had thought it could be again.
One day, having been reading
a little to her, he sat looking at her. He did not know how sad was the
expression of his countenance. She looked up, smiled, and said,
"You think I am
unhappy!--you could not look at me like that if you did not think so! I am only
tired; I am not unhappy. I hardly know now what unhappiness is! If ever I look
as if I were unhappy, it is only that I am waiting for more life. It is on the
way; I feel it is, because I am so content with everything; I would have
nothing other than it is. It is very hard for God that his children will not
trust him to do with them what he pleases! I am sure, Mr. Grant, the world is
all wrong, and on the way to be all wondrously right. It will cost God much
labour yet: we will cost him as little as we can--won't we?--Oh, Mr. Grant, if
it hadn't been for you, God would have been far away still! For a God I should have
had something half an idol, half a commonplace tyrant! I should never have
dreamed of the glory of God!"
"No, my lady!"
returned Donal; "if God had not sent me, he would have sent somebody else;
you were ready!"
"I am very glad he sent
you! I should never have loved any other so much!"
Donal's eyes filled with
tears. He was simple as a child. No male vanity, no self-exultation that a
woman should love him, and tell him she loved him, sprang up in his heart. He
knew she loved him; he loved her; all was so natural it could not be otherwise:
he never presumed to imagine her once thinking of him as he had thought of
Ginevra. He was her servant, willing and loving as any angel of God: that was
all--and enough!
"You are not vexed with
your pupil--are you?" she resumed, again looking up in his face, this time
with a rosy flush on her own.
"Why?" said Donal,
with wonder.
"For speaking so to my
master."
"Angry because you love
me?"
"No, of course!"
she responded, at once satisfied. "You knew that must be! How could I but
love you--better than any one else in the world! You have given me life! I was
dead.--You have been like another father to me!" she added, with a smile
of heavenly tenderness. "But I could not have spoken to you like this, if
I had not known I was dying."
The word shot a sting as of
fire through Donal's heart.
"You are always a
child, Mr. Grant," she went on; "death is making a child of me; it
makes us all children: as if we were two little children together, I tell you I
love you.--Don't look like that," she continued; "you must not forget
what you have been teaching me all this time--that the will of God, the perfect
God, is all in all! He is not a God far off: to know that is enough to have
lived for! You have taught me that, and I love you with a true heart
fervently."
Donal could not speak. He
knew she was dying.
"Mr. Grant," she
began again, "my soul is open to his eyes, and is not ashamed. I know I am
going to do what would by the world be counted unwomanly; but you and I stand
before our Father, not before the world. I ask you in plain words, knowing that
if you cannot do as I ask you willingly, you will not do it. And be sure I
shall plainly be dying before I claim the fulfilment of your promise if you
give it. I do not want your answer all at once: you must think about it."
Here she paused a while,
then said,
"I want you to marry
me, if you will, before I go."
Donal could not yet speak.
His soul was in a tumult of emotion.
"I am tired," she
said. "Please go and think it over. If you say no, I shall only
say, 'He knows best what is best!' I shall not be ashamed. Only you must not
once think what the world would say: of all people we have nothing to do with
the world! We have nothing to do but with God and love! If he be pleased with
us, we can afford to smile at what his silly children think of us: they mind only
what their vulgar nurses say, not what their perfect father says: we need not
mind them--need we?--I wonder at myself," she went on, for Donal did not
utter a word, "for being able to speak like this; but then I have been
thinking of it for a long time--chiefly as I lie awake. I am never afraid
now--not though I lie awake all night: 'perfect love casteth out fear,' you
know. I have God to love, and Jesus to love, and you to love, and my own father
to love! When you know him, you will see how good a man can be without having
been brought up like you!--Oh, Donal, do say something, or I shall cry, and
crying kills me!"
She was sitting on a low
chair, with the sunlight across her lap--for she was again in the sunny
Garland-room--and the firelight on her face. Donal knelt gently down, and laid
his hands in the sunlight on her lap, just as if he were going to say his
prayers at his mother's knee. She laid both her hands on his.
"I have something to
tell you," he said; "and then you must speak again."
"Tell me," said
Arctura, with a little gasp.
"When I came
here," said Donal, "I thought my heart so broken that it would never
love--that way, I mean--any more. But I loved God better than ever: and as one
I would fain help, I loved you from the very first. But I should have scorned
myself had I once fancied you loved me more than just to do anything for me I
needed done. When I saw you troubled, I longed to take you up in my arms, and
carry you like a lovely bird that had fallen from one of God's nests; but never
once, my lady, did I think of your caring for my love: it was yours as a matter
of course. I once asked a lady to kiss me--just once, for a good-bye: she would
not--and she was quite right; but after that I never spoke to a lady but she
seemed to stand far away on the top of a hill against a sky."
He stopped. Her hands on his
fluttered a little, as if they would fly.
"Is she still--is
she--alive?" she asked.
"Oh yes, my lady."
"Then she
may--change--" said Arctura, and stopped, for there was a stone in her
heart.
Donal laughed. It was an odd
laugh, but it did Arctura good.
"No danger of that, my
lady! She has the best husband in the world--a much better than I should have
made, much as I loved her."
"That can't be!"
"Why, my lady, her
husband's sir Gibbie! She's lady Galbraith! I would never have wished her mine
if I had known she loved Gibbie. I love her next to him."
"Then--then--"
"What, my lady?"
"Then--then--Oh, do say
something!"
"What should I say?
What God wills is fast as the roots of the universe, and lovely as its
blossom."
Arctura burst into tears.
"Then you do not--care
for me!"
Donal began to understand.
In some things he went on so fast that he could not hear the cry behind him.
She had spoken, and had been listening in vain for response! She thought
herself unloved: he had shown her no sign that he loved her!
His heart was so full of
love and the joy of love, that they had made him very still: now the delight of
love awoke. He took her in his arms like a child, rose, and went walking about
the room with her, petting and soothing her. He held her close to his heart;
her head was on his shoulder, and his face was turned to hers.
"I love you," he
said, "and love you to all eternity! I have love enough now to live upon,
if you should die to-night, and I should tarry till he come. O God, thou art
too good to me! It is more than my heart can bear! To make men and women, and
give them to each other, and not be one moment jealous of the love wherewith they
love one another, is to be a God indeed!"
So said Donal--and spoke the
high truth. But alas for the love wherewith men and women love each other!
There were small room for God to be jealous of that! It is the little
love with which they love each other, the great love with which they love
themselves, that hurts the heart of their father.
Arctura signed at length a
prayer for release, and he set her gently down in her chair again. Then he saw
her face more beautiful than ever before; and the rose that bloomed there was
the rose of a health deeper than sickness. These children of God were of the
blessed few who love the more that they know him present, whose souls are naked
before him, and not ashamed. Let him that hears understand! if he understand
not, let him hold his peace, and it will be his wisdom! He who has no place for
this love in his religion, who thinks to be more holy without it, is not of
God's mind when he said, "Let us make man!" He may be a saint, but he
cannot be a man after God's own heart. The finished man is the saved man. The
saint may have to be saved from more than sin.
"When shall we be
married?" asked Donal.
"Soon, soon,"
answered Arctura.
"To-morrow then?"
"No, not to-morrow:
there is no such haste--now that we understand each other," she added with
a rosy smile. "I want to be married to you before I die, that is all--not
just to-morrow, or the next day."
"When you please, my
love," said Donal.
She laid her head on his
bosom.
"We are as good as
married now," she said: "we know that each loves the other! How I
shall wait for you! You will be mine, you know--a little bit mine--won't
you?--even if you should marry some beautiful lady after I am gone?--I shall
love her when she comes."
"Arctura!" said
Donal.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXXI. A WILL AND A WEDDING.">
CHAPTER LXXXI.
A WILL AND A WEDDING.
BUT the opening of the
windows of heaven, and the unspeakable rush of life through channels too narrow
and banks too weak to hold its tide, caused a terrible inundation: the red
flood broke its banks, and weakened all the land.
Arctura sent for Mr. Graeme,
and commissioned him to fetch the family lawyer from Edinburgh. Alone with him
she gave instructions concerning her will. The man of business shrugged his
shoulders, laden with so many petty weights, bowed down with so many falsest
opinions, and would have expostulated with her.
"Sir!" she said.
"You have a cousin who
inherits the title!" he suggested.
"Mr. Fortune," she
returned, "it may be I know as much of my family as you. I did not send
for you to consult you, but to tell you how I would have my will drawn
up!"
"I beg your pardon, my
lady," rejoined the lawyer, "but there are things which may make it
one's duty to speak out."
"Speak then; I will
listen--that you may ease your mind."
He began a long,
common-sense, worldly talk on the matter, nor once repeated himself. When he
stopped,--
"Now have you eased
your mind?" she asked.
"I have, my lady."
"Then listen to me.
There is no necessity you should hurt either your feelings or your prejudices.
If it goes against your conscience to do as I wish, I will not trouble
you."
Mr. Fortune bowed, took his
instructions, and rose.
"When will you bring it
me?" she asked.
"In the course of a
week or two, my lady."
"If it is not in my
hands by the day after to-morrow, I will send for a gentleman from the town to
prepare it."
"You shall have it, my
lady," said Mr. Fortune.
She did have it, and it was
signed and witnessed.
Then she sank more rapidly.
Donal said no word about the marriage: it should be as she pleased! He was much
by her bedside, reading to her when she was able to listen, talking to her or
sitting silent when she was not.
Arctura had at once told
mistress Brookes the relation in which she and Donal stood to each other. It
cost the good woman many tears, for she thought such a love one of the saddest
things in a sad world. Neither Arctura nor Donal thought so.
The earl at this time was a
little better, though without prospect of even temporary recovery. He had grown
much gentler, and sadness had partially displaced his sullenness. He seemed to
have become in a measure aware of the bruteness of the life he had hitherto
led: he must have had a glimpse of something better. It is wonderful what the
sickness which human stupidity regards as the one evil thing, can do towards
redemption! He showed concern at his niece's illness, and had himself carried
down every other day to see her for a few minutes. She received him always with
the greatest gentleness, and he showed something that seemed like genuine
affection for her.
It was a morning in the
month of May--
The naked twigs were shivering all for
cold--
when Donal, who had been
with Arctura the greater part of the night, and now lay on the couch in a
neighbouring room, heard Mrs. Brookes call him.
"My lady wants you,
sir," she said.
He started up, and went to
her.
"Send for the
minister," she whispered, "--not Mr. Carmichael; he does not know
you. Send for Mr. Graeme too: he and mistress Brookes will be witnesses. I must
call you husband once before I die!"
"I hope you will many a
time after!" he returned.
She smiled on him with a
look of love unutterable.
"Mind," she said,
holding out her arms feebly, but drawing him fast to her bosom, "that this
is how I love you! When you see me dull and stupid, and I hardly look at
you--for though death makes bright, dying makes stupid--then say to yourself,
'This is not how she loves me; it is only how she is dying! She loves me and
knows it--and by and by will be able to show it!'"
They were precious words
both then and afterwards!
With some careful
questioning, to satisfy himself that, so evidently at the gate of death she yet
knew perfectly her own mind,--and not without some shakes of the head revealing
disapprobation, the minister did as he was requested, and wrote a certificate
of the fact, which was duly signed and witnessed.
And if he showed his
disapproval yet more in the prayer with which he concluded the ceremony, none
but mistress Brookes showed responsive indignation.
The bridegroom gave his
bride one gentle kiss, and withdrew with the clergyman.
"Pardon me if I
characterize this as a strange proceeding!" said the latter.
"Not so strange perhaps
as it looks, sir!" said Donal.
"On the very brink of
the other world!"
"The other world and
its brink too are his who ordained marriage!"
"For this world
only," said the minister.
"The gifts of God are
without repentance," said Donal.
"I have heard of
you!" returned the clergyman. "You are one, they tell me, given to
misusing scripture."
He had conceived a painful
doubt that he had been drawn into some plot!
"Sir!" said Donal
sternly, "if you saw any impropriety in the ceremony, why did you perform
it? I beg you will now reserve your remarks. You ought to have made them before
or not at all. If you be silent, the thing will probably never be heard of, and
I should greatly dislike having it the town-talk."
"Except I see
reason--that is, if nothing follow to render disclosure necessary, I shall be
silent," said the minister.
He would have declined the
fee offered by Donal; but he was poor, and its amount prevailed: he accepted
it, and took his leave with a stiffness he intended for dignity: he had a high
sense, if not of the dignity of his office, at least of the dignity his office
conferred on him.
Donal had next a brief
interview with Mr. Graeme. The factor was in a state of utter bewilderment, and
readily yielded Donal a promise of silence: the mere whim of a dying girl, it
had better be ignored and forgotten! As to Grant's part in it he did not know
what to think. It could not affect the property, he thought: it could hardly be
a marriage! And then there was the will--of the contents of which he knew
nothing! If it were a complete marriage, the will was worth nothing, being made
before it!
I will not linger over the
quiet, sad time that followed. Donal was to Arctura, she said, father, brother,
husband, in one. Through him she had reaped the harvest of the world, in spite
of falsehood, murder, fear, and distrust! She lay victorious on the
battlefield!
In the heart of her
bridegroom reigned a peace the world could not give or take away. He loved with
a love that cast the love of former days into the shadow of a sweet but
undesired remembrance. A long twilight life lay before him, but he would have
plenty to do! and such was the love between him and Arctura, that every doing
of the will of God was as the tying of a fresh bond between him and her: she
was his because they were the Father's, whose will was the life and bond of the
universe.
"I think," said
Donal, that same night by her bed, "when my mother dies, she will go near
you: I will, if I can, send you a message by her. But it will not matter; it
can only tell you what you will know well enough--that I love you, and am
waiting to come to you."
The stupidity of calling
oneself a Christian, and doubting if we shall know our friends hereafter! In
those who do not believe such a doubt is more than natural, but in those who
profess to believe, it shows what a ragged scarecrow is the thing they call their
faith--not worth that of many an old Jew, or that of here and there a pagan!
"I shall not be far
from you, dear, I think--sometimes at least," she said, speaking very low.
"If you dream anything nice about me, think I am thinking of you. If you
should dream anything not nice, think something is lying to you about me. I do
not know if I shall be allowed to come near you, but if I am--and I think
I shall be--sometimes, I shall laugh to myself to think how near I am, and you
fancying me a long way off! But any way all will be well, for the great life,
our God, our father, is, and in him we cannot but be together."
After that she fell into a
deep sleep, and slept for hours. Then suddenly she sat up. Donal put his arm
behind and supported her. She looked a little wild, shuddered, murmured
something he could not understand, then threw herself back into his arms. Her
expression changed to a look of divinest, loveliest content, and she was gone.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXXII. THE WILL.">
CHAPTER LXXXII.
THE WILL.
WHEN her will was read, it
was found that, except some legacies, and an annuity to Mrs. Brookes, she had
left everything to Donal.
Mr. Graeme, rising the moment
the lawyer looked up, congratulated Donal--politely, not cordially, and took
his leave.
"If you are walking
towards home," said Donal, "I will walk with you."
"I shall be
happy," said Mr. Graeme--feeling it not a little hard that one who would
soon be heir presumptive to the title should have to tend the family property
in the service of a stranger and a peasant.
"Lord Morven cannot
live long," said Donal as they went. "It is not to be wished he
should."
Mr. Graeme returned no
answer. Donal resumed.
"I think I ought to let
you know at once that you are heir to the title."
"I think you owe the
knowledge to myself!" said the factor, not without a touch of contempt.
"By no means,"
rejoined Donal: "on presumption, after lord Forgue, you told me;--after
lord Morven, I tell you."
"I am at a loss to
imagine on what you found such a statement," said Graeme, beginning to
suspect insanity.
"Naturally; no one
knows it but myself. Lord Morven knows that his son cannot succeed, but he does
not know that you can. I am prepared, if not to prove, at least to convince you
that he and his son's mother were not married."
Mr. Graeme was for a moment
silent. Then he laughed a little laugh--not a pleasant one. "Another of
Time's clownish tricks!" he said to himself: "the earl the factor on
the family-estate!" Donal did not like the way he took it, but saw how
natural it was.
"I hope you have known
me long enough," he said, "to believe I have contrived nothing?"
"Excuse me, Mr. Grant:
the whole business looks suspicious. The girl was dying! You knew
it!"
"I do not understand
you."
"What did you marry her
for?"
"To make her my
wife."
"Pray what could be the
good of that except--?"
"Does it need any
explanation but that we loved each other?"
"You will find it
difficult to convince the world that such was your sole motive."
"Having no care for the
opinion of the world, I shall be satisfied if I convince you. The world needs
never hear of the thing. Would you, Mr. Graeme, have had me not marry her,
because the world, including not a few honest men like yourself, would say my
object was the property?"
"Don't put the question
to me; I am not the proper person to answer it. There is not a man in a hundred
millions who with the chance would not have done the same, or whom all the rest
would not blame for doing it. It would have been better for you, however, that
there had been no will."
"How?"
"It makes it look the
more like a scheme:--the will might have been disputed."
"Why do you say--might
have been?"
"Because it is not
worth disputing now. If the marriage stands, it annuls the will."
"I did not know; and I
suppose she did not know either. Or perhaps she wanted to make the thing sure:
if the marriage was not enough, the will would be--she may have thought. But I
knew nothing of it."
"You did not?"
"Of course I did
not."
Mr. Graeme held his peace.
For the first time he doubted Donal's word.
"But I wanted to have a
little talk with you," resumed Donal. "I want to know whether you
think your duty all to the owner of the land, or in any measure to the tenants
also."
"That is easy to
answer: one employed by the landlord can owe the tenant nothing."
It was not just the answer
he would have given to another questioner.
"Do you not owe him
justice?" asked Donal.
"Every legal advantage
I ought to take for my employer."
"Even to the grinding
of the faces of the poor?"
"I have nothing to do,
as his employé, with my own ideas as to what may be equitable."
He drew the line thus hard in
pure opposition to Donal.
"What then would you
say if the land were your own? Would you say you had it solely for your own and
your family's good, or for that of the tenants as well?"
"I should very likely
reason that what was good for them would in the long run be good for me
too.--But if you want to know how I have treated the tenants, there are
intelligent men amongst them, not at all prejudiced in favour of the
factor!"
"I wish you would be
open with me," said Donal.
"I prefer keeping my
own place," rejoined Mr. Graeme.
"You speak as one who
found a change in me," returned Donal. "There is none."
So saying he shook hands
with him, bade him good morning, and turned with the depression of failure.
"I did not lead up to
the point properly!" he said to himself.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXXIII. INSIGHT.">
CHAPTER LXXXIII.
INSIGHT.
MR. GRAEME was a good sort
of man, and a gentleman; but he was not capable of meeting Donal on the ground
on which he approached him: on that level he had never set foot. There is
nothing more disappointing to the generous man than the way in which his
absolute frankness is met by the man of the world--always looking out for
motives, and imagining them after what is in himself.
There was great confidence
between the brother and sister, and as he walked homeward, Mr. Graeme was not
so well pleased with himself as to think with satisfaction on the report of the
interview he could give Kate. He did not accuse himself with regard to anything
he had said, but he felt his behaviour influenced by jealousy of the low-born
youth who had supplanted him. For, if Percy could not succeed to the title,
neither could he have succeeded to the property; and but for the will or the
marriage, perhaps but for the two together, he would himself have come in for
that also! The will was worth nothing except the marriage was disputed: annul
the marriage, and the will was of force!
He told his sister, as
nearly as he could, all that had passed between them.
"If he wanted me to
talk to him," he said, "why did he tell me that about Forgue? It was
infernally stupid of him! But what's bred in the bone--! A gentleman 's not
made in a day!"
"Nor in a thousand
years, Hector!" rejoined his sister. "Donal Grant is a gentleman in
the best sense of the word! That you say he is not, lets me see you are vexed
with yourself. He is a little awkward sometimes, I confess; but only when he is
looking at a thing from some other point of view, and does not like to say you
ought to have been looking at it from the same. And you can't say he shuffles,
for he never stops till he has done his best to make you!--What have you been
saying to him, Hector?"
"Nothing but what I
have told you; it's rather what I have not been saying!" answered her
brother. "He would have had me open out to him, and I wouldn't. How could
I! Whatever I said that pleased him, would have looked as if I wanted to secure
my situation! Hang it all! I have a good mind to throw it up. How is a Graeme
to serve under a bumpkin?"
"The man is not a
bumpkin; he is a scholar and a poet!" said the lady.
"Pooh! pooh! What's a
poet?"
"One that may or may
not be as good a man of business as yourself when it is required of him."
"Come, come! don't you
turn against me, Kate! It's hard enough to bear as it is!"
Miss Graeme made no reply.
She was meditating all she knew of Donal, to guide her to the something to
which she was sure her brother had not let him come; and presently she made him
recount again all they had said to each other.
"I tell you,
Hector," she exclaimed, "you never made such a fool of yourself in
your life! If I know human nature, that man is different from any other you
have had to do with. It will take a woman, a better woman than your sister, I
confess, to understand him; but I see a little farther into him than you do. He
is a man who, never having had money enough to learn the bad uses of it, and
never having formed habits it takes money to supply, having no ambition, living
in books not in places, and for pleasure having more at his command in himself
than the richest--he is a man who, I say, would find money an impediment to his
happiness, for he must have a sense of duty with regard to it which would
interfere with everything he liked best. Besides, though he does not care a
straw for the judgment of the world where it differs from him, he would be
sorry to seem to go against that judgment where he agrees with it: scorning to
marry any woman for her money, he would not have the world think he had done
so."
"Ah, Katey, there I
have you! The world would entirely approve of his doing that!"
"I will take a better
position then:--he would not willingly seem to have done a thing he himself
despises. The man believes himself sent into the world to teach it something:
he would not have it thrown in his teeth that, after all, he looks to the main
chance as keenly as another! He would starve before he would have men say
so--yes, even say so falsely. I am as sure he did not marry lady Arctura for
her money, as I am sure lord Forgue, or you, Hector, would have done it if you
had had a chance.--There!--My conviction is that the bumpkin sought a fit
opening to tell you that the will was to go for nothing, and that no word need
be said about the marriage. You know he made you promise not to mention
it--only I wormed it out of you!"
"That's just like you
women! The man you take a fancy to is always head and shoulders above other
men!"
"As you take it so, I
will tell you more: that man will never marry again!"
"Wait a bit. Admiration
is sometimes mutual: who knows but he may ask you next!"
"If he did ask me, I
might take him, but I should never think so much of him!"
"Heroic Kate!"
"If you had been a
little more heroic, Hector, you would have responded to him--and found it
considerably to your advantage."
"You don't imagine I
would be indebted--"
"Hush! Hush! Don't
pledge yourself in a hurry--even to me!" said Kate. "Leave as wide a
sea-margin about your boat as you may. You don't know what you would or would
not. Mr. Grant knows, but you do not."
"Mr. Grant
again!--Well!"
"Well!--we shall
see!"
And they soon did. For that
same evening Donal called, and asked to see Miss Graeme.
"I am sorry my brother
is gone down to the town," she said.
"It was you I wanted to
see," he answered. "I wish to speak openly to you, for I imagine you
will understand me better than your brother. Perhaps I ought rather to say--I
shall be better able to explain myself to you."
There was that in his
countenance which seemed to seize and hold her--a calm exaltation, as of a man
who had outlived weakness and was facing the eternal. The spirit of a smile
hovered about his mouth and eyes, embodying itself now and then in a grave,
sweet, satisfied smile: the man seemed full of content, not with himself, but
with something he would gladly share.
"I have been talking
with your brother," he said, after a brief pause.
"I know," she
answered. "I am afraid he did not meet you as he ought. He is a good and
honourable man; but like most men he needs a moment to pull himself together.
Few men, Mr. Grant, when suddenly called upon, answer from the best that is in
them."
"The fact is simply
this," resumed Donal: "I do not want the Morven property. I thank God
for lady Arctura: what was hers I do not desire."
"But may it not be your
duty to take it, Mr. Grant?--Pardon me for suggesting duty to one who always
acts from it."
"I have reflected, and
do not think God wants me to take it. Because she is mine, ought I of necessity
to be enslaved to all her accidents? Must I, because I love her, hoard her
gowns and shoes?"
Then first Miss Graeme noted
that he never spoke of his wife as in the past.
"But there are others
to be considered," she replied. "You have made me think about many
things, Mr. Grant! My brother and I have had many talks as to what we would do
if the land were ours."
"And yours it shall
be," said Donal, "if you will take it as a trust for the good of all
whom it supports. I have other work to do."
"I will tell my brother
what you say," answered Miss Graeme, with victory in her heart--for was it
not as she had divined?
"It is better,"
continued Donal, "to help make good men than happy tenants. Besides, I
know how to do the one, and I do not know how to do the other. There would
always be a prejudice against me too, as not to the manner born. But if your
brother should accept my offer, I hope he will not think me interfering if I talk
sometimes of the principles of the relation. Things go wrong, generally,
because men have such absurd and impossible notions about possession.
They call things their own which it is impossible, from their very nature, ever
to possess or make their own. Power was never given to man over men for his own
sake, and the nearer he that so uses it comes to success, the more utter will
prove his discomfiture. Talk to your brother about it, Miss Graeme. Tell him
that, as heir to the title, and as head of the family, he can do more than any
other with the property, and I will gladly make it over to him without reserve.
I would not be even partially turned aside from my own calling."
"I will tell him what
you say. I told him he had misunderstood you. I saw into your generous
thought."
"It is not generous at
all. My dear Miss Graeme, you do not know how little of a temptation such
things are to me! There are some who only care to inherit straight from the
first Father. You may say the earth is the Lord's, and therefore a part of that
first inheritance: I admit it; but such possession as this in question would
not satisfy me in the least. I must inherit the earth in a far deeper, grander,
truer way than calling the land mine, before I shall count myself to have come into
my own. I want to have all things just as the maker of me wants me to have
them.--I will call on you again to-morrow; I must now go back to the earl. Poor
man, he is sinking fast! but I believe he is more at peace than he has ever
been before!"
Donal took his leave, and
Miss Graeme had plenty to think of till her brother's return: if she felt a
little triumphant, it may be pardoned her.
He was ashamed, and not a
little humbled by what she told him. He did not wait for Donal to come to him,
but went to the castle early the next morning. Nor was he mistaken in trusting
Donal to believe that it was not from eagerness to retrace in his own interest
the false step he had taken, but from desire to show his shame of having
behaved so ungenerously: Donal received him so as to make it plain he did not
misunderstand him, and they had a long talk. Graeme was all the readier for his
blunder to hear what Donal had to say, and Donal's unquestionable
disinterestedness was endlessly potent with Graeme. Their interview resulted in
Donal's thinking still better of him than before, and being satisfied that, up
to his light, the man was honest--which is saying much--and thence open to
conviction, and both sides of a question. But ere it was naturally over, Donal
was summoned to the earl.
After his niece's death, no
one would do for him but Donal; nobody could please him but Donal. His mind as
well as his body was much weaker. But the intellect, great thing though it be,
is yet but the soil out of which, or rather in which, higher things must grow,
and it is well when that soil is not too strong, so to speak, for the most
gracious and lovely of plants to root themselves in it. When the said soil is
proud and unwilling to serve, it must be thinned and pulverized with sickness,
failure, poverty, fear--that the good seeds of God's garden may be able to root
themselves in it; when they get up a little, they will use all the riches and
all the strength of the stiffest soil.
"Who will have the
property now?" he asked one day. "Is the factor anywhere in the
running?"
"Title and property
both will be his," answered Donal.
"And my poor
Davie?" said the earl, with wistful question in the eyes that gazed up in
Donal's face. "Forgue, the rascal, has all my money in his power
already."
"I will see to
Davie," replied Donal. "When you and I meet, my lord--by and by, I
shall not be ashamed."
The poor man was satisfied.
He sent for Davie, and told him he was always to do as Mr. Grant wished, that
he left him in his charge, and that he must behave to him like a son.
Davie was fast making
acquaintance with death--but it was not to him dreadful as to most children,
for he saw it through the face and words of the man whom he most honoured.
</div1><div1
title="CHAPTER LXXXIV. MORVEN HOUSE.">
CHAPTER LXXXIV.
MORVEN HOUSE.
IN the evening Donal went
again to the home-farm. Finding himself alone in the drawing-room, he walked
out into the old garden.
"Thank God," he
said to himself, "if my wife should come here some sad, sweet night, with
a low moon-crescent, and a gently thinking wind, and wander about the garden,
it will not be to know herself forgotten!"
He went up and down the
grassy paths. Once again, all as long ago--for it seemed long now--he was
joined by Miss Graeme.
"I couldn't help fancying,"
she said as she came up to him, "that I saw lady Arctura walking by your
side.--God forgive me! how could I be so heartless as mention her!"
"Her name will always
be pleasant in my ears," returned Donal. "I was thinking of her--that
was how you felt as if you saw her! You did not really see anything, did
you?"
"Oh, no!"
"She is nearer me than
that," said Donal. "She will be with me wherever I am; I shall never
be sad. God is with me, and I do not weep that I cannot see him: I wait; I
wait."
Miss Graeme was in tears.
"Mr. Grant," she
said, "she is gone a happy angel to heaven instead of a pining woman! That
is your doing! God bless you!--You will let me think of you as a friend?"
"Always; always: you
loved her."
"I did not at first; I
thought of her only as a poor troubled creature! Now I know there was more life
in her trouble than in my content. I came not only to love her, but to look up
to her as a saint: if ever there was one, it was she, Mr. Grant. She often came
here after I showed her that poem. She used to walk here alone in the twilight.
That horrid Miss Carmichael! she was the plague of her life!"
"She was God's
messenger--to buffet her, and make her know her need of him. Be sure, Miss
Graeme, not a soul can do without him."
Here Mr. Graeme joined them.
"I do not think the
earl will last many days," said Donal. "It would be well, it seems to
me, at once upon his death to take possession of the house in the town. It is
the only property that goes with the title. And of course you would at once
take up your abode in the castle! You will find in the earl's papers many
proofs, I imagine, that his son has no claim. I would have a deed of gift drawn
up, but would rather you seemed to come in by natural succession. We are not
bound to tell the world everything; we are only bound to be able without shame
to tell it everything. And then I shall have a favour to ask: Morven House,
down in the town, is of no great use to you: let me rent it of you. I should
like to live there and have a school, with Davie for my first pupil. When we
get another, we will try to make a man of him too. We will not care so much
about making a great scholar, or a great anything of him, but a true man. We
will try to help the whole man of him into the likeness of the one man."
Here Mr. Graeme broke in.
"You will never make a
living that way!" he said.
Donal opened his eyes and
looked at him. Like one convicted and ashamed, the eyes of the man of business
fell before those of the man of God.
"Ah," said Donal,
"you have not an idea, Mr. Graeme, on how little I could live!--Here, you
had better take the will," he added, pulling it from his pocket.
Mr. Graeme hesitated.
"If you would rather
not, I will keep it. I would throw it in the fire, but either you or I must
keep it for a time as against all chances."
Mr. Graeme took it.
That night the earl died.
Donal wrote to Percy that
his father was dead. Two days after, he appeared. The new earl met him in the
hall.
"Mr. Graeme," said
Percy,--
"I am lord Morven, Mr.
Graeme," returned his lordship.
The fellow said an evil
word, turned on his heel, and left them to bury his father without him.
The funeral over, the earl
turned to Donal and looked him in the face: they walked back to the castle arm
in arm, and from that moment were as brothers.
Earl Hector did nothing of
importance without consulting Donal, and Donal had the more influence both with
landlord and tenants that he had no interest in the property.
The same week he left the
castle, and took possession of Morven House. The people said Mr. Grant had
played his cards well: had they known what he had really done, they would have
called him a born idiot.
Davie, to whom no calamity
could be overwhelming so long as he had Mr. Grant, accompanied him gladly, more
than content to live with him till he went to college, whither the earl wished
to send him. Donal hindered rather than sped the day. When it came, the earl
would have had him go too, but Donal would not.
"I have done what I
can," he said. "It is time he should walk alone."
It was soon evident that the
boy would not disgrace him. There is no certainty as to how deep any teaching
may have gone--as to whether it has reached the issues of life or not, until a
youth is left by himself, and has to choose and refuse companions: the most
promising youths are often but promisers.
With the full concurrence of
Miss Graeme, Donal had persuaded mistress Brookes--easy persuasion where the
suggestion was enough!--to keep house for him. They went together, and together
unlocked the door of Morven House.
Mistress Brookes said the
place was in an awful state. There was not much, to be sure, for the mason to
do, but for the carpenter! It had not been touched for generations! He must go
away, and stay away till she summoned him!
Donal gladly went home to
his hills, and took Davie with him. He told his father and mother, sir Gibbie
and his lady, the things that had befallen him, and every one approved heartily
of what he had done. His mother took his renunciation of the property as a
matter of course. All agreed it should not be spoken of. When they returned to
Auchars, sir Gibbie and lady Galbraith went with them, and staid for some
weeks. The townsfolk said he was but a poor baronet that could not speak mortal
word.
Lord Morven and Miss Graeme
had done their best to make the house what they thought Donal would like. But
in the castle they kept for him the rooms lady Arctura had called her own.
There he gathered the books, and a few other of the more immediately personal
possessions of his wife--her piano for one--upon which he taught himself to
play a little; and thither he betook himself often on holidays, and always on
Sunday evenings. What went on then I leave to the imagination of the reader who
knows that alone one may meet many, sitting still may travel far, and silent
make the universe hear.
Lord Morven kept Larkie for
Davie. The last I heard of Davie was that he was in India, an officer in the
army, beloved of his men, and exercising a most beneficial influence on his
regiment. The things he had learned he had so learned that they went out from
him, finding new ground in which to root and grow. In his day and generation he
helped the coming of the kingdom of truth and righteousness, and so fulfilled
his high calling.
It was some time before
Donal had any pupils, and he never had many, for he was regarded as a most
peculiar man, with ideas about education odd in the extreme. It was granted,
however, that, if a boy stayed, or rather if he allowed him to stay with him
long enough, he was sure to turn out a gentleman: that which was deeper and was
the life of the gentleman, people seldom saw--would seldom have valued if they
had seen. Most parents would like their children to be ladies and gentlemen;
that they should be sons and daughters of God, they do not care!
The few wise souls in the
neighbourhood know Donal as the heart of the place--the man to go to in any
difficulty, in any trouble or apprehension.
Miss Carmichael grew by
degrees less talkative, and less obtrusive of her opinions. After some years
she condescended to marry a farmer on lord Morven's estate. Their only child, a
thoughtful boy, and a true reader, sought the company of the grave man with the
sweet smile, going often to his house to ask him about this or that. He
reminded him of Davie, and grew very dear to him. The mother discovering that,
as often as he stole away, it was to go to the master--everybody called him the
maister--scolded and forbade. But the prohibition brought such a time of
tears and gloom and loss of appetite, and her husband so little shared her
prejudices against the master, that she was compelled to recall it, and the boy
went and went as before. When he was taken ill, and on his deathbed, nobody
could make him happy but the master; he almost nursed him through the last few
days of his short earthly life. But the mother seemed not to like him any the
better--rather to regard him as having deprived her of some of her rights in
the love of her boy.
Donal is still a present
power of heat and light in the town of Auchars. He wears the same solemn look,
the same hovering smile. They say to those who can read them, "I know in
whom I have believed." It is the God who is the Father of the Lord that he
believes in. His life is hid with Christ in God, and he has no anxiety about
anything. The wheels of the coming chariot, moving fast or slow to fetch him,
are always moving; and whether it arrive at night, or at cock-crowing, or in
the blaze of noon, is one to him. He is ready for the life his Arctura knows.
"God is," he says, "and all is well." He never disputes,
rarely seeks to convince. "I will let what light I have shine; but
disputation is smoke. It is to no profit!--And I do like," he says,
"to give and to get the good of things!"
THE END.
</div1><div1
title="GLOSSARY.">
Note from John Bechard,
creator of this Electronic text.
The following is a list of
Scottish words which are found in George MacDonald’s “Donal Grant”. I have compiled this list myself and
worked out the definitions from context with the help of Margaret West, from Leven
in Fife, Scotland, and also by referring to a word list found in a collection
of poems by Robert Burns, “Chamber’s Scots Dialect Dictionary from the 17th
century to the Present” c. 1911 and “Scots-English English-Scots Dictionary”
Lomond Books c. 1998. I have tried
to be as thorough as possible given the limited resources and welcome any
feedback on this list which may be wrong (my e-mail address is
JaBBechard@aol.com). This was
never meant to be a comprehensive list of the National Scottish Language, but
rather an aid to understanding some of the conversations and references in this
text in the Broad Scots. I do
apologise for any mistakes or omissions.
I aimed for my list to be very comprehensive, and it often repeats the
same word in a plural or diminutive form.
As well, it includes words that are quite obvious to native English
speakers, only spelled in such a way to demonstrate the regional pronunciation.
This list is a compressed
form that consists of three columns for ‘word’, ‘definition’, and ‘additional
notes’. It is set up with a comma
between each item and a hard return at the end of each definition. This means that this section could
easily be cut and pasted into its own text file and imported into a database or
spreadsheet as a comma separated variable file (.csv file). Failing that, you could do a search and
replace for commas in this section (I have not used any commas in my words,
definitions or notes) and replace the commas with spaces or tabs.
Word,Definition,Notes
a',all; every,also have
'a',have,
a' body,everyone; everybody,
a' place,all places;
everywhere,
a' thing,everything;
anything,
a'body,everyone; everybody,
aboon,above; up; over,
aboot,about,
abro'd,abroad,
abune,above; up; over,
ac',act,
accep',accept,
accoont,account,
accoontable,accountable,
accoonts,accounts,
ae,one,
ae-sidit,one-sided,
aff,off; away; past; beyond,
affrontit,affronted;
disgraced,also ashamed; shamed
afore,before; in front of,
'afore,before; in front of,
'afore han',beforehand,
'aforehan',beforehand,
aft,often,
aften,often,
again,against; opposed
to,also again
again',against,
agen,against,
'ahin',behind; after; at the
back of,
ahint,behind; after; at the
back of,
'ahint,behind; after; at the
back of,
ain,own,also one
aipple,apple,
airms,arms,also coat of
arms; crest
airmy,army,
airt,quarter; direction;
compass point,also art
airy,chilly,
ait,eat,
aith,oath,
aither,either,
aitin',eating,
aiven,even,
alane,alone,
alang,along,
alison,awl,
alloo,allow,
allooed,allowed,
alloot,allowed,
Almichty,Almighty; God,
amen's,amends,
amo',among,
amoont,amount,
an',and,
ance,once,
ane,one,also a single person
or thing
anent,opposite to; in front
of,also concerning
Anerew,Andrew,
anes,ones,
'aneth,beneath; under,
angers,angers; makes
angry,also grieves
angert,angered; angry,also
grieved
angle-corbie,raven (sent
from heaven),reference to 1 Kings 17:6
anither,another,
An'rew,Andrew,
answert,answered,
appearit,appeared,
appeart,appeared,
approachin',approaching,
appruv,approve,
a'ready,already,
arena,are not,
argle-barglet,bandied words;
disputed; haggled,
art and part,aiding and
abetting,
ashamet,ashamed,
aside,beside,also aside
askin',asking,
asun'er,asunder,
'at,that,
aten,eaten,
a'thegither,all together,
a'thing,everything;
anything,
'at'll,that will,
'at's,that is,
atween,between,
'atween,between,
aucht,eight; eighth,also
ought; own; possess
auchteen,eighteen,
auchty,eighty,
auld,old,
aulder,older,
auldest,oldest,
auld-farrand,old-fashioned,also
droll; witty; quaint
ava',at all; of
all,exclamation of banter; ridicule
awa,away; distant,
awa',away; distant,
aweel,ah well; well then;
well,
awfu',awful,
ay,yes; indeed,exclamation
of surprise; wonder
aye,yes; indeed,
ayont,beyond; after,
'ayont,beyond; after,
backbane,backbone,
baggin',swelling; bulging,
bairn,child,
bairnie,little child,diminutive
bairnly,childish,
bairns,children,
baith,both,
banes,bones,
bangin',banging,
bangt,banged,
barnflure,barn floor,
becomin',becoming,
bed-claes,bedclothes,
beery,bury,
beggin',begging,
beggit,begged,
beginnin',beginning,
behavet,behaved,
bein',being,
beir,bear,
beirin',bearing; allowing,
believin',believing,
belongin',belonging,
ben,in; inside; into;
within; inwards,also inner room
bena,be not; is not,
beseekit,beseeched,
bethinking
(oneself),stopping to think; reflecting,
bidden,abided; stayed,
bide,endure; bear; remain;
live,also desire; wish
bidin',enduring; bearing;
remaining; living,also desiring; wishing
biggin',building,
biggit,built,
binna,be not,
bit,but; bit,also small;
little--diminutive
blamin',blaming,
blaw,blow,
blessin',blessing,
blessin's,blessings,
blin',blind,
blink,take a hasty glance;
ogle,also shine; gleam; twinkle
blude,blood,
bludeshed,bloodshed,
bluid,blood,
boady,body,
body,person; fellow,also
body
bonnie,good; beautiful;
pretty; handsome,
bonny,good; beautiful; pretty;
handsome,
boord,board (i.e. room and
board),
brainch,branch,
brak,break,
brakfast,breakfast,
br'akin',breaking,
brawly,admirably; very; very
much; well,
breid,bread,
brither,brother,
brither man,fellowman;
brother,
brithers,brothers; fellows,
brocht,brought,
broucht,brought,
bude,would prefer to,
buik,book,also Bible
buiks,books,
buildin',building,
b'un',bound,
burnin',burning,
buss,bush; shrub; thicket,
buyin',buying,
by ord'nar,out of the
ordinary; supernatural,also unusual; exceptional
by ord'nar',out of the
ordinary; supernatural,also unusual; exceptional
ca',call; name,
ca'd,called,
cairriage,carriage,
cairry,carry,
callin',calling,
cam,came,
cam',came,
cankerin',souring;
festering,also fretting
can'le,candle,
canna,cannot,
carefu',careful,
caret,cared,
carin',caring,
carryin',carrying,
ca's,calls,
castel,castle,
cat,ointment,lit. soft clay
or mud
cauld,cold,
cauld-hertit,cold-hearted,
'cause,because,
cawpable,capable,
ceevil,civil,
'cep',except; but,
chairge,charge,
chappin',knocking;
hammering; striking,
cheenge,change,
cheengeable,changeable,
cheengt,changed,
cheep,chirp; creak; hint;
word,
cheir,chair,
cheirs,chairs,
ch'ice,choice,
chiel',child; young person;
fellow,term of fondness or intimacy
chimley-piece,chimney piece;
mantle,
chuise,choose,
claes,clothes; dress,
clan,group; class; coterie,
clankin',clanking,
clapper-clash,gossip,
clash,blow; slap; mess,also
gossip; tittle-tattle; tale-bearing
clean,altogether;
entirely,also comely; shapely; empty; clean
clearin',clearing,
clim',climb,
cloods,clouds,
cloot,clout; box (ear);
beat; slap,also patch; mend
close parin',give a short
measure,
cobblet,cobbled,
cobblin',cobbling;
shoemaking,
comena,do not come,
comfortin',comforting,
comin',coming,
comman',command,
comman'ments,commandments,
committit,committed,
comparet,compared,
compleen,complain,
compleenin',complaining,
comprehen',comprehend,
conceivin',conceiving,
concernin',concerning,
concernt,concerned,
condescen',condescend,
conduc',conduct,
conneckit,connected,
considert,considered,
conteened,contained,
contert,contradicted;
thwarted,
contrairy,contrary,
contrive,design,
convic',convict,
cooardly,cowardly,
cooncil,council,
coonsel,counsel,
coont,count,
coontenance,countenance,
coontin',counting,
coontit,counted,
coonts,counts,
coopered,tinkered up,
coorse,coarse,also course
coortin',courting,
corbie,crow; raven,
corbie-steps,corbel
steps,projections on a gable resembling a step
correc',correct,
couldna,could not,
crack,news; story; chat;
gossip,
cracks,news; stories; chats;
gossip,
craps,crops; produce of the
field,
cratur,creature,
cratur',creature,
craturs,creatures,
crawin',crowing,
creakin',creaking,
creepit,crept; crawled,
cried,called; summoned,
croont,crowned,
cry,call; summon,
cryin',calling; summoning,
cuist,cast,
cunnin',cunning,
cuttit,cut; harvested,
dacent,decent,
danglin',dangling,
dauchter,daughter,
daur,dare; challenge,
daured,dared; challenged,
daurna,dare not; do not
dare,
daursay,dare say,
dawin',dawning,
Dawvid,David,
declaret,declared,
declarin',declaring,
'deed,indeed,
dee'd,died,
dee'dna,did not die,
deein',doing,also dying
dees,dies,
deevil,devil,
deevils,devils,
defen',defend,
deid,dead,
deif,deaf,
deifer,deafer,
deil,devil,
deith,death,
deiths,deaths,
denner,dinner,
denyin',denying,
depen',depend,
describit,described,
dewotit,devoted,
didna,did not,
diffeeclety,difficulty,
differ,difference;
dissent,also differ
difficlety,difficulty,
dignities,dignitaries,
dignity,dignitary,
din,sound; din; report;
fame,
dinna,do not,
direc',direct,
direckit,directed,
direckly,directly;
immediately,
direc'ly,directly;
immediately,
dis,does,
disapp'intit,disappointed,
discipleen,discipline,
discontentit,discontented,
discoontenance,discountenance;
refuse to approve of,
discoorse,discourse,
disgeist,digest,
disgracin',disgracing,
disna,does not,
disrespec',disrespect,
dist,dust,
disturbit,disturbed,
div,do,
dochter,daughter,
doesna,does not,
dogsure,quite certain,
doin',doing,
doo,dove,darling--term of
endearment
dooble,double; duplicate,also
double dealing; devious
doobt,suspect; know;
doubt,have an unpleasant conviction
doobtfu',doubtful,
doobtin',suspecting;
knowing,also doubting
doobtless,doubtless,
doobtna,do not suspect; do
not know,also does not doubt
doobts,suspects; knows,also
doubts
doon,down,
door-sill,threshold,
doos,doves,
dottlet,crazy; in dotage,
douce,gentle; sensible;
sober; prudent,
dour,hard; stern; stiff;
sullen,
dowy,sad; lonely;
depressing; dismal,also ailing
doze,dose,
drap,drop; small quantity
of,
drappin',dropping,
drappit,dropped,
dreid,dread,
dreidfu',dreadful;
dreadfully,
dreidit,dreaded,
drogues,drugs,
drunken,drunken,
du,do,
duer,doer,
duin',doing,
dull,deaf; hard of hearing,
dune,done,
du't,do it,
dwall,dwell,
dyke,wall of stone or turf,
earth-dyke,wall of earth,
Ebberdeen,Aberdeen,
edder,adder,
e'e,eye,
eemage,image,
een,eyes,
e'en,even; just; simply,also
eyes; evening
efter,after; afterwards,
efterwards,afterwards,
elbuck,elbow,
en',end,
encoonter,encounter,
endeevour,endeavour,
eneuch,enough,
enew,enough,
Englan',England,
enstance,instance,
enterest,interest,
er',ere; before,
etin,giant,also ogre
exackly,exactly,
excep',except,
expeckit,expected,
experrience,experience,
explainin',explaining,
fa',fall; befall,
fac',fact,
fac's,facts; truths;
realities,
factor,manager of a landed
property,lets farms; collects rents; pays wages
faddomless,fathomless,
failt,failed,
faimilies,families,
faimily,family,
faimily-name,family name;
surname,
fain,eager; anxious;
fond,also fondly; gladly
fa'in',falling,
fairmer,farmer,
Faith!,Indeed!;
Truly!,exclamation
faither,father,
faithers,fathers,
faithfu',faithful,
fallow,fellow; chap,
fancyin',fancying,
fa's,falls,
faund,found,
fause,false,
fau't,fault; blame,
fauvour,favour,
fauvoured,favoured,
fawvour,favour,
fearfu',fearful; easily
frightened,
fears,makes afraid;
frightens; scares,
fearsome,terrifying;
fearful; awful,
feart,afraid; frightened;
scared,
feathert,feathered,
feelin',feeling,
fell,very; potent; keen;
harsh; sharp,intensifies; also turf
feow,few,
fess,fetch,
fillsna,does not fill,
fin',find; feel,
fit,foot; base,also fit;
capable; able
fittin',fitting,
fittit,fitted,
fivver,fever,
fixtur,fixture,
flangna,did not kick; did
not throw,
flee,fly (insect),
flingin',kicking; throwing,
flit,shift; remove; depart,
followt,followed,
forbeirs,ancestors;
forefathers,
forby,as well; as well as;
besides,also over and above
forepairt,front part,also
early part (e.g. of the night)
forgettin',forgetting,
for't,for it,
fortin,fortune,
fortins,fortunes,
fowk,folk,
fra,from,
frae,from,
frae hame,away; not at home,
freely,quite; very;
thoroughly,
freen',friend; relation,
freen'ly,friendly,
freens,friends; relations,
freen's,friends; relations,
fricht,frighten; scare
away,also fright
frichtit,frightened; scared
away,
fu',full; very; much,
fule,fool,
fules,fools,
fulish,foolish,
full,fully,also full
f'un',found,
f'undation,foundation,
furnisht,furnished,
furreign,foreign,
furth,forth,
fut,foot,
futur,future,
gae,gave,
ga'e,gave,
gaed,went,
gaedna,did not go,
gaein',going,
gaein's,goings,
gairden,garden,
gait,way; fashion,also
route; street
gaither,gather,
gaitherin',gathering,
gane,gone,
gang,go; goes; depart; walk,
gangin',going; walking,
gangin's,goings,
gangs,goes; walks,
gar,cause; make; compel,
gars,makes; causes; compels,
gat,got,
gauin',going,
gein,if; as if; then;
whether,also given
German Ocean,,old reference
to the English Channel & North Sea
gether,gather,
gethert,gathered,
gettin',getting,
gey,fairly; considerable,
ghaist,ghost; soul; spirit,
ghaists,ghosts; spirits;
souls,
gie,give,
gied,gave,
giedst,gave; gaveth (King
James style),
giein',giving,
gien,if; as if; then;
whether,also given
gi'en,given,
gies,gives,
gie's,gives; give us; give
his,
gie't,give it,
girn,grimace; snarl; twist
the features,
girned,grimaced; snarled;
twisted features,also found fault
girnin',grimacing; snarling,
git,get; acquire,
glaid,glad,
glaidness,gladness,
glaiss,glass,
gleg,quick; lively; smart;
quick-witted,
glimp,glimpse; glance,also
the least degree
gloamin',twilight; dusk,
glower,stare; gaze; scowl,
glowered,stared; gazed;
scowled,
glowert,stared; gazed;
scowled,
gluves,gloves,
God-fearin',God-fearing,
goin',going,
gowk,cuckoo; fool;
blockhead,
gran',grand; capital;
first-rate,
gran'child,grandchild,
gran'er,grander,
gran'father,grandfather,
grantin',granting,
grâtis,free; gratuitous,
greit,cry; weep,
greitin',crying; weeping,
grip,grasp; understand,
grippin',gripping,
grit,great,
grit-gran'mother-tongue,great
grandmother-tongue,
groanin',groaning,
growin',growing,
grue,feeling of horror;
tremor,also tremble
gruntin',grunting,
grup,grip; grasp,
grutch,grudge,
gude,good,also God
gudeman,master; husband;
head of household,also farmer
gudewife,mistress of the
house; wife,also farmer's wife
guid,good,also God
guidman,master; husband;
head of household,also farmer
guidwife,mistress of the
house; wife,also farmer's wife
gurly,threatening to be
stormy,also growling; boisterous
ha',have,also hall; house
hadna,had not,
hae,have; has,
ha'e,have,
haein',having,
haena,have not,
hae't,have it,
haibitable,habitable,
haill,whole,
hailstanes,hailstones,
Haith!,Faith!,exclamation of
surprise
halesome,wholesome; pure,
half-ways,half; partly,
hame,home,
hame-like,like home,
han',hand,
handiwark,handiwork,
handy,near by; close at
hand,
han'fu',handful,
hangin',hanging,
hangt,hanged,
han'led,handled; treated,
han'let,handled,
han'lin',handling,
han's,hands,
han'some,handsome,
hantle,much; large quantity;
far,
happed,happened,
happent,happened,
h'ard,heard,
hardenin',hardening,
hasna,does not have,
hathenish,heathenish,
haud,hold; keep,
hauden,held; kept,
haudin',holding; keeping,
hauds,holds; keeps,
haud's,hold us; keep us,also
hold his; keep his
h'aven,heaven,
h'avenly,heavenly,
h'avens,heavens,
hawt,hawked; cleared the
throat,also hesitated
healin',healing,
heap,very much,also heap
hearin',hearing,
hearken,hearken; hear;
listen,
hearkenin',hearkening;
listening,
hearkent,hearkened; heard;
listened,
hearkin',hearkening;
listening,
heels ower heid,topsy-turvy,
heicher,higher,
heid,head; heading,
heids,heads; headings,
heild,held,
helpit,helped,
herd,herd-boy; cow-boy,also
herd
herd-laddie,herd-boy;
cow-boy,
hermonious,harmonious,
hermony,harmony,
hersel',herself,
hert,heart,
hertbrak,heartbreak,
hert-brak,heartbreak,
hertily,heartily,
herts,hearts,
het,hot; burning,
hidin',hiding,
hielan's,highlands,
himsel',himself,
hin'er,hinder,
hing,hang,
hingin',hanging,
hit,it,emphatic
hiz,us,emphatic
honourt,honoured,
hoo,how,
hooever,however,
hoor,hour,
hoose,house,
hoosekeep,keep house,
hoosekeeper,housekeeper,
hoot,pshaw,exclamation of
doubt or contempt
hoots,pshaw,exclamation of
doubt or contempt
hose,stocking,
houp,hope,
houpless,hopeless,
howk,dig; excavate,
howkit,dug; excavated,
howlin',howling,
hoydenish,inelegantly,
hue,look; appearance,
hummt,stammered; spoke
hesitatingly,also murmured
hungert,starved,
i',in; into,
I doobt,I know; I suspect,
ilk,every; each,also common;
ordinary
ilka,every; each,also
common; ordinary
ill,bad; evil; hard; harsh;
badly,also misfortune; harm
'ill,will,
ill-mainnert,ill-mannered,
ill-pleast,not pleased;
unhappy,
ill-used,used wrongly,
ill-usin',using wrongly,
'im,him,
implorin',imploring,
impruvt,improved,
in the sulks,sullen,
ineequities,iniquities,
ingle-neuk,chimney-corner or
recess; fireside,
inquirin',inquiring,
intendit,intended
,
intil,into; in; within,
intil't,into it,
inveesible,invisible,
ir,are,
isna,is not,
is't,is it,
i'stead,instead,
ither,other; another;
further,
ithers,others,
itherwise,otherwise,
it'll,it will,
itsel',itself,
jaud,lass; girl; worthless
woman,old worn-out horse
jeally,jelly,
jeedge,judge,
jeedges,judges,
jeedgment,judgement,
j'in,join,
jist,just,
justifee,justify,
justifeein',justifying,
keek,look; peep; spy,
keepin',keeping,
keepit,kept,
ken,know; be acquainted
with; recognise,
kenna,do not know,
kenned,known; knew,
kennin',knowing,
kens,knows,
kent,known; knew,
killin',killing,
kin,kind; nature; sort;
agreeable,also somewhat; in some degree; kin
kin',kind; nature; sort;
agreeable,also somewhat; in some degree
kin'ness,kindness,
kirk,church,
kirk-session,lowest
Presbyterian Church court,has spiritual oversight of the congregation
kirk-time,time to go to
church,
kirkyard,churchyard,
kissin',kissing,
kist,chest; coffer; box;
chest of drawers,
knockin',knocking,
knockit,knocked,
lad,boy,term of commendation
or reverence
laddie,boy,term of affection
laddies,boys,term of
affection
lads,boys,term of
commendation or reverence
laich,low; inferior,
laichest,lowest,
lairger,larger,
laistit,lasted,
Laitin,Latin,
lan',land; country; ground,
lane,lone; alone; lonely;
solitary,
lanely,lonely,
lanesome,lonesome,
lang,long; big; large;
many,also slow; tedious
langer,longer,
lang's,long as,
lan'lord,landlord,
lass,girl; young woman,term
of address
lasses,girls; young women,
lassie,girl,term of
endearment
lat,let; allow,
latna,let not; do not let,
lat's,let's; let us; let
his,
latten,let; allowed,
lattin',letting; allowing,
lauch,laugh,
lauchin',laughing,
lauchs,laughs,
lave,rest; remainder;
others,also leave
laverock,lark (type of
bird),
lay't,lay it,
lea',leave,
learnin',learning,also
teaching
learnit,learned,
learnt,learned,also taught
leavin',leaving,
leddy,lady,also boy; lad;
laddy
leddyship,ladyship,
leeberty,liberty,
lees,lies,
leevin',living; living
being,
leevit,lived,
len'th,length,
leuch,laughed,
ley,leave,
licht,light,
lichten,lighten,
lichter,lighter,
lichtest,lightest,
lichtit,lighted,
lichts,lights,
lickin',thrashing;
punishment,
lift,load; boost; lift;
helping hand,also sky; heavens
liftin',lifting,
liftit,lifted,
like,like; likely to;
looking as if to,also as it were; as if
likin',liking,
likit,liked,
lines,any written or printed
authorities,
lippen,trust; depend on,also
look after
lippent,trusted; depended
on,also looked after
listenin',listening,
livin',living,
'll,will,
loaf-breid,wheaten loaf (of
bread),
lockit,locked,
lodgin',lodging,
lo'e,love,
lo'ed,loved,
lo'ein',loving,
lo'es,loves,
lo'in',loving,
lood,loud,
lookin',looking,
lookit,looked,
loot,let; allowed;
permitted,
losin',losing,
lovesna,does not love,
lowlan's,lowlands,
lowse,loose; free,also
dishonest; immoral
ludgin',lodging,
lugs,ears,
luik,look,
luikin',looking,
luikit,looked,
luiks,looks,
luved,loved,
lyin',lying,
macker,maker; God
,
mainner,manner,
mair,more; greater,
mairch,march,
maist,most; almost,
'maist,almost,
maister,master; mister,
maistly,mostly; most of all,
maitter,matter,
mak,make; do,
makin',making; doing,
makker,maker; God,
maks,makes; does,
manse,Scottish minister's
official residence,
mattin',matting,
maun,must; have to,
maunna,must not; may not,
mayna,may not,
meanin',meaning,
meenute,minute,
meeserable,miserable,
meetin',meeting,
mem,Ma'am; Miss; Madam,
men',mend,
men of Gotham,wise men who
play the fools,reference to an English fable
men'in',mending; healing,
men'it,mended; healed,
mentiont,mentioned,
merriet,married,
merry,marry,also merry
merryin',marrying,
micht,might,
michtna,might not,
michty,mighty; God,
mickle,great; big; much;
abundant; very,also important; proud; haughty
mids,midst; middle,
min',mind; recollection,also
recollect; remember
minnie,mother; mommy,pet
name
minnisters,ministers,
min's,minds; reminds;
recollects,
mirk,darkness; gloom; night,
mirracle,miracle,
mischance,misfortune; bad
luck,
mischeef,mischief; injury;
harm,
misdoobt,doubt; disbelieve;
suspect,
misguidit,wasted;
mismanaged; ill-used,
mistak,mistake,
mither,mother,
mither-tongue,mother-tongue,
Mononday,Monday,
mony,many,
moo,mouth,
moo',mouth,
moo's,mouths,
moose,mouse,
mooth,mouth,
mornin',morning,
mouldy,dirty; soiled,
muckle,huge; enormous; big;
great; much,
muir,moor; heath,
munelicht,moonlight,
m'untain,mountain,
murdert,murdered,
muvs,moves; affects,
my lane,on my own,
mysel',myself,
na,not; by no means,
nae,no; none; not,
naebody,nobody; no one,
naething,nothing,
naither,neither,
nait'ral,natural,
nane,none,
nat'ral,natural,
natur,nature,
natur',nature,
nearhan',nearly; almost;
near by,
neb,tip; point; nib; beak,
necessar',necessary,
neebour,neighbour,
neebours,neighbours,
needsna,does not need to,
neeper,neighbour,
negleckit,neglected,
neist,next; nearest,
news,talk; gossip,
nicht,night; evening,
nigh,near; nearly,
nip,smart; squeeze; bite;
pinch,also cheat; steal
no,not,
no',not,
noo,now,
nor,than; although; if,also
nor
nowt,cattle; oxen,
o',of; on,
obeddience,obedience,
obeyin',obeying,
objec',object,
observt,observed,
occurrt,occurred,
offerin',offering,
ohn,without; un-,uses past
participle not present progressive
on a suddent,suddenly; all
of a sudden,
ony,any,
onybody,anybody; anyone,
onygait,anyway,
onything,anything,
onyw'y,anyway,
oonbelief,unbelief,
oondefent,undefended,
oongratefu',ungrateful,
oonholy,unholy,
oonlikly,unlikely,
oonseen,unseen,
oor,our,
oors,ours,
oorsels,ourselves,
oorsel's,ourselves,
oot,out,
ootside,outside,
ootward,outward,
open-hertit,open-hearted,
openin',opening,
oppresst,oppressed,
or,before; ere; until;
by,also or
ordinar',ordinary; usual;
natural,also custom; habit
ord'nar,ordinary; usual;
natural
,also custom; habit
ord'nar',ordinary; usual;
natural
,also custom; habit
oucht,anything; all,also
ought
ouchtna,ought not,
ow,oh,exclamation of
surprise
ower,over; upon; too,
owerbeirin',overbearing,
owercome,overcome; recover,
ower's,over us; over his,
ower't,over it,
pack,property; belongings,
pailace,palace,
pairt,part,
pairties,parties,
pairts,parts,
parin',paring; cutting off
the surface,
parritch,oatmeal porridge,
partic'lar,particular,
pat,put; made,
pattren,pattern,
peacefu',peaceful,
pecooliar,peculiar,
peety,pity,
perris,parish,
perswaud,persuade,
pey,pay,
peyin',paying,
peyment,payment,
peyt,paid,
p'int,point,
plack,the smallest
coin,worth 1/3 of a penny
plaguin',plaguing,
plaister,plaster,
playin',playing,
pleasin',pleasing,
pleast,pleased,
pleasur,pleasure,
pleesur,pleasure,
pluckit,plucked,
pooches,pockets,
pooer,power,
potterin',pottering,
praist,praised,
prayin',praying,
preejudice,prejudice,
preejudized,prejudiced,
preevilege,privilege,
prefar,prefer,
prejudeese,prejudice,
preparin',preparing,
preshume,presume,
press,wall-cupboard with
shelves,
presses,wall-cupboards with
shelves,
preten',pretend,
prevailt,prevailed,
prood,proud,
protec',protect,
providin',providing,
prowlin',prowling,
pu',pull,
pu'd,pulled,
pu'in',pulling,
puir,poor,
pullin',pulling,
pu'pit,pulpit,
pushin',pushing,
putten,put,
puttin',putting,
quaiet,quiet,
quaietly,quietly,
queston,question,
quo',swore; said; quoth,
ragin',raging,
raither,rather,
rampaugin',rampaging,
rattlin',rattling,
readin',reading,
rebukit,rebuked,
recollec',recollect,
reid,red,
reivin',plundering;
robbing,also roaming; straying
remaint,remained,
repentit,repented,
resolvt,resolved,
respec',respect,
richt,right; correct,also
mend
richteous,righteous,
richteousness,righteousness,
richts,rights,
rin,run,
ringin',ringing,
rinnin',running,
rist,rest,
rive,rent; tear; tug;
wrench,
rizzon,reason,
rizzonable,reasonable,
rizzons,reasons,
roarin',roaring,
ro'd,road; course; way,
ro'd-side,roadside,
romage,disturbance,
romour,rumour,
roomie,little room,diminutive
roon',around; round,
rouch,rough,
rouchly,roughly,
routit,bellowed; made a loud
noise,also poked about; cleared out
row,roll; wrap up; wind,
rudimen's,rudiments,
rum'lin's,rumblings,
rute,root,
's,us; his; as; is,also has
s',shall,
sacrets,secrets,
sae,so; as,
saft,muddy; soft; silly;
foolish,
safter,muddier; softer;
sillier,
saidna,did not say,
sair,sore; sorely; sad;
hard; very; greatly,also serve
sair-hertit,sad of heart,
saitisfee,satisfy,
sall,shall,
sanct,saint,
sarks,shirts,
sattle,settle,
sattlet,settled,
sattlin,settling; deciding,
savin',saving,also except
Sawbath,Sabbath; Sunday,
Sawbath-day,Sabbath day;
Sunday,
saxpence,sixpence,
say,speech; saying; proverb,
sayin',saying,
scaret,scared,
school-maister,schoolmaster,
scriptur,Scripture,
scriptur',Scripture,
scunnert,disgusted; loathed,
scushlin,slide; shuffle in
walking,
seein',seeing,
seekin',seeking,
seemile,simile,
seemna,do not seem,
seemt,seemed,
seesna,does not see,
see't,see it,
sel',self,
sellin',selling,
semple,simple; of low birth,
sen',send,
sen'in',sending,
servan',servant,
servan's,servants,
setna,do not set,
Setterday,Saturday,
settin',setting,
shakin',shaking,
shamefu',modest; shy;
bashful,
sharper,sharper; rougher;
coarser,also more clever
shaw,show; reveal,also grove
shaws,shows,
shelterin',sheltering,
shillin',shilling,
shillins,shillings,
shiverin',shivering,
shochle,shake about; joggle;
stagger,
shoothers,shoulders,
shoots,shouts,
shouldna,should not,
shue,shoe,
shuit,suit,
shune,shoes,
shutten,shut,
sic,such; so; similar,
sicht,sight,
sichts,sights,
siclike,suchlike;
likewise,like such a person or thing
sic-like,suchlike;
likewise,like such a person or thing
sidewise,sideways,
siller,silver; money;
wealth,
simmer,Summer,
sin,since; ago; since
then,also sin; sun
sin',since; ago; since then,
sittin',sitting,
skean dhu,knife; dirk;
short-sword,
slaverin',slobbering;
talking fast; flattering,
sleepit,slept,
sma',small; little; slight;
narrow; young,
sma'est,smallest; littlest;
slightest; narrowest,
smugglet,concealed; hid,
sodger,soldier,
some,somewhat; rather;
quite; very,also some
somewhaur,somewhere,
soon',sound,
soon's,sounds,
soop,sweep; brush,
sornin',taking food or
lodging; sponging,taking by force of threat
soucht,sought,
sowl,soul,
sowls,souls,
spak,spoke,
spang,leap; bound; spring;
span,
spark,speck; spot; blemish;
atom,
speakin',speaking,
speakna,speak not; do not
speak,
speerit,spirit,
speerits,spirits,
speir,ask about; enquire;
question,
speiredna,did not ask about
or enquire,
speirin',asking about; enquiring;
questioning,
speirt,asked about;
enquired; questioned,
spellin',spelling,
speyk,speak,
speyks,speaks,
spier,ask about; enquire;
question,
sp'ilt,spoiled,
stair,stairs; staircase,
stamack,stomach,
stammert,staggered;
stumbled; faltered,
stan',stand; stop,
stan'in,standing,
stan'in',standing,
stan's,stands,
startit,started,
stealin',stealing,
steek,shut; close;
clench,also stitch (as in clothing)
steer,stir; disturbance;
commotion; fuss,
steik,shut; close; push,also
stitch (as in clothing)
stick,stick; gore; butt with
horns,
stickin',sticking; goring,
stiles,gates; passages over
a wall,
stime,glimpse; glance; least
particle,faintest form of an object
stoot,stout; healthy;
strong; plucky,
stoppit,stopped,
story-buik,storybook,
strae,straw,
straicht,straight,
strak,struck,
stramash,uproar; tumult;
fuss; brawl,
straucht,straighten;
straight,
stren'th,strength,
stude,stood,
sud,should,
suddent,sudden; suddenly,
sudna,should not,
sune,soon; early,
suner,sooner,
sun'ert,sundered,
supposin',supposing,
sutors,shoemakers; cobblers,
swarmin',swarming,
sweir,swear,
sweirin',swearing,
swingin',swinging,
syne,ago; since; then; at
that time,also in (good) time
't,it,
ta,to,
tae,toe; also tea,also the
one; to
taen,taken; seized,
ta'en,taken; seized,
taibernacles,tabernacles,
taich,teach,
tak,take; seize,
takin',taking,
takna,do not take,
taks,takes; seizes,
taksna,does not take,
talkin',talking,
tane,the one,
tanneree,tannery,
tap,top; tip; head,
taucht,taught,
tauld,told,
teep,type,
teeps,types,
teetin',peeping; stealing a
glance,
teetle,title,
telled,told,
tellin',telling,
tellt,told,
telt,told,
ten'ency,tendency,
ten'er,tender,
ten'erest-hertit,most
tender-hearted,
thae,those; these,
than,then,also than
thankfu',thankful,
thankfu'ness,thankfulness,
thankit,thanked,
the day,today,
the morn,tomorrow,
the morn's,tomorrow is,
the nicht,tonight,
the noo,just now; now,
thegither,together,
themsel's,themselves,
thereawa',thereabouts; in
that quarter,
thinkin',thinking,
thinkna,do not think,
thinksna,does not think,
this day week,in a week's
time; a week from now,also a week ago
this mony a day,for some
time,
thocht,thought,
thoo,thou; you (God),
thoucht,thought,
thrashen,threshed,
thraw,throw; turn; twist,
threid,thread,
threip,argue
obstinately,also maintain by dint of assertion
thro't,throat,
throttlin',throttling,
throu',through,
throuw,through,
til,to; till; until; about;
at; before,
till's,to his; to us,
til's,to his; to us,
til't,to it; at it,
timorsome,timorous; fearful;
nervous,
tither,the other,
tod,fox,
toddlin',toddling; walking
unsteadily,
toon,town; village,
toon-fowk,town folk; city
folk,
toons,towns; villages,
toor,tower,
toot-moot,low muttering
conversation,
touchin',touching,
traivel,travel,
traivellin',travelling,
traivels,travels,
traivelt,travelled,
tramp,trudge,also tramp
transplantit,transplanted,
travellin',travelling,
treatin',treating,
trem'lin',trembling,
tre't,treat,
trible,trouble,
tribled,troubled,
triblet,troubled,
trimlin',trembling,
trim'lin',trembling,
troth,truth; indeed,also
used as an exclamation
trowth,truth; indeed,also
used as an exclamation
trustit,trusted,
tryin',trying,
'tsel',itself,
tu,too; also,
tuik,took,
turnin',turning,
turnpike-stair,narrow spiral
staircase,
turnt,turned,
twa,two; a few,
twalmonth,twelvemonth; year,
twasome,couple; pair,
twise,twice,
unco,unknown; odd; strange;
uncouth,also very great
unco',unknown; odd; strange;
uncouth,also very great
un'erstan',understand,
un'erstan'in,understanding,
un'erstan'in',understanding,
un'erstan's,understands,
un'erstan't,understood,
unlockit,unlocked,
up the stair,upstairs,also
to heaven
upbringin',upbringing,
uphaud,uphold; maintain;
support,
upo',upon; on to; at,
upsettin',forward;
ambitious; stuck-up; proud,
uttert,uttered,
varily,verily; truly,
varra,very,
veesitation,visitation,
veesitin',visiting,
veesitit,visited,
veesits,visits,
verra,very; true; real,
v'ice,voice,
vooed,vowed,
wa',wall,also way; away
wad,would,
wadna,would not,
waitin',waiting,
waitit,waited,
wan'erin',wandering,
wantin',wanting; lacking;
without; in want of,
wantit,wanted,
war,were,
wark,work; labour,
warkin',working,
warklessness,inability to
work,
warks,works,
warl',world; worldly
goods,also a large number
warl's,worlds,
warna,were not,
warnin',warning,
warran',warrant; guarantee,
warst,worst,
warstle,wrestle,
wa's,walls,also ways
wasna,was not,
was't,was it,
wastena,do not waste,
watter,water,
wauges,wages,
wauk,wake,
waukin',waking,
waukit,woke,
waur,worse,also spend money
wawves,waves,
wayfarin',wayfaring,
weather-cock,place where
criminals were kept,reference to the church steeple
weddin',wedding,
wee,small; little; bit,also
short time; while
weel,well; fine,
weel-behavet,well-behaved,
weel-kent,well-known;
familiar,
weel's,well as,
weicht,weight,
weir,wear,also hedge; fence;
enclosure
weirer,wearer,
wha,who,
whaever,whoever,
whan,when,
wha's,who is,also whose
whase,whose,
What for no?,Why not?,
What for?,Why?,
whate'er,whatever,
whauls,whales,
whaur,where,
whaurat,wherefore,
whaurever,wherever,
whauron,whereon,
whause,whose,
wheen,little; few; number;
quantity,
whiles,sometimes; at times;
now and then,
whilk,which,
whustlin',whistling,
wi',with,
willin',willing,
win,reach; gain; get; go;
come,
win',wind,
winna,will not,
winnin',reaching; gaining;
getting
,
win's,winds,
winsome,large; comely;
merry,
wi'oot,without,
withoot,without,
won,reached; gained; got,
wonderin',wondering,
won'er,wonder; marvel,
won'erfu',wonderful; great;
large,
won'erin',wondering,
woo',wool,
workin',working,
worryin',worrying,
wouldna,would not,
wow,woe,exclamation of
wonder or grief or satisfaction
wrang,wrong; injured,
wranged,wronged,
wrangs,wrongs,
wrangt,wronged,
wringin',wringing,
writin',writing,
wud,wood;
forest,adj.-enraged; angry; also would
wudna,would not; will not,
wull,will; wish; desire,also
astray; stray; wild
wullin',willing; wanting,
wullin'ly,willingly,
wulls,wills; wishes;
desires,
wuman,woman,
wur,lay out,also were
wuss,wish,
w'y,way,
wynds,narrow lanes or
streets; alleys,
w'ys,ways,
wyte,blame; reproach; fault,
ye,you; yourself,
year,years,also year
ye'll,you will,
yer,your,
yerd,yard; garden,
ye're,you are,
yerl,earl,
yersel',yourself,
yon,that; those; that there;
these,
yon'er,yonder; over there;
in that place,
yon's,that is; that (thing)
there is,
yoong,young,
yoonger,younger,
yoongest,youngest,
Zacchay,Zaccheus,see Luke 19
</div1>